°/. * o . o ^ . \^\- % ' "'^^- .^V'''' .s"^-^ ,0 0. 0" _. , -.V-- r> -d^ -;% .^^ "^ ^^> .^^ . %. .^^' s^ \. -/■ ^^*. t^ •^« / J * '' " * / .0 O 0^ >»■' •^ 1^ •\ ^. ^'■' "^^ .0- \ / ' " / 'C' ■^ "^ ^^'■ '^^ <* ■N"' ^^ ,^v ^<>. v^ vV ./'. s^ ,-0 .0 o. ^'?-' .A^ ^-^^iii^-^V.o^ o 0^ X> .c^'^' .-.V A^^ '^z- '^J- <$■ ■'^ .^^ vOC/. >X>' ,0 O, 0^ ^• aV ■"^^ v^' "^^ v^^ .x^^- -^^v - ..^^ .\' * >^^^ ^^^^: ■x .0^" ■ 0' .^^' "0 0"= .^■^' CELEBRATED SPEECHES OF CHATHAM, BURKE, AND ERSKINE, TO WHICH IS ADDED, THE ARGUMENT OF MR. MACKINTOSH, IN THE CASE OF PELTIER. SELECTED BY A .MEMBER OF THE PHILADELPHIA BAR. tulit eloquium iiisolitum facundia prseceps; Utiliumque sagax rerum et divina futuri Sortilegis non discrepuit sententia Delphis. Hor. DESILVER, THOMAS, & Co., No. 253, MARKET ST. 18 36. TT^ 38. r c ^/ 4?^ PREFACE. In selecting the Speeches contained in the following pages, the compiler has been influenced by two con- siderations, the one having reference solely to their literary merit, the other to the dignity and importance of the topics of which they treat. In a country where almost every citizen has occa- sion^, at some period, to express his sentiments in a pubhc assembly, the diffusion of correct models for popular and deliberative oratory is eminently desirable. Native force, unassisted by judgment and taste, like a projectile ill-directed, not only falls short of its aim, but becomes a useless and dann^erous missile. No man is born an orator — no man is even fashioned into a judicious and impressive speaker without a certain amount of study and training. The efforts of an un- schooled and fervid imagination, spurning and over- leaping the boundaries of good sense and propriety, may arouse the passions and obtain the applause of the unreflecting ; but it is to " the words of truth and soberness," sustained and elevated by a cultivated mind and chastened fancy, that men give the name and the praise of eloquence. It should ever be recol- lected that oratory is peculiarly an art, perfected only, according to the ancients, by the knowledge and prac- tice of almost every other, and the mere physics of which, — " the eloquence of the body," as Quintilian phrases it, — were with them a subject of intense apph- cation: If the improved state of popular education renders that branch of study less important to a mod- ern speaker, it, at the same time, enhances the neces- sity of increased attention to that which is purely in- tellectual. While the "fierce democracy" of Athens iv PREFACE. were sterner critics in accent and gesture, the Ameri- can people more rigidly insist that their understandings shall be convinced, their taste consulted, and their minds enlightened. There is doubtless some reason in the strictures which have been advanced upon the character of our legislative debates. They are, for the most part, pro- lix and tedious on the one hand, or tumid and extrava- gant on the other — in either case, they are superficial and discursive. These defects may in part be at- tributed to the republican principles and forms which predominate in our Constitution and laws. We have no professional legislators, and, with the exception of a single class, few practised speakers ; -Veniet de plebe togata Qui juris nodos, et legum senigmata solvat." Habits of condensed thought and expression are not acquired in a day, nor are the pursuits of active life al- ways consistent with that intellectual training which best makes men apt speakers by first making them close thinkers. So far as- this and similar evils are incident to our political system, we submit to them as more than counterbalanced by the practical equality and freedom of our institutions. But a vicious style and defective method can be inherent in no form of gov- ernment, since they result less from a deficiency of power than from a depressed literary standard. It is to elevate this standard, to bring the American reader into familiar and accurate acquaintance with the best examples of English eloquence, to show him with what skill and effect his language has been wielded for the various purposes of attack and defence, of argu- ment and invective, of satire and eulogium, and there- by to raise, refine, and purify the national taste, already highly improved, that the present collection has been undertaken and will be prosecuted. This and a succeeding volume, (to be compiled prin- cipally from the works of Fox, Pitt, and Sheridan,) will PREFACE. V contain, though not precisely in a chronological series, as many of the more distinguished efforts of the lead- ers of the British Parliament, from the commencement of the American war to the treaty of Amiens, as their limits will admit. The collection will also include some of the popular and forensic addresses of the same period, and will be followed by a selection from the speeches of Mr. Canning, Lord Brougham, and others, by which the work will be completed to the present time. In regard to the period first alluded to, we know of none in English history more capable of affording instruction to an American citizen, whether we consider the magnitude of the topics discussed or the energy of intellect and extent of erudition applied to their consideration. The assertion of those free principles, the denial of which dismembered one an- cient government and dissolved another, was nowhere louder than in the British Parliament ,• and the defence of personal rights, political, civil, and religious, was no- where manlier, though elsewhere perhaps more suc- cessful, than in the British courts. It is not our busi- ness here to arraign motives ; perhaps in the acrimo- nious contests of that day, the difference was, often, less about principles than about their application. Cer- tain it is that we may reap benefit from a collision, in which institutions were assailed, on the one side, by genius prompted by lofty purpose and upheld by high ambition, and defended on the other by all the resources which power could enlist from learning, zeal, and patriotism. The basis of civil government, the rights of the subject, and the prerogative of the ruler, hung upon men's tongues, not as matters of fanciful and idle theory, but in direct reference to the fate of the em- pire and the preservation of its laws and Constitution. Of a scarcely less important character, though of more restricted interest, were the various questions which arose during this period in relation to the affairs of India and Ireland, and the principles which charac- terized the financial system of Mr. Pitt. Growing out vi PREFACE. of the first of these, we must be permitted to mention the Impeachment of Hastings as unrivalled in the pe- culiar solemnity of its theme, the dignity with which its forms were conducted, and the labor, talent, and eloquence which distinguished its prosecution. The arguments of the more prominent managers of that Impeachment,-"conspicu£e divina Philippica famse,"- cannot but occupy a large space in a collection like the present, and, while the language lasts, will exhibit, in the highest degree, the compatibility of grace with strength, the union of the loftiest flights of the imagi- nation with the noblest efibrts of the reason. Such are the principal sources whence the contents of these volumes have been drawn. The nature of the undertaking precludes novelty; but, while it offers little that is new, it contains, at the same time, nothing that is low, mean, or unworthy. It exhibits the works of genius on a conspicuous theatre, aiming at noble end« and laboring for immortality. If it cannot teach u'* better to appreciate the rights which we enjoy, there are few of us but may learn from it in what manner they may best be defended against the inroads of power or the intrusions of ambition. CONTENTS. LORD CHATHAM. Speech of William Pitt the elder, (afterwards Lord Chatham,) m the House of Commons, January^G, 1766, on the right to tax America, Page 9 Lord Chatham's Speech, in the House of Lords, January 9, 1770, in reply to Lord Mansfield, on an amendment to the address to the throne, 17 Lord Chatham's Speech, in the House of Lords, January 20, 1775, on a motion for an Address to his Majesty, to give immediate orders for removing his Troops from Boston, -------26 Lord Chatham's Speech, in the House of Lords, at the opening of Par- liament, November 18, 1777, 34 Lord Chatham's Speech, in the House of Lords, December 11, 1777, against a Motion for an Adjournment, -----------44 BURKE. Mr. Burkk's Speech, on American Taxation, April 19, 1774, - - - - 50 Mr. Burke's Speech, to the Electors of Bristol, --------96 ]\Ir. Burke's Speech, on the Nabob of Arcot's Debts, ------ 130 Mr. Burke's Speech, on the Bill for the relief of Protestant Dissente-rs, 184 Extract from the Speech of Mr. Burke, upon Mr. Fox's East India Bill, 194. Extract from the Speech of Mr. Burke, on opening the Impeachment of Warren Hastings, Esq., February 15 and 16, 1788, 237 ERSKINE. Mr. Erskine's Speech, in Defence of the Liberty of the Press, delivered on the Trial of Thomas Paine for a Libel, - 327 Speech of the Hon. T. Erskine, on the Prosecution of the Publisher of the Age of Reason, -- 354 Mr. Erskine's Speech, in IMarkliam vs. Fawcett, before the Deputy Sheriff of Middlesex and a special Jury, upon an Inquisition of Damages, 365 Mr. Erskine's Speech, for the Defendant in the Case of Howard vs. Bingham, 378 ' Mr. Erskine's Speech, in Defence of Thomas Hardy, indicted for high Treason in compassing the Death of the King, 387 M'INTOSH. Speech of IMr. M'Intosh, (since Sir James JM'Intosh,) in the Court of King's Bench, February 21, 1903, on the Trial of M. Peltier for a Libel on the First Consul of the Frencli Republic. - - - - - 496 SPEECH OF WILLIAM PITT, THE ELDER, (AFTERWARDS LORD CHATHAM,) IN THE HOUSE OF COMMONS, JANUARY 16, 17(6, ON THE RIGHT TO TAX AMERICA. Mr. Speaker, I CAME to town but-to day. I was a stranger to the tenor of his majesty's speech, and the proposed address, till I heard them read in this house. Unconnected and unconsulted, I have not the means of information. I am fearful of offending through mistake, and therefore beg to be indulged with a second read- ing of the pi'oposed address. I commend the king's speech, and approve of the address in answer ; as it decides nothing, every gentleman being left at perfect liberty to take such a part concerning America, as he might afterwards see fit. One word only I cannot approve of — an early, is a word that does not belong to the notice the ministry have given to parliament of the troubles in America. In a matter of such importance, the communication ought to have been immediate. I speak not with respect to parties. I stand up in this place single and independent. As to the late ministry, every capital measure they have taken, has been entirely wrong ! As to the present gentlemen, to those at least whom I have in my eye, I have no objection. I have never been made a sacrifice by any of them. Their characters are fair ; and I am always glad when men of fair character engage in his majesty's service. Some of them did me the honor to ask my opinion before they would engage. These will now do me the justice to own, I advised them to do it; but, notwithstand- ing, to be explicit, I cannot give them my confidence. Pardon me, gentlemen, confidence is a plant of slow growth in an aged bosom. Youth is the season of credulity. By companng B 10 MR. PITTS SPEECH ON events with each other, reasoning from effects to causes, methinks I plainly discover the traces of an overruling influ- ence. There is a clause in the act of settlement to oblige every minis- ter to sign his name to the advice which he gives to his sovereign. Would it were observed ! — I have had the honor to serve the crown, and if I could have submitted to influence, I might have still continued to serve: but I would not be responsible for others. I have no local attachments. It is indifferent to me whether a man was rocked in his cradle on this side or that side of the Tweed. I sought for merit wherever it was to be found. It is my boast, that I was the first minister who looked 'for it, and I found it in the mountains of the North. I called it forth, and drew it into your service, a hardy and intrepid race of men ! men, who, when left by your jealousy, became a prey to the artifices of your enemies, and had gone nigh to have overturned the state in the war before the last. These men, in the last war, were brought to combat on your side ; they served wnth fidelity, as they fought with valor, and conquered for you in every part of the world. Detested be the national reflections against them ! They are unjust, groundless, illiberal, unmanly. When I ceased to serve his majesty as a minister, it was not the country of the man by which I was moved — but the man of that country wanted wisdom, and held principles incompatible Wilh freedom. It is a long time, Mr. Speaker, since I have attended in par- liament. When the resolution was taken in this house to tax America, I was ill in bed. If I could have endured to have been carried in my bed, so great was the agitation of my mind for the consequences, I would have solicited some kind hand to have laid me down on this floor, to have borne my testimony against it! It is now an act that has passed. I would speaJc with decency of every act of this house : but I must beg the indulgence of the house to speak of it w4th freedom. I hope a day may be soon appointed to consider the state of the nation with respect to America. I hope gentlemen will come to this debate with all the temper and impartiality that his majesty recommends and the importance of the subject requires. A subject of greater importance than ever engaged the attention of this house ! that subject only excepted, when, near a century ago, it was the question, whether you your selves were to be bond or free. In the mean time, as I can- not depend upon my health for any future day, such is the nature of my infirmities, I wuU beg to say a few words at AMERICAN TAXATION. 1 1 present, leaving the justice, the equity, the pohcy, the expedi- ency of the act, to another time. I will only speak to one point, a point which seems not to have been generally under- stood. I mean to the right. Some gentlemen seem to have considered it as a point of honor. If gentlemen consider it in that hght, they leave all measures of right and wrong, to follow a delusion that may lead to destruction. It is my opinion, that this kingdom has no right to lay a tax upon the colonies. At the same time, I assert the authority of this kingdom over the colonies, to be sovereign and supreme, in every circumstance of government and legislation whatsoever. They are the sub- jects of this kingdom, equally entitled with yourselves to all the natural rights of mankind and the peculiar privileges of Englishmen ; equally bound by its laws, and equally partici- pating of the constitution of this free country. The Americans are the sons, not the bastards of England. Taxation is no part of the governing or legislative power. The taxes are a voluntary gift and grant of the commons alone. In legislation the three estates of the realm are ahke concerned, but the con- currence of the peers and the crown to tax, is only necessary to close with the form of a law. The gift and grant is of the commons alone. In ancient days, the crown, the barons, and the clergy, possessed the lands. In those days, the barons and ,he clergy gave and granted to the crown. They gave and granted what was their own. At present, since the discovery of America, and other circumstances permitting, the commons are become the proprietors of the land. The church, God bless it, has but a pittance. The property of the lords, com- pared with that of the commons, is as a drop of water in the ocean ; and this house represents those commons, the proprie- tors of the lands; and those proprietors virtually represent the rest of the inhabitants. When, therefor-3, in this house we give and grant, we give and grant what is our own. But in an American tax, what do we do ? We your majesty's commons for Great Britain give and grant to your majesty, what ? Our own property 1 No. We give and grant to your majesty, the property of your majesty's commons of America. It is an absurdity in terms. The distinction between legislation and taxation is essentially necessary to Hberty. The crown, the peers, are equally legis- lative powers M'ith the commons. If taxation be a part of simple legislation, the crown, the peers have rights in taxation as well as yourselves ; rights which they will claim, which they will exercise, whenever the principle can be supported by power. There is an idea in some, that the colonies are virtually re- 12 MR. PITT'S SPEECH ON presented in the house. I would fain know by whom an Ame- rican is represented here ? Is he represented by any kniglit of the shire, in any county in this kingdom ? Would to God that respectable representation ivas augmented to a greater number I Or will you tell him that he is represented by any representative of a borough — a borough which, perhaps, its own representa- tives never saw. This is what is called the rotten part of the constitution. It cannot continue a century. If it does not drop, it must be amputated. The idea of a virtual representation of America in this house is the most contemptible idea that ever entered into the head of a man. It does not deserve a serious refutation. The commons of America, represented in their several as- sembUes, have ever been in possession of the exercise of this, their constitutional right, of giving and granting their own money. They would have been slaves if they had not enjoyed it. At the same time, this kingdom, as the supreme governing and legislative power, has always bound the colonies by her laws, by her regulations, and restrictions in trade, in navigation, in manufactures, in every thing, except that of taking their mo- ney out of their pockets without their consent. Here I would draw the line, Quain ultra citraque neque consistere rectum. Gentlemen, Sir, have been charged with giving birth to sedition in America. They have spoken their sentiments with freedom against this unhappy act, and that freedom has become their crime. Sorry I am to hear the liberty of speech in this house imputed as a crime. But the imputation shall not dis- courage me. It is a liberty I mean to exercise. No gentleman ought to be afraid to exercise it. It is a liberty by which the gentleman who calumniates it might have profited. He ought to have desisted from his project. The gentleman tells us, America is obstinate ; America is almost in open rebellion. I rejoice that America has resisted. Three millions of people, so dead to all the feelings of liberty as voluntarily to submit to be slaves, would have been fit instruments to make slaves of the rest. I come not here armed at all points, with law cases and acts of parliament, with the statute book doubled down in dog's ears, to defend the cause of liberty : if I had, I myself would have cited the two cases of Chester and Durham. I would have cited them, to have shown that, even under former arbi- trary reigns, parliaments were ashamed of taxing a people with- out their consent; and allowed them representatives. Why AMERICAN TAXATION. 13 did the gentleman confine himself to Chester and Durham ? He might have taken a higher example in Wa.es , Wales, that never was taxed by parliament till it was incoi'porated. I would not debate a particular point of law with the gentleman. I know his abilities. I have been obliged to his diligent researches. But, for the defence of liberty, upon a general principle, upon a constitutional principle, it is a ground on which I stand firm ; on which I dare meet any man. The gentleman tells us of many who are taxed, and are not represented; — the India company, merchants, stockholders, manufacturers. Surely many of these ai'e represented in other capacities, as owners of land, or as freemen of boroughs. It is a misfortune that more are not equally represented. But they are all inhabitants, and as such are they not virtually represented? Many have it in their option to be actually represented. They have con- nexions with those that elect, and they have influence over them. The gentleman mentioned the stockholders. I hope he does not reckon the debts of the nation as a part of the national estate. Since the accession of king William, many ministers, some of great, others of more moderate abilities, have taken the lead of government. He then went through the list of them, bringing it down till he came to himself, giving a short sketch of the characters of each of them. None of these, he said, thought or ever dreamed of robbing the colonies of their constitutional 'rights. That was reserved to mark the era of the late administration : not that there were wanting some, when I had the honor to serve his majesty, to propose to me to burn my fingers with an Ame- rican stamp act. With the enemy at their back, with our bayonets at their breasts, in the day of their distress, perhaps the Americans would have submitted to the imposition ; but it would have been taking an ungenerous, an unjust advantage. The gentleman boasts of his bounties to America ! Are not these bounties intended finally for the benefit of this kingdom I If they are not, he has misapplied the national treasures. I am no courtier of America. I stand up for this kingdom. I maintain that the parliament has a right to bind, to restrain America. Our legislative power over the colonies is sovereign and su- preme. When it ceases to be sovereign and supreme, I would advise every gentleman to sell his lands, if he can, and embark for that country. When two countries are connected together like England and her colonies without being incorporated, the one must necessarily govern. The greater must rule the less ; but so rule it, as not to contradict the fundamental principles that are common to both. 2 14 MR. PITT'S SPEECH ON If the gentleman does not understand the diflerence between external and internal taxes, I cannot help it ; but there is a plain distinction between taxes levied for the purposes of raising a revenue, and duties imposed for the regulation of trade, for the accommodation of the subject ; although, in the consequences, some revenue might incidentally arise from the latter. The gentleman asks, when were the colonies emancipated ? But I desire to know, when were they made slaves 1 But I dwell not upon words. When I had the honor of serving his majesty, I availed myself of the means of information, which I derived from my office. I speak therefore from knowledge. My ma- terials were good. I was at pains to collect, to digest, to con- sider them ; and I will be bold to affirm, that the profits to Great Britain from the trade of the colonies, through all its branches, is two millions a year. This is the fund that carried you triumphantly through the last war. The estates that were rent- ed at two thousand pounds a year, three-score years ago, are at three thousand at present. Those estates sold then from fifteen to eighteen years' purchase ; the same may now be sold for thirty. You owe this to America. This is the price America pays you for her protection. And shall a miserable financier come with a boast, that he can bring a pepper-corn into the exche- quer, to the loss of milUons to the nation ! I dare not say, how much higher these profits may be augmented. Omitting the im- mense increase of people, by natural population, in the northern colonies, and the emigration from every part of Europe, I am convinced the commercial system of America may be altered to advantage. You have prohibited where you ought to have encouraged : you have encouraged where you ought to have prohibited. Improper restraints have been laid on the continent, in favor of the islands. You have but two nations to trade with in America. Would you had twenty ! Let acts of par- liament in consequence of treaties remain; but let not an English minister become a custom-house officer for Spain, or for any foreign power. Much is wrong. Much may be amended for the general good of the whole. Does the gentleman complain he has been misrepresented in the public prints ? It is a common misfortune. In the Spanish afl^air of the last war, I was abused in all the newspapers, for having advised his majesty to violate the laws of nations with regard to Spain. The abuse was industriously circulated even in handbills. If administration did not propagate the abuse, administration never contradicted it. I will not say what ad- vice I did give the king. My advice is in writing, signed by myself, in the possession of the crown. But I will say what AMERICAN TAXATION. 15 advice I did not give to the king. I did not advise him to vio- late any of the laws of nations. As to the report of the gentleman's preventing in some way the trade for bullion with the Spaniards, it was spoken of so confidently that I own I am one of those who did believe it to be true. The gentleman must not wonder he was not contradicted, when, as the minister, he asserted the right of parliament to tax America. I know not how it is, but there is a modesty in this house which does not choose to contradict a minister. Even your chair, sir, looks too often towards St. James's. I wish gentlemen would get the better of this modesty. If they do not, jDerhaps the collective body may begin to abate of its re- spect for the representative. Lord Bacon has told me, that a great question would not fail of being agitated at one time or another. I was willing to agitate that at the proper season, the German war : — my German war, they called it. Every sessions I called out. Has anybody any objection to the German war ? 'Nobody would object to it, one gentleman only excepted, since removed to the upper house by succession to an ancient barony (meaning lord Le Despencer, formerly Sir Francis Dashwood.) He told me, " He did not like a German war." I honored the man for it, and was sorry when he was turned out of his post. A great deal has been said without doors of the power, of the strength, of America. It is a topic that ought to be cautiously meddled with. In a good cause, on a sound bottom, the force of this country can crush America to atoms. I know the valor of your troops. I know the skill of your officers. There is not a company of foot that has served in America out of which you may not pick a man of sufficient knowledge and experience to make a governor of a colony there. But on this ground, on the stamp act, which so many here will think a crying in- justice, I am one who will lift up my hands against it. In such a cause, your success would be hazardous. America, if she fell, would fall like the strong man ; she would embrace the pillai's of the state, and pull down the constitution along with her. Is this your boasted peace — not to sheathe the sword in its scabbard, but to sheathe it in the bowels of your country- men ? Will you quarrel with yourselves, now the whole house of Bourbon is united against you, while France disturbs your fisheries in Newfoundland, embarrasses your slave trade to Africa, and withholds from your subjects in Canada their property stipulated by treaty ; while the ransom for the Manillas is denied by Spain, and its gallant conqueror basely traduced into a mean ])lundcrer ! a gentleman (colonel Dra]>er) whose noble and generous spirit w' ould do honor to the proudest gran- 16 MR. PITT'S SPEECH ON AMERICAN TAXATION. dee of the country ? The Americans have not acted in all things with prudence and temper ; they have been w^ronged ; they have been driven to madness, by injustice. Will you punish them for the madness you have occasioned 1 Rather let pru- dence and temper come first from this side. I will undertake for America that she will follow the example. There are two lines in a ballad of Prior's, of a man's behavior to his wife, so applicable to you and your colonies, that I cannot help repeat- ing them : *' Be to her faults a little blind Be to her virtues very kind." Upon the whole, I will beg leave to tell the house what is my opinion. It is, that the stamp act be repealed absolutely, totally, and immediately. That the reason for the repeal be assigned, because it was founded on an erroneous principle. At the same time, let the sovereign authority of this country over the colonies be asserted in as strong terms as can be devised, and be made to extend to every point of legislation whatsoever ; that we may bind their trade, confine their manufactures, and exercise every power whatsoever, except that of taking their money out of their pockets without their consent. LORD CHATHAM'S SPEECH, IN THE HOUSE OF LORDS, JANUARY 9, 1770, IN REPLY TO LORD MANS- FIELD, ON THE FOLLOWING AMENDMENT TO THE ADDRESS TO THE THRONE. " That we will, with all convenient speed, take into our most serious considera- tion the causes of the discontents which prevail in so many parts of your majes- ty's dominions, and particularly the late proceedings of the house of commons toucliingf llie incapacity of John Wilkes, Esq. expelled by that house, to be re- elected a member to serve in this present parliament ; thereby refusing, by a reso- lution of one branch of the legislature only, to the subject his common right, and depriving the electors of Middlesex of their free choice of a representative." My Lords, There is one plain maxim, to which I have invariably ad- hered through life : that in every question, in which my liberty, or my property were concerned, I should consult and be de- termined by the dictates of common sense. I confess, my lords, that I am apt to distrust the refinement of learning, be- cause I have seen the ablest and the most learned men equally liable to deceive themselves, and to mislead others. The con- dition of human nature w^ould be lamentable indeed, if nothing less than the greatest learning and talents, which fall to the share of so small a number of men, were sufficient to direct our judgment and our conduct. But Providence has taken better care of our happiness, and given us, in the simplicity of common sense, a rule for our direction, by which we shall never be misled. I confess, my lords, I had no other guide in drawing up the amendment, which I submitted to your con- sideration; and, before I heard the opinion of the noble lord who spoke last, I did not conceive that it was even within the limits of possibility for the greatest human genius, the most subtle understanding, or the acutest wit, so strangely to mis- represent my meaning, and to give it an interpretation so en- tirely foreign from what I intended to express, and from that sense which the very terms of the amendment plainly and dis- tinctly carry with them. If there be the smallest foundation for the censure thrown upon me by that noble lord ; if, either expressly, or by the most distant impHcation, I have said or insinuated any part of what the noble lord has charged me with, discard my opinions for ever, discard the motion with contempt. My lords, I must beg the indulgence of the house. Neither will mv health permit me, nor do I pretend to be qualified to C 2* 18 LORD CHATHAM'S SPEECH ON follow that learned lord minutely through the whole of his ar- gument. No man is better acquainted with his abilities and learning, nor has a greater respect for them, than I have. I have had the pleasure of sitting with him in the other house, and always listened to him with attention. I have not now lost a word of what he said, nor did I ever. Upon the present question I meet him without fear. The evidence which truth carries with it, is superior to all argument ; it neither wants the support, nor dreads the opposition of the greatest abilities. If there be a single word in the amendment to justify the inter- pretation which the noble lord has been pleased to give it, I am ready to renounce the whole. Let it be read, my lords ; let it speak for itself. In what instance does it interfere with the privileges of the house of commons ? In what respect does it question their jurisdiction, or suppose an authority in this house to arraign the justice of their sentence? I am sure that every lord who hears me will bear me witness, that I said not one word touching the merits of the Middlesex election. So far from conveying any opinion upon that matter, in the amend- ment, I did not even in discourse deliver my own sentiments upon it. I did not say that the house of commons had done either right or wrong ; but, when his majesty was pleased to recommend it to us to cultivate unanimity amongst ourselves, I thought it the duty of this house, as the great hereditary coun- cil of the crown, to state to his majesty the distracted condi- tion of his dominions, together with the events which had de- stroyed unanimity among his subjects. But, my lords, I stated events merely as facts, Mdthout the smallest addition ehher of censure or of opinion. They are facts, my lords, which I am not only convinced are true, but which I know are indisputably true.. For example, my lords : will any man deny that discon- tents prevail in many parts of his majesty's dominions ? or that those discontents arise from the proceedings of the house of commons touching the declared incapacity of Mr. Wilkes? 'T is impossible. No man can deny a truth so notorious. Or will any man deny that those proceedings refused, by a resolu- tion of one branch of the legislature only, to the subject his common right ? Is it not indisputably true, my lords, that Mr. Wilkes had a common right, and that he lost it no other way but by a resolution of the house of commons ? My lords, I nave been tender of misrepresenting the house of commons. I have consulted their journals, and have taken the very words of their own resolution. Do they not tell us in so many words, that Mr. Wilkes, having been expelled, was thereby rendered THE ADDRESS TO THE THROJNE. 19 incapable of serving in that parliament ? and is it not their reso- lution alone, which refuses to the subject his common right ? The amendment says further, that the electors of Middlesex are deprived of their free choice of a representative. Is this a false fact, my lords? Or have I given an unfair representa- tion of it ? Will any man presume to affirm that colonel Lut- trell is the free choice of the electors of Middlesex ? We all know the contrary. We all know that Mr. Wilkes (whom I mention without either praise or censure) was the favorite of the county, and chosen by a very great and acknowledged majority, to represent them in parliament. If the noble lord dislikes the manner in which these facts are stated, I shall think myself happy in being advised by him how to alter it. I am very little anxious about terms, provided the substance be pre- served ; and these are facts, my lords, which I am sure will always retain their weight and importance, in whatever form of language they are described. Now, my lords, since I have been forced to enter into the explanation of an amendment, in which nothing less than the genius of penetration could have discovered an obscurity, and having, as I hope, redeemed myself in the opinion of the house, having redeemed my motion from the severe representation given of it by the noble lord, I must a little longer entreat your lordships' indulgence. The constitution of this country has been openly invaded in fact; and I have heard, with horror and astonishment that very invasion defended upon principle. What is this mysterious power, undefined by law, unknown to the subject, which we must not approach without awe, nor speak of without reverence, which no man may question, and to which all men must submit ? My lords, I thought the slavish doctrine of passive obedience had long since been exploded ; and, when our kings were obliged to confess that their title to the crown, and the rule of their government, had no other foundation than the known laws of the land, I never expected to hear a divine right, or a divine infallibility, attributed to any other branch of the legislature. My lords, I beg to be under- stood. No man respects the house of commons more than I do, or would contend more strenuously than I would, to pre- serve to them their just and legal authority. Within the bounds prescribed by the constitution, that authority is necessary to the well-being of the people : beyond that line every exertion of power is arbitrary, is illegal ; it threatens tyranny to the people, and destruction to the state. Power without right is the most odious and detestable object that can be offered to the human imagination. It is not only pernicious to those who are sub- 20 J-ORD CHATHAM'S SPEECH ON ject to it, but tends to its own destruction. It is what my noble friend has truly described it ; Res detestabilis et caduca. My lords, I acknowledge the just power, and reverence the consti- tution of the house of commons. It is for their own sakes that I would prevent their assuming a power which the constitution has denied them, lest, by grasping at an authority they have no right to, they should forfeit that which they legally possess. My lords, I affirm that they have betrayed their constitnents, and violated the constitution. Under pretence of declaring the law, they have made a law, and united in the same persons the office of legislator and of judge. I shall endeavor to adhere strictly to the noble lord's doc- trine, which it is, indeed, impossible to mistake, so far as my memory will permit me to preserve his expressions. He seems fond of the word jurisdiction ; and I confess, with the force and effect which he has given it, it is a word of copious meaning and wonderful extent. If his lordship's doctrine be well found- ed, we must renounce all those political maxims by which our understandings have hitherto been directed, and even the first elements of learning taught us in our schools when we were schoolboys. My lords, we knew that jurisdiction was nothing more than Jus dicere ; we knew that Legem facere and Legem dicere were powers clearly distinguished from each other in the nature of things, and wisely separated by the wisdom of the English constitution : but now, it seems, we must adopt a new system of thinking. The house of commons, we are told, have a supreme jurisdiction ; and there is no appeal from their sentence ; and that wherever they are competent judges, their decision must be received and submitted to, as, ipso facto, the law of the land. My lords, I am a plain man, and have been brought up in a religious reverence for the original simplicity of the laws of England. By what sophistry they have been perverted, by what artifices -they have been involved in ob- scurity, is not for me to explain ; the principles, however, of the Enghsh laws, are still sufficiently clear : they are founded in reason, and are the masterpiece of the human understanding ; but it is in the text that I would look for a direction to my judgment, not in the commentaries of modern professors. The noble lord assures us, that he knows not in what code the law of parliament is to be found ; that the house of commons, when they act as judges, have no law to direct them but their own wisdom ; that their decision is law ; and if they determine wrong, the subject has no appeal but to Heaven. What then, my lords, are all the generous efforts of our ancestors, are all those glorious contentions, by which they meant to secure to THE ADDRESS TO THE THRONE. 21 themselves, and to transmit to their posterity, a known law, a certain rule of Hving, reduced to this conclusion, that instead of the arbitrary power of a king, we must submit to the arbi- trary power of a house of commons ? If this be true, what benefit do we derive from the exchange ? Tyranny, my lords, is detestable in every shape ; but in none so formidable as when it is assumed and exercised by a number of tyrants. But, my lords, this is not the fact ; this is not the constitution. We have a law of parliament. We have a code in which every honest man may find it. We have Magna Charta, we have the Statute Book, and the Bill of Rights. If a case should arise unknown to these great authorities, we have still that plain English reason left, which is the found- ation of all our EngUsh jurisprudence. That reason tells us, that every judicial court, and every political society, must be vested with those powers and privileges which are necessary for performing the office to which they are appointed. It tells us also, that no court of justice can have a power inconsistent with, or paramount to, the known laws of the land ; that the people, when they choose their representatives, never mean to convey to them a power of invading the rights, or tramphng upon the liberties of those whom they represent. What security would they have for their rights, if once they admitted, that a court of judicature might determine every question that came before it, not by any known, positive law, but by the vague, indeterminate, arbitrary rule, of what the noble lord is pleased to call the ivisdom of the court ? With respect to the decision of the courts of justice, I am far from denying them their due weight and authority ; yet, placing them in the most respect- able view, I still consider them, not as law, but as an evidence of the law ; and before they can arrive even at that degree of authority, it must appear, that they are founded in, and con- firmed by, reason ; that they are supported by precedents taken from good and moderate times ; that they do not contradict any positive law ; that they are submitted to without reluctance, by the people ; that they are unquestioned by the legislature (which is equivalent to a tacit confirmation) and what, in my judgment, is by far the most important, that they do not violate the spirit of the constitution. My lords, this is not a vague or loose expression. We all know what the constitution is. We all know, that the first principle of it is, that the subject shall not be governed by the arhitnwn of any one man, or body of men (less than the whole legislature), but by certain laws, to which he has virtually given his consent, which are open to him to examine, and not beyond his ability to understand. — Now, my lords, I affirm, and am ready to maintain, that the 22 LORD CHATHAM'S SPEECH ON late decision of the house of commons upon the Middlesex election, is destitute of every one of those properties and con- ditions which I hold to be essential to the legality of such a decision. It is not founded in reason ; for it carries with it a contradiction, that the representative should perform the office of the constituent body. It is not supported by a single prece- dent; for the cause of Sir R. Walpole is but a half precedent, and even that half is imperfect. Incapacity was indeed declar- ed ; but his crimes are stated as tlie ground of the resolution, and his opponent was declared to be not duly elected, even after his incapacity was established. It contradicts Magna Charta and the Bill of Rights, by which it is provided, that no subject shall be deprived of his freehold, unless by the judg- ment of his peers, or the law of the land ; and that elections of members to serve in parliament shall be free ; and so far is this decision from being submitted to by the people, that they have taken the strongest measures, and adopted the most positive language to express their discontent. Whether it will be ques- tioned by the legislature, will depend upon your lordships' reso- lution ; but that it violates the spirit of the constitution, will, I think, be disputed by no man who has heard this day's debate, and who wishes well to the freedom of his country : yet, if we are to believe the noble lord, this great grievance, this mani- fest violation of the first principles of the constitution, will not admit of a remedy ; is not even capable of redress, unless we appeal at once to heaven. My lords, I have better hopes of the constitution, and a firmer confidence in the wisdom and constitutional authority of this house. It is your ancestors, my lords, it is to the English barons, that we are indebted for the laws and constitution we possess. Their virtues were rude and uncultivated, but they were great and sincere. Their understandings were as little polished as their manners, but they had hearts to distinguish right from wrong; they had heads to distinguish truth from falsehood ; they understood the rights of humanity, and they had spirit to maintain them. My lords, I think that history has not done justice to their conduct, when they obtained from their sovereign, that great acknowledgment of national rights contained in Magna Charta: tliey did not confine it to themselves alone, but delivered it as a common blessing to the whole people. They did not say, these are the rights of the great barons, or these are the rights of the great prelates : — No, my lords ; they said, in the simple Latin of the times, nullus liber homo, and provided as carefully for the meanest subject as for the greatest. These are uncouth words, and sound but poorly in the ears of scholars ; neither are thev addressed to the criticism of scholars, but to the hearts THE ADDRESS TO THE THRONE, 23 of free men. These three words, nullus liber homo, have et meaning which interests us all ; they deserve to be remembered — they deserve to be inculcated in our minds — they are worth all the classics. Let us not, then, degenerate from the glo- rious example of our ancestors. Those iron barons (for so I may call them when compared with the silken barons of modern days) were the guardians of the people ; yet their virtues, my lords, were never engaged in a question of such importance as the present. A breach has been made in the constitution — the battlements are dismantled — the citadel is open to the first inva- der — the walls totter — the constitution is not tenable. What remains then, but for us to stand foremost in the breach, to repair it, or perish in it 1 Great pains have been taken to alarm us with the consequences of a difference between the two houses of parliament — that the house of commons will resent our presuming to take notice of their proceedings ; that they will resent our daring to advise tlie crown, and never forgive us for attempting to save the state. My lords, I am sensible of the importance and difficulty of this great crisis : at a moment, such as this, we are called upon to do our duty, without dreading the resentment of any man. But if apprehensions of this kind are to affect us, let us consider which we ought to respect most, the representative, or the collective body of the people. My lords, five hundred gentlemen are not ten millions ; and if we viust have a conten- tion, let us take care to have the English nation on our side. If this question be given up, the freeholders of England are reduced to a condition baser than the peasantry of Poland. If they desert their own cause, they deserve to be slaves ! My lords, this is not mei'ely the cold opinion of my understanding, but the glowing expression of what I feel. It is my heart that speaks. I know I speak warmly, my lords ; but this warmth shall neither betray my argument nor my temper. The king- dom is in a flame. As mediators between the king and people^ It is our duty to represent to him the true condition and temper of his subjects. It is a duty which no particular respects should hinder us from performing ; and whenever his majesty shall demand our advice, it will then be our duty to inquire more minutely into the causes of the present discontents. Whenever that inquiry shall come on, I pledge myself to the house to prove, that since the first institution of the house of commons, not a single precedent can be produced to justify their late proceedings. My noble and learned friend (the lord chancellor) has pledged himself to the house, that he will sup- port that assertion. My lords, the character and circumstances of Mr. Wilkes 24 LORD CHATHAM'S SPEECH ON have been very improperly introduced into this question, not only here, but in that court of judicature where his cause wa? tried. I mean the house of commons. With one party he was a patriot of the first magnitude ; with the other the vilest incendiary. For my own part, I consider him merely and in- differently as an English subject, possessed of certain rights which the laws have given him, and which the laws alone can take from him. I arn neither moved by his private vices, nor by his public merits. In his person, though he were the worst of men, I contend for the safety and security of the best ; and, God forbid, my lords, that there should be a power in this coun- try of measuring the civil rights of the subject by his moral character, or by any other rule but the fixed laws of the land: I believe, my lords, / shall not be suspected of any personal partiality to this unhappy man. I am not very conversant in pamphlets or newspapers ; but, from what I have hea.rd, and from the little I have read, I may venture to aflirm, that I have had my share in the compliments which have come from thai quarter ; and, as for motives of ambition (for I must take to myself a part of the noble duke's insinuation) I believe, my lords, there have been times in which I have had the honor of standing in such favor in the closet, that there must have been something extravagantly unreasonable in my wishes if they might not all have been gratified. After neglecting those op- portunities, I am now suspected of coming forward in the de- cline of life, in the anxious pursuit of wealth and power, which it is impossible for me to enjoy. Be it so. There is one am- bition at least which I ever will acknowledge, which I will not renounce but with my life. It is the ambition of delivering to my posterity those rights of freedom which I have received from my ancestors. I am not now pleading the cause of an individual, but of eveiy freeholder in England. In what man- ner this house may constitutionally interpose in their defence, and what kind of redress this case will require and admit of, is not at present the subject of our consideration. The amend- ment, if agreed to, will naturally lead us to such an inquiry. That inquiry may, perhaps, point out the necessity of an act of the legislature, or it may lead us, perhaps, to desire a con- ference with the other house; which one noble lord affirms is the only parliamentary way of proceeding ; and which another noble lord assures us the house of commons would either not come to, or would break off with indignation. Leaving their lordships to reconcile that matter between themselves, I shall only say, that before we have inquired, we cannot be provided with materials: consequently we are not at present prepared f-^r a conference. THE ADDRESS TO THE THRONE. 25 It is not impossible, my lords, that the inquiry I speak of may lead us to advise his majesty to dissolve the present parha- ment ; nor have I any doubt of our right to give that advice, if we should think it necessary. His majesty will then deter- mine whether he will yield to the united petitions of the people of England, or maintain the house of commons in the exercise of a legislative power, which heretofore abolished the house of lords, and overturned the monarchy. I wilhngly acquit the present house of commons of having actually formed so detest- able a design; but they cannot themselves foresee to what ex- cesses they may be carried hereafter ; and for my own part, I should be sorry to trust to their future moderation. Unlimited power is apt to corrupt the minds of those who possess it ; and this I know, my lords, that, where law ends, tyranny begins ! D LORD CHATHAM'S SPEECH, IN THE HOUSE. OF LORDS, JANUARY 20, 1775, ON A MOTION FOR AN ADDRESS TO HIS MAJESTY, TO GIVE IMMEDIATE ORDERS FOR RE MOVING HIS TROOPS FROM BOSTON. My Lords, After more than six weeks' possession of the papers noMr before you, on a subject so momentous, at a time when the fate of this nation hangs on every hour ; the ministry have at length condescended to submit to the consideration of this house in- teUigence from America, with which your lordships and the public have been long and fully acquainted. The measures of last year, my lords, which have produced the present alarming state of America, were founded upon misrepresentation; they were violent, precipitate, and vindictive. The nation was told, that it was only a faction in Boston, which opposed all lawful government ; that an unwarrantable injury had been done to private property, for which the justice of par- liament was called upon, to order reparation; — that the least appearance of firmness would awe the Americans into sub- mission, and upon only passing the Rubicon we should be, sine clade victor. That the people might choose their representatives under the impression of those misrepresentations, the parliament was precipitately dissolved. Thus the nation was to be rendered instrumental in executing the vengeance of administration on that injured, unhappy, traduced people. But now, my lords, we find, that instead of suppressing the opposition of the faction at Boston, these measures have spread it over the whole continent. They have united that whole people, by the most indissoluble of all bands — intolerable wrongs. The just retribution, is an indiscrimate, unmerciful proscription of the innocent with the guilty unheard and untried. The bloodless victory, is an impotent general with his dishonored army, trusting solely to the pickaxe and the spade, for security against the just indignation of an injured and insulted people. My lords, I am happy that a relaxation of my infirmities permits me to seize this earliest opportunity of oflering my poor advice to save this unhappy country, at this moment tottering to its ruin. But, as I have not the honor of access to his majesty, I will endeavor to transmit to him, through the constitutional channel of this house, my ideas on American business, to rescue him from the misadvice of his present SPEECH ON REMOVING THE TROOPS FROM BOSTON. 27 ministers. I congratulate your lordships that the business is at last entered upon, by the noble lord's laying the papers before you. As 1 suppose your lordships are too well apprized of their contents, I hope I am not premature in submitting to you my present motion. I wish, my lords, not to lose a day in this urgent, pressing crisis. An hour now lost in allaying ferments in America, may produce years of calamity. For my own part, I will not desert, for a moment, the conduct of this weighty business from the first to the last. Unless nailed to my bed by the extremity of sickness, I will give it unremitted attention. I will knock at the door of this sleeping and confounded ministry, and will rouse them to a sense of their important danger. When I state the importance of the colonies to this country, and the magnitude of danger hanging over this country, from the present plan of misadministration practised against them, I desire not to be understood to argue for a reciprocity of indulgence between England and America. I contend not for indulgence, but justice, to America ; and I shall ever contend, that the Americans justly owe obedience to us in a limited degree — they owe obedience to our ordinances "of trade and navigation ; but let the line be skilfully drawn between the objects of those ordinances, and their private internal property. Let the sacredness of their property remain inviolate. Let it be taxable only by their own consent, given in their provincial assemblies ; else it will cease to be property. As to the meta- physical refinements, attempting to show that the Americans are equally free from obedience and commercial restraints, as from taxation for revenue, as being unrepresented here, I pronounce them futile, frivolous, and groundless. When I urge this measure of recalling the troops from Boston, I urge it on this pressing principle, that it is necessarily prepa-" ratory to the restoration of your peace, and the establishment of your prosperity. It will then appear that you are disposed to treat amicably and equitably ; and to consider, revise, and repeal, if it should be found necessary, as I affirm it will, those violent acts and declarations which have disseminated confusion throughout your empire. Resistance to your acts w'as necessary as it was just ; and your vain declarations of the omnipotence of parliament, and your imperious doctrines of the necessity of submission, will be found equally impotent to convince or to enslave your fellow- subjects in America, who feel that tyranny, whether ambitioned by an individual part of the legislature, or the bodies who compose it, is equally intolerable to British subjects. The means of enlorcinii; this thraldom are found to be as 28 LORD CHATHAM'S SPEECH ON ridiculous and weak in practice, as they are unjust in principle. Indeed I cannot but feel the most anxious sensibility for the situation of general Gage, and the troops under his command; thinking him, as I do, a man of humanity and understanding ; and entertaining, as I ever will, the highest respect, the warmest love for the British troops. Their situation is truly unworthy ; penned up — pining in inglorious inactivity. They are an army vf impotence. You may call them an army of safety and of guard ; but they are in truth an army of impotence and con- tempt ; and, to make the folly equal to the disgrace, they are an army of irritation and vexation. But I find a report creeping abroad, that ministers censure general Gage's inactivity. Let them censure him — it becomes them^— it becomes their justice and their honor. I mean not to censure his inactivity. It is a prudent and necessary inaction : but it is a miserable condition, where disgrace is prudence, and where it is necessary to be contemptible. This tameness, how- ever contemptible, cannot be censured ; for the first drop of t.ood shed in civil and unnatural war might be immedicabile \fulnus. I therefore urge and conjure your lordships, immediately to adopt this conciliating measure. I will pledge myself for its immediately producing conciliatory effects, by its being thus well-timed: but if you delay till your vain hope shall be accomplished, of triumphantly dictating reconciliation, you delay for ever. But, admitting that this hope, which in truth is desperate, should be accomplished, what do you gain by the imposition of your victorious amity? — you will be untrusted and unthanked. Adopt, then, the grace, while you have the opportunity of reconcilement; or at least prepare the way. Allay the ferment prevailing in America, by removing the obnoxious hostile cause — obnoxious and unserviceable; for .neir merit can be only inaction : " Kon dimicare et vincere," — their victory can never be by exertions. Their force would be most disproportionately exerted against a brave, generous, and united people, with arms in their hands, and courage in their hearts : — three millions of people, the genuine descendants of a valiant and pious ancestry, driven to those deserts by the narrow maxims of a superstitious tyranny. — And is the spirit of persecution never to be appeased ? Are the brave sons of those brave forefathers to inherit their sufferings, as they have mherited their virtues ? Are they to sustain the infliction of the most oppressive and unexampled severity, beyond the accounts of history, or description of poetry : " Rhadamanthus habet durissima regna, castigatque auditque." So says the wisest poet, and perhaps the wisest statesman and politician. — But our REMOVING THE TROOPS FROM BOSTON. 29 ministers say, the Americans must not he heard. They have been condemned unheard. — The indiscriminate hand of ven- geance has lumped together innocent and guilty ; with all the formalities of hostility, has blocked up the town, and reduced to beggary and famine thirty thousand inhabitants. But his majesty is advised, that the union in America cannot last. Ministers have more eyes than I, and should have more ears ; but with all the information I have been able to procure, I can pronounce it — a union, solid, permanent, and effectual. Ministers may satisfy themselves, and delude the pubhc, with the report of what they call commercial bodies in America. They are not commercial ; they are your packers and factors ; they live upon nothing — for I call commission nothing. I mean the ministerial authority for this American intelligence; the runners for government, who are paid for their intelligence. But these are not the men, nor this the influence, to be consid- ered in America, when we estimate the firmness of their union. Even to extend the question, and to take in the really mercantile circle, will be totally inadequate to the consideration. Trade indeed increases the wealth and glory of a country; but its real strength and stamina are to be looked for among the culti- vators of the land. In their simplicity of life is found the simpleness of virtue — the integrity and courage of freedom. These true genuine sons of the earth are invincible : and they surround and hem in the mercantile bodies ; even if these bodies, which supposition I totally disclaim, could be supposed disaf- fected to the cause of liberty. Of this general spirit existing in the British nation ; (for so I wish to distinguish the real and genuine Americans from the pseudo-traders I have described) — of this spirit of independence, animating the nation of Ame- rica, I have the most authentic information. It is not new among them ; it is, and has ever been, their estabhshed principle, their confirmed persuasion: it is their nature, and their doctrine. I remember some years ago, when the repeal of the stamp act was in agitation, conversing in a friendly confidence with a person of undoubted respect and authenticity, on that subject; and he assured me with a certainty which his judgment and opportunity gave him, that these were the prevalent and steady principles of America. — That you might destroy their towns and cut them off from the superfluities, perhaps the conveniences of life ; but that they were prepared to despise your power, ana would not lament their loss, whilst they have — what, my lords ? their iroods and their liberty. The name of my authority, if I am called upon, will authenticate the opinion irrefragably. 3* 30 LORD CHATHAM'S SPEECH ON If illegal violences have been, as it is said, committed in America ; prepare the w^ay, open the door of possibility, for acknowledgment and satisfaction : but proceed not to such co- ercion, such proscription ; cease your indiscriminate inflictions ; amerce not thirty thousand ; oppress not three millions, for the fault of forty or fifty individuals. Such severity of injustice must for ever render incurable the wounds you have already given your colonies ; you irritate them to unappeasable rancor. What though you march from town to towm, and from province to province ; though you sKould be able to enforce a tempo- rary and local submission, which I only suppose, not admit — how shall you be able to secure the obedience of the country you leave behind you in your progress, to grasp the dominion of eighteen hundred miles of continent, populous in numbers, possessing valor, liberty, and resistance ? This resistance to your arbitrary system of taxation might have been foreseen : it was obvious from the nature of things, and of mankind ; and above all, from the whiggish spirit flour- ishing in that country. The spirit which now resists your taxa- tion in America, is the same which formerly opposed loans, benevolences, and ship-money in England : the same spirit which called all England on its legs, and by the bill of rights vindicated the English constitution : the same spirit which es- tabUshed the great, fundamental, essential maxim of your liber- ties, that no subject of England shall be taxed but by his own consent. This glorious spirit of whiggism animates three millions in America ; who prefer poverty with liberty, to gilded chains and sordid affluence ; and who will die in defence of their rights as men, as freemen. What shall oppose this spirit, aided by the congenial flame glowing in the breast of every whig in England, to the amount, I hope, of double the American num- bers? Ireland they have to a man. In that country, joined as it is with the cause of colonies, and placed at their head, the distinction I contend for is and must be observed. This country superintends ^nd controls their trade and navigation ; but they tax themselves. And this distinction between external and internal control is sacred and insurmountable; it is in- volved in the abstract nature of things. Property is private, individual, absolute. Trade is an extended and complicated consideration : it reaches as far as ships can sail, or winds can blow: it is a great and various machine. To regulate the numberless movements of its several parts, and combine them mto effect, for the good of the whole, requires the superintend- ing wisdom and energy of the supreme power in the empire. REMOVING THE TROOPS FROM BOSTON. 31 But this supreme power has no effect towards internal taxa- tion ; for it does not exist in that relation ; there is no such thing, no such idea in this constitution, as a supreme power operating upon property. Let this distinction then remain for ever ascertained ; taxation is theirs, commercial regulation is ours. As an American, I would recognize to England her su- preme right of regulating commerce and navigation: as an Englishman by birth itnd principle, I recognize to the Ameri- cans their supreme, unalienable right in their property ; a right which they are justified in the defence of to the last extremity. To maintain this principle is the common cause of the whigs on the other side of the Atlantic, and on this. " 'T is liberty to liberty engaged," that they will defend themselves, their fami- lies, and their countiy. In this gi-eat cause they are immovably allied : it is the alliance of God and nature — immutable, eter- nal — fixed as the firmament of heaven. To such united force, what force shall be opposed ? — What, my lords ! — A few regiments in America, and seventeen or eighteen thousand men at home ! The idea is too ridiculous to take up a moment of your lordships' time. Nor can such a national and principled union be resisted by the tricks of office, or ministerial manoeuvre. Laying of papers on your table, or counting numbers on a division, will not avert or post- pone the hour of danger. It must arrive, my lords, unless these fatal acts are done away; it must arrive in all its horrors, and then these boastful ministers, spite of all their confidence, and all their manoeuvres, shall be forced to hide their heads. They shall be forced to a disgraceful abandonment of their present measures and principles, which they avow, but cannot defend ; measures which they presume to attempt, but cannot hope to effectuate. They cannot, my lords, they cannot stir a step; they have not a move left ; they are check-mated. But it is not repealing this act of parliament, it is not repeal- ing a piece of parchment, that can restore America to our bosom. You must repeal her fears and her resentments ; and you may then hope for her love and gratitude. But now, in- sulted with an armed force posted at Boston, irritated with a hostile array before her eyes, her concessions, if you could force them, would be suspicious and insecure ; they will be iraio ani- mo ; they will not be the sound honorable passions of freemen, they will be the dictates of fear, and extortions of force. But it is more than evident, that you cannot force them, united as they are, to your unworthy terms of submission — it is impos- sible. And when I hear general Gage censured for inactivity, I must retort with indignation on those whose intemperate 32 LORD CHATHAM'S SPEECH ON measures and improvident councils have betrayed him into his present situation. His situation reminds me, my lords, of the answer of a French general in the civil wars of France — Monsieur Conde opposed to Monsieur Turenne. He was asked, how it happened that he did not take his adversary prisoner, as he was often very near him : " J'ai peur," replied Conde, very honestly, " J'ai peur qu'il ne me penne ;" — Pm afraid he'll take me. When your lordships look at the papers transmitted us from America ; when you consider their decency, firmness, and wis- dom, you cannot but respect their cause and wish to make it your own. For myself, I must declare and avow, that in all my reading and observation — and it has been my favorite study — I have read Thucydides, and have studied and admired the master states of the world— that for solidity of reasoning, force of sagacity, and wisdom of conclusion, under such a complication of difficult circumstances, no nation, or body of men, can stand in preference to the general congress at Phila- delphia. I trust it is obvious to your lordships, that all attempts to impose servitude upon such men, to establish despotism over such a mighty continental nation, must be vain, must be fatal. We shall be forced ultimately to retract; let us retract while we can, not when we must. I say we must necessarily undo these violent oppressive acts ; they must be repealed — you will repeal them; I pledge myself for it, that you will in the end repeal them ; I stake my reputation on it — I will consent to be taken for an idiot, if they are not finally repealed. Avoid, then, this humiliating, disgraceful necessity. With a dignity becoming your exalted situation, make the first advances to concord, to peace, and happiness ; for that is your true dignity, to act with prudence and justice. That you should first con- cede, is obvious, from sound and rational policy. Concession comes with better grace and more salutary efl!ect from superior power. It reconciles superiority of power with the feelings of men, and establishes sohd confidence on the foundations of af- fection and gratitude. So thought a wise poet -and a wise man in political sagacity; the friend of Mecsenas, and the eulogist of Augustus. To him, the adopted son and successor of the first Csesar, to him, the master of the world, he wisely urged this conduct of prudence and dignity; " Tuque pinor, tu parce; prqjice tela manu.^' Every motive, therefore, of justice and of policy, of dignity and of prudence, urges you to allay the ferment in America, by a removal of your troops from Boston, by a repeal of your acts of parliament, and by demonstration of amicable disposi- REMOVING THE TROOPS FROM BOSTON. 33 lions towards your colonies. On the other hand, every danger and every hazard impend, to deter you from perseverance in your present ruinous measure. Foreign war hanging over your heads by a slight and brittle thread. France and Spain watching your conduct, and waiting for the maturity of your errors; with a vigilant eye to America, and the temper of your colonies, more than to their own concerns, be they what they may. To conclude, my lords, if the ministers thus persevere in mis- advising and misleading the king, I will not say, that they can alienate the affections of his subjects from his crown; but I wdl affirm, that they icill make the crown not worth his wearing. I will not say that the king is betrayed ; but I will pronounce, that the kingdom is undone. LORD CHATHAM'S SPEECH, IN THE HOUSE OF LORDS. AT THE OPENING OF PARLIAMENT, NOVEMBER 18, 1777. 1 RISE, my lords, to declare my sentiments on this most solemn and serious subject. It has imposed a load upon my mind, which, I fear, nothing can remove ; but which impels me to endeavor its alleviation, by a free and unreserved communi- cation of my sentiments. In the first part of the address, I have the honor of heartily concurring with the noble earl who moved it. No man feels sincerer joy than I do ; none can offer more genuine congratu- lation on every accession of strength to the Protestant succes- sion. I therefore join in every congratulation on the birth of another princess, and the happy recovery of her majesty. But I must stop here. My courtly complaisance will carry me no further. I will not join in congratulation on misfortune and disgrace. I cannot concur in a blind and servile address, which approves, and endeavors to sanctify the monstrous measures which have heaped disgrace and misfortune upon us. This, my lords, is a perilous and tremendous moment ! It is not a time for adulation. The smoothness of flattery cannot now avail; cannot save us in this rugged and awful crisis. It is now necessary to instruct the throne in the language of truth. We must dispel the delusion and the darkness which envelop it; and display, in its full danger and true colors, the ruin that is brought to our doors. This, my lords, is our duty. It is the proper function of this noble assembly, sitting, as we do, upon our honors in this house, the hereditary council of the crown. Who is the minis- ter — where is the minister, that has dared to suggest to the throne the contrary, unconstitutional language this day deliv- ered from it? The accustomed language from the throne has been application to parliament for advice, and a reliance on its constitutional advice and assistance. As it is the right of parliament to give, so it is the duty of the crown to ask it. But on this day, and in this extreme momentous exigency, no reliance is reposed on our constitutional counsels ! no advice is asked from the sober and enlightened care of parliament ! but the crown, from itself, and by itself, declares an unalterable determination to pursue measures — -and what measures, my lords 1 — The measures that have produced the imminent perils THE ADDRESS TO THE THRONE. 35 that threaten us ; the measures that have brought ruin to our doors. Can the minister of the day now presume to expect a con- tinuance of support, in this ruinous infatuation? Can parha- ment be so dead to its dignity and its duty, as to be thus dekided into the loss of the one and the violation of the other? To give an unlimited credit and support for the steady perseverance in measures not proposed for our parliamentary advice, but dictated and forced upon us — in measures, I say, my lords, which have reduced this late flourishing empire to ruin and contempt ! — " But yesterday, and England might have stood against the world : now none so poor to do her rever- ence." I use the words of a poet; but, though it be poetry, it is no fiction. It is a shameful truth, that not only the power and strength of this country are wasting away and expiring ; but her well-earned glories, her true honor, and substantial dignity are sacrificed. France, my lords, has insulted you ; she has encouraged and sustained America ; and whether America be wrong or right, the dignity of this country ought to spurn at the officious insult of French interference. The ministers and ambassadors of those who are called rebels and enemies, are in Paris; in Paris they transact the reciprocal interests of America and France. Can there be a more mortifying insult ? Can even our ministers sustain a more humiliating disgrace ? Do they dare to resent it? Do they presume even to hint a vindication of their honor, and the dignity of the state, by requiring the dismission of the plenipotentiaries of America ? Such is the degradation to which they have reduced the glories of England ! The people whom they aflect to call contemptible rebels, but whose growing power has at last obtained the name of enemies; the people with whom they have engaged this country in war, and against whom they now command our implicit support in every measure of desperate hostility : this people, despised as rebels, or acknowledged as enemies, are abetted against you, supplied with every military store, their interests consulted, and their ambassadors entertained, by your inveterate enemy ! and our ministers dare not interpose with dignity or effect. Is this the honor of a great kingdom? Is this the indignant spirit of England, who, " but yesterday," gave law to the house of Bourbon ? My lords, the dignity of nations demands a decisive conduct in a situation like this. Even when the greatest prince that perhaps this country ever saw, filled our throne, the requisition of a Spanish general on a similar subject, was attended to, and complied with. For, on the spirited remonstrance of the Duke of Alva, Elizabeth found herself obliged to dcnv the Flemish exiles all counte- 36 LORD CHATHAM'S SPEECH ON n3.nce. Support, or even entrance into her dominions ; and the Count le Marque, with his few desperate fellowers, were expelled the kingdom. Happening to arrive at the Brille, and finding it weak in defence, they made themselves masters of the place: and this was the foundation of the United Prov- inces. My lords, this ruinous and ignominious situation, where we cannot act with success, nor suffer with honor, calls upon us to remonstrate in the strongest and loudest language of truth, to rescue the ear of majesty from the delusions which surround it. The desperate state of our arms abroad is in part known : no man thinks more highly of them than I do. I love and honor the English troops. I know their virtues and their valor. I know they can achieve anything except impossibilities ; and I know that the conquest of English America is an impossibility. You cannot, I venture to say it, you cannot conquer America. Your armies last war effected everything that could be effected; and what was it? It cost a numerous army, under the command of a most able general, now a noble lord in this house, a long and laborious campaign, to expel five thousand Frenchmen from French America. My lords, you cannot ^conquer America. What is your present situation there? We do not know the w^orst; but we know, that in three campaigns we have done nothing and suffered much. Besides the suffer- ings, perhaps total loss, of the northern force ; the best ap- pointed army that ever took the field, commanded by Sir William Howe, has retired from the American lines. He was obliged to relinquish his attempt, and, with great delay and danger, to adopt a new and distant plan of operations. We shall soon know, and in any event have reason to lament, what may have happened since. As to conquest, therefore, my lords, I repeat, it is impossible. You may swell every expense, and every eflfort, still more extravagantly ; pile and accumulate every assistance you can buy or borrow ; traffic and barter with every little pitiful German prince, that sells and sends his subjects to the shambles of a foreign prince ; your efforts are for ever vain and impotent : doubly so from this mercenary aid, on which you rely. For it irritates, to an incurable resent- > ment, the minds of your enemies — to overrun them with thej mercenary sons of rapine and plunder; devoting them andj their possessions to the rapacity of hireling cruelty ! If I wereJ | an American, as I am an Englishman, while a foreign troop was landed in my country, I n'ever would lay down my arms — never — never — never. Your own army is infected with the contagion of these illib- eral allies. The spirit of plunder and of rapine is gone forth THE ADDRESS TO THE THRONE. 37 among them. I know it — and notwithstanding what the noble earl, who moved the addi-ess, has given as his opinion of our American army, I know from authentic information, and the most experienced dicers, that our discipline is deeply wounded. Whilst this is notoriously our sinking situation, America grows and flourishes : whilst our strength and discipline are lowered, hers are rising and improving. But my lords, who is the man, that in addition to these dis- graces and mischiefs of our army, has dared to authorize and associate to our arms the tomahawk and scalping-knife of the savage ? To call into civilized alliance, the wild and inhuman savage of the woods ; to delegate to the merciless Indian, the defence of disputed rights, and to wage the horrors of his bar- barous war against our brethren ? My lords, these enormities cry aloud for redress and punishment. Unless thoroughly done away, it will be a stain on the national character. It is a violation of the constitution. I believe it is against law. It is not the least of our national misfortunes, that the strength and character of our army are thus impaired. Infected with the mercenary spirit of robbery and rapine; familiarized to the horrid scenes of savage cruelty, it can no longer boast of the noble and generous principles which dignify a soldier ; no longer sympathize with the dignity of the royal banner, nor feel the pride, pomp, and circumstance of glorious war, " that make ambition virtue !" What makes ambition virtue ? — the sense of honor. But is the sense of honor consistent with a spirit of plunder, or the practice of murder ? Can it flow from mer- cenary motives, or can it prompt to cruel deeds? Besides these murderers and plunderers, let me ask our ministers, what other allies have they acquired 1 What other poweis have they associated to their cause ? Have they entered into alliance with the king of the gypsies ? Nothing, my lords, is too low or too ludicrous to be consistent with their counsels. The independent views of America have been stated and as- serted as the foundation of this address. My lords, no man wishes for the due dependence of America on this country more than I do. To preserve it, and not confirm that state of independence into which your measures hitherto have driven them, is the object which we ought to unite in attaining. The Americans, contending for their rights against arbitrary exac- tions, I love and admire. It is the struggle of free and virtu- ous patriots; but contending for independency and total discon- nexion from England, as an Englishman, I cannot wish them success. For, in a due constitutional dependency, including the ancient supremacy of this country in regulating their com- merce and navigation, consists the mutual happiness and pros- 4 38 LORD CHATHAM'S SPEECH ON perity both of England and America. She derived assistance and protection from us ; and we reaped from her the most im- portant advantages. She was, indeed, the fountain of our weahh, the nerve of our strength, the nursery and basis of our naval power. It is our duty, therefore, my lords, if w^e wish to save our country, most seriously to endeavor the recovery of these most beneficial subjects : and in this perilous crisis, per- haps the present moment may be the only one in which we can hope for success. For in their negotiations with France they have, or think they have, reason to complain: though it be noto- rious that they have received from that power, important sup- plies and assistance of various kinds, yet it is certain they expected it in a more decisive and immediate degree. America is in ill humor with France, on some points that have not entirely answered her expectations. Let us wisely take advan- tage of every possible moment of reconciliation. Besides, the natural disposition of America herself still leans towards Eng- land ; to the old habits of connexion and mutual interest that united both countries. This icas the established sentiment of all the continent ; and still, my lords, in the great and principal part, the sound part of America, this wise and affectionate dis- position prevails ; and there is a very considerable part of America yet sound — the middle and the southern provinces; some parts may be factious and blind to their true interests ; but if we express a wise and benevolent disposition to commu- nicate with them those immutable rights of nature, and those constitutional liberties, to which they are equally entitled with ourselves ; by a conduct so just and humane, we shall confirm the favorable, and conciliate the adverse. I say, my lords, the rights and liberties to which they are equally entitled with ourselves, but no more. I would participate to them every enjoyment and freedom which the colonizing subjects of a free state can possess, or wish to Dossess ; and I do not see why they should not enjoy every fundamental right in their property, and every original substantial liberty, which Devonshire or Surrey, or the county I live in, or any other county in England, can claim ; reserving always, as the sacred right of the mother country, the due constitutional dependency of the colonies. The inherent supremacy of the state in regulating and protect ing the navigation and commerce of all her subjects, is neces- sary for the mutual benefit and preservation of every part, to constitute and preserve the prosperous arrangement of the whole empire. The sound parts of America, of which I have spoken, must be sensible of these great truths, and of their real interests. America is not in that state of desperate and contemptible THE ADDRESS TO THE THRONE. 39 rebellion which this country has been deluded to believe. It is not a wild and lawless banditti, who, having nothing to lose, might hope to snatch something from public convulsions. Many of their leaders and great men have a great stake in this great contest. The gentleman who conducts their armies, I am told, has an estate of four or five thousand pounds a year ; and when I consider these things, I cannot but lament the incon- siderate violence of our penal acts, our declarations of treason and rebellion, with all the fatal efiects of attainder and confis- cation. As to the disposition of foreign powers, which is asserted to be pacific and friendly, let us judge, my lords, rather by their actions and the nature of things, than by interested assertions. The uniform assistance, supplied to America by France, sug- fests a different conclusion. The most important interests of 'ranee, in aggrandizing and enriching herself with what she most wants, supplies of every naval store from America, must inspire her with diflerent sentiments. The extraordinary pre- parations of the house of Bourbon, by land and by sea, from Dunkirk to the Streights, equally ready and willing to over- whelm these defenceless islands, should rouse us to a sense of their real disposition, and our own danger. Not five thousand troops in England ! — hardly three thousand in Ireland ! What can we oppose to the combined force of our enemies l — Scarce- ly twenty ships of the line fully or sufficiently manned, that any Jidmiral's reputation would permit him to take the command of. The river of Lisbon in the possession of our enemies ! The seas swept by American privateers. Our channel trade torn to pieces by them ! In this complicated crisis of danger, weakness at home, and calamity abroad, terrified and insulted by the neighboring powers, unable to act in America, or acting only to be destroyed, where is the man with the forehead to promise or hope for success in such a situation ? or, from per- severance in the measures that have driven us to it ? Who has tlie forehead to do so ? Where is that man 1 I should be glad to see his face. You cannot conciliate America by your present measures. You cannot subdue her by your present, or by any measures. What, then, can you do ? You cannot conquer ; you cannot gain ; but you can address ; you can lull the fears and anxieties of the moment into an ignorance of the danger that should produce them. But, my lords, the time demands the language of truth. We must not now apply the flattering unction of servile compliance, or blind complaisance. In a just and neces- sary war, to maintain the rights or honor of my country, I would strip the shirt from my back to support it. But in such 40 LORD CHATHAM'S SPEECH ON /a war as this, unjust in its principle, impracticable in its means, I and ruinous in its consequences, I would not contribute a single \effort, nor a single shilling. I do not call for vengeance on the heads of those who have been guilty : I only recommend to them to make their retreat. Let them walk off; and let them make haste, or they may be assured that speedy and condign punishment will overtake them. My lords, I have submitted to you, with the freedom and truth which I think my duty, my sentiments on your present awful situation. I have laid before you the ruin of your power, the disgrace of your reputation, the pollution of your discipline, the contamination of your morals, the complication of calami- ties, foreign and domestic, that overwhelm your sinking country. Your dearest interests, your own liberties, the constitution itself, totters to the foundation. All this disgraceful danger, this multi- tude of misery, is the monstrous offspring of this unnatural war. We have been deceived and deluded too long. Let us now stop short. This is the crisis — the only crisis, of time and situation, to give us a possibiUty of escape from the fatal effects of our delusions. But if, in an obstinate and infatuated perse- verance in folly, we slavishly echo the peremptory words this day presented to us, nothing can save this devoted country from complete and final ruin. We madly rush into multiplied mise- ries and " confusion worse confounded." Is it possible, can it be believed, that ministers are yet blind to this impending destruction 1 — I did hope, that instead of this false and empty vanity, this overweening pride, engendering high conceits and presumptuous imaginations, that ministers would have humbled themselves in their errors, would have confessed and retracted them, and by an active, though a late repentance, have endeavored to redeem them. But, my lords, since they had neither sagacity to foresee, nor justice nor humanity to shun, these oppressive calamities ; since not even severe experience can make them feel, nor the imminent ruin of their country awaken them from their stupefaction, the guardian care of parUament must interpose. I shall therefore, my lords, propose to you an amendment to the address to his majesty, to be inserted immediately after the two first para- graphs* of congratulation on the birth of a princess, to recom- mend an immediate cessation of hostilities, and the commence- ment of a treaty to restore peace and liberty to America, strength and happiness to England, security and permanent prosperity to both countries. — This, my lords, is yet in our power ; and let not the wisdom and justice of your lordships neglect the happy, and, perhaps, the only opportuuity. By the establishment of irrevocable law, founded on mutual rights, and THE ADDRESS TO THE THRONE. ' 41 ascertained by treaty, these glorious enjoyments may be firmly perpetuated. And let me repeat to your lordships, that the strong bias of America, at least of the wise and sounder parts of it, naturally inclines to this happy and constitutional recon- nexion with you. Notwithstanding the temporary intrigues with France, we may still be assured of their ancient and confirmed partiality to us. America and France cannot be congenial. There is something decisive and confirmed in the honest American, that will not assimilate to the futility and levity of Frenchmen. My lords, to encourage and confirm that innate inclination to this country, founded on every principle of affection, as well as consideration of interest ; to restore that favorable disposition into a permanent and powerful reunion with this country ; to revive the mutual strength of the empire; again to awe the house of Bourbon, instead of meanly truckling, as our present calamities compel us, to every insult of French caprice, and Spanish punctilio; to re-establish our commerce; to reassert our rights and our honor ; to confirm our interests, and renew our glories for ever, a consummation most devoutly to be endeavored ! and which, I trust, may yet arise from recon- ciliation with America ; I have the honor of submitting to you the following amendment, which I move to be inserted after the two first paragraphs of the address. " And that this house does most humbly advise and supplicate his majesty, to be pleased to cause the most speedy and effectual measures to be taken, for restoring peace in America : and that no tin'^e may be lost in proposing an immediate cessation of hostilities there, in order to the opening of a treaty for the final settlement of the tranquillity of these invaluable provinces, by a removal of the unhappy causes of this ruinous civil war; and by a just and adequate security against the return of the like calamities in times to come. And this house desire to offer the most dutiful assurances to his majesty, that they will, in due time, cheerfully co-operate with the magnanimity and tender goodness of his majesty, for the preservation of his people, by such explicit and most solemn declarations, and provisions of fundamental and revocable laws, as may be judged necessary for the ascertaining and fixing for ever the respective rights of Great Britain and her colonies." In the course of this debate, Lord Suffolk, secretary for the northern depart- ment, undertook to defend the employment of the Indians in the war. His lordship contended, that, besides its policy and necessity, the measure was also allowable on principle. For that " it was perfectly justifiable to use all the means that God and nature put into our hands .'" F 4* 42 LORD CHATHAM'S SPEECH ON I AM ASTONISHED ! (exclaimed Lord Chatham, as he rose) — shocked! to hear such principles confessed — to hear them avowed in this house, or in this country: principles equally unconstitutional, inhuman, and unchristian ! My lords, I did not intend to have encroached again upon your attention ; but I cannot repress my indignation. I feel myself impelled by every duty. My lords, we are called upon as members of this house, as men, as Christian men, to protest against such notions standing near the throne, polluting the ear of majesty. " That God and nature put into our hands !" I know not what ideas that lord may entertain of God and nature; but I know that such abominable principles are equally abhor- rent to religion and humanity. What ! to attribute the sacred sanction of God and nature to the massacres of the Indian scalping-knife — to the cannibal savage torturing, murdering, roasting, and eating ; literally, my lords, eating the mangled victims of his barbarous battles ! Such horrible notions shock every precept of rehgion, divine or natural, and every generous feeling of humanity. And, my lords, they shock every sentiment of honor ; they shock me as a lover of honorable war, and a detester of murderous barbarity. These abominable principles, and this more abominable avowal of them, demand the most decisive indignation. I call upon that right reverend bench, those holy ministers of the gospel, and pious pastors of our church; I conjure them to join in the holy work, and vindicate the religion of their God. I appeal to the wisdom and the law of this learned bench, to defend and support the justice of their country. I call upon the bishops, to interpose the unsullied sanctity of their lawn ; upon the learned judges, to interpose the purity of their ermine, to save us from this pollution. I call upon the honor of your lordships, to reverence the dignity of your ancestors, and to maintain your own. I call upon the spirit and humanity of my country, to vindicate the national character. I invoke the genius of the constitution. From the tapestry that adorns these walls, the immortal ancestor of this noble lord frowns with indignation at the disgrace of his country. In vain he led your victorious fleets against the boasted Armada of Spain ; in vain he defended and established the honor, the liberties, the religion, the Protestant religion, of this country, against the arbitrary cruelties of popery and the inquisition, if these more than popish cruelties and inquisitorial practices are let loose among us ; to turn forth into our settlements, among our ancient connexions, friends, and relations, the merciless cannibal, thirsting for the blood of man, woman, and child ! to send forth the infidel savage — against whom 1 against your Protestant brethren ; to THE ADDRESS TO THE THRONE. 43 lay waste their country, to desolate their dwellings, and extir- pate their race and name, with these horrible hell-hounds of savage war ! — hell-hounds, I say, of savage war. Spain armed herself with blood-hounds to extirpate the wretched natives of America ; and we improve on the inhuman example even of Spanish cruelty: we turn loose these savage hell-hounds against our brethren and countrymen in America, of the same language, laws, liberties, and religion ; endeared to us by every tie that should sanctify humanity. My lords, this awful subject, so important to our honor constitution, and our religion, demands the most solemn and effectual inquiry. And I again call upon your lordships, and the united powers of the state, to examine it thoroughly and decisively, and to stamp upon it an indelible stigma of the public abhorrence. And I again implore those holy prelates of our religion, to do away these iniquities from among us- Let them perform a lustration ; let them purify this, house, and this country, from this sin. My lords, I am old and weak, and at present unable to say more ; but my feelings and indignation were too strong to have said less. I could not have slept this night in my bed, nor reposed my head on my pillow, without giving this vent to my eternal abhorrence of such preposterous and enormous prin- ciples. This speech had no effect. The address was agreed to LORD CHATHAM'S SPEECH, in the house of lords, the iith of december, 1777, against a motion for an adjournment. My Lords, It is not with less grief than astonishment I hear the motion now made by the noble earl, at a time when the affairs of this country present on every side prospects full of awe, terror, and impending danger ; when, I will be bold to say, events of a most alarming tendency, little expected or foreseen, will shortly happen ; when a cloud that may crush this nation, and bury it in destruction for ever, is ready to burst and overwhelm us in ruin. At so tremendous a season, it does not become your lordships, the great hereditary council of the nation, to neglect your duty, to retire to your country-seats for six weeks in quest of joy and merriment, while the real state of public affairs calls for grief, mourning, and lamentation ; at least, for the fullest exertions of your wisdom. It is your duty, my lords, as the grand hereditary council of the nation, to advise your sovereign, to be the protectors of your country, to feel your own weight and authority. As hereditary counsellors, as mem- bers of this house, you stand between the crown and the peo- ple ; you are nearer the throne than the other branch of the legislature ; it is your duty to surround and protect, to counsel and supplicate it. You hold the balance. Your duty is to see that the weights are properly poised, that the balance remains even, that neither may encroach on the other, and that the executive power may be prevented, by an unconstitutional ex- ertion of even constitutional authority, from bringing the nation to destruction. My lords, I fear we are arrived at the very brink of that state ; and I am persuaded that nothing short of a spirited interposition on your part, in giving speedy and whole- some advice to your sovereign, can prevent the people from feeling beyond remedy the full effects of that ruin which minis- ters have brought upon us. These calamitous circumstances ministers have been the cause of: and shall we, in such a stale of things, when every moment teems with events productive of the most fatal narratives, shall we trust, during an adjourn- ment of six weeks, to those men who have brought those ca- lamities upon us, when, perhaps, our utter overthrow is plot- ting, nay, ripe for execution, without almost a possibility of prevention ? Ten thousand brave men have fallen victims to AGAINST THE ADJOURNMENT. 45 ignorance and rashness. The only army you have in America may, by this time, be no more. This very nation remains no longer safe than its enemies think proper to permit. I do not augur ill. Events of a most critical nature may take place before our next meeting. Will your lordships, then, in such a state of things, trust to the guidance of men, who, in every single step of this cruel, this wicked war, from the very begin- ning, have proved themselves weak, ignorant, and mistaken? I will not say, my lords, nor do I mean anything personal, or that they have brought premeditated ruin on this country. I will not suppose that they foresaw what has since happened ; but I do contend, my lords, that their want of wisdom, their incapacity, their temerity in depending on their own judgment, or their base compliances with the orders and dictates of others, perhaps caused by the influence of one or two individuals, have rendered them totally unworthy of your lordships' confidence, of the confidence of parliament, and those whose rights they are the constitutional guardians of, the people at large. A re- monstrance, my lords, should be carried to the throne. The king has been deluded by his ministers. They have been im- posed on by false information, or have, from motives best known to themselves, given apparent credit to what they have been convinced in their hearts was untrue. The nation has been betrayed into the ruinous measure of an American war by the arts of imposition, by their own creduhty, through the means of false hopes, false pride, and promised advantages, of the most romantic and improbable nature. My lords, I do not wish to call your attention entirely to that point. I would fairly appeal to your own sentiments, whether I can be justly charged with arrogance or presumption, if I said, great and able as ministers think themselves, that all the wisdom of the nation is not confined to the narrow circle of their petty cabi- net. I might, I think, without presumption, say, that your lord- ships, as one of the branches of the legislature, may be sup- posed as capable of advising your sovereign, in the moment of difficulty and danger, as any lesser council, composed of a fewer number ; and who, being already so fatally trusted, have betrayed a want of honesty, or a want of talents. Is it, my lords, within the utmost stretch of the most sanguine expecta- tion, that the same men who have plunged you into your pres- ent perilous and calamitous situation are the proper persons to rescue you from it? No, my lords, such an expectation would be preposterous and absurd. I say, my lords, you are now spe- cially called upon to interpose. It is your duty to forego every call of business and pleasure, to give up your whole time to inquire into past misconduct ; to provide remedies for the pres 46 LORD CHATHAM'S SPEECH ent; to prevent future evils; to rest on your arms, if I may use the expression, to watch for the public safety; to defend and support the throne, and if fate should so ordain it, to fall with becoming fortitude, whh the rest of your fellow-subjects, in the general ruin. I fear this last must be the event of this mad, unjust, and cruel war. It is your lordships' duty to do everything in your power that it shall not — but, if it must be so, I trust your lordships and the nation will fall gloriously. My lords, as the first and most immediate object of your inquiry, I would recommend to you to consider the true state of our home defence. We have heard much from a noble lord in this house, of the state of our navy. I cannot give an im- plicit belief to all I have heard on that important subject. I still retain my former opinion relative to the number of line-of- battle ships; but as an inquiry into the real state of the navy is destined to be the subject of future consideration, I do not wish to hear any more about it till that period arrives. I allow, in argument, that we have thirty-five ships of the line fit for actual service. I doubt much whether such a force would give us full command of the channel. I am certain, if it did, every other part of our possessions must lie naked and defence- less, in every quarter of the globe. I fear our utter destruction is at hand. What, my lords, is tlie state of our military defence ? I would not wish to expose our present weakness ; but weak as we are, if this war should be continued, as the public declaration of persons in high con- fidence with their sovereign would induce us to suppose, is this nation to be entirely stripped ? And if it should, would every soldier now in Britain be sufficient' to give us an equality to the force of America? I will maintain they would not Where then will men be procured ? Recruits are not to be had in this country. Germany will give no more. I have read in the newspapers of this day, and I have reason to be- lieve it true, that the head of the Germanic body has remon- strated against it, and has taken measures accordingly to pre- vent it. Ministers have, I hear, applied to the Swiss Cantons, The idea is preposterous. The Swiss never permit their troops to go beyond sea. But, my lords, even if men were to be pro- cured in Germany, how will you march them to the water- side ? Have not our ministers applied for the port of Ember- den, and has it not been refused ? I say, you will not be able to procure men even for your home defence, if some immediate steps be not taken. I remember, during the last w'ar it was thought advisable to levy independent companies. They were, when completed, formed into battalions, and proved of great service. I love the army. I know its use. But I must never AGAINST THE ADJOURNMENT. 47 theless own, that I was a great friend to the measure of estab- lishing a national militia. I remember the last war, that there were three camps formed of that corps at once in this king- dom. I saw them myself. One at Winchester, another in the west, at Plymouth; and a third, if I recollect right, at Chat- ham. Whether the militia is at present in such a state as to answer the valuable purposes it did then, or is capable of being rendered so, I will not pretend to say ; but I see no reason why, in such a critical state of affairs, the experiment should not be made, and why it may not be put again on the former respectable footing. I remember, all circumstances consid- ered, when appearances were not nearly so melancholy and alarming as they are, that there were more troops in the county of Kent alone, for the defence of the kingdom, than there are now in the whole island. My lords, I contend that we have not, nor can procure, any force sufficient to subdue America. It is monstrous to think of it. There are several noble lords present, well acquainted with military affairs. I call upon any one of them to rise and pledge himself, that the military force now within the kingdom is adequate to its defence, or that any possible force to be pro- cured from Germany, Switzerland, or elsewhere, will be equnj to the conquest of America. I am too perfectly persuaded of their abilities and integrity, to expect any such assistance from them. Oh ! But if America is not to be conquered, she may be treated with. Conciliation is at length thought of. Terms are to be offered. Who are the persons that are to treat on the part of this afflicted and deluded country ? The very men who have been the authors of our misfortunes. The very men who have endeavored, by the most pernicious policy, the highest injustice and oppression, the most cruel and devastating war, to enslave those people they would conciliate, to gain the confidence and affection of those who have survived the Indian tomahawk and German bayonet. Can your lordships entertain the most distant prospect of success from such a treaty and such negotiators? No, my lords, the Americans have virtue, and they must detest the principles of such men. They have under- standing, and too much wisdom, to trust to the cunning and narrow politics which must cause such overtures on the part of their merciless persecutors. My lords, I maintain that they would shun, with a mixture of prudence and detestation, any proposition coming from that quarter. They would receive terms from such men, as snares to allure and betray. They would dread them as ropes meant to be put about their legs, in order to entangle and overthrow them in certain ruin. My lords, supposing that our domestic danger, if at all, is far dis- 48 LORD CHATHAM'S SPEECH tant ; that our enemies will leave us at liberty to prosecute this war to the utmost of our ability; suppose your lordships should grant a fleet one day, an army another : all these, I do affirm, will avail nothing, unless you accompany it with advice. Minis- ters have been in error : experience has proved it ; and what is worse, they continue it. They told you in the beginning, that 15,000 men would traverse all America, without scarcely an appearance of interruption. Two campaigns have passed since they gave us this assurance. Treble that number have been employed ; one of your armies, which composed two thirds of the force by which America was to be subdued, has been totally destroyed, and is now led captive through those pro- vinces you call rebellious. Those men whom you called cowards, poltroons, runaways, and knaves, are become victo- rious over your veteran troops : and, in the midst of victory, and flush of conquest, have set ministers an example of mode- ration and magnanimity well worthy of imitation. My lords, no time should be lost which may promise to im- prove this disposition in America, unless, by an obstinacy found- ed in madness, we wish to stifle those embers of affection which, after all our savage treatment, do not seem as yet to have been entirely extinguished. While on one side we must lament the unhappy fate of that spirited officer, Mr. Burgoyne, and the gallant troops under his command, who were sacrificed to the wanton temerity and ignorance of ministers, we are as strongly compelled on the other to admire and applaud the generous, magnanimous conduct, the noble friendship, brotherly affection, and humanity of the victors, who, condescending to impute the horrid orders of massacre and devastation to their true authors, supposed that, as soldiers and Englishmen, those cruel excesses could not have originated with the general, nor were consonant to the brave and humane spirit of a British soldier, if not com- pelled to it as an act of duty. They traced the first cause of those diabolic orders to their true source ; and, by that wise and generous interpretation, granted their professed destroyers terms of capitulation which they could be only entitled to as the makers of fair and honorable war. My lords, I should not have presumed to trouble you, if the tremendous state of this nation did not, in my opinion, make it necessary. Such as I have this day described it to be, I do maintain it is. The same measures are still persisted in ; and ministers, because your lordships have been deluded, deceived, and misled, presume that whenever the worst comes they will be enabled to shelter themselves behind parliament. This, my lords, cannot be the case. They have committed themselves and their measures to the fate of war, and they must abide the AGAINST THE ADJOURNMENT. 49 issue. I tremble for this country. I am almost led to despair that we shall ever be able to extricate ourselves. At any rate, the day of retribution is at hand, when the vengeance of a much injured and afflicted people, will, I trust, fall heavily on the authors of their ruin; and I am strongly inclined to believe, that before the day to which the proposed adjournment shall arrive, the noble earl who moved it, will have just cause to repent of his motion. G MR. BURKE'S SPEECH, april 19, 1774, on american taxation Sir, I AGREE with the honorable gentleman who spoke last, that this subject is not new in this house. Very disagreeably to this house, very unfortunately to this nation, and to the peace and prosperity of this whole empire, no topic has been more famihar to us. For nine long years, session after session, we have been lashed round and round this miserable circle of occasional arguments and temporary expedients. I am sure our heads must turn, and our stomachs nauseate with them. We have had them in every shape ; we have looked at them in every point of view. Invention is exhausted ; reason is fatigued ; experience has given judgment; but obstinacy is not yet con- quered. The honorable gentleman has made one endeavor more to diversify the form of this disgusting argument. He has thrown out a speech composed almost entirely of challenges. Chal- lenges are serious things ; and as he is a man of prudence as well as resolution, I dare say he has very well weighed those challenges before he delivered them. I had long the happiness to sit at the same side of the house, and to agree with the hon- orable gentleman on all the American questions. My senti- ments, I am sure, are well known to him ; and I thought I had been perfectly acquainted with his. Though I find myself mistaken, he will still permit me to use the privilege of an old friendship, he will permit me to apply myself to the house under the sanction of his authority ; and, on the various grounds he has measured out, to submit to you the poor opinions which I have formed, upon a matter of importance enough to demand the fullest consideration I could bestow upon it. He has stated to the house two grounds of deliberation ; one narrow and simple, and merely confined to the question on your paper : the other more large and more complicated ; com- prehending the whole series of the parliamentary proceedings with regard to America, their causes, and their consequences. With regard to the latter, ground, he states it as useless, and thinks it may be even dangerous, to enter into so extensive a field of inquiry. Yet, to my sui'prise, he had hardly laid down this restrictive proposition, to which his authority would have given so much weight, when directly, and with the same author- ON AMERICAN TAXATION. 51 ity, he condemns it; and declares it absolutely necessary to enter into the most ample historical detail. His zeal has throw n him a little out of his usual accuracy. In this perplexity, what shall we do, Sir, who are willing to submit to the law he gives us ? He has reprobated in one part of his speech the rule he had laid down for debate in the other ; and after narrowing the ground for all those who are to speak after him, he takes an excursion himself, as unbounded as the subject and the extent of his great abihties. Sir, when I cannot obey all his laws, I will do the best 1 can. I will endeavor to obey such of them as have the sanc- tion of his example ; and to stick to that rule, which, though not consistent with the other, is the most rational. He was certainly in the right when he took the matter largely. I can- not prevail on myself to agree with him in his censure of his own conduct. It is not, he will give me leave to say, either useless or dangerous. He asserts, that retrospection is not wise ; and the proper, the only proper, subject of inquiry, is, " not how we got into this ditficulty, but how we are to get out of it." In other words, we are, according to him, to consult our invention, and to reject our experience. The mode of delibe- ration he recommends is diametrically opposite to every rule of reason, and every principle of good sense established amongst mankind. For, that sense and that reason, I have always understood, absolutely to prescribe, whenever we are involved in difficulties from the measures we have pursued, that we should take a strict review of those measures, in order to cor- rect our errors if they should be corrigible ; or at least to avoid a dull uniformity in mischief, and the unpitied calamity of being repeatedly caught in the same snare. Sir, I will freely follow the honorable gentleman in his his- torical discussion, without the least management for men or measures, further than as they shall seem to me to deserve it. But before I go into that large consideration, because I would omit nothing that can give the house satisfaction, I wish to tread the narrow ground to which alone the honorable gentle- man, in one part of his speech has so strictly confined us. He desires to know, whether, if we were to repeal this tax, agreeably to the proposition of the honorable gentleman who made the motion, the Americans would not take post on this concession, in order to make a new attack on the next body of taxes ; and whether they would not call for a repeal of the duty on wine, as loudly as they do now for the repeal of the duty on tea? Sir, I can give no security on this subject. But I will do all that I can, and all that can be fairly demanded. To the exferiaice which the honorable gentleman reprobates in one 52 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH instant, and reverts to in the next ; to that experience, without the least wavering or hesitation on my part, I steadily appeal ; and would to God there was no other arbiter to decide on the vote with which the house is to conclude this day ! When parliament repealed the stamp act in the year 1766, I affirm, first, that the Americans did not in consequence of this measure call upon you to give up the former parUamentary revenue which subsisted in that country ; or even any one of the articles which compose it. I affirm also, that when, depart- ing from the maxims of that repeal, you revived the scheme of taxation, and thereby filled the minds of the colonists with new jealousy, and all sorts of apprehensions, then it was that they quarrelled with the old taxes, as well as the new ; then it was and not till then, that they questioned all the parts of your legislative power ; and by the battery of such questions have shaken the solid structure of this empire to its deepest founda- tions. Of those two propositions I shall, before I have done, give such convincing, such damning proof, that however the con- trary may be whispered in circles, or bawled in newspapers, they never more will dare to raise their voices in this house. I speak with great confidence. I have reason for it. The min- isters are with me. They at least are convinced that the repeal of the stamp act had not, and that no repeal can have, the con- sequences which the honorable gentleman who defends their measures is so much alarmed at. To their conduct I refer him for a conclusive answer to this objection. I carry my proof irresistibly into the very body of both ministry and parHament ; not on any general reasoning growing out of collateral matter, but on the conduct of the honorable gentleman's ministerial friends on the new revenue itself. The act of 1767, which grants this tea duty, sets forth in its preamble, that it was expedient to raise a revenue in America, for the support of the civil government there, as well as for purposes still more extensive. To this support the act assigns six branches of duties. About two years after this act passed, the ministry, I mean the present ministry, thought it expedient to repeal five of the duties, and to leave (for reasons best known to themselves) only the sixth standing. Suppose any person at the time of that repeal, had thus addressed the minister : " Con- demning, as you do, the repeal of the stamp act, why do you venture to repeal the duties upon glass, paper, and painters' colors? Let your pretence for the repeal be what it will, are you not thoroughly convinced, that your concessions will pro- duce, not satisfaction, but insolence in the Americans ; and that the giving up these taxes will necessitate the giving up of all ON AMERICAN TAXATION. 53 the rest ?" This objection was as palpable then as it is now ; and it was as good for preserving the five duties as for retain- ing the sixth. Besides, the minister will recollect, that the re- peal of the stamp act had but just preceded his repeal ; and the ill policy of that measure (had it been so impolitic as it has been represented), and the mischiefs it produced, were quite recent. Upon the principles therefore of the honorable gentleman, upon the principles of the minister himself, the minister has nothing at all to answer. He stands condemned by himself, and by all his associates old and new, as a destroyer, in the first trust of finance, of the revenues: and in the first rank of honor, as a betrayer of the dignity of his country. Most men, especially great men, do not always know their well-wishers. I come to rescue that noble lord out of the hands of those he calls his friends ; and even out of his own. I will do him the justice he is denied at home. He has not been this wicked or imprudent man. He knew that a repeal had no tendency to produce the mischiefs which give so much alarm to his honorable friend. His work was not bad in its principle, but imperfect in its execution; and the motion on your paper presses him only to complete a proper plan, which, by some unfortunate and unaccountable error, he had left unfinished. I hope, Sir, the honorable gentleman who spoke last, is tho- roughly satisfied, and satisfied out of the proceedings of minis- try on their own favorite act, that his fears from a repeal are groundless. If he is not, I leave him, and the noble lord who sits by him, to settle the matter, as well as they can, together ; for if the repeal of American taxes destroys all our govern- ment in America — He is the man ! — and he is the worst of all repealers, because he is the last. But I hear it rung continually in my ears, now and former- ly — " the preamble ! what will become of the preamble, if you repeal this tax ? " — I am sorry to be compelled so often to ex- pose the calamities and disgraces of parliament. The pream- ble of this law, standing as it now stands, has the lie direct given to it by the provisionary part of the act ; if that can be called provisionary which makes no provision. I should be afraid to express myself in this manner, especially in the face of such a formidable array of ability as is now drawn up be- fore me, composed of the ancient household troops of that side of the house, and the new recruits from this, if the matter were not clear and indisputable. Nothing but truth could give me this firmness ; but plain truth and clear evidence can be beat down by no ability. The clerk will be so good as to turn to the act, and to read this favorite pream.ble : 5* 54 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH " Whereas it is expedient that a revenue should be raised in your majesty's dominions in America, f 07^ making a moi'e certain and adequate pi'ovision for defraying the charge of the adminis- tration of justice, and support of civil government, in sucrt, provinces ivhere it shall be found necessary; and toward further defraying the expenses of defending, protecting, and securing tiie said dominions." You have heard this pompous performance. Now where is the revenue which is to do all these mighty things ? Five-sixths repealed' — abandoned — sunk — gone — lost for ever. Does the poor solitary tea-duty support the purposes of this preamble ? Is not the supply there stated as effectually abandoned as if the tea-duty had perished in the general wreck ? Here, Mr. Speaker, is a precious mockery — a preamble without an act — taxes granted in order to be repealed — and the reasons of the grant still carefully kept up ! This is raising a revenue in America! This is preserving dignity in England! If you repeal this tax in compliance with the motion, I readily admit that you lose this fair preamble. Estimate your loss in it. The object of the act is gone already ; and all you suffer is the purging of the statute-book of the opprobrium of an empty, absurd, and false recital. It has been said again and again, that the five taxes were repealed on commercial principles. It is so said in the paper in my hand ; a paper which I constantly carry about ; which I have often used, and shall often use again. What is got by this paltry pretence of commercial principles I know not ; for, if your government in America is destroyed by the repeal of taxes, it is of no consequence upon what ideas the repeal is grounded. Repeal this tax too upon commercial principles, if you please. These principles will serve as well now as they did formerly. But you know that, either your objection to a repeal from these supposed consequences has no validity, or that this pretence never could remove it. This commercial motive never was believed by any man, either in America, which this letter is meant to soothe, or in England, which it is meant to deceive. It was impossible it should. Because every man, in the least acquainted with the detail of commerce, must know, that several of the articles on which the tax was re- pealed, were fitter objects of duties than almost any other ar- ticles that could possibly be chosen : without comparison more so, than the tea that was left taxed ; as infinitely less liable to be eluded by contraband. The tax upon red and white lead was of this nature. Yon have, in this kingdom, an advantage in lead, that amounts to a monopoly. When you find yourself in this situation of advantage, you sometimes venture to tax ON AMERICAN TAXATION. 55 even your own export. You did so, soon after the last war ; when, upon this principle, you ventured to impose a duty on coals. In all the articles of American contraband trade, who ever heard of the smuggling of red lead, and white lead? You might, therefore, well enough, without danger of contraband, and. without injury to commerce (if this were the whole con- sideration) have taxed these commodities. The same may be said of glass. Besides, some of the things taxed were so triv- ial, that the loss of the objects themselves and their utter anni- hilation out of American commerce, would have been compar- atively as nothing. But is the article of tea such an object in the trade of England, as not to be felt, or felt but slightly, like white lead, and red lead, and painters' colors? Tea is an ob- ject of far other importance. Tea is perhaps the most im- portant object, taking it with its necessary connexions, of any in the mighty circle of our commerce. If commercial princi- ples had been the true motives to the repeal, or had they been at all attended to, tea would have been the last article we should have left taxed for a subject of controversy. Sir, it is not a pleasant consideration; but nothing in the world can read so awful and so instructive a lesson, as the conduct of ministry in this business, upon the mischief of not having large and liberal ideas in the management of great atfairs. Never have the servants of the state looked at the whole of your complicated interests in one connected view. They have taken things, by bits and scraps, some at one time and one pretence, and some at another, just as they pressed, without any sort of regard to their relations or dependencies. They never had any kind of system, right or wrong ; but only invented occasionally some miserable tale for the day, in order meanly to sneak out of difficulties, into which they had proudly strutted. And they were put to all these shifts and devices, full of meanness and full of mischief, in order to pilfer piece- meal a repeal of an act, which they had not the generous courage, when they found and felt their error, honorably and fairly to disclaim. By such management, by the irresistible operation of feeble councils, so paltry a sum as three-pence in the eyes of a financier, so insignificant an article as tea in the eyes of a philosopher, have shaken the pillars of a com- mercial empire that circled the whole globe. Do you forget that, in the very last year, you stood on the precipice of general bankruptcy ? Your danger was indeed great. You were distressed in the aflairs of the East India company ; and you well know what sort of things are involved in the comprehensive energy of that significant appellation. J am not called upon to enlarge to you on that danger, which 56 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH you thought proper yourselves to aggravate, and display to the world with all the parade of indiscreet declamation. The monopoly of the most lucrative trades, and the possession of imperial revenues, had brought you to the verge of beggary and ruin. Such was your representation — such, in some mea- sure, was your case. The vent of ten millions of pounds of this commodity, now locked up by the operation of an inju- dicious tax, and rotting in the warehouses of the company, would have prevented all this distress, and all that series of desperate measures which you thought yourselves obliged to take in consequence of it. America would have furnished that rent, which no other part of the world can furnish but America : where tea is next to a necessary of life ; and where the demand grows upon the supply. I hope our dear-bought East India committees have done us at least so much good, as to let us know, that without a more extensive sale of that article, our East India revenues and acquisitions can have no certain connexion with this country. It is through the Ameri- can trade of tea that your East India conquests are to be pre- vented from crushing you with their burthen. They are pon- derous indeed; and they must have that great country to lean upon, or they tumble upon your head. It is the same folly that has lost you at once the benefit of the west and the east. This folly has thrown open folding-doors to contraband ; and will be the means of giving the profits of the trade of your colonies, to every nation but yourselves. Never did a people suffer so much for the empty words of a preamble. It must be given up. For on what principle does it stand ? This fa- mous revenue stands, at this hour, on all the debate, as a de- scription of revenue not as yet known in all the comprehen- sive (but too comprehensive !) vocabulary of finance — a pre- amhulary tax. It is indeed a tax of sophistry, a tax of ped- antry, a tax of disputation, a tax of war and rebellion, a tax for anything but benefit to the imposers, or satisfaction to the subject. Well ! but whatever it is, gentlemen will force the colonists to take the teas. You will force them? has seven years' struggle been yet able to force them? O, but it seems "we are in the right — the tax is trifling — in effect, it is rather an exoneration than an imposition ; three-fourths of the duty for- merly payable on teas exported to America is taken off; the place of collection is only shifted ; instead of the retention of a shilling from the drawback here, it is three-pence custom paid in America." All this, Sir, is very true. But this is the very folly and mischief of the act. Incredible as it may seem, you know that you have deliberately thrown away a ON AMERICAN TAXATION. 57 large duty which you held secure and quiet in your hands, for the vain hope of getting one three-fourths less, through every hazard, through certain litigation, and possibly through war. The manner of proceeding in the duties on paper and glass, imposed by the same act, was exactly in the same spirit. There are heavy excises on those articles when used in Eng- land. On export, these excises are drawn back. But instead of withholding the drawback, which might have been done, with ease, without charge, without possibility of smuggling ; and instead of applying the money (money already in your hands) according to your pleasure, you began your operations in finance by flinging away your revenue ; you allowed the whole drawback on export, and then you charged the duty (which you had before discharged) payable in the colonies ; where it was certain the collection would devour it to the bone ; if any revenue were ever suffered to be collected at all. One spirit pervades and animates the whole mass. Could anything be a subject of more just alarm to America, than to see you go out of the plain high-road of finance, and give up your most certain revenues and your clearest interest, merely for the sake of insulting your colonies ? No man ever doubted that the commodity of tea could bear an imposition of three-pence. But no commodity will bear three-pence, or will bear a penny, when the general feelings of men are irri- tated, and two millions of people are resolved not to pay. The feelings of the colonies were formerly the feelings of Great Britain. Theirs were formerly the feelings of Mr. Hamp- den when called upon for the payment of twenty siiillings. Would twenty shillings have ruined Mr. Hampden's fortune? No! but the payment of half twenty shillings, on the principle it was demanded, would have made him a slave. It is the weight of that preamble, of which you are so fond, and not the weight of the duty, that the Americans are unable and unwilling to bear. It is then, Sir, upon the principle of this measure, and nothing else, that we are at issue. It is a principle of political expe- diency. Your act of 1767 asserts, that it is expedient to raise, a revenue in America; your act of 1769, which takes away that revenue, contradicts the act of 1767, and, by something much stronger than words, asserts, that it is not expedient. It is a reflection upon your wisdom to persist in a solemn parlia- mentary declaration of the expediency of any object, for which, at the same time, you make no sort of provision. And pray, Sir, let not this circumstance escape you ; it is veiy material ; that the preamble of this act, which we wish to repeal, is not declaratory of right, as some gentlemen seem to argue it ; it is H 58 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH only a recital of the expediency of a certain exercise ol a right supposed ah'eady to have been asserted ; an exercise you are now contending for by ways and means, which you confess, though they were obeyed, to be utterly insufficient for their purpose. You are therefore at this moment in the awkward shuation of fighting for a phantom , a quiddity ; a thing that wants, not only a substance, but even a name ; for a thing, which is neither abstract right, nor profitable enjoyment. They tell you. Sir, that your dignity is tied to it. I know not how it happens, but this dignity of yours is a terrible encumbrance to you; for it has of late been ever at war with your interest, your equity, and every idea of your policy. Show the thing you contend for to be reason ; show it to be common sense ; show it to be the means of attaining some useful end ; and then I am content to allow it what dignity you please. But what dignity is derived from the perseverance in absurdity, is more than I ever could discern. The honorable gentleman has said well — indeed, in most of his general obser- vations I agree with him — he says, that his subject does not stand as it did formerly. Oh, certainly not ! every hour you continue on this ill-chosen ground, your difficulties thicken on you ; and therefore my conclusion is, remove from a bad posi- tion as quickly as you can. The disgrace, and the necessity of yielding, both of them, grow upon you every hour of your delay. But will you repeal the act, says the honorable gentleman, at this instant when America is in open resistance to your authority, and that you have just revived your system of taxation ? He thinks he has driven us into a corner. But thus pent up, I am content to meet him ; because I enter the lists supported by my old authority, his new friends, the ministers themselves. The honorable gentleman remembers, that about five years ago as great disturbances as the present prevailed in America on account of the new taxes. The ministers represented these disturbances as treasonable ; and this house thought proper, on that representation, to make a famous address for a revival, and for a new application, of a statute of Henry VIII. We besought the king, in that well-considered address, to inquire into treasons, and to bring the supposed traitors from America to Great Britain for trial. His majesty was pleased graciously to promise a compliance with our request. All the attempts from this side of the house to resist these violences, and to bring about a repeal, were treated with the utmost scorn. An apprehension of the very consequences now stated by the honorable gentle- man, was then given as a reason for shutting the door against all hope of such an alteration. And so strong was the spirit ON AMERICAN TAXATION. 59 for supporting the new taxes, that the session concluded with the following remarkable declaration. After stating the vigor- ous measures which had been pursued, the speech from the throne proceeds : You have assured me of your firm support in the prosecution of them. Nothing, in my opinion, could he mare likely to enable the well disposed among my subjects in that part of the world, effectually to discourage and defeat the designs of the factious and seditious, than the hearty concurrence of every branch of the legis- lature, in maintaining the execution of the laws in every part of my dominions. After this, no man dreamt that a repeal under this ministry could possibly take place. The honorable gentleman knows as well as I, that the idea was utterly exploded by those who sway the house. This speech was made on the ninth day of May, 1769. Five days after this speech, that is, on the 13th of the same month, the public circular letter, a part of which I am going to read to you, was written by Lord Hillsborough, secre- tary of state for the colonies. After reciting the substance of the king's speech, he goes on thus : " / can take upon me to assure you, notwithstanding insinuations to the contrary, from men loith factious and seditious views, that his majesty's present administration have at no time entertained a design to propose to parliament to lay any further taxes upon America, for the purpose of RAISING A REVENUE ; and tliat it is at present their intention to propose, the next session of parliament, to take off the duties upon glass, paper, and colors, upon consideration of such duties having been laid contrary to the true principles of commerce. " These have always been, and still are, the sentiments of his majesty's present servants; and by which their conduct in respect to America has been governed. And his majesty relies upon your prudence and fidelity far such an explanation of his measures, as may tend to remove the prejudices which have been excited by the misrepresentations of those who are enemies to the peace and pros- perity of Great Britain and her colonies ; and to re-establish that mutual confidence and aflfection, upon ichich the glory and safety of the British empire depend." Here, Sir, is a canonical book of ministerial scripture ; the general epistle to the Americans. What does the gentleman say to it? Here a repeal is promised; promised without condi- tion ; and while your authority was actually resisted. I pass by the public promise of a peer relative to the repeal of taxes by this house. I pass by the use of the king's name in a matter of supply, that sacred and reserved right of the Commons. I conceal the ridiculous figure of parliament, hurUng its thunders 60 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH at the gigantic rebellion of America ; and then, five days after, prostrate at the feet of those assemblies we affected to despise ; begging them, by the intervention of our ministerial sureties, to receive our submission ; and heartily promising amendment. These might have been serious matters formerly ; but we are grown wiser than our fathers. Passing, therefore, from the constitutional consideration to the mere policy, does not this letter imply, that the idea of taxing America for the purpose of revenue is an abominable project ; when the ministry suppose none but factious men, and with seditious views, could charge them with it ? does not this letter adopt and sanctify the Ame- rican distinction oi taxing for revenue? does it not formally reject all future taxation on that principle ? does it not state the ministerial rejection of such principle of taxation, not as the occasional, but the constant opinion of the king's servants 1 does it not say (I care not how consistently, but does it not say) that their conduct with regard to America has been always governed by this policy? It goes a great deal further. These excellent and trusty servants of the king, justly fearful lest they themselves should have lost all credit with the world, bring out the image of their gracious sovereign from the inmost and most sacred shrine, and they pawn him as a security for their promises. — " His majesty relies on your prudence and fidelity for such an explanation of Ms measures." These sentiments of tlie minister, and these measures of his majesty, can only relate to the principle and practice of taxing for a revenue; and accordingly Lord Botetourt, stating it as such, did, with great propriety, and in the exact spirit of his instructions, endeavor to remove the fears of the Virginian assembly, lest the sentiments, which it seems (unknown to the world) -had always been those of the ministers, and by which their conduct in respect to Ame- rica had been governed, should, by some possible revolution, favorable to wicked American taxes, be hereafter counteracted. He addresses them in this manner : It may possibly be objected, that, as his Majesty^s present administration are not immortal, their successors may be inclined to attempt to undo icliat the present ministers shall have attempted to perform ; and to that objection I can give you but this answer ; that it is my firm opinion, that the plan I have stated to you will certainly take place, and that it icill never be departed from ; and so deter- mined am I for ever to abide by it, that I ivill be content to be declaimed infamous, if I do not, to the last hour of my life, at all times, in all places, and upon all occasions, exert every power unth which I either am, or ever shall be legally invested, in order to obtain and maintain for the continent of America that satisfaction which I have been authorized to promise this day, by the confiden- ON AMERICAN TAXATION. 61 tial sertiants of our gracious sovereign, who to my certain know- ledge rates his honor so high, that he would rather part with his crown, than preserve it by deceit. A glorious and true character ! which (since we suffer his ministers with impunity to answer for his ideas of taxation) we ought to make it our business to enable his majesty to preserve in all its lustre. Let him have character, since ours is no more ! Let some part of government be kept in respect ! This epistle was not the letter of lord Hillsborough solely ; though he held the official pen. It was the letter of the noble lord upon the floor, and all the king's then ministers, who (with I think the exception of two only) are his ministers at this hour. The very first news that a British parliament heard of what it was to do with the duties which it had given and granted to the king, was by the publication of the votes of American assemblies. It was in America that your resolutions were pre- declared. It was from thence that we knew to a certainty, how much exactly, and not a scruple more nor less, we were to repeal. We were unworthy to be let into the secret of our own conduct. The assemblies had confidential communications from his majesty's confidential servants. We were nothing but instruments. Do you, after this, wonder, that you have no weight and no respect in the colonies ? After this, are you sur- prised, that parliament is every day and everywhere losing (I feel it with sorrow, I utter it with reluctance) that reverential affection, which so endearing a name of authority ought ever to carry with it ; that you are obeyed solely from respect to the bayonet; and that this house, the ground and pillar of freedom, is itself held up only by the treacherous under-pinning and clumsy buttresses of arbitrary power ? If this dignity, which is to stand in the place of just policy and common sense, had been consulted, there was a time for preserving it, and for reconciling it with any concession. If in the session of 1768, that session of idle terror and empty menaces, you had, as you were often pressed to do, repealed these taxes; then your strong operations would have come justified and enforced, in case your concessions had been re- turned by outrages. But, preposterously, you began with vio- lence ; and before terrors could have any effect, either good or bad, your ministers immediately begged pardon, and promised that repeal to the obstinate Americans which they had refused in an easy, good-natured, complying British parliament. The assemblies, which had been publicly and avowedly dissolved for their contumacy, are called together to receive ijorir submis- sion. Your ministerial directors blustered like tragic tyrants liere ; and then went mumping with a sore leg in America, G 62 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH canting and whining, and complaining of faction, which repre* sented them as friends to a revenue from the colonies. I hope nobody in . this house will hereafter have the impudence to defend American taxes in the name of ministry. The moment they do, with this letter of attorney in my hand, I will tell them, in the authorized terms, they are wretches, " with factious and seditious views ; enemies to the peace and prosperity of the mother country and the colonies," and subverters " of the mutual affection and confidence on which the glory and safety of the British empire depend." After this letter, the question is no more on propriety or dignity. They are gone already. The faith of your sovereign is pledged for the political principle. The general declaration in the letter goes to the whole of it. You must therefore either abandon the scheme of taxing ; or you must send the ministers tarred and feathered to America, who dare to hold out the royal faith for a renunciation for all taxes for revenue. Them you must punish, or this faith you must preserve. The preser- vation of this faith is of more consequence than the duties on red lead, or white lead, or on broken glass, or atlas-oi^dinary, or demy-fine, or hlue-royal, or bastard, or fooV s-ca-p, which you have given up; or the three-pence on tea which you retained. The letter went stamped with the pubHc authority of this king- dom. The instructions for the colony government go under no other sanction ; and America cannot believe, and will not obey you, if you do not preserve this channel of communication sacred. You are now punishing the colonies for acting on distinctions, held out by that very ministry which is here shining in riches, in favor, and in power; and urging the punishment of the very offence to which they had themselves been the tempters. Sir, if reasons respecting simply your own commerce, which is your own convenience, were the sole grounds of the repeal of the five duties; why does lord Hillsborough, in disclaiming in the name of the king and ministry their ever having had an intent to tax for revenue, mention it as the means " of re-estab- lishing the confidence and affection of the colonies ?" Is it a way of soothing others, to assure them that you will take good care o{ yourself 1 The medium, the only medium, for regaining their affection and confidence, is, that you will take off some- thing oppressive to their minds. Sir, the letter strongly enforces that idea : for though the repeal of the taxes is promised on commercial principles, yet the means of counteracting " the insinuations of men with factious and seditious views," is, by a disclaimer of the intention of taxing for revenue, as a constant ON AMERICAN TAXATION. 63 invariable sentiment and rule of conduct in the government of America. I remember that the noble lord on the floor, not in a former debate to be sure (it would be disorderly to refer to it, I suppose I read it somev^'here), but the noble lord was pleased to say, that he did not conceive how it could enter into the head of man to impose such taxes as those of 1767 ; I mean those taxes which he voted for imposing, and voted for repealing ; as being taxes, contrary to all the principles of commerce, laid on British manufactures. I dare say the noble lord is perfectly well read, because the duty of his particular office requires he should be so, in all our revenue laws; and in the policy which is to be collected out of them. Now, Sir, when he had read this act of American revenue, and a little recovered from his astonishment, I suppose he made one step retrograde (it is but one) and looked at the act which stands just before in the statute book. The American revenue act is the forty-fifth chapter; the other to which I refer is the forty-fourth of the same session. These two acts are both to the same purpose ; both revenue acts ; both taxing out of the kingdom ; and both taxing British manufactures exported. As the 45th is an act for raising a revenue in America, the 44th is an act for raising a revenue in the Isle of Man. The two acts perfectly agree in all respects, except one. In the act for taxing the Isle of Man, the noble lord will find (not, as in the American act, four or five articles) but almost the whole body, of British manufactures, taxed from two and a half to fifteen per cent and some articles, such as that of spirits, a great deal higher. You did not think it uncommercial to tax the whole mass of your manufactures, and, let me add, your agri- cuhure too; for, I now recollect, British corn is there also taxed up to ten per cent, and this too in the very head-quarters, the very citadel of smuggling, the Isle of Man. Now will the noble lord condescend to tell me why he repealed the taxes on your manufactures sent out to America, and not the taxes on the manufactures exported to the Isle of Man? The principle was exactly the same, the objects charged infinitely more extensive, the duties, without comparison, higher. Why ? why, notwithstanding all his childish pretexts, because the taxes were quietly submitted to in the Isle of Man ; and because they raised a flame in America. Your reasons were political, not commercial. The repeal was made, as Lord Hillsborough's letter well expresses it, to regain " the confidence and affection of the colonies, on which the glory and safety of the British empire depend." A wise and just motive surely, if ever there was such. But the mischief and dishonor is, that you have 64 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH not done what you have given the colonies just cause to expect, when your ministers disclaimed the idea of taxes for a revenue. There is nothing simple, nothing manly, nothing ingenuous, open, decisive, or steady, in the proceeding, with regard either to the continuance or the repeal of the taxes. The whole has an air of littleness and fraud. The article of tea is slurred over in the circular letter, as it were by accident — nothing is said of a resolution either to keep that tax, or to give it up. There is no fair dealing in any part of the transaction. If you mean to follow your true motive and your public faith, give up your tax on tea for raising a revenue, the principle of which has, in eftect, been disclaimed in your name ; and which produces you no advantage; no, not a penny. Or, if you choose to go on with a poor pretence instead of a solid reason, and will still adhere to your cant of commerce, you have ten thou- sand times more strong commercial reasons for giving up this duty on tea, than for abandoning the five others that you have already renounced. The American consumption of teas is annually, I believe, worth £300,000 at the least farthing. If you urge the Ameri- can violence as a justification of your perseverance in enforcing this tax, you know that you can never answer this plain ques- tion — Why did you repeal the others given in the same act, whilst the very same violence subsisted 1 — But you did not find the violence cease upon that concession. No ! because the concession was far short of satisfying the principle which lord Hillsborough had abjured ! or even the pretence on which the repeal of the other taxes was announced : and because, by enabUng the East India company to open a shop for defeating the American resolution not to pay that specific tax, you mani- festly showed a hankering after the principle of the act which you formerly had renounced. Whatever road you take leads to a compliance with this motion. It opens to you at the end of every vista. Your commerce, your policy, your promises, your reasons, your pretences, your consistency, your inconsis tency, — all jointly oblige you to this repeal. But still it sticks in our throats, if we go so far, the Ameri- cans will go farther. — We do not know that. We ought, from experience, rather to presume the contrary. Do we not know for certain, that the Americans are going on as fast as possible, whilst we refuse to gratify them 1 can they do more, or can they do worse, if we yield this point? I think this concession will rather fix a turnpike to prevent a further progress. It is impossible to answer for bodies of men. But I am sure the natural effect of fidelity, clemency, kindness in governors, is peace, good-will, order, and esteem, on the part of the govern' ON AMERICAN TAXATION 65 ed. I would certainly, at least, give these fair principles a fair trial; which, since the making of this act to this hour, they never have had. Sir, the honorable gentleman having spoken what he thought necessary upon the narrow part of the subject, I have given him, I hope, a satisfactory answer. He next presses me by a variety of direct challenges and oblique reflections to say some- thing on the historical part. I shall, therefore, Sir, open myself fully on that important and delicate subject ; not for the sake of telling you a long story (which, I know, Mr. Speaker, you are not particularly fond of,) but for the sake of the weighty instruction that, I flatter myself, will necessarily result from it. It shall not be longer, if I can help it, than so serious a matter requires. Permit me then. Sir, to lead your attention very far back ; back to the act of navigation ; the corner-stone of the policy of this country, with regard to its colonies. Sir, that policy was, from the beginning, purely commercial; and the commercial system was wholly restrictive. It was the system of a monopoly. No trade was let loose from that constraint, but merely to enable the colonists to dispose of what, in the course of your trade, you could not take ; or to enable them to dispose of such articles as we forced upon them, and for which, with- out some degree of liberty, they could not pay. Hence all your specific and detailed enumeration : hence the innumerable checks and counterchecks : hence that infinite variety of paper chains by which you bind together this compHcated system of the colonies. This principle of commercial monopoly runs through no less than twenty-nine acts of parliament, from the year 1660 to the unfortunate period of 1764. In all those acts the system of commerce is estabUshed, as that, from whence alone you proposed to make the colonies contribute (I mean directly and by the operation of your super- intending legislative power) to the strength of the empire. I venture to say, that during that whole period, a parliamentary « revenue from thence was never once in contemplation. Ac- cordingly, in all the number of laws passed with regard to the plantations, the words which distinguish revenue laws, specifi- cally as such, were, I think, premeditatedly avoided. I do not say. Sir, that a form of words alters the nature of the law, or abridges the power of the lawgiver. It certainly does not. However, titles and formal preambles are not always idle words ; and the lawyers frequency argue from them. I state these facts to show, not what was your right, but what has been your settled policy. Our revenue laws have usually a ii7Ze, purporting their being grants ; and the words give and grant I 6* 66 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH usually precede the enacting parts. Although duties were imposed on America in acts of King Charles the Second, and in acts of King William, no one title of giving "an aid to his majesty," or any other of the usual titles to revenue acts, was to be found jn any of them till 17G4 ; nor were the words " give and grant" ih any preamble until the 0th of George the Second. However the title of this act of George the Second, notwith- standing the words of donation, considers it merely as a regu- lation of trade, *' an act for the better securing of the trade of his majesty's sugar colonies in America." This act was made on a compromise of all, and at the express desire of a part, of the colonies themselves. It was therefore in some measure with their consent; and having a title directly purporting only a commercial regulation, and being in truth nothing more, the words were passed by, at a time when no jealousy was enter- tained, and things were little scrutinized. Even Governor Bernard, in his second printed letter, dated in 17G3, gives it as his opinion, that "it was an act of prohibition, not of revenue." This is certainly true, that no act avowedly for the purpose of revenue, and with the ordinary title and recital taken together, is found in the statute book until the year I have mentioned ; that is, the year 17G4. All before this period stood on com- mercial regulation and restraint. The scheme of a colony revenue by British authority a))peared therefore to the Ameri- cans in the light of a great innovation ; the words of Governor Bernard's ninth letter, written in Nov. 17G5, state this idea vocy strongly: "it must," says he, "have been supposed, such an innovation as a •parliamentarij taxation, would cause a great alarm, and meet with much opposition in most parts of America; it was quite new to the people, and had no visible bounds set to it." After stating the weakness of government there, he says, " was this a time to introduce so great a novelty as a parliament- ary inland taxation in America?" Whatever the right might have been, this mode of using it was absolutely new in policy and practice. Sir, they who are friends to the schemes of American revenue say, that the commercial restraint is full as hard a law for America to live under. I think so too. I think it, if uncom- pensated, to be a condition of as rigorous servitude as men can be subject to. But America bore it from the fundamental act of navigation until 17G4. — Why? because men do bear the inevitable constitution of their original nature with all its infirmities. The act of navi^tion attended the colonies from their inf^incy, grew with their growth, and strengthened with their strength. They were confirmed in obedience to it, even more by usage than by law. They scarcely had remembered ON AMERICAN TAXATION. 67 a time when they were not subject to such restraint. Besides, they were indemnified for it by a pecuniary compensation. Their monopoUst happened to be one of the richest men in the world. By liis immense capital (primarily employed, not for their benefit, but his own) they were enabled to proceed with their fisheries, their agriculture, their ship-building (and their trade too within the limits), in such a manner as got far the start of the slow languid operations of unassisted nature. This capital was a hot-bed to them. Nothing in the history of mankind is like their progress. For my part, I never cast an eye on their flourishing commerce, and their cuUivated and commodious life, but they seem to me rather ancient nations grown to perfection through a long series of fortunate events, and a train of successful industiy, accumulating wealth in many centuries, than the colonies of yesterday ; than a set of miser- able outcasts, a few years ago, not so much sent as thrown out, on the bleak and barren shore of a desolate wilderness three thousand miles from all civilized intercourse. All this was done by England, whilst England pursued trade, and forgot revenue. You not only acquired commerce, but you actually created the very objects of trade in America; and by that creation you raised the trade of this kingdom at least four-fold. America had the compensation of your capital, which made her bear her servitude. She had another compen- sation, which you are now going to take away from her. She had, except the commercial restraint, every characteristic mark of a free people in all her internal concerns. She had the image of the British constitution. She had the substance. She was taxed by h^r own representatives. She chose most of her own magistrates. She paid them all. She had ineflfect the sole disposal of her own internal government. This whole state of commercial servitude and civil liberty, taken together, is certainly not perfect freedom ; but comparing it with the ordinary circumstances of human nature, it was a happy and a liberal condition. I know. Sir, that great and not unsuccessful pains have been taken to inflame our minds by an outcry, in this house and out of it, that in America the act of navigation neither is, nor ever was, obeyed. But if you take the colonies through, I affirm, that its authority never was disputed; that it was nowhere disputed for any length of time ; and on the whole, that it was well observed. Wherever the act pressed hard, many indi- viduals indeed evaded it. This is nothing. These scattered individuals never denied the law, and never obeyed it. Just as it happens whenever the laws of trade, whenever the laws of revenue, press hard upon the people in England; in that case 68 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH all your shores are full of contraband. Your right to give a monopoly to the East India company, your right to lay immense duties on Fx'ench brandy, are not disputed in England. You do not make this charge on any man. But you know that there is not a creek from Pentland Frith to the Isle of Wight, in which they do not smuggle immense quantities of teas, East India goods, and brandies. I take it for granted, that the authority of Governor Bernard on this point is indisputable. Speaking of these laws, as they regarded that part of America now in so unhappy a condition, he says, " I beheve they are nowhere better supported than in this province ; I do not pre- tend that it is entirely free from a breach of these laws ; but that such a breach, if discovered, is justly punished." What more can you say of the obedience to any laws in any country ? An obedience to these laws formed the acknowledgment, insti- tuted by yourselves, for your superiority; and was the payment you originally imposed for your protection. Whether you were right or wrong in establishing the colonies on the principles of commercial monopoly rather than on that of revenue, is at this day a problem of mere speculation. You cannot have both by the same authority. To join together the restraints of an universal internal and external monopoly, with an universal internal and external taxation, is an unnatural union ; perfect uncompensated slavery. You have long since decided for yourself and them ; and you and they have pros- pered exceedingly under that decision. This nation. Sir, never thought of departing from that choice until the period immediately on the close of the last war. Then a scheme of government new in many things seemed to have been adopted. I saw, or thought I saw, several symptoms of a great change, whilst I sat in your gallery, a good while before I had the honor of a seat in this house. At that period the necessity was established of keeping up no less than twenty new regiments, with twenty colonels capable of seats in this house. This scheme was adopted with very general applause from all sides, at the very time that, by your conquests in America, your danger from foreign attempts in that part of the world was much lessened, or indeed rather quite over. When this huge increase of military establishment was resolved on, a revenue was to be found to support so great a burthen. Country gentlemen, the great patrons of economy, and the great resisters of a standing armed force, would not have entered with much alacrity into the vote for so large and so expensive an a^rmy, if they had been very sure that they were to continue to pay for it. But hopes of another kind were held out to them ; and in particular, I well remember that Mr. Townshend, in a brilliant ON AMERICAN TAPXTION. 69 narangue on this subject, did dazzle them, by playing before their eyes the image of a revenue to be raised in America. Here began to dawn the first glimmering of this new colony system. It appeared more distinctly afterwards, when it was devolved upon a person to whom, on other accounts, this country owes very great obligations. I do believe, that he had a very serious desire to benefit the public. But with no small study of the detail, he did not seem to have his view, at least equally, carried to the total circuit of our affairs. He generally considered his objects in lights that were rather too detached. Whether the business of an American revenue was imposed upon him altogether ; whether it was entirely the result of his own speculation ; or, what is more probable, that his own ideas rather coincided with the instructions he had received ; certain it is, that, with the best intentions in the world, he first brought this fatal scheme into form, and established it by act of par- liament. No man can believe, that at this time of day I mean to lean on the venerable memory of a great man, whose loss we deplore in common. Our little party-differences have been long ago composed; and I have acted more with him, and certainly with more pleasure with him, than ever I acted against him. Undoubtedly Mr. Grenville was a first-rate figure in this country. With a masculine understanding, and a stout and resolute heart, he had an application undissipated and unwearied. He took public business, not as a duty which he was to fulfil, but as a pleasure he was to enjoy ; and he seemed to have no delight out of this house, except in such things as some way related to the business that was to be done within it. If he was ambitious, I will say this for him, his ambition was of a noble and generous strain. It was to raise himself, not by the low pimping politics of a court, but to win his way to power, through the laborious gi'adations of public service ; and to secure himself a well-earned rank in parhament, by a thorough knowledge of its constitution, and a perfect practice in all its business. Sir, if such a man fell into errors, it must be from defects not intrinsical ; they must be rather sought in the particular habits of his life ; which, though they do not alter the ground- work of character, yet tinge it with their own hue. He was bred in a profession. He was bred to the law, which is, in my opinion, one of the first and noblest of human sciences; a science which does more to quicken and invigorate the under- standing, than all the other kinds of learning put together ; but it is not apt, except in persons very happily born, to open and to liberalize the mind exactly in the same proportion. Passing from that study, he did not go very largely into tHe world ; but 70 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH plungod into business ; I mean into the business of office ; and the limited and fixed methods and forms established there. Much knowledge is to be had undoubtedly in that line ; and there is no knowledge which is not valuable. But it may be truly said, that men too much conversant in office, are rarely minds of remarkable enlargement. Their habits of office are apt to give them a turn to think the substance of business not to be much more important than the forms in which it is con- ducted. These forms are adapted to ordinary occasions ; and therefore persons who are nurtured in office, do admirably well, as long as things go on in their common order ; but when the high roads are broken up, and the waters out, when a new and troubled scene is opened, and the file aflbrds no precedent, then it is that a greater knowledge of mankind, and a far more extensive comprehension of things, is requisite than ever office gave, or than office can ever give. Mr. Grenville thought better of the wisdom and power of human legislation than in truth it deserves. He conceived, and many conceived along with him, that the flourishing trade of this country was greatly owing to law and institution, and not quite so much to liberty ; for but too many are apt to believe regulation to be commerce, and taxes to be revenue. Among regulations, that which stood first in reputation was his idol. I mean the act of navigation. He has often professed it to be so. The policy of that act is, I readily admit, in many respects well understood. But I do say, that if the act be suffered to run the full length of its principle, and is not changed and modified according to the change of times and the fluctuation of circumstances, it must do great mischief, and frequently even defeat its own purpose. After the war, and in the last years of it, the trade of Ame- rica had increased far beyond the speculations of the most sanguine imaginations. It swelled out on every side. It filled all its proper channels to the brim. It overflowed with a rich redundance, and breaking its banks on the right and on the left, it spread out upon some places, where it was indeed im proper, upon others where it was only irregular. It is the nature of all greatness not to be exact ; and great trade will always be attended with considerable abuses. The contraband will always keep pace in some measure with the fair trade. It should stand as a fundamental maxim, that no vulgar pre- caution ought to be employed in the cure of evils, which are closely connected with the cause of our prosperity, Perhaps this great person turned his eyes somewhat less than was just, towards the incredible increase of the fair trade ; and looked with something of too exquisite a jealousy towards the contra- band. He certainly felt a singular degree of anxiety on the ON AMERICAN TAXATION. 71 subject ; and even began to act from that passion earlier than is commonly imagined. For whilst he was first lord of the admiralty, though not strictly called upon in his official line, he presented a very strong memorial to the lords of the trea- sury, (my Lord Bute was then at the head of the board;) heavily complaining of the growth of the illicit commerce in America. Some mischief happened even at that time from this over-earnest zeal. Much greater happened afterwards, when it operated with greater power in the highest department of the finances. The bonds of the act of navigation were straitened so much, that America was on the point of having no trade, either contraband or legitimate. They found, under the construction and execution then used, the act no longer trying but actually strangling them. All this coming with new enumerations of commodities ; with regulations which in a manner put a stop to the mutual coasting intercourse of the colonies ; with the appointment of courts of admiralty under various improper circumstances ; with a sudden extinction of the paper currencies; with a compulsory provision for the quartering of soldiers; the people of America thought them- selves proceeded against as delinquents, or at best as people under suspicion of delinquency; and in such a manner, as they imagined, their recent services in the war did not at all mei'it. Any of these innumerable regulations, perhaps, would not have alarmed alone ; some might be thought reasonable ; the multi- tude struck them with terroi*. But the grand manoeuvre in that business of new regulating the colonies, was the 15th act of the fourth of George III.; which, besides containing several of the matters to which I have just alluded, opened a new principle : and here properly began the second period of the policy of this country with regard to the colonies ; by which the scheme of a regular ])lantation parliamentary revenue was adopted in theory, and settled in practice. A revenue not substituted in the place of, but superadded to, a monopoly; which monopoly was enforced at the same time with additional strictness, and the execution put into military hands. This act. Sir, had, for the first time, the title of " granting duties in the colonies and plantations of America;" and lor the first time, it was asserted in the preamble, " that it was just and necessary that a revenue should be raised there." Then came the technical words of " giving and granting," and thus a complete American revenue act w^s made in all the forms, and with a full avowal of the right, equity, policy, and even necessity of taxing the colonies, without any formal consent of theirs. There are contained also in the preamble 72 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH to that act these very remarkable words — the commons, Sac. — " being desirous to make some provision in the present ses- sion of parliament towards raising the said revenue." By these words it appeared to the colonies, that this act was but a beginning of sorrows ; that every session was to produce something of the same kind ; that we were to go on from day to day, in charging them with such taxes as we pleased, for such a mihtary force as we should think proper. Had this plan been pursued, it was evident that the provincial assem- blies, in which the Americans felt all their portion of impor- tance, and beheld their sole image of freedom, were ipso facto annihilated. This ill prospect before them seemed to be bound- less in extent, and endless in duration. Sir, they were not mis- taken. The ministry valued themselves when this act passed, and when they gave notice of the stamp act, that both of the duties came very short of their ideas of American taxation. Great was the applause of this measure here. In England we cried out for new taxes on America, whilst they cried out thai they were nearly crushed with those which the war and their own grants had brought upon them. Sir, it has been said in the debate, that when the first Ame- rican revenue act (the act of 1764, imposing the port duties) passed, the Americans did not object to the principle. It is true, they touched it but very tenderly. It was not a direct attack. They were, it is true, as yet novices ; as yet unac- customed to direct attacks upon any of the rights of parlia- ment. The duties were port duties, like those they had been accustomed to bear; with this difference, that the title was not the same, the preamble not the same, and the spirit altogether unlike. But of what service is this observation to the cause of those that make it 1 It is a full refutation of the pretence for their present cruelty to America ; for it shows, out of their own mouths, that our colonies were backward to enter into the present vexatious and ruinous controversy. There is also another circulation abroad, (spread with a malignant intention, which I cannot attribute to those who say the same thing in this house) that Mr. Grenville gave the colony agents an option for their assemblies to tax themselves, which they had refused. I find that much stress is laid on this, as a fact. However, it happens neither to be true nor possible. I will observe first, that Mr. Grenville never thought fit to make this apology for himself in the innumerable debates that were had upon the subject. He might have proposed to the colony agents, that they should agree in some mode of taxation as the ground of an act of parliament. But he never could have proposed that they should tax themselves on requi- ON AMERICAN TAXATION. 73 sition, which is the assertion of the day. Indeed, Mr. Gren- ville well knew, that the colony agents could have no general powers to consent to it; and they had no time to consult their assemblies for particular powers, before he passed his first revenue act. If you compare dates, you will find it impossi- ble. Burthened as the agents knew the colonies w^ere at that time, they could not give the least hope of such grants. His own favorite governor was of opinion that the Americans were not then taxable objects : " JVor was the time less favorable to the equity of such a taxa- tion. I doTfUt mean to dispute the reasonableness of America con- tributing to Hie charges of Great Britain when she is able ; nor, I believe, would the Americans themselves have disputed it, at a proper time and season. But it should be considered, that the American governments themselves have, in the prosecution of the late war, contracted very large debts ; ivhich it ivill take some years in pay off, and in the mean time occasion very burdensome taxes for that purpose only. For instance, this governincnt, ivhich is as much beforehand as any, liaises every year £37,500 sterling far sinking their debt, and must continue it for four years longer at least before it will be clear.'" These are the words of Governor Bernard's letter to a mem- ber of the old ministry, and which he has since printed. Mr. Grenville could not have made this proposition to the agents, for another reason. He was of opinion, which he has declared in this house an hundred times, that the colonies could not legally grant any revenue to the crown ; and that infinite mis- chiefs would be the consequence of such a power. When Mr. Grenville had passed the first revenue act, and in the same session had made this house come to a resolution for laying a stamp-duty on America, between that time and the passing the stamp act into a law, he told a considerable and most respect- able merchant, a member of this house, whom I am truly sorry I do not now see in his place, when he represented against this proceeding, that if the stamp-duty was disliked, he was willing to exchange it for any other equally productive ; but that, if he objected to the Americans being taxed by parliament, he might save himself the trouble of the discussion, as he was determined on the measure. This is the fact, and, if you please, I will mention a very unquestionable authority for it. Thus, Sir, I have disposed of this falsehood. But falsehood has a perennial spring. It is said, that no conjecture could be made of the dislike of the colonies to the principle. This is as untrue as the other. After the resolution of the house, and before the passing of the stamp act, the colonies of Massachu- setty Bay and New York did send remonstrances, objecting to K 7 74 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH this mode of parliamentary taxation. What was the conse- quence ? They were suppressed : they were put under the table ; notwithstanding an order of council to the contrary, by the ministry which composed the very council that had made the order; and thus the house proceeded to its business of taxing without the least regular knowledge of the objections which were made to it. But to give that house its due, it was not over-desirous to receive information, or to hear remonstrance. On the 15th of February 1765, whilst the stamp act was under deliberation, they refused with scorn even so much as to receive four petitions presented from so respectable colonies as Con- necticut, Rhode Island, Virginia, and Carohna; besides one from the traders of Jamaica. As to the colonies, they had no alternative left to them, but to disobey ; or to pay the taxes imposed by that parliament which was not suffered, or did not suffer itself, even to hear them remonstrate upon the subject This was the state of the colonies before his majesty thought fit to change his ministers. It stands upon no authority of mine. It is proved by uncontrovertible records. The honor- able gentleman has desired some of us to lay our hands upon our hearts, and answer to his queries upon the historical part of this consideration ; and by his manner (as well as my eyes could discern it) he seemed to address himself to me. Sir, I will answer him as clearly as I am able, and with great openness ; I have nothing to conceal. In the year sixty- five, being in a very private station, far enough from any line of business, and not having the honor of a seat in this house, it was my fortune, unknowing and unknown to the then ministry, by the intervention of a common friend, to become connected with a very noble person, and at the head of the treasury department^ It was indeed in a situation of little rank and no consequence, suitable to the mediocrity of my talents and pre- tensions. But a situation near enough to enable me to see, as well as others, what was going on ; and I did see in that noble person such sound principle, such an enlargement of mind, such clear and sagacious sense, and such unshaken fortitude, as have bound me, as well as others much better than me, by an inviola ble attachment to him from that time forward. Sir, lord Rock- ingham very early in that summer received a strong represent- ation from many weighty English merchants and manufac- turers, from governors of provinces and commanders of men of war, against almost the whole of the American commercial regulation, and particularly with regard to the total ruin which was threatened to the Spanish trade. I believe. Sir, the noble lord soon saw his way in this business. But" he did not rashly determine against acts which it might be supposed were the ON AMERICAN TAXATION. 75 result of much deliberation. However, Sir, he scarcely began to o})en the ground, when the whole veteran body of office took the alarm. A violent outcry of all (except those who knew and felt the mischief) was raised against any alteration. On one hand, his attempt was a direct violation of treaties and public law. — On the other, the act of navigation and all the corps of trade laws were drawn up in array against it. The first step the noble lord took, was to have the opinion of his excellent, learned, and ever-lamented friend the late Mr. Yorke, then attorney-general, on the point of law. When he knew that formally and officially, which in substance he had known before, he immediately dispatched orders to redress the grievance. But I will say it for the then minister, he is of that constitution of mind, that I know he would have issued, on the same critical occasion, the very same orders, if the acts of trade had been, as they were not, directly against him ; and would have cheerfully submitted to the equity of parliament for his indemnity. On the conclusion of this business of the Spanish trade, the news of the troubles, on account of the stamp act, arrived in England. It was not until the end of October that these accounts were received. No sooner had the sound of that mighty tempest reached us in England, than the whole of the then opposition, instead of feeling humbled by the unhappy issue of their measures, seemed to be infinitely elated, and cried out, that the ministry, from envy to the glory of their predecessors, were prepared to repeal the stamp act. Near nine years after, the honorable gentleman takes quite opposite ground, and now challenges me to put my hand to my heart, and say, whether the ministry had resolved on the repeal till a considerable time after the meeting of parliament. Though I do not very well know what the honorable gentleman wishes to infer from the admission, or from the denial, of this fact, on which he so earnestly adjures me ; I do put my hand on my heart, and assure him, that they did not come to a resolution directly to repeal. They weighed this matter as its difficulty and impor- tance required. They considered maturely among themselves. They consulted with all who could give advice or information. It was not determined until a little before the meeting of par- liament ; but it was determined, and the main lines of their own plan marked out, before that meeting. Two questions arose (I hope I am not going into a narrative troublesome to the house.) [A cry of, go on, go on,] The first of the two considerations was, whether the repeal should be total, or whether only partial ; taking out everything 76 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH burthensome and productive, and reserving only an empty acknowledgment, such as a stamp on cards or dice. The other question was, on what principle the act should be repealed ? On this head also two principles were started. One, that the legislative rights of this country, with regard to America, were not entire, but had certain restrictions and limitations. The other principle was, that taxes of this kind were contrary to the fundamental principles of commerce on which the colonies were founded ; and contrary to every idea of political equity ; by which equity we are bound, as much as possible, to extend the spirit and benefit of the British constitution to every part of the British dominions. The option, both of the measure, and of the principle of repeal, was made before the session ; and I wonder how any one can read the king's speech at the opening of that session, without seeing in that speech both the repeal and the declaratory act very sufficiently crayoned out. Those who cannot see this can see nothing. Surely the honorable gentleman will not think that a great deal less time than was then employed, ought to have been spent in dehberation; when he considers that the news of the troubles did not arrive till towards the end of October. The parliament sat to fill the vacancies on the 14th day of Decem- ber, and on business the 14th of the following January. Sir, a partial repeal, or, as the bon ion of the court then was, a modification, would have satisfied a timid, unsystematic, procrastinating ministry, as such a measure has since done such a ministry. A modification is the constant resource of weak undeciding minds. To repeal by a denial of our right to tax in the preamble (and this too did not want advisers,) would have cut, in the heroic style, the Gordian knot with a sword. Either measure would have cost no more than a day's debate. But when the total repeal was adopted on principles of policy, of equity, and of commerce ; this plan made it neces- sary to enter into many and difficult measures. It became necessary to open a very large field of evidence commensu rate to these extensive views. But then this labor did knight's service. It opened the eyes of several to the true state of the American affairs; it enlarged their ideas; it removed preju- dices ; and it conciliated the opinions and affections of men. The noble lord, who then took the lead in administration, my honorable friend under me, and a right honorable gentleman (if he will not reject his share, and it was a large one, of this business) exerted the most laudable industry in bringing before you the fullest, most impartial, and least-garbled body of evi- dence that ever was produced to this house. I think the in- quiry lasted in the committee for six weeks ; and at its con- ON AMERICAN TAXATION. 77 elusion this house, by an independent, noble, spirited, and un expected majority; by a majority that will redeem all the acts ever done by majorities in parliament; in the teeth of all the old mercenary Swiss of state, in despite of all the speculators and augurs of political events, in defiance of the whole embattled legion of veteran pensioners and practised instruments of a court, gave a total repeal to the stamp act, and (if it had been so permitted) a lasting peace to this whole empire. I state, Sir, these particulars, because this act of spirit and fortitude has lately been, in the circulation of the season, and in some hazarded declamations in this house, attributed to timidity. If, Sir, the conduct of ministry, in proposing the repeal, had arisen from timidity with regard to themselves, it would have been greatly to be condemned. Interested timid- ity disgraces as much in the cabinet, as personal timidity does in the field. But timidity, with regard to the well-being of our country, is heroic virtue. The noble lord who then conducted afiairs, and his worthy colleagues, whilst they trem- bled at the prospect of such distresses as you have since brought upon yourselves, were not afraid steadily to look in the face that glaring and dazzling influence at which the eyes of eagles have blenched. He looked in the face one of the ablest, and, let me say, not the most scrupulous oppositions, that perhaps ever was in this house, and withstood it, unaided by, even one of the usual supports of administration. He did this when he repealed the stamp act. He looked in the face a person he had long respected and regarded, and whose aid was then particularly wanting ; I mean lord Chatham. He did this when he passed the declaratory act. It is now given out for the usual purposes, by the usual emissaries, that lord Rockingham did not consent to the re- peal of this act until he was bullied into it by lord Chatham ; and the reporters have gone so far as publicly to assert, in a hundred companies, that the honorable gentleman under the gallery, who proposed the repeal in the American committee, had another set of resolutions in his pocket directly the re- verse of those he moved. These artifices of a desperate cause are, at this time, spread abroad, with incredible care, in every part of the town, from the highest to the lowest compa- nies ; as if the industry of the circulation were to make amends for the absurdity of the report. Sir, whether the noble lord is of a complexion to be bullied by lord Chatham, or by any man, I must submit to those who know him. I confess, when I look back to that time, I con- sider him as placed in one of the most trying situations in 78 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH which, perhaps, any man ever stood. In the house of peers there were very few of the ministry, out of the noble lord's own particular connexion, (except lord Egmont, who acted, as far as I could discern, an honorable and manly part,) that did not look to some other future arrangement, which warped his politics. There were in both houses new and menacing appearances, that might very naturally drive any other, than a most resolute minister, from his measure or from his sta- tion. The household troops openly revolted. The allies of ministry (those, I mean, who supported some of their mea- sures, but refused responsibility for any) endeavored to under- mine their ci'edit, and to take ground that must be fatal to the success of the very cause which they would be thought to countenance. The question of the repeal was brought on by ministry in the committee of this house, in the very instant when it was known that more than one court negotiation was carrying on with the heads of the opposition. Everything, upon every side, was full of traps and mines. Earth below shook ; heaven above menaced ; all the elements of ministerial safety were dissolved. It was in the midst of this chaos of plots and counter-plots ; it was in the midst of this compli- cated warfare against public opposition and private treachery, that the firmness of that noble person was put to the proof. He never stirred from his ground ; no, not an inch. He re- mained fixed and determined, in principle, in measure, and in conduct. He practised no managements. He secured no re- treat. He sought no apology. I will likewise do justice, I ought to do it, to the honorable gentleman who led us in this house. Far from the duplicity wickedly charged on him, he acted his part with alacrity and resolution. We all felt inspired by the example he gave us, down even to myself, the weakest in that phalanx. I declare for one, I knew well enough (it could not be concealed from anybody) the true state of things; but, in my life, I never came with so much spirits into this house. It was a time for a man to act in. We had powerful enemies ; but we had faith- ful and determined friends ; and a glorious cause. We had a great battle to fight; but we had the means of fighting ; not as now, when our arms are tied behind us. We did fight that day, and conquer. I remember. Sir, with a melancholy .pleasure, the situation of the honorable gentleman who made the motion for the re- peal ; in that crisis, when the whole trading interest of this empire, crammed into your lobbies, with a trembling and anx- ious expectation, waited, almost to a winter's return of light, their fate from your resolutions. When, at length you had ON AMERICAN TAXATION. 79 determined in their favor, and your doors, thrown open, showed them the figure of their deUverer in the well-earned triumph of his important victory, from the whole of that grave multi- tude there arose an involuntary burst of gratitude and trans- port. They jumped upon him like children on a long-absent father. They clung about him as captives about their re- deemer. All England, all America, joined to his applause. Nor did he seem insensible to the best of all earthly rewards, the love and admiration of his fellow-citizens. Hope elevated and joy brightened his crest. I stood near him ; and his face, to use the expression of the scripture of the first martyr, " his face was as if it had been the face of an angel." I do not know how others feel ; but if I had stood in that situation, I never would have exchanged it for all that kings in their pro- fusion could bestow. I did hope that that day's danger and honor would have been a bond to hold us all together for ever. But, alas ! that, with other pleasing visions, is long since vanished. Sir, this act of supreme magnanimity has been represented, as if it had been a measure of an administration, that, having no scheme of their own, took a middle line, pilfered a bit from one side and a bit from the other. Sir, they took no middle line. They differed fundamentally from the schemes of both parties ; but they preserved the objects of both. They pre- served the authority of Great Britain. They preserved the equity of Gi'eat Britain. They made the declaratory act ; they repealed the stamp act. They did both fully ; because the declaratory act was without qualification; and the repeal of the stamp-act total This they did in the situation I have described. Now, Sir, what will the adversary say to both these acts? If the principle of the declaratory act was not good, the prin- ciple we ai'e contending for this day is monstrous. If the prin- ciple of the repeal was not good, why are we not at war for a real, substantial, effective revenue? If both were bad, why has this ministry incurred all the inconveniences of both and of all schemes ? Why have they enacted, repealed, enforced, yielded, and now attempt to enforce again ? Sir, I think I may as well now, as at any other time, speak to a certain matter of fact, not wholly unrelated to the question under your consideration. We, who would persuade you to revert to the ancient pohcy of this kingdom, labor under the effect of this short current phrase, which the court leaders have given out to all their corps, in order to take away the credit of those who would prevent you from that frantic war you are going to wage upon your colonies. Their cant is this; "All 80 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH the disturbances in America have been created by the repeal of the stamp act." I suppress for a moment my indignation at the falsehood, baseness, and absurdity of this most audacious assertion. Instead of remarking on the motives and character of those who have issued it for circulation, I will clearly lay before you the state of America, antecedently to that repeal ; after the repeal ; and since the renewal of the schemes of American taxation. It is said, that the disturbances, if there were any, before the repeal, were slight; and without difficulty or inconvenience might have been suppressed. For an answer to this assertion I will send you to the great author and patron of the stamp act, who certainly meaning well to the authority of this coun- try, and fully apprized of the state of that, made, before a re}ieal was so much as agitated in this house, the motion which is on your journals ; and which, to save the clerk the trouble of turning to it, I will now read to you. It was for an amend- ment to the address of the 17th of December, 1765 : " To express our just resentment and indignation at the out- rageous tumults and insurrections which have been excited and carried on in North America; and at the resistance given by open and rebellious force, to the execution of the laws in that -part of his majesty's dominions. And to assure his majesty, that his faithful commons, animated with the warmest duty and attachment to his royal person and government, inll firmly and effectually support his majesty in all such measures as shall be necessary for pre- serving and supporting the legal dependence of the colonies on the mother country, &c. &c. Here was certainly a disturbance preceding the repeal ; such a disturbance as Mr. Grenville thought necessary to qualify by the name of an insurrection, and the epithet of a rebellious force: terms much stronger than any, by which, those who then supported this motion, have ever since thought proper to distinguish the subsequent disturbances in America. They were disturbances which seemed to him and his friends to jus- tify as strong a promise of support, as hath been usual to give in the beginning of a war with the most powerful and declared enemies. When the accounts of the An:erican governors came before the house, they appeared stronger even than the warmth of public imagination had painted them ; so much stronger, that the papers on your table bear me out in saying, that all the late disturbances, which have been at one time the minis- ter's motives for the repeal of five out of six of the new court taxes, and are now his pretences for refusing to repeal that sixth, did not amount — why do I compare them ? no, not to a ON AMERICAN TAXATION. 81 tenth part of the tumults and violence which prevailed long before the repeal of that act. Ministry cannot refuse the authority of the commander in chief, general Gage, who, in his letter of the 4th of November, from New York, thus represents the state of things: " It is difficult to say, from the highest to the lowest, icho has not been accessary to this insurrection, either by writing or mutual agreements to oppose the act, by what they are pleased to term all legal opposition to it. Nothing effectual has been proposed, either to prevent or quell the tumult. The rest of the provinces are in the same situation as to a positive refusal to take the stamps; and threatening those who shall take them, to plunder and murder them ; and this affair stands in all the provinces, that unless the act, from its own nature, enforce itself, nothing but a very considerable military force can do it." It is remarkable. Sir, that the persons who formerly trum- peted forth the most loudly, the violent resolutions of assem- blies ; the universal insurrections ; the seizing and burning the stamped papers ; the forcing the stamp officers to resign their commissions under the gallows ; the rifling and pulling down tlie houses of magistrates ; and the expulsion from their country of all who dared to write or speak a single word in defence of the powers of parliament ; these very trumpeters are now the men that represent the whole as a mere trifle ; and choose to date all the disturbances from the repeal of the stamp act, which put an end to them. Hear your officers abroad, and let them refute this shameless falsehood, who, in all their corre- spondence, state the disturbances as owing to their true causes, the discontent of the people, from tRe taxes. You have this evidence in your own archives — and it will give you complete satisfaction; if you are not so far lost to all parliamentary ideas of information, as rather to credit the lie of the day, than the records of your own house. Sir, this vermin of court reporters, when they are forced into day upon one point, are sure to burrow in another; but they shall have no refuge ; I will make them bolt out of all their holes. Conscious that they must be baffled, when they attribute a precedent disturbance to a subsequent measure, they take the other ground, almost as ^.bsurd, but very common in modern practice, and very wicked ; which is, to attribute the ill effect of ill-judged conduct to the arguments which had been used to dissuade us from it. They say, that the opposition made in parliament to the stamp act at the time of its passing, encour- aged the Americans to their resistance. This has even formally appeared in print in a regular volume, from an advocate of that faction, a Dr. Tucker. This Dr. Tucker is already a dean, I. 82 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH and his earnest labors in this vineyard will, I suppose, raise him to a bishopric. But this assertion too, just like the rest, is false. In all the papers which have loaded your table ; in all the vast crowd of verbal witnesses that appeared at your bar, witnesses which were indiscriminately produced from both sides of the house 1 Rot the least hint of such a cause of disturbance has appeared. As to the fact of a strenuous opposition to the stamp act, I sat as a stranger in your gallery when the act was under consideration. Far from anything inflammatory, I never heard a more languid debate in this house. No more than two or three gentlemen, as I remember, spoke against the act, and that with great reserve and remarkable temper. There was but one division in the whole progress of the bill ; and the- minority did not reach to more than 39 or 40. In the house of lords I do not recollect that there was any debate or division at all. I am sure there was no protest. In fact, the affair passed with so very, very little noise, that in town they scarcely knew the nature of what you were doing. The opposition to the bill in England never could have done this mischief, (because there scarcely ever was less of opposition to a bill of consequence. Sir, the agents and distributors of falsehoods have, with their usual industry, circulated another lie of the same nature with the former. It is this, that the disturbances arose from the account which had been received in America of the change in tlie ministry. No longer awed, it seems, with the spirit of the former rulers, they thought themselves a match for what our calumniators choose to qualify by the name of so feeble a min- istry as succeeded. Feeble in one sense these men certainly may be called ; for with all their efforts, and they have made many, they have not been able to resist the distempered vigor, and insane alacrity with which you are rushing to your ruin. But it does so happen, that the falsity of this circulation is (hke tlie rest) demonstrated by indisputable dates and records. So little was the change known in America, that the letters of your governors, giving an account of these disturbances long after they had arrived at their highest pitch, were all directed to the old ministry, and particularly to the earl of Hal- ifax, the secretary of state correspoiiding with the colonies, without once in the smallest degree intimating the slightest suspicion of any ministerial revolution whatsoever. The ministry was not changed in England until the 10th day of July, 1765. On the 14tli of the preceding June, governor Fauquier from Virginia writes thus ; and writes thus to the earl of Halifax : " Government is set at defiance, not having strength enough in her hands to enforce obedience to the laws of the community. The ON AMERICAN TAXATION. gg pritaie distress, loliich every man feels, increases the general dis- satisfaction at the duties laid by the stamp act, which breaks out^ and shows itself upon every trijling occasion." The general dis- satisfaction had produced, some time before, that is, on the 29th of May, several strong public resolves against tiie stamp act ; and those resolves are assigned by governor Bernard^, as the cause of the insmrections in Massachusetts Bay, in his letter of the 15tli of August, still addressed to the earl of Halifax ; and he continued to address such accounts to that minister quite to the 7th of September of the same year. Similar accounts, and of as late a date, were sent from other governors, and all directed to lord Halifax. Not one of these letters indicates the slightest idea of a change, either known, or even appre- hended. Thus are blown away the insect race of courtly falsehoods ! thus perish the miserable inventions of the wretched runners for a wretched cause, which they have fly-blown into every weak and rotten part of the country, in vain hopes that when their maggots had taken wing, their importunate buzzing might sound something like the public voice ! Sir, I have troubled you sufficiently with the state of Ame- rica before the repeal. Now I turn to the honorable gentleman who so stoutly challenges us, to tell, whether, after the repeal, the provinces were quiet ? This is coming home to the point. Hei'e I meet him directly ; and answer most readily, They icere quiet. And I, in my turn, challenge him to prove when, and where, and by whom, and in what numbers, and with what violence, the other laws of trade, as gentlemen assert, were violated in consequence of your concession ? or that even your other revenue laws were attacked? But I quit the vantage- ground on which I stand, and where I might leave the burthen of the proof upon him : I walk down upon the open plain, and undertake to show, that they were not only quiet, but showed many unequivocal marks of acknowledgment and gratitude. And to give him every advantage, I select the obnoxious colony of Massachusetts Bay, which at this time (but without hearing her) is so heavily a culprit before parliament — I will select their proceedings even under circumstances of no small irritation. For, a little imprudently, I must say, governor Bernard mixed in the administration of the lenitive of the repeal no small acrimony arising from matters of a separate nature. Yet see. Sir, the effect of that lenitive, though mixed with these bitter ingredients; and how this rugged people can express themselves on a measure of concession. " If it is not in our power," (say they in their address to governor Bernard) " in so full a manner as will be expected, to 84 MK- BURKE'S SPEECH silow our respectful gratitude to the mother country, or to make a dutiful and affectionate return to the indulgence of the king and parliament, it shall he no fault of ours; for this we intend, and hope ice shall be able fully to effect." Would to God that this temper had been cultivated, managed, and set in action ! other effects than those which we have since felt would have resulted from it. On the requisition for com- pensation to those who had suffered from the violence of the populace, in the same address they say, " The recommendation enjoined by Mr. Secretary Comvay^s letter, and in consequence thereof made to us, ive will embrace the first convenient opportunity to consider and actupon." They did consider; they did act upon it. They obeyed the requisition. I know the mode has been chicaned upon ; but it was substantially obeyed ; and much better obeyed, than I fear the parliamentary requisition of this session will be, though enforced by all your rigor, and backed with all your power. In a word, the damages of popular fury were compensated by legislative gravity. Almost every other part of America in various ways demonstrated their gratitude. I am bold to say, that so sudden a calm recovered after so violent a storm is without parallel in history. To say that no other disturbance should happen from any other cause, is folly. But as far as appearances went, by the judicious sacrifice of one law, you procured an acquiescence in all that remained. After this experience, nobody shall persuade me, when a whole people are concerned, that acts of lenity are not means of conciliation- I hope the honorable gentleman has received a fair and full answer to his question. I have done with the third period of your policy ; that of your repeal ; and the return of your ancient system, and your ancient tranquillity and concord. Sir, this period was not as long as it was happy. Another scene was opened, and other actors appeared on the stage. The state, in the condition I have described it, was delivered into the hands of Lord Chatham — a great and celebrated name ; a name that keeps the name of this country respectable in every other on the globe. It may be truly called, Clarum et venerabile nomen Gentibus, et multum nostrse quod proderat urbi. Sir, the venerable age of this great man, his merited rank, his superior eloquence, his splendid qualities, his eminent services, the vast space he fills in the eye of mankind ; and, more than all the rest, his fall from power, which, like death, canonizes and sanctifies a great character, will not suffer me to censure any part of his conduct. I am afraid to flatter him ; I am sure ON AMERICAN TAXATION. 85 I am not disposed to blame him. Let those who have betrayed him by their adulation, insult him with their malevolence. But what I do not presume to censure, I may have leave to lament. For a wise man, he seemed to me, at that time, to be governed too much by general maxims. I speak with the freedom of history, and I hope without offence. One or two of these maxims, flowing from an opinion not the most indulgent to our unhappy species, and surely a Httle too general, led him into measures that were greatly mischievous to himself; and for that reason, among others, perhaps fatal to his country ; measures, the effects of which, I am afraid, are for ever incura- ble. He made an administration, so checkered and speckled ; he put together a piece of joinery, so crossly indented and whimsically dove-tailed; a cabinet so variously inlaid; such a piece of diversified Mosaic ; such a tesselated pavement without cement ; here a bit of black stone, and there a bit of white ; patriots and courtiers, king's friends and republicans; whigs and tories ; treacherous friends and open enemies : that it was indeed a very curious show ; but utterly unsafe to touch, and unsure to stand on. The colleagues whom he had assorted at the same boards, stared at each other, and were obliged to ask, " Sir, your name? — Sir, you have the advantage of me — Mr. Such-a-one — I beg a thousand pardons — " I venture to say, it did so happen, that persons had a single office divided between them, who had never spoke to each other in their lives ; until they found themselves, they knew not how, pigging together, heads and points, in the same truckle-bed. Sir, in consequence of this arrangement, having put so much the larger part of his enemies and opposers into power, the confusion was such, that his own principles could not possibly have any effect or influence in the conduct of affairs. If ever he fell into a fit of the gout, or if any other cause withdrew him from public cares, principles directly the contrary were sure to predominate. When he had executed his plan, he had not an inch of ground to stand upon. When he had accom- plished his scheme of administration, he was no longer a minister. When his face was hid but for a moment, his whole system was on a wide sea, without chart or compass. The gentle- men, his particular friends, who, with the names of various departments of ministry, were admitted, to seem, as if they acted a part under him, with a modesty that becomes all men, and with a confidence in him, which was justified even in its extravagance by his superior abilities, had never, in any in- stance, presumed upon any opinion of their own. Deprived of his guiding influence, they were whirled about, the sport 8 86 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH of every gust, and easily driven into any port ; and as those who joined with them in manning the vessel were the most di- rectly opposite to his opinions, measures, and character, and far the most artful and most powerful of the set, they easily prevailed, so as to seize upon the vacant, unoccupied, and derelict minds of his friends ; and instantly they turned the vessel wholly out of the course of his policy. As if it were to insult as well as to betray him, even long before the close of the first session of his administration, when everything was publicly transacted, and with great parade, in his name, they made an act, declaring it highly just and expedient to raise a revenue in America. For even then, Sir, even before the splendid orb was entirely set, and while the western horizon was in a blaze with his descending glory, on the opposite quar- ter of the heavens arose another luminary, and, for his hour, became lord of the ascendant. This light too is passed and set for ever. You understand, to be sure, that I speak of Charles Townshend, officially the reproducer of this fatal scheme; whom I cannot even now remember without some degree of sensibility. In truth. Sir, he was the delight and ornament of this house, and the charm of every private society which he honored with his presence. Perhaps there never arose in this country, nor in any country, a man of a more pointed and finished wit: and (where his passions were not concerned) of a more refined, exquisite, and penetrating judgment. If he had not so great a stock, as some have had who flourished formerly, of knowledge long trea- sured up, he knew better by far, than any man I ever was ac- quainted with, how to bring together, within a short time, all that was necessary to establish, to illustrate, and to decorate that side of the question he supported. He stated his matter skilfully and powerfully. He particularly excelled in a most luminous explanation, and display of his subject. His style of argument was neither trite and vulgar, nor subtle and ab- struse. He hit the house just between wind and water. And not being troubled whh too anxious a zeal for any matter in question, he was never more tedious, or more earnest, than the preconceived opinions and present temper of his hearers required ; to whom he was always in perfect unison. He con- formed exactly to the temper of the house ; and he seemed to guide, because he was always sure to follow it. I beg pardon. Sir, if, when I speak of this and of other great men, I appear to digress in saying something of their characters. In this eventful history of the revolutions of America, the characters of such men are of much importance^ Great men are the guide-posts and land-marks in the state. ON AMERICAN TAXATION. 87 The credit of such men at court, or in the nation, is the sole cause of all the public measures. It would be an invidious thing (most foreign, I trust, to what you think my disposition) to remark the errors into which the authority of great names has brought the nation, without doing justice at the same time to the great qualities, whence that authority arose. The sub- ject is instructive to those who wish to form themselves on whatever of excellence has gone before them. There are many young members in the house (such of late has been the rapid succession of public men) who never saw that prodigy, Charles Townshend ; nor of course know what a ferment he was able to excite in everything by the violent ebullition of his mixed virtues and failings. For failings he had, undoubt- edly — many of us remember them; we are this day consider- ing the eftect of them. But he had no failings which were not owing to a noble cause ; to an ardent, generous, perhaps an immoderate passion for fame ; a passion which is the in- stinct of all great souls. He worshipped that goddess where- soever she appeared ; but he paid his particular devotions to her in her favorite habitation, in her chosen temple, the house of commons. Besides the characters of the individuals that compose our body, it is impossible, Mr. Speaker, not to ob- serve, that this house has a collective character of its own. That character too, however imperfect, is not unamiable. Like all great public collections of men, you possess a marked love of virtue, and an abhorrence of vice. But among vices, there is none, which the house abhors in the same degree with obstinacy. Obstinacy, Sir, is certainly a great vice ; and in the changeful state of political affairs, it is frequently the cause of great mischief. It happens, however, very unfortunately, that almost the whole line of the great and masculine virtues, constancy, gravity, magnanimity, fortitude, fidelity, and firm- ness, are closely allied to this disagreeable quality, of which you have so just an abhorrence; and in their excess, all these virtues very easily fall into it. He, who paid such a punc- tilious attention to all your feelings, certainly took care not to shock them by that vice which is the most disgustful to you. That fear of displeasing those who ought most to be pleased, betrayed him sometimes into the other extreme. He had voted, and in the year 1765, had been an advocate for the stamp act. Things and the disposition of men's minds were changed. In short, the stamp act began to be no favorite in this house. He therefore attended at the private meeting, in which the resolu- tions moved by a right honorable gentleman were settled ; resolutions leading to the repeal. The next day he voted for that repeal ; and he would have spoken for it too, if an illness, 88 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH (not as was then given out, a political) but to my knowledge, a very real illness, had not prevented it. The very next session, as the fashion of this world passeth away, the repeal began to be in as bad an odor in this house as the stamp act had been in the session before. To conform to the temper which began to prevail, and to prevail mostly amongst those most in power, he declared, very early in the winter, that a revenue must be had out of America. Instantly he was tied down to his engagements by some, who had no objection to such experiments, when made at the cost of persons for whom they had no particular regard. The whole body of courtiers drove him onward. They always talked as if the king stood in a sort of humiliated state, until something of the kind should be done. Here this extraordinary man, then chancellor of the exche- quer, found himself in great straits. To please universally was the object of his life ; but to tax and to please, no more than to love and to be wise, is not given to men. However he attempt- ed it. To render the tax palatable to the partisans of American revenue, he made a preamble stating the necessity of such a revenue. To close with the American distinction, this revenue was external or port-duty ; but again, to soften it to the other party, it was a duty of supply. To gratify the colonists, it was laid on British manufactures ; to satisfy the merchants of Bri- tain, the duty was trivial, and (except that on tea, which touched only the devoted East India company) on none of the grand objects of commerce. To counterwork the American contraband, the duty on tea was reduced from a shilling to three-pence. But to secure the favor of those who would tax America, the scene of collection was changed, and, with the rest, it was levied in the colonies. What need I say more? This finespun scheme had the usual fate of all exquisite policy. But the original plan of the duties, and the mode of executing that plan, both arose singly and solely from a love of our applause. He was truly the child of the house. He never thought, did, or said anything, but with a view to you. He every day adapted himself to your disposition; and adjusted himself before it as at a looking-glass. He had observed (indeed it could not escape him) that seve- ral persons, infinitely his inferiors in all respects, had formerly rendered themselves considerable in this house by one method alone. They were a race of men (I hope in God the species is extinct), who, when they rose in their place, no man living could divine, from any known adherence to parties, to opinions, or to principles ; from any order or system in their politics ; or from any sequel or connexion in their ideas, what part they ON AMERICAN TAXATION. 89 were going to take in any debate. It is astonishing how much this uncertainty, especially at critical times, called the attention of all parties on such men. All eyes were fixed on them, all ears open to hear them ; each party gaped, and looked alter- nately for their vote, almost to the end of their speeches. While the house hung in this uncertainty, now the hear-hims rose from this side — now they rebellowed from the other ; and that party to whom they fell at length from their tremulous and dancing balance, always received them in a tempest of applause. The fortune of such men was a temptation too great to be resisted by one, to whom, a single whiff of incense withheld gave much greater pain, than he received delight, in the clouds of it, which daily rose about him from the prodigal superstition of innumerable admirers. He was a candidate for contradic- tory honors ; and his great aim was to make those agree in admiration of him who never agreed in anything else. Hence arose this unfortunate act, the subject of this day's debate ; from a disposition which, after making an American revenue to please one, repealed it to please others, and again revived it in hopes of pleasing a third, and of catching some- thing in the ideas of all. This revenue act of 1767, formed the fourth period of Ameri- can policy. How we have fared since then — what woful variety of schemes have been adopted ; what enforcing, and what repealing ; what bullying, and what submitting ; what doing, and undoing; what straining, and what relaxing; what assemblies dissolved for not obeying, and called again without obedience ; what troops sent out to quell resistance, and on meeting that resistance, recalled ; what shiftings, and changes, and jumblings of all kinds of men at home, which left no possi- bility of order, consistency, vigor, or even so much as a decent unity of color in any one public measure ! — It is a tedious, irk- some task. My duty may call me to open it out some other time ; on a former occasion I tried your temper on a part of it ; for the present I shall forbear. After all these changes and agitations, your immediate situa- tion upon the question on your paper is at length brought to this. You have an act of parliament, stating, that, " it is expedient to raise a revenue in America." By a partial repeal you annihilated the greatest part of that revenue, which this preamble declares to be so expedient. You have substituted no other in the place of it. A secretary of state has disclaimed, in the king's name, all thoughts of such a substitution in future. The principle of this disclaimer goes to what has been left, as well as what has been repealed. The tax which lingers after its companions, (under a preamble declaring an American M 90 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH revenue expedient, and for the sole purpose of supporting the theory of that preamble) militates with the assurance authenti- cally conveyed to the colonies ; and is an exhaustless source of jealousy and animosity. On this state, which I take to be a fair one; not being able to discern any grounds of honor, advantage, peace, or power, for adhering either to the act or to the preamble, I shall vote for the question which leads to the repeal of both. If you do not fall in with this motion, then secure something to fight for, consistent in theory and valuable in practice. If you must employ your strength, employ it to uphold you in some honorable right, or some profitable wrong. If you are apprehensive that the concession recommended to you, though proper, should be a means of drawing on you further but unreasonable claims, — why then employ your force in support- ing that reasonable concession against those unreasonable demands. You will employ it with more grace ; with better efiect; and with great probable concurrence of all the quiet and rational people in the provinces ; who are now united with, and hurried away by, the violent; having indeed diflerent dis- positions, but a common interest. If you apprehend that on a concession you shall be pushed by metaphysical process to the extreme lines, and argued out of your whole authority, my advice is this; when you have recovered your old, your strong, your tenable position, then face about — stop short — do nothing more — reason not at all — oppose the ancient policy and prac- tice of the empire, as a rampart against the speculations of innovators on both sides of the question; and you will stand on great, manly, and sure ground. On this solid basis fix your machines, and they will draw worlds towards you. Your ministers, in their own and his majesty's name, have already adopted the American distinction of internal and external duties. It is a distinction, whatever merit it may have, that was originally moved by the Americans themselves; and I think they will acquiesce in it, if they are not pushed with too much logic, and too little sense, in all the consequences. That is, if external taxation be understood, as they and you understand it, when you please, to be not a distinction of geography, but of policy ; that is, a power for regulating trade, and not for sup- porting establishments. The distinction, which is as nothing with regard to right, is of most weighty consideration in practice. Recover your old ground, and your old tranquillity — try it — I am persuaded the Americans will compromise with you. When confidence is once restored, the odious and suspicious summum jus will perish, of course. The spirit of practicability, of moderation, and mutual convenience, will never call in geomet ON AMERICAN TAXATION 91 rical exactness as the arbitrator of an amicable settlement. Consult and follow your experience. Let not the long story with which I have exercised your patience, prove fruitless to your interests. For my part, I should choose (if I could have my wish) that the proposition of the honorable gentleman for the repeal, could go to America without the attendance of the penal bills. Alone I could almost answer for its success. I cannot be certain of its reception in the bad company it may keep. In such hetero- geneous assortments, the most innocent person will lose the effect of his innocency. Though you should send out this angel of peace, yet you are sending out a destroying angel too ; and what would be the effect of the conflict of these two adverse spirits, or which would predominate in the end, is what I dare not say : whether the lenient measures would cause American passion to subside, or the severe would increase its fury — All this is in the hand of Providence ; yet now, even now, I should confide in the prevailing virtue, and efficacious operation of lenity, though working in darkness and in chaos, in the midst of all this unnatural and turbid combination. I should hope it might produce order and beauty in the end. Let us. Sir, embrace some system or other, before we end this session. Do you mean to tax America, and to draw a productive revenue from thence? If you do, speak out: name, fix, ascertain this revenue ; settle its quantity ; define its objects ; provide for its collection ; and then fight when you have some- thing to fight for. If you murder — rob; if you kill, take posses- sion: and do not appear in the character of madmen, as well as assassins, violent, vindictive, bloody, and tyrannical, without an object. But may better counsels guide you ! Again, and again, revert to your old principles — seek peace and ensue it — leave America, if she has taxable matter in her, to tax herself I am not here going into the distinctions of rights, nor attempting to mark their boundaries. I do not enter into these metaphysical distinctions ; I hate the very sound of them- Leave the Americans as they anciently stood, and these distinc- tions, born of our unhappy contest, will die along with it. They and we, and their and our ancestors, have been happy under that system. Let the memory of all actions in contra- diction to that good old mode, on both sides, be extinguished for ever. Be content to bind America by laws of trade ; you have always done it. Let this be your reason for binding their trade. Do not burthen them by taxes ; you were not used to do so from the beginning. Let this be your reason for not taxing. These are the arguments of states and kingdoms. Leave the rest to the schools ; for there only they may be dis 92 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH cussed with safety. But if, intemperately, unwisely, fatally, you sophisticate and poison the very source of government, by urging subtle deductions, and consequences odious to those you govern, from the unlimited and illimitable nature of supreme sovereignty, you will teach them by these means to call that sovereignty itself in question. When you drive him hard, the boar will surely turn upon the hunters. If that sovereignty and their freedom cannot be reconciled, which will they take ? They will cast your sovereignty in your face. Nobody will be argued into slavery. Sir, let the gentlemen on the other side call forth all their ability; let the best of them get up, and tell me, what one character of liberty the Americans have, and what one brand of slavery they are free from, if they are bound, in their property and industry, by all the restraints you can imagine on commerce, and at the same time are made packhorses of every tax you choose to impose, without the least share in granting them. When they bear the burthens of unlimited monopoly, will you bring them to bear the burthens of unlimited revenue too 1 The Englishman in America will feel that this is slavery — that it is legal slavery, will be no compensation, either to his feelings or his understanding. A noble lord, who spoke some time ago, is full of the fire of ingenuous youth; and when he has modelled the ideas. of a lively imagination by further experience, he will be an ornament to his country in either house. He has said, that the Americans are our children, and how can they revolt against their parent? He says, that if they are not free in their present state, England is not free ; because Mancheste/, and other considerable places, are not represented. So then, because some towns in England are not represented, America is to have no representative at all. They are " our children ;" but when children ask for bread, we are not to give a stone. Is it because the natural resistance of things, and the various mutations of time, hinder our government, or any scheme of government, from being any more than a sort of approximation to the right, is it therefore that the colonies are to recede from it infinitely ? When this child of ours wishes to assimilate to its parent, and to reflect with a true filial resemblance the beauteous countenance of British liberty ; are we to turn to them the shameful parts of our constitution? are we to give them our weakness for their strength ? our opprobrium for their glory ; and the slough of slavery, which we are not able to work off, to serve them for their freedom ? If this be the case, ask yourselves this question. Will they be content in such a state of slavery? if not, look to the conse- quences. Reflect how you are to govern a people, who think ON AMERICAN TAXATION. 93 they ought to be free, and think they are not. Your scheme yields no revenue ; it yields nothing but discontent, disorder, disobedience ; and such is the state of America, that after wading up to your eyes in blood, you could only end just where you begun ; that is, to tax where no revenue is to be found, to — my voice fails me ; my inclination indeed carries me no further — all is confusion beyond it. Well, Sir, I have recovered a little, and before I sit down I must say something to another point with which gentlemen urge us. What is to become of the declaratory act asserting the entireness of British legislative authority, if we abandon the practice of taxation ? For my part, I look upon the rights stated in that act, exactly in the manner in which I viewed them on its very first proposi- tion, and which I have often taken the liberty, with great humility, to lay before you. I look, I say, on the imperial rights of Great Britain, and the privileges which the colonists ought to enjoy under these rights, to be just the most reconcilable things in the world. The parliament of Great Britain sits at the head of her extensive empire in two capacities : one as the local legislature of this island, providing for all things at home, immediately, and by no other instrument than the executive power. — The other, and I think her nobler capacity, is what I call her impe- rial character ; in which, as from the throne of heaven, she superintends all the several inferior legislatures, and guides and controls them all without annihilating any. As all these provincial legislatures are only co-ordinate to each other, they ought all to be subordinate to her ; else they can neither preserve mutual peace, nor hope for mutual justice, nor eflectually afford mutual assistance. It is necessary to coerce the negligent, to restrain the violent, and to aid the weak and deficient, by the overruling plenitude of her power. She is never to intrude into the place of the others, whilst they are equal to the com- mon ends of their institution. But in order to enable parliament to answer all these ends of provident and beneficent superin- tendence, her powers must be boundless. The gentlemen who think the powers of parliament limited, may please themselves to talk of requisitions. But suppose the requisitions are not obeyed ? What ! Shall there be no reserved power in the empire, to supply a deficiency which may weaken, divide, and dissipate the whole ? We are engaged in war — the secretary of state calls upon the colonies to contribute — some would do it, I think most would cheerfully furnish whatever is demanded — one or two, suppose, hang back, and, easing themselves, let the stress of the draft lie on the others — surely it is proper, that some authority might legally say — " Tax yourselves for the common 94 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH supply, or parliament will do it for you." This backwardness was, as I am told, actually the case of Pennsylvania for some short time towards the beginning of the last war, owing to some internal dissensions in the colony. But, whether the fact were so, or otherwise, the case is equally to be provided for by a competent sovereign power. But then this ought to be no ordinary power ; nor ever used in the first instance. This is what I meant, when I have said at various times, that I consider the power of taxing in parliament as an instrument of empire, and not as a means of supply. Such, Sir, is my idea of the constitution of the British, em- pire, as distinguished from the constitution of Britain; and on these grounds I think subordination and liberty may be suffi- ciently reconciled through the whole; whether to serve a re- fining speculatist, or a factious demagogue, I know not ; but enough surely for the ease and happiness of man. Sir, whilst we held this happy course, we drew more from tlie colonies than all the impotent violence of despotism ever could extort from them. We did this abundantly in the last war. It has never been once denied — and what reason have w'e to imagine that the colonies would not have proceeded in supplying government as liberally, if you had not stepped in and hindered them from contributing, by interrupting the channel in which their liberality flowed with so strong a course; by attempting to take, instead of being satisfied to receive ? Sir William Temple says, that Holland has loaded itself with ten times the impositions which it revolted from Spain, rather than submit to. He says true. Tyranny is a poor provider. It knows neither how to accumulate, nor how to extract. I charge therefore to this new and unfortunate system the loss not only of peace, of union, and of commerce, but even of revenue, which its friends are contending for. — It is morally certain, that we have lost at least a million of free grants since the peace. I think we have lost a great deal more; and that those wdio look for a revenue from the provinces, never could have pursued, even in that light, a course more directly re- pugnant to their purposes. Now, Sir, I trust I have shown, first on that narrow ground which the honorable gentleman measured, that you are like to lose nothing by complying with the motion, except what you have lost already. I have shown afterwards, that in time of peace you flourished in commerce, and when war required it, had sufficient aid from the colonies, while you pursued your ancient policy ; that you threw everything into confusion when you made the stamp-act ; and that you restored everything to ON AMERICAN TAXATION. 95 peace and order when you repealed it. I have shown that the revival of the system of taxation has produced the very worst effects ; and that the partial repeal has produced, not partial good, but universal evil. Let these considerations, founded on facts, not one of which can be denied, bring us back to our reason by the road of our experience. I cannot, as I have said, answer for mixed measures : but surely this mixture of lenity would give the whole a better chance of success. When you once regain confidence, the way will be clear before you. Then you may enforce the act of navigation when it ought to be enforced. You will yourselves open it where it ought still further to be opened. Proceed in what you do, whatever you do, from policy, and not from rancor. Let us act like men, let us act like states- 'men. Let us hold some sort of consistent conduct. It is agreed that a revenue is not to be had in America. If we lose the profit, let us get rid of the odium. On this business of America, I confess I am serious, even to sadness. I have had but one opinion concerning it since I sat, and before I sat in parliament. The noble lord will, as usual, probably, attribute the part taken by me and my friends in this business, to a desire of getting his places. Let him enjoy this happy and original idea. If I deprived him of it, I should take away most of his wit, and all his argument. But I had rather bear the brunt of all his wit, and indeed blows much heavier, than stand answerable to God for em- bracing a system that tends to the destruction of some of the very best and fairest of his works. But I know the map of England, as well as the noble lord, or as any other person ; and I know that the way I take is not the road to preferment. My excellent and honorable friend under me on the floor, has trod that road with great toil for upwards of twenty years together. He is not yet arrived at the noble lord's destina- tion. However, the tracks of my worthy friend are those I have ever wished to follow ; because I know they lead to honor. Long may we tread the same road together ; who- ever may accompany us, or M^hoever may laugh at us on our journey! I honestly and solemnly declare, I have in all seasons adhered to the system of 1766, for no other reason, than that I think it laid deep in your truest interests — and that, by limiting the exercise, it fixes on the firmest founda- tions, a real, consistent, well-grounded authority in parliament. Until you come back to that system, there will be no peace for Encfland. MR. BURKE'S SPEECH, TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. Mr. Mayor, and Gentlemen, 1 AM extremely pleased at the appearance of this large and respectable meeting. The steps I may be obliged to take will want the sanction of a considerable authority ; and in explaining anything which may appear doubtful in my public conduct, I must naturally desire a very full audience. I have been backward to begin my canvass. — The dissolu- tion of the parliament was uncertain ; and it did not become me, by an unseasonable importunity, to appear diffident of the fact of my six years' endeavors to please you. I had served the city of Bristol honorably ; and the city of Bristol had no reason to think, that the means of honorable service to the public, were become indifferent to me. I found, on my arrival here, that three gentlemen had been long in eager pursuit of an object which but two of us can obtain. I found, that they had all met with encouragement. A contested election in such a city as this, is no light thing. I paused on the brink of the precipice. These three gentlemen, by various merits, and on various titles, I made no doubt, were worthy of your favor. I shall never attempt to raise myself by depreciating the merits of my competitors. In the com- plexity and confusion of these cross pursuits, I wished to take the authentic public sense of my friends upon a business of so much delicacy. I wished to take your opinion along with me ; that if I should give up the contest at the very beginning, my surrender of my post may not seem the effect of inconstancy, or timidity, or anger, or disgust, or indolence, or any other temper unbecoming a man who has engaged in the public ser- vice. If, on the contrary, I should undertake the election, and fail of success, I was full as anxious that it should be manifest to the whole world, that the peace of the city had not been broken by my rashness, presumption, or fond conceit of my own merit. I am not come, by a false and counterfeit show of deference to your judgment, to seduce it in my favor. I ask it seriously and unaffectedly. If you wish that I should retire, I shall not MR. BURKE'S SPEECH TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 97 consider that advice as a censure upon nay conduct, or an alteration in your sentiments ; but as a rational subnnission to the circumstances of affairs. If, on the contrary you should think it proper for me to proceed on my canvass, if you will risk the trouble on your part, I will risk it on mine. My pre- tensions are such as you cannot be ashamed of, whether they succeed or fail. If you call upon me, I shall solicit the favor of the city upon manly ground. I come before you with the plain confidence of an honest servant in the equity of a candid and discerning master. I come to claim your approbation, not to amuse you with vain apologies, or with professions still more vain and senseless. I have lived too long to be served by apologies, or to stand in need of them. The part I have acted has been in open day; and to hold out to a conduct, which stands in that clear and steady light for all its good and all its evil, to hold out to that conduct the paltry winking tapers of excuses and prom- ises — I never will do it. They may obscure it with their smoke ; but they never can illumine sunshine by such a flame as theirs. I am sensible that no endeavors have been left untried to injure me in your opinion. But the use of character is to be a shield against calumny. I could wish, undoubtedly (if idle wishes were not the most idle of all things) to make every part of my conduct agreeable to every one of my constituents. But in so great a city, and so greatly divided as this, it is weak to expect it. In such a discordancy of sentiments, it is better to look to the nature of things than to the humors of men. The very attempt towards pleasing everybody, discovers a temper always flashy, and often false and insincere. Therefore, as I have proceeded straight onward in my conduct, so I will pro- ceed in my account of those parts of it which have been most excepted to. But I must first beg leave just to hint to you, that we may suffer very great detriment by being open to every talker. It is not to be imagined how much of service is lost from spirits full of activity, and full of energy, who are press- ing, who are rushing forward, to great and capital objects, when you oblige them to be continually looking back. Whilst liiey are defending one service, they defraud you of a hundred. Applaud us when we run ; console us when we fall ; cheer us when we recover; but let us pass on — for God's sake let us pass on. Do you think, gentlemen, that every public act in the six years since I stood in this place before you — that all the arduous things which have been done in this eventful period, which has N 9 98 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH crowded into a few years' space the revolutions of an age, can be opened to you on their fair grounds in half an hour's con- versation ? But it is no reason, because there is a bad mode of inquiry, that there should be no examination at all. Most certainly it is our duty to examine ; it is our interest too. — But it must be with discretion ; with an attention to all the circumstances, and to all the motives; like sound judges, and not like cavilling pettifoggers and quibbhng pleaders, prying into flaws and hunting for exceptions. Look, gentlemen, to the lohole tenor of your member's conduct. Try whether his ambition or his avarice has justled him out of the straight line of duty ; or whether that grand foe of the offices of active life, that master- vice in men of business, a degenerate and inglorious sloth, has made him flag, and languish in his course. This is the object of our inquiry. If our member's conduct can bear this touch, mark it for sterling. He may have fallen into en'ors ; he must have faults ; but our error is greater, and our fault is radically ruinous to ourselves, if we do not bear, if we do not even applaud, the whole compound and mixed mass of such a char- acter. Not to act thus is folly ; I had almost said it is impiety. He censures God, who quarrels with the imperfections of man. Gentlemen, we must not be peevish with those who serve the people. For none will serve us whilst there is a court to serve, but those who are of a nice and jealous honor. They who think everything, in comparison of that honor, to be dust and ashes, will not bear to have it soiled and impaired by those for whose sake they make a thousand sacrifices to preserve it immaculate and whole. We shall either drive such men from the public stage, or we shall send them to the court for pro- tection : where, if they must sacrifice their reputation, they will at least secure their interest. Depend upon it, that the lovers of freedom will be free. None will violate their con- science to please us, in order afterwards to discharge that conscience, which they have violated, by doing us faithful and affectionate service. If we degrade and deprave their minds by servility, it will be absurd to expect, that they who are creeping and abject towards us, will ever be bold and incor- ruptible asserters of our freedom, against the most seducing and the most formidable of all powers. No. Human nature is not so formed : nor shall we improve the faculties or better the morals of pubHc men, by our possession of the most infal- lible receipt in the world for making cheats and hypocrites. Let me say with plainness, I who am no longer in a public character, that if by a fair, by an indulgent, by a gentlemanly behavior to our representatives, we do not give confidence TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 99 to their minds, and a liberal scope to their understandings ; if we do not permit our members to act upon a very enlarged view of things, we shall at length infallibly degrade our na- tional representation into a confused and scuffling bustle of local agency. When the popular member is narrowed in his ideas, and rendered timid in his proceedings, the service of the crown will be the sole nursery of statesmen. Among the frolics of the court, it may at length take that of attending to its business. Then the monopoly of mental power will be added to the power of all other kinds it possesses. On the side of the people there will be nothing but impotence : for ignorance is impotence; narrowness of mind is impotence; timidity is itself impotence, and makes all other qualities that go along with it, impotent and useless. At present, it is the plan of the co'u.rt to make its servants insignificant. If the people should fall into the same humor, and should choose their servants on the same principles of mere obsequiousness, and flexibility, and total vacancy or in- difference of opinion in all public matters, then no part of the state will be sound ; and it will be in vain to think of saving of it. I thought it very expedient at this time to give you this can- did counsel ; and with this counsel I would willingly close, if the matters which at various times have been objected to me in this city concerned only myself, and my own election. These charges, I think, are four in number — my neglect of a due attention to my constituents — the not paying more fre- quent visits here — my conduct on the affairs of the first Irish trade acts — my opinion and mode of proceeding on lord Beau- champ's debtor's bills — and my votes on the late affairs of the Roman Catholics. All of these (except pei'haps the first) re- late to matters of very considerable public concern ; and it is not lest 5'^ou should censure me improperly, but lest you should form improper opinions on matters of some moment to you, that I trouble you at all upon the subject. My conduct is of small importance. With regard to the first charge, my friends have spoken to me of it in the style of amicable expostulation ; not so much blaming the thing, as lamenting the effects. Others, less par- tial to me, were less kind in assigning the motives. I admit, there is a decorum and propriety in a member of parliament's paying a respectful court to his constituents. If I were con- scious to myself that pleasure or dissipation, or low unworthy occupations, had detained me from personal attendance on you, I would readily admit my fault, and quietly submit to the penalty. But, gentlemen, I live a hundred miles' distance from 100 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH Bristol ; and at the end of a session I come to my own house, fatigued in body and in mind, to a Httle repose, and to a very little attention to my family and my private concerns. A visit to Bristol is always a sort of canvass ; else it will do more harm than good. To pass from the toils of a session to the toils of a canvass, is the furthest thing in the world from re- pose. I could hardly serve you as I have done, and court you too. Most of you have heard, that I do not very remarkably spare myself in public business ; and in the jrrimie business of my constituents I have done very near as much as those who have nothing else to do. My canvass of you was not on the change, nor in the county meetings, nor in the clubs of this city. It was in the house of commons; it was at the custom- house ; it was at the council ; it was at the treasury ; it was at the admiralty. I canvassed you through your affairs, and not your persons. I was not only your representative as a body ; I was the agent, the solicitor of individuals. I ran about wherever your affairs could call me; and in acting for you, I often appeared rather as a ship-broker, than as a mem- ber of parliament. There was nothing too laborious, or too low, for me to undertake. The meanness of the business was raised by the dignity of the object. If some lesser matters have slipped through my fingers, it was because I filled my hands too full ; and, in my eagerness to serve you, took in more than my hands could grasp. Several gentlemen stand round me who are my willing witnesses ; and there are others who, if they were here, would be still better; because they would be unwilling witnesses to the same truth. It was in the middle of a summer residence in London, and in the middle of a negotiation at the admiralty for your trade, that I was called to Bristol; and this late visit, at this late day, has been possibly in prejudice to your affairs. Since I have touched upon this matter, let me say, gentle- men, that if I had a disposition, or a right to complain, I have some cause of complaint on my side. With a petition of this city in my hand, jiassed through the corporation without a dissenting voice, a petition in unison with almost the whole voice of the kingdom (with whose formal thanks I was cov- ered ov^er) while I labored on no less than five bills for a pub- lic reform, and fought against the opposition of great abilities, and of the greatest power, every clause and every word of the largest of those bills, almost to the very last day of a very long session ; all this time a canvass in Bristol was as calmly carried on as if I were dead. I was considered as a man wholly out of the question. Whilst I watched, and fasted, and sweated in the house of commons — by the most easy and or- TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 101 dinary arts of election, by dinners and visits, by " How do you dos," and "My worthy friends," I was to be quietly moved out of my seat — and promises were made, and engage- ments entered into, without any exception or reserve, as if my laborious zeal in my duty had been a regular abdication of my trust. To open my whole heart to you on this subject, I do con- fess, however, that there were other times besides the two years in which I did visit you, when I was not wholly without leisure for repeating that mark of my respect. But I could not bring my mind to see you. You remember, that in the beginning of this American war (that era of calamity, dis- grace, and downfall, an era which no feeling mind will ever mention without a tear for England) you were greatly divided ; and a very strong body, if not the strongest, opposed itself to the madness which every art and every power were employed to render popular, in order that the errors of the rulers might be lost in the general blindness of the nation. This opposition continued until after our great, but most unfortunate victory at Long Island. Then all the mound and banks of our con- stancy were borne down at once ; and the frenzy of the Ame- rican war broke in upon us like a deluge. This victory, which seemed to put an immediate end to all difficulties, perfected us in that spirit of domination, which our unparalleled prosperity had but too long nurtured. We had been so very powerful, and so very prosperous, that even the humblest of us were degraded into the vices and follies of kings. We lost all mea- sure between means and ends ; and our headlong desires be- came our politics and our morals. All men who wished for peace, or retained any sentiments of moderation, were over- borne or silenced; and this city was led by every artifice (and probably with the more management, because I was one of your members) to distinguish itself by its zeal for that fatal cause. In this temper of yours and of my mind, I should have sooner fled to the extremities of the earth, than have shown myself here. I, who saw in every American victory (for you have had a long scries of these misfortunes) the germ and seed of the naval power of France and Spain, which all our heat and warmth against America was only hatching into life. I should not have been a welcome visitant with the brow and the language of such feelings. When, afterwards, the other face of your calamity was turned upon you, and showed itself in defeat and distress, I shunned }ou full as much. I felt sorely this variety in our wi-etchedness ; and I did not wish to have the least appearance of insulting you with that show of superiority, which, though it may not be assumed, is gene- 9* 102 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH rally suspected in a time of calamity, from those whose pre- vious ■warnings have been despised. I could not bear to show you a representative whose face did not reflect that of his constituents ; a face that could not joy in your joys, and sor- row in your sorrows. But time at length has made us all of one opinion ; and we have all opened our eyes on the true na- ture of the American war, to the true nature of all its suc- cesses and all its failures. In that public storm too I had my private feelings. I haa seen blown down and prostrate on the ground several of those houses to whom I was chiefly indebted for the honor this city has done me. I confess that whilst the wounds of those loved were yet green, I could not bear to show myself in pride and triumph in that place into which their partiality had brought me, and to appear at feasts 'and rejoicings, in the midst of the grief and calamity of my warm friends, my zealous supporters, my generous benefactors. This is a true, unvarnished, undis- guised state of the affair. You will judge of it. This is the only one of the charges in which I am personally concerned. As to the other matters objected against me, which in their turn I shall mention to you, remember once more I do not mean to extenuate or excuse. Why should I, when the things charged are among those upon which I found all my reputation 1 What would be left to me, if I myself was the man, who softened, and blended, and diluted, and weakened, all the distinguishing colors of my life, so as to leave nothing distinct and determinate in my whole conduct? It has been said, and it is the second charge, that in the questions of the Irish trade, I did not consult the interest of my constituents, or, to speak out strongly, that I rather acted as a native of Ireland, than as an English member of parliament. I certainly have very w^arm good wishes for the place of my birth. But the sphere of my duties is my true country. It was, as a man attached to your interests, and zealous for the conservation of your power and dignity, that I acted on that occasion, and on all occasions. You were involved in the American war. A new world of policy was opened, to which it was necessary we should conform, whether we would or not; and my only thought was how to conform to our situation in such a manner as to unite to this kingdom, in prosperity and in affection, whatever remained of the empire. I was true to my old, standing, invariable principle, that all things which came fromx Great Britain, should issue as a gift of her bounty and beneficence, rather than as claims recovered against a struggling litigant ; or at least, that if your beneficence obtained no credit in your concessions, yet that they should appear the TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 103 salutary provisions of your wisdom and foresight; not as things wrung from you with your blood, by the cruel gripe of a rigid necessity. The first concessions, by being (much against my will) mangled and stripped of the parts which were necessary to make out their just correspondence and connexion in trade, were of no use. The next year a feeble attempt was made to bring the thing into better shape. This attempt (countenanced by the minister) on the very first appearance of some popular uneasiness, was, after a considerable progress through the house, thrown out by Jdm. What was the consequence ? The whole kingdom of Ireland was instantly in a flame. Threatened by foreigners, and, as they thought, insulted by England, they resolved at once to resist the power of France, and to cast ofi' yours. As for us, we were able neither to protect nor to restrain them. Forty thousand men were raised and disciplined without commission from the crown. Two illegal armies were seen with banners displayed at the same time, and in the same country. No executive magistrate, no judicature, in Ireland, would acknow- ledge the legality of the army which bore the king's commis- sion ; and no law, or appearance of law, authorized the army commissioned by itself. In this unexampled state of things, which the least error, the least trespass on the right or left, would have hurried down the precipice into an abyss of blood and confusion, the people of Ireland demand a freedom of trade with arms in their hands. They interdict all commerce be- tween the two nations. They deny all new supply in the house of commons, although in time of war. They stint the trust of the old revenue, given for two years to all the king's predeces- sors, to six months. The British parliament, in a former session frightened into a limited concession by the menaces of Ireland, frightened out of it by the menaces of England, was now frightened back again, and made a universal surrender of all that had been thought the peculiar, reserved, uncommuni- cable rights of England; — the exclusive commerce of America, of Africa, of the West Indies — all the enumerations of the acts of navigation — all the manufactures, — iron, glass, even the last pledge of jealousy and pride, the interest hid in the secret of our hearts, the inveterate prejudice moulded into the constitu- tion of our frame, even the secret fleece itself, all went together. No reserve ; no exception ; no debate ; no discussion. A sudden light broke in upon us all. It broke in, not through well contrived and well disposed windows, but through flaws and breaches ; through the yawning chasms of our ruin. We were taught wisdom by humiliation. No town in England presumed to have a prejudice, or dared to mutter a petition. What was 104 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH worse, the whole parliament of England, which retained -authority for nothing but surrenders, was despoiled of every shadow of its superintendence. It was, without any qualifica- tion, denied in theory, as it had been trampled upon in practice. This scene of shame and disgrace has, in a manner whilst I am speaking, ended by the perpetual establishment of a military power, in the dominions of this crown, without consent of the British legislature, contrary to the policy of the constitution, contrary to the declaration of right : and by this your liberties are swept away along with your supreme authority — and both, linked together from the beginning, have, I am afraid, both together perished for ever. What ! gentlemen, was I not to foresee, or foreseeing was I not to endeavor to save you from all these multiplied mischiefs and disgraces? Would the little, silly, canvass prattle of obeying instructions, and having no opinions but yours, and such idle senseless tales, which amuse the vacant ears of un- thinking men, have saved you from " the pelting of that pitiless storm," to which the loose improvidence, the cowardly rash- ness of those who dare not look danger in the face, so as to provide against it in time, and therefore throw themselves headlong into the midst of it, have exposed this degraded nation, beat down and prostrate on the earth, unsheltered, unarmed, unresisting? Was I an Irishman on that day, that I boldly withstood our pride ? or on the day that I hung down my head, and wept in shame and silence over the humiliation of Great Britain? I became unpopular in England for the one, and in Ireland for the other. What then? What obligation lay on me to be popular? I was bound to serve both kingdoms To be pljeased with my service, was their affair, not mine. I was an Irishman in the Irish business, just as much as 1 was an American, when, on the same principles, I wished you to concede to America, at a time when she prayed concession at our feet. Just as much was I an American, when I wished parliament to offer terms in victory, and not to w^ait the well chosen hour of defeat, for making good by weakness, and by supplication, a claim of prerogative, pre-eminence, and au- thority. Instead of requiring it from me, as a point of duty, to kindle with your passions, had you all been as cool as I was, you would have been saved disgraces and distresses that are unut- terable. Do you remember our commission ? We sent out a solemn embassy across the Atlantic ocean, to lay the crown, the peerage, the commons of Great Britain, at the feet of the American congress. That our disgrace might want no sort of brightening and burnishing, observe who they were that com- TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 105 posed this famous embassy. My lord Carlisle is among the first ranks of our nobility. He is the identical man who but two years before had been put forward, at the opening of a session in the house of lords, as the mover of a haughty and rigorous address against America. He was put in the front of the embassy of submission. Mr. Eden was taken from the office of lord Suffolk, to whom he was then under secretary of state ; from the office of that lord Suffolk, who but a few weeks before, in his place in parliament, did not deign to inquire where a congress of vagrants was to be found. This lord Suffolk sent Mr. Eden to find the vagrants, without knowing where his king's generals were to be found, who were joined in the same commission of supplicating those whom they were sent to subdue. They enter the capital of America only to abandon it ; and these asserters and representatives of the dig- nity of England, at the tail of a flying army, let fly their Par- thian shafts of memorials and remonstrances at random behind them. Their promises and their offers, their flatteries and their menaces, were all despised ; and we were saved the disgrace of their formal reception, only because the congress scorned to receive them; whilst the state house of independent Phila- delphia opened her doors to the public entry of the ambassador of France. From war and blood we went to submission; and from submission plunged back again to war and blood ; to desolate and be desolated, without measure, hope, or end. I am a royalist : I blush for this degradation of the crown. I am a whig ; I blush for the dishonor of parliament. I am a true EngUshman : I felt to the quick for the disgrace of England. I am a man : I felt for the melancholy reverse of human affairs, in the fall of the first power in the world. To read what was approaching in Ireland, in the black and bloody characters of the American war, was a painful, but it was a necessary part of my public duty. For, gentlemen, it is not your fond desires or mine that can alter the nature of things; by contending against which what have we got, or shall ever get, but defeat and shame 1 I did not obey your instructions ! No. I conformed to the instructions of truth and nature, and maintained your interest, against your opinions, with a con- stancy that became me. A representative worthy of you, ought to be a person of stability. I am to look, indeed, to your opin- ions ; but to such opinions as you and I must have five years hence. I was not to look to the flash of the day. I knew that you chose me, in my place, along with others, to be a pillar of the state, and not a weathercock on the top of the edifice, exalted for my levity and versatility, and of no use but to indi- cate the shiftings of every fashionable gale. Would to God, 106 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH the value of my sentiments on Ireland and on America had been at this day a subject of doubt and discussion ! No matter what my sufferings had been, so that this kingdom had kept the authority I wished it to maintain, by a grave foresight, and by an equitable temperance in the use of its power. The next article of charge on my public conduct, and that which I find rather the most prevalent of all, is lord Beau- champ's bill. I mean his bill of last session, for reforming the law-process concerning imprisonment. It is said, to aggravate the oftence, that I treated the petition of this city with con- tempt even in presenting it to the house, and expressed myself in terms of marked disrespect. Had this latter part of the charge been true, no merits on the side of the question which I took, could possibly excuse me. But I am incapable of treating this city with disrespect. Very fortunately, at this minute (if my bad eyesight does not deceive me) the worthy gentleman deputed on this business stands directly before me. To him 1 appeal, whether I did not, though it militated with my oldest and my most recent public opinions, deliver the petition with a strong and more than usual recommendation to the consideration of the house, on account of the character and consequence of those who signed it. I believe the worthy gentleman will tell you, that the very day t received it, I applied to the solicitor, now the attorney general, to give it an immediate consideration ; and he most obligingly and instantly consented to employ a great deal of his very valuable time to write an explanation of the bill. I attended the committee with all possible care and diligence, in order that every objection of yours might meet with a solution; or produce an alteration. I entreated your learned recorder (always ready in business in which you take a concern) to attend. But what will you say to those who blame me for supporting lord Beauchamp's bill, as a disrespect- ful treatment of your petition, when you hear, that out of respect to you, I myself was the cause of the loss of that very bill ? For the noble lord who brought it in, and who, I must say, has much merit for this and some other measures, at my request consented to put it off for a week, which the speaker's illness lengthened to a fortnight; and then the frantic tumult about popery drove that and every rational business from the house. So that if I chose to make a defence of myself, on the little principles of a culprit, pleading in his exculpation, I might not only secure my acquittal, but make merit with the opposers of the bill. But I shall do no such thing. The truth is, that I did occasion the loss of the bill, and by a delay caused by my respect to you. But such an event was never in my contempla- tion. And I am so far from takinor credit for the defeat of that TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 107 measure, that I cannot sufficiently lament my misfortune, if but one man, who ought to be at large, has passed a year in prison by my means. I am a debtor to the debtors. I confess judg- ment. I owe, what, if ever it be in my power, I shall most certainly pay — ample atonement, and usurious amends to liberty and humanity for my unhappy lapse. For, gentlemen, lord Beauchamp's bill was a law of justice and policy, as far as it went. I say as far as it went ; for its fault was its being, in the remedial part, miserably defective. There are two capital faults in our law with relation to civil debts. One is, that every man is presumed solvent. A presump- tion, in innumerable cases, directly against truth. Therefore the debtor is ordered, on a supposition of ability and fraud, to be coerced his liberty until he makes payment. By this means, in all cases of civil insolvency, without a pardon from his creditor, he is to be imprisoned for life : — and thus a miserable mistaken invention of artificial science, operates to change a civil into a criminal judgment, and to scourge misfortune or indiscretion with a punishment which the law does not inflict on the greatest crimes. The next fault is, that the inflicting of that punishment is not on the opinion of an equal and public judge; but is referred to the arbitrary discretion of a private, nay interested, and irritated, mdividual. He, who formally is, and substantially ought to be, the judge, is in reahty no more than ministerial, a mere executive instrument of a private man, who is at once judge and party. Every idea of judicial order is subverted by this procedure. If the insolvency be no crime, why is it punished with arbitrary imprisonment? If it be a crime, why is it delivered into private hands to pardon without discretion, or to punish without mercy and without measure 1 To these faults, gross and cruel faults in our law, the excel- lent principle of lord Beauchamp's bill applied some sort of remedy. I know that credit must be preserved ; but equity must be preserved too ; and it is impossible, that anything should be necessary to commerce, which is inconsistent with justice. The principle of credit was not weakened by that bill God forbid ! The enforcement of that credit was only put into the same public judicial hands on which we depend for our lives, and all that makes life dear to us. But, indeed, this business was taken up too warmly both here and elsewhere. The bill was extremely mistaken. It was supposed to enact what it never enacted ; and complaints were made of clauses in it as novelties, which existed before the noble lord that brought in the bill was born. There was a fallacy that ran through the whole of the objections. The gentlemen who opposed the bill, 108 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH always argued, as if the option lay between that bill and the ancient law. But this is a grand mistake. For, practically, the option is between, not that bill and the old law, but between that bill and those occasional laws called acts of grace. For the operation of the old law is so savage, and so inconvenient to society, that for a long time past, once in every parliament, and lately twice, the legislature has been obhged to make a general arbitrary jail delivery, and at once to set open, by its sovereign authority, all the prisons in England. Gentlemen, I never relished acts of grace ; nor ever submitted to them but from despair of better. They are a dishonorable invention, by which, not from humanity, not from policy ; but merely because we have not room enough to hold these victims of the absurdity of our laws, we turn loose upon the public three or four thousand naked wretches, corrupted by the habits, debased by the ignominy, of a prison. If the creditor had a right to those carcases as a natural security for his property, I am sure we have no right to deprive him of that security. But if the few pounds of flesh were not necessary to his security, we had not a right to detain the unfortunate debtor, without any benefit at all to the person who confined him. Take it as you will, we commit injustice. Now, lord Beauchamp's bill intended to do deliberately, and with great caution and circumspection, upon each several case, and with all attention to the just claimant, what acts of grace do in a much greater measure, and with very little care, caution, or deliberation. I suspect that here too, if we continue to oppose this bill, we shall be found in a struggle against the nature of things. For as we grow enlightened, the public will not bear, for any length of time, to pay for the maintenance of whole armies of prisoners, nor, at their own expense, submit to keep jails as a sort of garri- sons, merely to fortify the absurd principle of making men judges in their own cause. For credit has little or no concern in this cruelty. I speak in a commercial assembly. You know that credit is given, because capital must be employed ; that men calculate the chances of insolvency; and they either withhold the credit, or make the debtor pay the risk in the price. The counting-house has no alUance with the jail. Holland under- stands trade as well as we, and she has done much more than this obnoxious bill intended to do. There was not, when Mr. Howard visited Holland, more than one prisoner for debt in the great city of Rotterdam. Although lord Beauchamp's act (which was previous to this bill, and intended to feel the way for it) has already preserved liberty to thousands ; and though it is not three years since the last act of grace passed, yet by Mr. Howard's last account, there were near three thousand again in TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 109 jail. I cannot name this gentleman without remarking, that his labors and writings have done much to open the eyes and hearts of mankind. He has visited all Europe, — not to survey the sumptuousness of palaces, or the stateliness of temples ; not to make accurate measurements of the remains of ancient gran- deur, nor to form a scale of the curiosity of modern art; not to col- lect medals, or collate manuscripts : — but to dive into the depths of dungeons ; to plunge into the infection of hospitals ; to survey the mansions of sorrow and pain ; to take the gauge and dimen- sions of misery, depression, and contempt ; to remember the forgotten, to attend to the neglected, to visit the forsaken, and to compare and collate the distresses of all men in all countries. His plan is original ; and it is as full of genius as it is of humanity. It was a voyage of discovery ; a circumnavigation of charity. Already the benefit of his labor is felt more or less in every country : I hope he will anticipate his final reward, by seeing all its effects fully realized in his own. He will receive, not by retail but in gross, the reward of those who visit the prisoner; and he has so forestalled and monopolized this branch of charity, that there will be, I trust, little room to merit by such acts of benevolence hereafter. Nothing now remains to trouble you with, but the fourth charge against me — the business of the Roman Catholics. It is a business closely connected with the rest. They are all on one and the same principle. My little scheme of conduct, such as it is, is all arranged. I could do nothing but what I have doBC on this subject, without confounding the whole train of my ideas, and distui'bing the whole order of my life. Gentle- men, I ought to apologize to you, for seeming to think anything at all necessary to be said upon this matter. The calumny is fitter to be scrawled with the midnight chalk of incendiaries, with " No popery," on walls and doors of devoted houses, than to be mentioned in any civilized company. I had heard, that the spirit of discontent on that subject was very prevalent here. With pleasure I find that I have been grossly misinformed. If it exists at all in this city, the laws have crushed its exertions, and our morals have shamed its appearance in daylight. 1 have pursued this spirit wherever I could trace it ; but it still fled from me. It was a ghost which all had heard of, but none had seen. None would acknowledge that he thought the pub- lic proceeding with regai'd to our Catholic dissenters to be blamable; but several were sorry it had made an ill impression upon others, and that my interest was hurt by my share in the business. I find with satisfaction and pride, that not above four or five in this city (and I dare say these misled by some gross misrepresentation) have signed that symbol of delusion and bond 10 110 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH of sedition, that libel on the national religion and English character, the Protestant Association. It is therefore, gentle- men, not by way of cure but of pi'evention, and lest the arts of wicked men may prevail over the integrity of any one amongst us, that I think it necessary to open to you the merits of this transaction pretty much at large ; and I beg your patience upon^ it : for, although the reasonings that have been used to depreciate the act are of little force, and though the authority of the men concerned in this ill design is not very imposing ; yet the auda- ciousness of these conspirators against the national honor, and the extensive wickedness of their attempts, have raised persons of little importance to a degree of evil eminence, and imparted a sort of sinister dignity to proceedings that had their origin in only the meanest and blindest malice. In explaining to you the proceedings of parliament which have been complained of, I will state to you, — first, the thing that was done ; — next, the persons who did it ; — and lastly, the grounds and I'easons upon which the legislature proceeded in this deliberate act of public justice and public prudence. Gentlemen, the condition of our nature is such, that we buy our blessings at a price. The reformation, one of the greatest periods of human improvement, was a time of trouble and confusion. The vast structure of superstition and tyranny, which had been for ages in rearing, and which was combined with the interest of the great and of the many; which was moulded into the laws, the manners, and civil institutions of nations, and blended with the frame and policy of states, could not be brought to the ground without a fearful struggle ; nor could it fall without a violent concussion of itself and all about it. When this great revolution was attempted in a more regu- lar mode by government, it was opposed by plots and seditions of the people ; when by popular efforts, it was repressed as rebellion by the hand of power; and bloody executions (often bloodily returned) marked the whole of its progress through all its stages. The affairs of religion, which are no longer heard of in the tumult of our present contentions, made a principal ingredient in the wars and politics of that time; the enthu- siasm of religion threw a gloom over the politics ; and politi- cal interests poisoned and perverted the spirit of religion upon all sides. The Protestant religion, in that violent struggle, in- fected, as the Popish had been before, by worldly interests and worldly passions, became a persecutor in its turn, sometimes of the new sects, which carried their own principles further than was convenient to the original reformers; and always of the body from whom they parted; and this persecuting TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 1 1 1 spirit arose, not only from' the bitterness of retaliation, but from the merciless policy of fear. A statute was fabricated in the year 1699, by which the saying mass (a church service in the Latin tongue, not exactly the same as our liturgy, but very near it, and containing no offence whatsoever against the laws, or against good morals) was forged into a crime punishable with perpetual imprison- ment. The teaching school, a useful and virtuous occupation, even the teaching in a private family, was in every Catholic subjected to the same unproportioned punishment. Your in- dustry, and the bread of your children, was taxed for a pecu- niary reward to stimulate avarice to do what nature refused ; to inform and prosecute on this law. Every Roman Catholic was, under the same act, to forfeit his estate to his nearest Protestant relation, until, through a profession of what he did not believe, he redeemed, by his hypocrisy, what the law had transferred to the kinsman as the recompense of his profligacy. When thus turned out of doors from his paternal estate, he was disabled from acquiring any other by any industry, donation, or charity; but was rendered a foreigner in his native land, only because he retained the religion, along with the property, handed down to him from those who had been the old inhabit- ants of that land before him. Does any one who hears me approve this scheme of things, or think there is common justice, common sense, or common honesty in any part of it ? If any does, let him say it ; and I am ready to discuss the point with temper and candor. But instead of approving, I perceive a virtuous indignation beginning to rise in your minds on the mere cold stating of the statute. But what will you feel, when you know from history how this statute passed, and what were the motives, and what the mode of making it? A party in this nation, enemies to the system of the i-evolution, were in opposition to the government of king William. They knew that our glorious deliverer was an enemy to all persecution. They knew that he came to free us from slavery and popery, out of a country, where a third of the people are contented Catholics under a Protestant gov- ernment. He came with a part of his army composed of those very Catholics, to overset the power of a popish prince. Such is the effect of a tolerating spirit ; and so much is liberty served in every way, and by all persons, by a manly adherence to its own principles. Whilst freedom is true to itself, every- thing becomes subject to it ; and its very adversaries are an instrument in its hands. The party I speak of (like some amongst us who would dis- 112 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH parage the best friends of their country) resolved to make the king either violate his principles of toleration, or incur the odium of protecting Papists. They therefore brought in this bill, and made it purposely wicked and absurd that it might be rejected. The then court party, discovering their game, turn- ed the tables on them, and returned their bill to them stuffed with still greater absurdities, that its loss might lie upon its original authors. They, finding their own ball thrown back to them, kicked it back again to their adversaries. And thus this act, loaded with the double injustice of two parties, neither of whom intended to pass what they hoped the other would be persuaded to reject, went through the legislature, contrary to the real wish of all parts of it, and of all the parties that composed it. In this manner, these insolent and profligate fac- tions, as if they were playing with balls and counters, made a sport of the fortunes and the liberties of their fellow-creatures. Other acts of persecution have been acts of malice. This was a subversion of justice from wantonness and petulance. Look into the history of bishop Burnet. He is a witness with- out exception. Gentlemen, bad laws are the worst sort of tyranny. In such a country as this, they are of all bad things the worst : worse by far than anywhere else; and they derive a particu- lar malignity even from the wisdom and soundness of the rest of our institutions. For very obvious reasons, you cannot trust the crown with a dispensing power over any of your laws. However, a government, be it as bad as it may, will, in the exercise of a discretionary power, discriminate times and per- sons ; and will not ordinarily pursue any man, when its own safety is not concerned. A mercenary informer knows no dis- tinction. Under such a system, the obnoxious people are slaves, not only to the government, but they live at the mercy of every individual. They are at once the slaves of the whole community, and of every part of it ; and the worst and most unmerciful men are those on whose goodness they most depend. In this situation, men not only shrink from the frowns of a stern magistrate, but tliey are obliged to fly from their very species. The seeds of destruction are sown in civil inter- course, in social habitudes. The blood of wholesome kindred is infected. Their tables and beds are surrounded with snares. All the means given by Providence to make life safe and com- fortable, are perverted into instruments of terror and torment. This species of universal subserviency, that makes the very servant who waits behind your chair, the arbiter of your hfe and fortune, has such a tendencv to degrade and abase man- TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 113 kind, and to deprive them of that assured and liberal state of mind, which alone can make us what we ought to be, that I vow to God I would sooner bring myself to put a man to im- mediate death for opinions I disliked, and so to get rid of the man and his opinions at once, than to fret him with a feverish being, tainted with the jail distemper of a contagious servitude, to keep him above ground, an animated mass of putrefaction; corrupted himself, and corrupting all about him. The act repealed was of this direct tendency; and it was made in the manner which I have related to you. I will now tell you by whom the bill of repeal was brought into parlia- ment. I find it has been industriously given out in this city (from kindness to me unquestionably) that I was the mover or the seconder. The fact is, I did not once open my lips on the subject during the whole progress of the bill. I do not say this as disclaiming my share in the measure. Very far from it, I inform you of this fact, lest I should seem to arrogate to myself the merits which belong to others. To have been the man chosen out to redeem our fellow-citizens from slavery ; to purify our laws from absurdity and injustice ; and to cleanse our religion from the blot and stain of persecution, would be an honor and happiness to which my wishes would undoubt- edly aspire ; but to which nothing but my wishes could possibly have entitled me. That great work was in hands in every re- spect far better qualified than mine. The mover of the bill was Sir George Saville. When an act of great and signal humanity was to be done, and done with all the weight and authority that belonged to it, the world could cast its eyes upon none but him. I hope that few things, which have a tendency to bless or to adorn life, have wholly escaped my observation in my passage through it. I have sought the acquaintance of that gentleman, and have seen him in all situations. He is a true genius ; with an understanding vigorous, and acute, and refined, and distinguish- ing even to excess ; and illuminated with a most unbounded, peculiar, and original cast of imagination. With these he possesses many external and instrumental advantages; and he makes use of them all. His fortune is among the largest ; a fortune which, wholly unencumbered, as it is, with one single charge from luxury, vanity, or excess, sinks under the benevo- lence of its dispenser. This private benevolence, expanding itself into patriotism, renders his whole being the estate of the public, in which he has not reserved a peculiujn for himself of profit, diversion, or relaxation. During the session, the first in, and the last out of the house of commons; he passes from the senate to the camp ; and seldom seeing the seat of his an- P 10* 114 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH cestors, he is always in parliament to serve his country, or in the field to defend it. But in all well-wrought compositions, some particulars stand out more eminently than the rest ; and the things which will carry his name to posterity, are his two bills ; I mean that for a limitation of the claims of the crown upon landed estates ; and this for the relief of the Roman Cath- olics. By the former, he has emancipated property ; by the latter, he has quieted conscience ; and by both, he has taught that grand lesson to government and subject — no longer to re- gard each other as adverse parties. The seconder was worthy of the mover, and the motion. I was not the seconder. It was Mr. Dunning, recorder of this city. I shall say the less of him, because his near relation to you makes you more particularly acquainted with his merits. But I should appear little acquainted with them, or little sensi- ble of them, if I could utter his name on this occasion without expressing my esteem for his character. I am not afraid of offending a most learned body, and most jealous of its reputa- tion for that learning, when I say he is the first of his profes- sion. It is a point settled by those who settle everything else; and I must add (what I am enabled to say from my own long and close observation) that there is not a man, of any profes- sion, or in any situation, of a more erect and independent spirit ; of a more proud honor ; a more manly mind ; a more firm and determined integrity. Assure yourselves, that the names of two such men will bear a great load of prejudice in the other scale, before they can be entirely outweighed. With this mover, and this seconder, agreed the whole house of commons ; the whole house of lords ; the whole bench of bishops ; the lung ; the ministry ; the opposition ; all the dis- tinguished clergy of the establishment ; all the eminent lights (for they were consulted) of the dissenting churches. This according voice of national wisdom ought to be listened to with reverence. To say that all these descriptions of Englishmen unanimously concurred in a scheme for introducing the Catho- lic religion, or that none of them understood the nature and ef- fects of what they were doing, so well as a few obscure clubs of people, whose names you never heard of, is shamelessly absurd. Surely it is paying a miserable compliment to the religion we profess, to suggest, that everything eminent in the kingdom is indifferent, or even adverse to that religion, and that its secu- rity is wholly abandoned to the zeal of those who have nothing but their zeal to distinguish them. In weighing this unanimous concurrence of whatever the nation has to boast of, I hope you will recollect, that all these concurring parties do by no means TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 115 love one another enough to agree in any point, which was not both evidently, and importantly, right. To prove this ; to prove, that the measure was both clearly and materially proper, I will next lay before you (as I prom- ised) the political grounds and reasons for the repeal of that penal statute ; and the motives to its repeal at that particular time. Gentlemen, America When the English nation seemed to be dangerously, if not irrevocably divided ; when one, and that the most growing branch, was torn from the parent stock, and ingrafted on the power of France, a great terror fell upon this kingdom. On a sudden we awakened from our dreams of conquest, and saw ourselves threatened with an immediate invasion ; which we were, at that time, very ill prepared to resist. You remember the cloud that gloomed over us all. In that hour of our dismay, from the bottom of the hiding-places, into which the indiscriminate rigor of our statutes had driven them, came out the body of the Roman Catholics. They appeared before the steps of a tottering throne, with one of the most sober, measured, steady, and dutiful addresses, that was ever presented to the crown. It was no holiday ceremony; no anni- versary compliment of parade and show. It was signed by almost every gentleman of that persuasion, of note or property, in England. At such a crisis, nothing but a decided resolution to stand or fall with their country, could have dictated such an address ; the direct tendency of which was to cut off all re- treat, and to render them peculiarly obnoxious to an invader of their own communion. The address showed, what I long languished to see, that all the subjects of England had cast off all foreign views and connexions, and that every man looked for his relief from every grievance, at the hands only of his own natural government. It was necessary, on our part, that the natural government should show itself worthy of that name. It was necessary, at the crisis I speak of, that the supreme power of the state should meet the conciliatory dispositions of the subject. To delay protection would be to reject allegiance. And why should it be rejected, or even coldly and suspiciously received ? If any independent Catholic state should choose to take part with this kingdom in a war with France and Spain, that bigot (if such a bigot could be found) would be heard with little respect, who could dream of objecting his religion to an ally, whom the na- tion would not only receive with its freest thanks, but purchase with the last remains of its exhausted treasure. To such an ally we should not dare to whisper a single syllable of those base and invidious topics, upon which, some unhappy men 116 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH would persuade the state, to reject the duty and allegiance of its own members. Is it then because foreigners are in a con- dition to set our malice at defiance, that with tliern, we are will- ing to contract engagements of friendship, and to keep them with fidelity and honor ; but that, because we conceive some descriptions of our countrymen are not powerful enough to punish our malignity, we will not permit them to support our com- mon interest ? Is it on that ground that our anger is to be kindled by their oflered kindness? Is it on that ground that they are to be subjected to penalties, because they are willing, by actual merit, to purge themselves from imputed crimes 1 Lest by an adhe- rence to the cause of their country they should acquire a title to fair and equitable treatment, are we resolved to furnish them with causes of eternal enmity ; and rather supply them with just and founded motives to disaffection, than not to have that disaffection in existence to justify an oppression, which, not from policy but disposition, we have predetermined to exer- cise 1 What shadow of reason could be assigned, why, at a time when the most Protestant part of this Protestant empire found it for its advantage to unite with the two principal popish states, to unite itself in the closest bonds with France and Spain, for our destruction, that we should refuse to unite with our own Catholic countrymen for our own preservation? Ought we, like madmen, to tear off" the plasters, that the lenient hand of prudence had spread over the wounds and gashes, which in our delirium of ambition we had given to our own body? No person ever reprobated the American war more than I did, and do, and ever shall. But I never will consent that we should lay additional voluntary penalties on ourselves, for a fault which carries but too much of its own punishment in its own nature. For one, I was delighted with the proposal of internal peace. I accepted the blessing with tliankfulness and trans- port ; I was truly happy to find one good effect of our civil dis- tractions, that they had put an end to all rehgious strife and heart-burning in our own bowels. What must be the senti- ments of a man, who would wish to perpetuate domestic hos- tility, when the causes of dispute are at an end ; and who, crying out for peace with one part of the nation on the most humiUating terms, should deny it to those, who offer friendship without any terms at all ? But if I was unable to reconcile such a denial to the con- tracted principles of local duty, what answer could I give to the broad claims of general humanity? I confess to you freely, that the sufferings and distresses of the people of America in this cruel war, have at times affected me more deeply than I TO THE ELECTORS AT BRISTOL. 117 can express. I felt every Gazette of triumph as a blow upon my heart, which has an hundred times sunk and fainted within me at all the mischiefs brought upon those who bear the whole brunt of war in the heart of their country. Yet the Ameri- cans are utter strangers to me; a nation among whom I am not sure that I have a single acquaintance. Was I to suffer my mind to be so unaccountably warped ; was I to keep such iniquitous weights and measures of temper and of reason, as to sympathize with those who are in open rebellion against an authority which I respect, at war with a country which by every title ought to be, and is most dear to me ; and yet to have no feeling at all for the hardships and indignities suffered by men, who, by their very vicinity, are bound up in a nearer relation to us ; who contribute their share, and more than their share, to the common prosperity ; who perform the common offices of social life, and who obey the laws to the full as well as I do? Gentlemen, the danger to the state being out of the question (of which, let me tell you, statesmen themselves are apt to have but too exquisite a sense) I could assign no one reason of justice, policy, or feeling, for not concurring most cordially, as most cordially I did concur, in softening some part of that shameful servitude, under which several of mv worthy fellow-citizens were groaning. I dai'e say, you have all heard of the privileges indulged to the Irish Catholics residing in Spain. You have likewise heard with what circumstances of severity they have been lately ex- pelled from the sea-ports of that kingdom ; driven into the inland cities ; and there detained as a sort of prisoners of state. I have good reason to believe, that it was the zeal to our gov- ernment and our cause (somewhat indiscreetly expressed in one of the addresses of the Catholics of Ireland) which has thus drawn down on their heads the indignation of the court of Madrid ; to the inexpi-essible loss of several individuals, and in future, perhaps, to the great detriment of the whole of their body. Now, that our people should be persecuted in Spain for their attachment to this country, and persecuted in this country for their supposed enmity to us, is such a jarring reconciliation of contradictory distresses, is a thing at once so dreadful and ridiculous, that no malice short of diabolical, would wish to continue any human creatures in such a situation. But honest men will not forget either their merit or their sufferings. There are men (and many, I trust, there are) who, out of love to their country and their kind, would torture their invention to find excuses for the mistakes of their brethren ; and who, to stifle dissension, would construe, even doubtful appearances, with the utmost favor: such men will never persuade themselves to be 118 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ingenious and refined in discovering disaffection and treason in the manifest palpable signs of suftering loyalty. Persecution is so unnatural to them, that they gladly snatch the very first opportunity of laying aside all the tricks and devices of penal politics; and of returning home, after all their irksome and vexatious wanderings, to our natural family mansion, to the grand social principle, that unites all men, of all descriptions, under the shadow of an equal and impartial justice. Men of another sort, I mean the bigoted enemies to liberty, may, perhaps, in their politics, make no account of the good or ill affection of the Catholics of England, who are but a handful of people (enough to torment, but not enough to fear) perhaps not so many, of both sexes and of all ages, as fifty thousand. But, gentlemen, it is possible you may not know, that the people of that persuasion in Ireland amount at least to sixteen or seventeen hundred thousand souls. I do not at all exaggerate the number. A nation to be persecuted ! Whilst we are masters of the sea, embodied with America, and in alliance with half the powers of the continent, we might perhaps, in that remote corner of Europe, afford to tyrannize with impu- nity. But there is a revolution in our affairs, which makes it prudent to be just. In our late awkward contest with Ireland about trade, had religion been thrown in, to ferment and em- bitter the mass of discontents, the consequences might have been truly dreadful. But very happily, that cause of quarrel was previously quieted by the wisdom of the acts I am com- mending. Even in England, where I admit the danger from the discon- tent of that persuasion to be less than in Ireland ; yet even here, had we listened to the counsels of fanaticism and folly, we might have wounded ourselves very deeply ; and wounded ourselves in a very tender part. You are apprized, that the Catholics of England consist mostly of your best manufacturers. Had the legislature chosen, instead of returning their declara- tions of duty with correspondent good will, to drive them to Hospair, there is a country at their very door, to which they would be invited ; a country in all respects as good as ours, and with the finest cities in the world ready built to receive them. And thus the bigotry of a free country, and in an enlightened age, would have repeopled the cities of Flanders, which, in the darkness of two hundred years ago, had been desolated by the superstition of a cruel tyrant. Our manufactures were the growth of the persecutions in the Low Countries. What a spectacle would it be to Europe, to see us, at this time of day, balancing the account of tyranny with those very countries, and, by our persecutions, driving back trade and manufacture, TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 119 as a sort of vagabonds, to their original settlement ! But I trust we shall be saved this last of disgraces. So far as to the effect of the act on the interests of this nation. With regard to the interests of mankind at large, I am sure the benefit was very considerable. Long before this act, indeed, the spirit of toleration began to gain ground in Europe. In Holland, the third part of the people are Catholics ; they live at ease ; and are a sound part of the state. In many parts of Germany, Protestants and Papists partake the same cities, the same councils, and even the same churches. The unbounded liberality of the king of Prussia's conduct on this occasion is known to all the world ; and it is of a piece with the other grand maxims of his reign. The magnanimity of the imperial court, breaking through the narrow principles of its predeces- sors, has indulged its Protestant subjects, not only with pro- perty, with worship, with liberal education ; but whh honors and trusts, both civil and military. A worthy Protestant gen- tleman of this country now fills, and fills with credit, a hiwh office in the Austrian Netherlands. Even the Lutheran obstinacy of Sweden has thawed at length, and opened a toleration to all religions. I know myself, that in France the Protestants begin to be at rest. The army, which in that country is everything, is open to them ; and some of the military rewards and decora- tions which the laws deny, are supplied by others, to make the service acceptable and honorable. The first minister of finance in that country, is a Protestant. Two years' war without a tax is among tlie first fruits of their liberality. Tarnished as the glory of this nation is, and as fiir as it has waded into the shades of an eclipse, some beams of its former illumination still play upon its surface ; and what is done in England is still looked to, as argument, and as example. It is certainly true, that no law of this country ever met with such universal ap- plause abroad, or was so likely to produce the perfection of that tolerating spirit, which, as I observed, has been long gaining ground in Europe: for abroad, it was universally thought that we had done, what, I am sorry to say, we had not; they thought we had granted a full toleration. That opinion was, however, so far from hurting the Protestant cause, that I declare, with the most serious solemnity, my firm belief, that no one thing done for these fifty years past, was so likely to prove deeply beneficial to our religion at large as Sir George Saville's act. In hs effects it was, " an act for tolerating and protecting Protestantism throughout Europe :" and I hope, that those who were taking steps for the quiet and settlement of our Protestant brethren in other countries, will even yet, rather 120 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH consider the steady equity of the greater and better part of the people of Great Britain, than the vanity and violence of a few. I perceive, gentlemen, by the manner of all about me, that you look with horror on the wicked clamor which has been raised on this subject; and that instead of an apology for what was done, you rather demand from me an account, why the execution of the scheme of toleration was not made more an- swerable to the large and liberal grounds on which it was taken up. The question is natural and proper ; and I remember that a great and learned magistrate, distinguished for his strong and systematic understanding, and who at that time was a member of the house of commons, made the same objection to the pro- ceeding. The statutes, as they now stand, are, without doubt, perfectly absurd. But I beg leave to explain the cause of this gross imperfection in the tolerating plan, as well and as shortly as I am able. It was universally thought, that the session ought not to pass over without doing something in this business. To revise the whole body of the penal statutes was conceived to be an object too big for the time. The penal statute there- fore which was chosen for repeal (chosen to show our disposi- tion to conciliate, not to perfect a toleration) was this act of ludicrous cruelty, of which I have just given you the history. It is an act, which, though not by a great deal so fierce and bloody as some of the rest, was infinitely more ready in the execution. It was the act which gave the greatest encourage- ment to those pests of society, mercenary informers, and inter- ested disturbers of household peace ; and it was observed with truth, that the prosecutions, either carried to conviction or compounded, for many years, had been all commenced upon that act. It was said, that whilst we were deliberating on a more perfect scheme, the spirit of the age would never come up to the execution of the statutes which remained ; especially as more steps, and a co-operation of more minds and powers, were required towards a mischievous use of them, than for the execution of the act to be repealed : that it was better to unravel this texture from below than from above, beginning with the latest, which, in general practice, is the severest evil. It was alleged, that this slow proceeding would be attended with the advantage of a progressive experience; and that the people would grow reconciled to toleration, when they should find by the efl^ects, that justice was not so irreconcilable an enemy to convenience as they had imagined. These, gentlemen, were the reasons why we left this good work in the rude unfinished state, in which good works are commonly left, through the tame circumspection with which a timid prudence so frequently enervates beneficence. In doing TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 121 good, we are generally cold, and languid, and sluggish ; and of all things afraid of being too nnuch in the right. But the works of malice and injustice are quite in another style. They are finished with a bold, masterly hand ; touched as they are with the spirit of those vehement passions that call forth all our en- ergies whenever we oppress and persecute. Thus this matter was left for the time, with a full determina- tion in parliament, not to suffer other and worse statutes to remain for the purpose of counteracting the benefits proposed by the repeal of one penal law ; for nobody then dreamed of defending what w^as done as a benefit on the ground of its being no benefit at all. We were not then ripe for so mean a subterfuge. I do not wish to go over the horrid scene that was afterwards acted. Would to God it could be expunged for ever from the annals of this country ! But since it must subsist for our shame, let it subsist for our instruction. In the year 1780, there were found in this nation men deluded enough (for I give the whole to their delusion) on pretences of zeal and piety, without any sort of provocation whatsoever, real or pretended, to make a desperate attempt, which would have consumed all the glory and power of this country in the flames of London ; and buried all law, order, and religion, under the ruins of the metropolis of the Protestant world. Whether all this mischief done, or in the direct train of doing, was in their original scheme, I cannot say. I hope it was not ; but this would have been the unavoidable consequence of their proceedings, had not the flames they had lighted up in their fury been extinguished in their blood. All the time that this horrid scene was acting, or avenging, as well as for some time before, and ever since, the wicked instigators of this unhappy multitude, guilty, with every aggra- vation, of all their crimes, and screened in a cowardly dark- ness from their punishment, continued, without interruption, pity, or remorse, to blow up the blind rage of the populace, with a continued blast of pestilential libels, which infected and poisoned the very air we breathed in. The main drift of all the libels, and all the riots, was, to force parliament (to persuade us was hopeless) into an act of national perfidy, which has no example. For, gentlemen, it is proper you should all know what infamy we escaped by refusing that repeal, for a refusal of which, it seems, I, among others, stand somewhere or other accused. When we took away, on the motives which I had the honor of stating to you, a few of the innumerable penalties upon an oppressed and injured people, the relief was not absolute, but given on a stipulation and com- Q 11 122 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH pact between them and us ; for we bound down the Roman Catholics with the most solemn oaths, to bear ti'ue allegiance to this government ; to abjure all sort of temporal power in any other ; and to renounce, under the same solemn obligations, the doctrines of systematic perfidy, with which they stood (I conceived very unjustly) charged. Now our modest petitioners came up to us, most humbly praying nothing more, than that we should break our faith, without any one cause whatsoever of forfeiture assigned ; and when the subjects of this kingdom had, on their part, fully performed their engagement, we should refuse, on our part, the benefit we had stipulated on the per- formance of those very conditions that were prescribed by our own authority, and taken on the sanction of our public faith : that is to say, when we had inveigled them with fair promises within our door, we were to shut it on them ; and, adding mockery to outrage — to tell them : " Now we have got you fast — your con- sciences are bound to a power resolved on your destruction. We have made you swear, that your religion obliges you to keep your faith : fools as you are ! we will now let you see, that our religion enjoins us to keep no faith with you." — They who would advisedly call upon us to do such things, must cer- tainly have thought us not only a convention of treacherous tyrants, but a gang of the lowest and dirtiest wretches that ever disgraced humanity. Had we done this, we should have indeed proved, that there were some in the world whom no faith could bind ; and we should have conmcted ourselves of that odious principle of which Papists stood accused by those very savages, who wished us, on that accusation, to deliver them over to their fury. In this audacious tumult, when our very name and character, as gentlemen, was to be cancelled for ever along with the faith and honor of the nation, I, who had exerted myself very little on the quiet passing of the bill, thought it necessary then to come forward. I was not alone ; but though some distinguished members on all sides, and particularly on ours, added much to their high reputation by the part they took on that day (a part which will be remembered as long as honor, spirit, and eloquence have estimation in the world) I may and will value myself so far, that, yielding in abilities to many, I yielded in zeal to none. With warmth and with vigor, and animated wnth a just and natural indignation, I called forth every faculty that I possessed, and I directed it in every way in which I could possi- bly employ it. I labored night and day. I labored in parliament- I labored out of parliament. If therefore the resolution of the house of commons, refusing to commit this act of unmatched turpitude, be a crime, I am guilty among the foremost. But TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 123 indeed, whatever the fauhs of that house may have been, no one member was found hardy enough to propose so infamous a thing ; and on full debate we passed the resolution against the petitions with as much unanimity, as we had formerly passed the law of which these petitions demanded the repeal. There was a circumstance (justice will not sutler me to pass it over) which, if anything could enforce the reasons I have given, would fully justify the act of relief, and render a repeal, or anything like a repeal, unnatural, impossible. It was the behavior of the persecuted Roman Catholics under the acts of violence and brutal insolence, which they sufiered. I suppose there are not in London less than fom* or five thousand of that persuasion from my country, who do a great deal of the most laborious works in the metropolis ; and they chiefly inhabit those quarters, which were the principal theatre of the fury of the bigoted multitude. They are known to be men of strong arms and quick feelings, and more remarkable for a determined resolution, than clear ideas, or much foresight. But though provoked by everything that can stir the blood of men, their houses and chapels in flames, and with the most atrocious profanations of everything which they hold sacred before their eyes, not a hand was moved to retaliate, or even to defend. Had a conflict once begun, the rage of their persecutors would have redoubled. Thus fury increasing by the reverberation of outrages, house being fired for house, and church for chapel, I am convinced, that no power under heaven could have pre- vented a general conflagration ; and at this day London would have been a tale. But I am well informed, and the thing speaks it, that their clergy exerted their whole influence to keep their people in such a state of forbearance and quiet, as, when I look back, fills me with astonishment ; but not with astonish- ment only. Their merits on that occasion ought not to be for- gotten ; nor will they, when Englishmen come to recollect themselves. I am sure it were far more proper to have called them forth, and given them the thanks of both houses of parlia- ment, than to have suffered those worthy clergymen, and excellent citizens, to be hunted into holes and corners, whilst we are making low-minded inquisitions into the number of their people ; as if a tolerating principle was never to prevail, unless we were very sure that only a few could possibly take advantage of it. But indeed we are not well recovered of our fright. Our reason, I trust, will return with our security ; and this unfortu- nate temper will pass over like a cloud. Gentlemen, I have now laid before you a few of the reasons for taking away the penalties of the act of 1699, and for re- fusing to establish them on the riotous requisition of 1780. 124 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH Because I would not suffer anything which may be for your satisfaction to escape, permit me just to touch on the objections urged against our act and our resolves, and intended as a jus- tification of the violence offered to both houses. " Parlia- ment," they assert, " was too hasty, and they ought, in so es sential and alarming a change, to have proceeded with a fai greater degree of deliberation." The direct contrary. Par liament was too slow. They took four-score years to delibe rate on the repeal of an act which ought not to have survived a second session. When at length, after a procrastination of near a century, the business was taken up, it proceeded in the most public manner, by the ordinary stages, and as slowly as a law so evidently right as to be resisted by none, would natu- rally advance. Had it been read three times in one day, we should have shown only a becoming readiness to recognize by protection the undoubted dutiful behavior of those whom we had but too long punished for offences of presumption or con- jecture. But for what end was that bill to linger beyond the usual period of an unopposed measure ? Was it to be delayed until a rabble in Edinburgh should dictate to the church of England what measure of persecution was fitting for her safe- ty? Was it to be adjourned until a fanatical force could be collected in London, sufficient to frighten us out of all our ideas of policy and justice? Were we to wait for the profound lectures on the reasons of state, ecclesiastical and political, which the Protestant Association have since condescended to read to us ? Or were we, seven hundred peers and common- ers, the only persons ignorant of the ribald invectives which occupy the place of argument in those remonstrances, which every man of common observation had heard a thousand times over, and a thousand times over had despised? AH men had before heard what they have to say ; and all men at this day know what they dare to do ; and I trust, all honest men are equally influenced by the one, and by the other. But they tell us, that those of our fellow-citizens, whose chains we had a little relaxed, are enemies to liberty and our free constitution. — Not enemies, I presume, to their mi-n liberty. And as to the constitution, until we give them some share in it, I do not know on what pretence we can examine into their opinions about a business in which they have no interest or concern. But after all, are we equally sure, that they are ad- verse to our constitution, as that our statutes are hostile and destructive to them ? For my part, I have reason to believe, their opinions and inclinations in that respect are various, ex- actly like those of other men : and if they lean more to the crown than I, and than many of you think we ought, we must TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 125 remember, that he who aims at another's life, is not to be sur- prised if he flies into any sanctuary that will receive him. The tenderness of the executive power is the natural asylum of those upon whom the laws have declared war ; and to com- plain that men are inclined to favor the means of their own safety, is so absurd, that one forgets the injustice in the ridicule. I must fairly tell you, that so far as my principles are con- cerned (principles, that I hope will only depart with my last breath) that I have no idea of a hberty unconnected with hon- esty and justice. Nor do I believe, that any good constitutions of government or of freedom, can find it necessary for their security to doom any part of the people to a permanent •slavery. Such a constitution of freedom, if such can be, is in effect no more than another name for the tyranny of the strongest faction ; and factions in republics have been, and are, full as capable as monarchs, of the most cruel oppression and injustice. It is but too true, that the love, and even the very idea, of genuine liberty, is extremely rare. It is but too true, that there are many, whose whole scheme of freedom is made up of pride, perverseness, and insolence. They feel themselves in a state of thraldom, they imagine that their souls are cooped and cabined in, unless they have some man, or some body of men, dependent on their mercy. This desire of having some one below them, descends to those who are the very lowest of all — and a Protestant cobbler, debased by his poverty, but exalted by his share of the ruling church, feels a pride in knowing it is by his generosity alone, that the peer, whose footman's instep he measures, is able to keep his chap- lain from a jail. This disposition is the true source of the pas- sion, which many men in very humble life have taken to the American war. Our subjects in America ; our colonies ; our dependants. This lust of party power is the liberty they hun- ger and thirst for ; and this siren song of ambition, has charm- ed ears, that one would have thought were never organized to that sort of music. This way, of proscribing the citizens by denominations and general descriptions, dignified by the name of reason of state, and security for constitutions and commonwealths, is nothing better at bottom, than the miserable invention of an ungene- rous ambition, which would fain hold the sacred trust of power, without any of the virtues or any of the energies, that give a title to it ; a receipt of policy, made up of a detestable com- pound of malice, cowardice, and sloth. They would govern men against their will ; but in that government they would be discharged from the exercise of vigilance, providence, and for- 11* 126 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH titude ; and therefore, that they may sleep on their watch, they consent to take some one division of the society into partner- ship of the tyranny over the rest. But let government, in what form it may be, comprehend the whole in its justice, and re- strain the suspicious by its vigilance ; let it keep watch and ward; let it discover by its sagacity, and punish by its firm- ness, all delinquency against its power, whenever delinquency exists in the overt acts ; and then it will be as safe as ever God and nature intended it should be. Crimes are the acts of indi- viduals, and not of denominations ; and therefore arbitrarily to class men under general descriptions, in order to proscribe and punish them in the lump for a presumed delinquency, of which perhaps but a part, perhaps none at all, are guilty, is indeed a compendious method, and saves a world of trouble about proof; but such a method, instead of being law, is an act of unnatural rebellion against the legal dominion of reason and justice ; and this vice, in any constitution that entertains it, at one time or other, will certainly bring on its ruin. We are told that this is not a religious persecution, and its abettors are loud in disclaiming all severities on account of conscience. Very fine, indeed ! then let it be so ! they ai'e not persecutors ; they are only tyrants. With all my heart. I am perfectly indifferent concerning the pretexts upon which we torment one another ; or whether it be for the constitution of the church of England, or for the constitution of the state of England, that people choose to make their fellow-creatures wretched. When we were sent into a place of authority, you that sent us had yourselves but one commission to give. You could give us none to wrong or oppress, or even to suffer any kind of oppression or wrong, on any gi'ounds whatsoever ; not on political, as in the affairs of America ; not on commercial, as in those of Ireland; not in civil, as in the laws for debt; not in religious, as in the statutes against Protestant or Catho- lic dissenters. The diversified but connected fabric of univer- sal justice, is well cramped and bolted together in all its parts ; and depend upon it, I never have employed, and I never shall employ, any engine of power which may come into my hands, to wrench it asunder. All shall stand, if I can help it, and all shall stand connected. After all, to complete this work, much remains to be done ; much in the east, much in the west. But great as the work is, if our will be ready, our powers are not deficient. Since you have suffered me to trouble you so much on this subject, permit me, gentlemen, to detain you a little longer. I am, indeed, most solicitous to give you perfect satisfaction. I find there are some of a better and softer nature than the TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 127 persons with whom I have supposed myself in debate, who neither think ill of the act of relief, nor by any means desire the repeal, not accusing but lamenting what was done, on account of the consequences, have frequently expressed their wish, that the late act had never been made. Some of this description, and persons of worth, I have met with in this city. They conceive, that the prejudices, whatever they might be, of a large part of the people, ought not to have been shocked ; that their opinions ought to have been previously taken, and much attended to ; and that thereby the late horrid scenes might have been prevented. I confess, my notions are widely different ; and I never was less sorry for any action of my life. I like the bill the better, on account of the events of all kinds that followed it. It relieved the real sufferers ; it strengthened the state ; and, by the dis- orders that ensued, we had clear evidence that there lurked a temper somewhere, which ought not to be fostered by the laws- No ill consequences whatever could be attributed to the act itself We knew beforehand, or we were poorly instructed, that toleration is odious to the intolerant; freedom to oppressors; property to robbers ; and all kinds and degrees of prosperity to the envious. We knew, that all these kinds of men would gladly gratify their evil dispositions under the sanction of law and religion, if they could : if they could not, yet, to make way to their objects, they would do their utmost to subvert all religion and all law. This we certainly knew. But knowing this, is there any reason, because thieves break in and steal, and thus bring detriment to you, and draw ruin on themselves, that I am to be sorry that you are in possession of shops, and of ware- houses, and of wholesome laws to protect them ? Are you to build no houses, because desperate men may pull them down upon their own heads 1 Or, if a malignant wretch will cut his own throat because he sees you give alms to the necessitous and deserving; shall his destruction be attributed to your charity, and not to his own deplorable madness ? If we repent of our good actions, what, I pray you, is left for our faults and follies? It is not the beneficence of the laws, it is the unnatural temper which beneficence can fret and sour, that is to be lamented. It is this temper which, by all rational means, ought to be sweet- ened and corrected. If froward men should refuse this cure, can they vitiate anything but themselves? Does evil so react upon good, as not only to retard its motion, but to change its nature ? If it can so operate, then good men will always be in the power of the bad ; and virtue, by a dreadful reverse of order, must lie under perpetual subjection and bondage to vice. As to the opinion of the people, which some think, in such 128 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH cases, is to be implicitly obeyed ; near two years' tranquillity, which followed the act, and its instant imitation in Ireland, proved abundantly, that the late horrible spirit was, in a great measure, the eftect of insidious art, and perverse industry, and gross misrepresentation. But suppose that the dislike had been much more deliberate, and much more general, than I am per- suaded it was. When we know, that the opinions of even the greatest multitudes are the standai'd of rectitude, I shall think myself obliged to make those opinions the masters of my conscience. But if it may be doubted whether Omnipotence itself is competent to alter the essential constitution of right and wrong, sure I am, that such things, as they and I, are possessed of no such power. No man carries further than I do the poUcy of making government pleasing to the people. But the widest range of this politic complaisance is confined within the limits of justice. I would not only consult the interests of the people, but 1 would cheerfully gratify their humors. We are all a sort of children that must be soothed and managed. I think I am not austere or formal in my nature. I would bear, I would even myself play my part in, any innocent buffooneries, to divert them. But I never will act the tyrant for their amuse- ment. If they will mix malice in their sports, I shall never consent to throw them any living, sentient creature whatsoever ; no, not so much as a kitling, to torment. " But if I profess all this impolitic stubbornness, I may chance never to be elected into parliament." It is certainly not pleasing to be put out of the public service. But I wish to be a member of parliament, to have my share of doing good, and resisting evil. It would therefore be absurd to renounce my objects, in order to obtain my seat. I deceive myself indeed most grossly, if I had not much rather pass the remainder of my life hidden in the recesses of the deepest obscurity, feeding my mind even with the visions and imaginations of such things, than to be placed on the most splendid throne of the universe, tantalized with a denial of the practice of all which can make the greatest situation any other than the greatest curse. Gentlemen, I have had my day. I can never sufficiently express my gratitude to you for having set me in a place, wherein I could lend the slightest help to great and laudable designs. If I have had my share, in any measure giving quiet to private property, and private conscience ; if by my vote I have aided in securing to families the best possession, peace ; if I have joined in reconcil- ing kings to their subjects, and subjects to their prince ; if I have assisted to loosen the foreign holdings of the citizen, and taught him to look for his protection to the laws of his country, and for his comfort to the good-will of his countrymen ; — if I TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 129 have thus taken my part with the best of men in the best of their actions, I can shut the book. I might wish to read a page or two more ; but this is enough for my measure. — I have not Uved in vain. And now, gentlemen, on this serious day, when I come, as it were, to make up my account with you, let me take to myself some degree of honest pride on the nature of the charges that are against me. I do not here stand before you accused of venality, or of neglect of duty. It is not said, that, in the long period of my service, I have, in a single instance, sacrificed the slightest of your interests to my ambition, or to my fortune. It is not alleged, that, to gratify any anger or revenge of my own, or of my party, I have had a share in wronging or oppressing any description of men, or any one man in any description. No ! the charges against me are all of one kind, that I have pushed the principles of general justice and benevo- lence too far ; further than a cautious policy would warrant ; and further than the opinions of many would go along with me. — In every accident which may happen through life, in pain, in sorrow, in depression, and distress, I will call to mind this accusation, and be comforted. R MR. BURKE'S SPEECH, ON THE NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. The times we live in, Mr. Speaker, have been distinguished by extraordinary ev^ents. Habituated, as we are, to uncom- mon combinations of men and of aflairs, I believe nobody recollects anything more surprising than the spectacle of this day. The right honorable gentleman, whose conduct is now in question, formerly stood forth in this house, the prosecutor of the worthy baronet who spoke after him. He charged him with several grievous acts of malversation in ofhce ; with abuses of a public trust of a great and heinous nature. In less than two years we see the situation of parties reversed ; and a singular revolution puts the worthy baronet in a fair way of returning the prosecution in a recriminatory bill of pains and penalties, grounded on a breach of public trust, relative to the government of the very same part of India. If he should un- dertake a bill of that kind, he will find no difficulty in conduct- ing it with a degree of skill and vigor fully equal to all that have been exerted against him. But the change of relation between these two gentlemen is not so striking as the total difference of their deportment under the same unhappy circumstances. Whatever the merits of the worthy baronet's defence might have been, he did not shrink from the charge. He met it with manliness of spirit, and decency of behavior. What would have been thought of him, if he had held the present language of his old accuser? When articles wei^e exhibited against him by that right honor- able gentleman, he did not think proper to tell the house that we ought to institute no inquiry, to inspect no paper, to exam- ine no witness. He did not tell us (what at that time he might have told us with some show of reason) that our concerns in India were matters of delicacy; that to divulge anything rela- tive to them would be mischievous to the state. He did- not tell us, that those who would inquire into his proceedings were disposed to dismember the empire. He had not the presump- tion to say, that, for his part, having obtained, in his Indian presidency, the ultimate object of his ambition, his honor was concerned in executing with integrity the trust which had been legally committed to his charge. That others, not having been SPEECH ON THE NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. 131 SO fortunate, could not be so disinterested ; and therefore their accusations could spring from no other source than faction, and envy to his fortune. Had he been frontless enough to hold such vain, vaporing language in the face of a grave, a detailed, a specified matter of accusation, whilst he violently resisted everything which could bring the merits of his cause to the test ; had he been wild enough to anticipate the absurdities of this day ; that is, had he inferred, as his late accuser has thought proper to do, that he could not have been guilty of malversation in office, for this sole and curious reason, that he had been in office ; had he argued the impossibility of his abusing his 'power on this sole principle, that he had power to abuse, he would have left but one impression on the mind of every man who heard him, and who believed him in his senses — that in the utmost extent he was guilty of the charge. But, Sir, leaving these two gentlemen to alternate, as crim- inal and accuser, upon what principles they think expedient ; it is for us to consider. Whether the chancellor of the exchequer, and the treasurer of the navy, acting as a board of control, are justified by law or policy, in suspending the legal arrange- ments made by the court of directors, in order to transfer the public revenues to the private emolument of certain servants of the East India company, without the inquiry into the origin and justice of their claims prescribed by an act of parliament ? It is not contended that the act of parliament did not ex- pressly ordain an inquiry. It is not asserted that this inquiry was not, with equal precision of terms, specially committed under particular regulations to the court of directors. I con- ceive, therefore, the board of control had no right whatsoever to intermeddle in that business. There is nothing certain in the principles of jurisprudence, if this be not undeniably true, that when a special authority is given to any persons by name, to do some particular act, no others, by virtue of general pow- ers, can obtain a legal title to intrude themselves into that trust, and to exercise those special functions in their place. I there- fore consider the intermeddling of ministers in this affair as a downright usurpation. But if the strained construction by which they have forced themselves into a suspicious office (which every man delicate with regard to character, would rather have sought constructions to avoid) were perfectly Siound and perfectly legal, of this I am certain, that they can- not be justified in declining the inquiry which had been pre- scribed to the court of directors. If the board of control did lawfully possess the right of executing the special trust given to that court, they must take it as they found it, subject to the J 32 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE very same regulations which bound the court of directors. It will be allowed that the court of directors had no authority to dispense with either the substance, or the mode of inquiry, pre- scribed by the act of parliament. If they had not, where, in the act, did the board of control acquire that capacity ? In- deed, it was impossible they should acquire it. — What must we think of the fabric and texture of an act of parliament which should find it necessary to prescribe a strict inquisition ; that should descend into minute regulations for the conduct of that inquisition ; that should commit this trust to a particular de- scription of men, and in the very same breath should enable another body, -at their own pleasure, to supersede all the pro- visions the legislature had made, and to defeat the whole pur- pose, end, and object of the law 1 This cannot be supposed even of an act of parliament conceived by the ministers them- selves, and brought forth during the delirium of the last session. My honorable friend has told you in the speech which intro- duced his motion, that fortunately this question is not a great deal involved in the labyrinths of Indian detail. Certainly not But if it were, I beg leave to assure you, that there is nothing in the Indian detail which is more difficult than in the detail of any other business. I admit, because I have some experience of the fact, that for the interior regulation of India, a minute knowledge of India is requisite. But, on any specific matter of delinquency in its government, you are as capable of judg- ing, as if the same thing were done at your door. Fraud, in- justice, oppression, peculation, engendered in India, are crimes of the same blood, family, and cast with those that are born and bred in England. To go no further than the case before us: you are just as competent to judge whether the sum of four millions sterling ought, or ought not, to be passed from the public treasury into a private pocket, without any title ex- cept the claim of the parties, when the issue of fact is laid in Madras, as when it is laid in Westminster, Terms of art, indeed, are different in different places, but they are generally understood in none. The technical style of an Indian treasury is not one jot more remote than the jargon of our own exche- quer, from the train of our ordinary ideas, or the idiom of our common language. The difl^erence, therefore, in the two cases is not in the comparative difficulty or facility of the two sub- jects, but in our attention to the one, and our total neglect of the other. Had this attention and neglect been regulated by the value of the several objects, there would be nothing to complain of. But the reverse of that supposition is true. The scene of the Indian abuse is distant indeed ; but we must not infer, that the value of our interest in it is decreased in propor- NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. 133 tion as it recedes from our view. In our politics, as in our common conduct, we shall be worse than infants, if we do not put our senses under the tuition of our judgment, and eflectually cure ourselves of that optical illusion which makes a briar at our nose of greater magnitude than an oak at five hundred yards distant. I think I can trace all the calamities of this country to the single source of our not having had steadily before our eyes a genera], comprehensive, well-connected, and well-proportioned view of the whole of our dominions, and a just sense of their true bearings and relations. After all its reductions, the British empire is still vast and various. After all the reductions of the house of commons (stripped as we are of our brightest orna- ments, and of our most important privileges) enough are yet left to furnish us, if we please, with means of showing to the world, that we deserve the superintendence of as large an em- pire as this kingdom ever held, and the continuance of as ample privileges as the house of commons, in the plenitude of its power, had been habituated to assert. But if, we make our- selves too little for the sphere of our duty ; if, on the contrary, we do not stretch and expand our minds to the compass of their object, be well assured, that everything about us will dwindle by degrees, until at length our concerns are shrunk to the dimensions of our minds. It is not a predilection to mean, sordid, home-bred cares, that will avert the consequences of a false estimation of our interest, or prevent the shameful dilapi- dation into which a great empire must fall, by mean repara- tions upon mighty ruins. I confess I feel a degree of disgust, almost leading to despair, at the manner in which we are acting in the great exigencies of our country. There is now a bill in this house, appointing a rigid inquisition into the minutest detail of our ofiices at home. The collection of sixteen millions annually ; a collection on which the public greatness, safety, and credit have their reli- ance ; the whole order of criminal jurisprudence, which holds together society itself, have at no time obliged us to call forth such powers ; no, nor anything like them. There is not a prin- ciple of the law and constitution of this country that is not subverted to favor the execution of that project. And for what is all this apparatus of bustle and terror ? Is it because anything substantial is expected from it ? No. The stir and bustle itself is the end proposed. The eye-servants of a short- sighted master will employ themselves, not on what is most essential to his affairs, but on what is nearest to his ken. Great difficulties have given a just value to economy; and our minis- ter of the day must be an economist, whatever it may cost us. 12 134 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE But where is he to exert his talents 1 At home, to be sure ; for wher'i else can he obtain a profitable credit for their exertion ? It is nothing to him, whether the object on which he works under our eye be promising or not. If he does not obtain any pubhc benefit, he may make regulations without end. Those are sure to pay in present expectation, whilst the effect is at a dis- tance, and may be the concern of other times, and other men. On these principles he chooses to suppose (for he does not pre- tend more than to suppose) a naked possibility, that he shall draw some resource out of crumbs dropped from the trenchers of penury; that something shall be laid in store from the short allowance of revenue officers, overloaded with duty, and fam- ished for want of bread ; by a reduction from officers who are at this very hour ready to batter the treasury with what breaks through stone walls, for an increase of their appointments. From the marrowless bones of these skeleton establishments, by the use of every sort of cutting, and of every sort of fretting tool, he flatters himself that he may chip and rasp an empirical alimentary powder, to diet into some similitude of health and substance the languishing chimeras of fraudulent reformation. Whilst he is thus employed according to his policy and to his taste, he has not leisure to inquire into those abuses in India that are drawing off" money by millions from the treasures of this country, which are exhausting the vital juices from mem- bers of the state, where the public inanition is far more sorely felt than in the local exchequer of England. Not content with winking at these abuses, whilst he attempts to squeeze the laborious ill-paid drudges of English revenue, he lavishes in one act of corrupt prodigality, upon those who never served the public in any honest occupation at all, an annual income equal to two thirds of the w^hole collection of the revenues of this kingdom. Actuated by the same principle of choice, he has now on the anvil another scheme, full of difficulty and desperate hazard, which totally alters the commercial relation of two kingdoms ; and what end soever it shall have, may bequeath a legacy of heart-burning and discontent to one of the countries, perhaps to both, to be perpetuated to the latest posterity. This project is also undertaken on the hope of profit. It is provided, that out of some (I know not what) remains of the Irish hereditary revenue, a fund at some time, and of some sort, should be applied to the protection of the Irish trade. Here we are com- manded again to task our faith, and to persuade ourselves, that out of the surplus of deficiency, out of the savings of habitual and systematic prodigality, the minister of wonders will pro- vide support for this nation, sinking under the mountainous load NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. 135 of two hundred and thirty milUons of debt. But whilst we look with pain at his desperate and laborious trifling ; whilst we are apprehensive that he will break his back in stooping to pick up chaff' and straws, he recovers himself at an elastic bound, and with a broad-cast swing of his arms, he squanders over his Indian field a sum far greater than the clear produce of the whole hereditary revenue of the kingdom of Ireland. Sti'ange as this scheme of conduct in ministry is, and incon- sistent with all.just policy, it is still true to itself, and faithful to its own perverted order. Those who are bountiful to crimes, will be rigid to merit, and penurious to serAdce. Their penury is even held out as a blind and cover to their prodigality. The economy of injustice is to furnish resources for the fund of corruption. Then they pay off:" their protection to great crimes and great criminals, by being inexorable to the paltry frailties of little men ; and these modern flagellants are sure,, with a rigid fidelity, to whip their own enormities on the vicarious back of every small offender. It is to draw your attention to economy of quite another order; it is to animadvert on offences of a far different de- scription, that my honorable friend has brought before you the motion of this day. It is to perpetuate the abuses which are subverting the fabric of your empire, that the motion is opposed. It is therefore with reason (and if he has power to carry him- self through, I commend his prudence) that the right honorable gentleman makes his stand at the very outset; and boldly refuses all parliamentaiy information. Let him admit but one step towards inquiry, and he is undone. You must be ignorant, or he cannot be safe. But before his curtain is let down, and the shades of eternal night shall veil our eastern dominions from our view, permit me, sir, to "avail myself of the means which were furnished in anxious and inquisitive times, to de- monstrate out of this single act of the present minister, what advantages you are to derive from permitting the greatest concern of this nation to be separated from the cognizance, and exempted even out of the competence, of parliament. The greatest body of your revenue, your most numerous armies, your most important commerce, the richest sources of your public credit, (contrary to every idea of the known settled poUcy of England) are on the point of being converted into a mystery of state. You are going to have one half of the globe hid even from the common liberal curiosity of an English gentleman. Here a grand revolution commences. Mark the period, and mark the circumstances. In most of the capital changes that are recorded in the principles and system of any government, a public benefit of some kind or other has been 136 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE pretended. The revolution commenced in something plausible, in something which carried the appearance at least of punish- ment of delinquency, or correction of abuse. But here, in the very moment of the conversion of a department of British government into an Indian mystery, and in the very act in which the change commences, a corrupt, private interest is set up in direct opposition to the necessities of the nation. A diversion is made of millions of the public money from the public treasury to a private purse. It is not into secret nego- tiations for war, peace, or alliance, that the house of commons is forbidden to inquire. It is a matter of account ; it is a pecu- niary transaction ; it is the demand of a suspected steward upon ruined tenants and an embarrassed master, that the com- mons of Great Britain are commanded not to inspect. The whole tenor, of the right honorable gentleman's argument is consonant to the nature of his policy. The system of conceal- ment is fostered by a system of falsehood. False facts, false colors, false names of persons and things, are its whole support. Sir, I mean to follow the right honorable gentleman over that field of deception, clearing what he has purposely obscured, and fairly stating what it was necessary for him to misrepre- sent. For this purpose, it is necessary you should know with some degree of distinctness, a httle of the locality, the nature, the circumstances, the magnitude of the pretended debts on which this marvellous donation is founded, as well as of the persons from whom and by whom it is claimed. Madras, with its dependencies, is the second (but with a long interval, the second) member of the British empire in the east. The trade of that city, and of the adjacent territory, was, not very long ago, among the most flourishing in Asia. But since the establishment of the British power, it has wasted away under a uniform, gradual decline ; insomuch that in the year 1779 not one merchant of eminence was to be found in the whole country. During this period of decay, about six hundred thousand sterling pounds a year have been drawn off by Eng- lish gentlemen on their private account, by the way of China alone. If we add four hundred thousand, as probably remitted through other channels, and in other mediums, that is, in jewels, gold, and silver directly brought to Europe, and in bills upon the British and foreign companies, you will scarcely think the matter over-rated. If we fix the commencement of this extraction of money from the Carnatic at a period no earlier than the year 1760, and close it in the year 1780, it probably will not amount to a great deal less than twenty millions of money. During the deep silent flow of this steady stream of wealth. NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. I37 which set from India into Europe, it generally passed on with no adequate observation ; but happening at some periods to meet rifts of rocks that checked its course, it grew more noisy, and attracted more notice. The pecuniary discussions caused by an accumulation of part of the fortunes of their servants in a debt from the nabob of Arcot, was the first thing which very particularly called for, and long engaged, the attention of the court of directors. This debt amounted to eight hundred and eighty thousand pounds sterling, and was claimed, for the greater part, by English gentlemen, residing at Madras. This grand capital, settled at length by order at ten per cent, afforded an annuity of eighty-eight thousand pounds. Whilst the directors were digesting their astonishment at this information, a memorial was presented to them from three gentlemen, informing them that their friends had lent likewise, to merchants of Canton in China, a sum of not more than one million sterling. In this memorial they called upon the com- pany for their assistance and interposition with the Chinese government for the recovery of the debt. This sum lent to Chinese merchants, was at 24 pe?- cent., which would yield, if paid, an annuity of two hundred and forty thousand pounds. Perplexed as the directors were with these demands, you may conceive, Sir, that they did not find themselves very much disembarrassed, by being made acquainted that they must again exert their influence for a new reserve of the happy parsimony of their servants, collected into a second debt from the nabob of Arcot, amounting to two millions four hundred thousand pounds, settled at an interest of 12 per cent. This is known by the name of the Consolidation of 1777, as the former of the nabob's debts was by the title of the Consolidation of 1767. To this was added, in a separate parcel, a little reserve called the Cavalry debt, of one hundred and sixty thousand pounds, at the same interest. The whole of these four capitals, amounting to four millions four hundred and forty thousand pounds, pro- duced at their several rates, annuities amounting to six hundred and twenty-three thousand pounds a year ; a good deal more than one third of the clear land-tax of England, at four shillings in the pound ; a good deal more than double the whole annual dividend of the East India company, the nominal mas- ters to the proprietors in these funds. Of this interest, three hundred and eighty-three thousand two hundred pounds a year stood chargeable on the public revenues of the Carnatic. Sir, at this moment, it will not be necessary to consider the various operations which the capital and interest of this debt have successively undergone. I shall speak to these operations S . 12 * 138 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE when I come particularly to answer the right honorable gentle- man on each of the heads, as he has thought proper to divide them. But this was the exact view in which these debts first appeared to the court of directors, and to the world. It varied afterwards. But it never appeared in any other than a most questionable shape. When this gigantic phantom of debt firs-t appeared before a young minister, it naturally would have jus- tified some degree of doubt and apprehension. Such a prodigy would have filled any common man with superstitious fears. He would exorcise that shapeless, nameless form, and by everything sacred would have adjured it to tell by what means a small number of slight individuals, of no consequence or situation, possessed of no lucrative offices, without the com- mand of armies, or the known administration of revenues, without profession of any kind, without any sort of trade suffi- cient to employ a pedlar, could have, in a few years (as to some even in a few months) amassed treasures equal to the revenues of a respectable kingdom ? Was it not enough to put these gentlemen, in the noviciate of their administration, on their guard, and to call upon them for a strict inquiry (if not to justify them in a reprobation of those demands without any inquiry at all) that when all England, Scotland, and Ireland had for years been witness to the immense sums laid out by the servants of the company in stocks of all denominations, in the purchase of lands, in the buying and building of houses, in the securing quiet seats in parliament, or in the tumultuous riot of contested elections, in wandering throughout the whole range of those variegated modes of inventive prodigality, which sometimes have excited our wonder, sometimes roused our in- dignation; that after all India was four millions still in debt to them? India in debt to ihern! For what? Every debt for which an equivalent of some kind or other is not given, is on the face of it a fraud. What is the equivalent they have given ? What equivalent had they to give ? What are the articles of commerce, or the branches of manufacture, which those gentle men have carried hence to enrich India ? What are the sci- ences they beamed out to enlighten it? What are the arts they introduced to cheer and to adorn it? What are the religious, what the moral institutions they have taught among that people as a guide to life, or as a consolation when life is to be no more, that there is an eternal debt, a debt " still paying, still to owe," which must be bound on the present generation in India, and entailed on their mortgaged posterity for ever ? A debt of millions, in favor of a set of men, whose names, with few ex- ceptions, are either buried in the obscurity of their origin and talents, or draped into light by the enormity of their crimes ? NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. 139 If this body of private claims of debt, real or devised, were a question, as it is falsely pretended, between the nabob of Arcot, as debtor, and Paul Benfield and his associates, as cred- itors, I am sure I should give myself but little trouble about it. If the hoards of oppression were the fund for satisfying the claims of bribery and peculation, who would wish to interfere between such litigants? If the demands were confined to what might be drawn from the treasures which the company's records uniformly assert that the nabob is in possession of; or if he had mines of gold, or silver, or diamonds (as we know that he has none) these gentlemen might break open his hoards, or dig in his mines, without any disturbance from me. But the gentlemen on the other side of the house know as well as I do, and they dare not contradict me, that the nabob of Arcot and his creditors are not adversaries, but collusive parties, and that the whole transaction is under a false color and false names. The litiga- tion is not, nor ever has been, between their rapacity and his hoarded riches. No ; it is between him and them combining and confederating on one side, and the public revenues, and the miserable inhabitants of a ruined country, on the other. These are the real plaintiffs and the real defendants in the suit. Refus- ing a shilling from his hoards for the satisfaction of any demand, the nabob of Arcot is always ready, nay, he earnestly, and with eagerness and passion, contends for delivering up to these pretended creditors his territory and his subjects. It is therefore not from treasuries and mines, but from the food of your unpaid armies, from the blood withheld from the veins, and whipt out of the backs of the most miserable of men, that we are to pamper extortion, usury, and peculation, under the false names of debtors and creditors of state. The great patron of these creditors (to whose honor they ought to erect statues) tlic right honorable gentleman, in stating the merits which recommended them to his favor, has ranked them under three grand divisions. The first, the creditors of 1767; then the creditors of the cavalry loan; and lastly, the creditors of the loan in 1777. Let us examine them one by one, as they pass in review before us. The first of these loans, that of 1707, he insists, had an indis- putable claim upon the public justice. The creditors, he affirms, lent their money publicly ; they advanced it with the express knowledge and approbation of the company ; and it was con- tracted at the moderate interest of ten per cent. In this loan the demand is, according to him, not only just, but meritorious in a very high degree ; and one would be inclined to believe he thought so, because he has put it last in the provision he has made for these claims. 140 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE I readily admit this debt to stand the fairest of the whole , for whatever may be my suspicions concerning a part of it, I can convict it of nothing worse than the most enormous usury But I can convict upon the spot the right honorable gentleman. of the most daring misrepresentation in every one fact, without any exception, that he has alleged in defence of this loan, and of "his own conduct with regard to it. I will show you that this debt was never contracted with the knowledge of the company ; that it had not their approbation ; that they received the first intelligence of it with the utmost possible surprise, indignation, and alarm. So far from being previously apprized of the transaction from its origin, that it was two years before the court of directors obtained any official intelligence of it. " The dealings of the servants with the nabob were concealed from the first, until they were found out" (says Mr. Sayer, the company's counsel) " by the report of the country." The presidency, however, at last thought proper to send an official account. On this the directors tell them, "to your great reproach it has been concealed from us. We cannot but suspect this debt to have had its weight in your proposed aggrandizement of Mahomed All [the nabob of Arcot] ; but whether it has or has not, certain it is, you are guihy of a high breach of duty in concealing it from us." These expressions, concerning the ground of the transaction, its effect, and its clandestine nature, are in the letters, bearing date March 17, 1769. After receiving a more full account on the 23d March, 1770, they state, that " Messrs. John Pybus, John Call, and James Bourchier, as trustees for themselves and others of the nabob's private creditors, had proved a deed of assignment upon the nabob and his son of FIFTEEN districts of the nabob's country, the revenues of which yielded, in time of peace, eight lacs of pagodas [320,000/. sterling] annually ; and likewise an assignment of the yearly tribute paid the nabob from the rajah of Tanjore, amounting to four lacks of rupees [40,000/.]" The territorial revenue, at that time possessed by these gentlemen, without the knowledge or consent of their masters, amounted to three hundred an sixty thousand pounds sterling annually. They were making i-apid strides to the entire possession of the country, when the directors, whom the right honorable gentleman states as having authorized these proceed- ings, were kept in such profound ignorance of this royal acqui- sition of territorial revenue by their servants, that in the same letter they say, " this assignment was obtained by three of the members of your board, in January 1767, yet we do not find the hast trace of it upon your consultations, until August 1768, nor do any of your letters to us afford any information relative to NABOB . OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. 141 such transactions, till the 1st of November, 1768. By your last letters of the 8th of May, 1769, you bring the whole proceed- ings to liglit in one view." As to the previous knowledge of the company, and its sanction to the debts, you see that this assertion of that knowledge is utterly unfounded. But did the directors approve of it, and ratify the transaction when it was known? The very reverse. On the same third of March, the directors declare, " upon an impartial examination of the whole conduct of our late governor and council of Fort George [Madras] and on the fullest con- sideration, that the said governor and council have, in notorious violation of the trust reposed in them, manifestly p-eferred the interest of private individuals to that of the company, in permitting the assignment of the revenues of certain valuable districts, to a very large amount, from the nabob to individuals" — and then highly aggravating their crimes, they add : " We order and direct that you do examine, in the most impartial manner, all the above-mentioned transactions; and that you punish by suspension, degradation, dismission or otherwise, as to you shall seem meet, all and every such servant or servants of the company, who may by you be found guilty of any of the above offences." " We had (say the directors) the mortification to find that the servants of the company, who had been raised, supported, and owed their present opulence to the advantages gained in such service, have in this instance most unfaithfully betrayed their trust, abandoned the company's interest, and prostituted its influence to accomplish the purposes of individuals, whilst the interest of the company is almost icholly neglected, and payment to us rendered extremely precarious." Here then is the rock of approbation of the court of directors, on which the right honorable gentleman says this debt was founded. Any member, Mr. Speaker, who should come into the house, on my reading this sentence of condemnation of the court of directors against their unfaithful servants, might well imagine that he had heard a harsh, severe, unqualified invective against the present ministerial board of control. So exactly do the proceedings of the patrons of this abuse tally with those of the actors in it, that the expressions used in the condemnation of the one, may serve for the reprobation of the other, without the change of a word. To read you all the expressions of wrath and indignation fulminated in this dispatch against the meritorious creditors of the right honorable gentleman, who, according to him, have been so fully approved by the company, would be to read the whole. The right honorable gentleman, with an address peculiar to 142 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE himself, every now and then slides in the presidency of Ma dras, as synonymous to the company. That the presidency did approve the debt, is certain. But the right honorable gen- tleman, as prudent in suppressing, as skilful in bringing for- ward his matter, has not chosen to tell you that the presidency were the very persons guilty of contracting this loan ; credit- ors themselves, and agents and trustees for all the other cred- itors. For this, the court of directors accuse them of breach of trust; and for this, the right honorable gentleman considers them as perfectly good authority for those claims. It is plea- sant to hear a gentleman of- the law quote the approbation of creditors as an authority for their own debt. How they came to contract the debt to themselves, how they came to act as agents for those whom they ought to have controlled, is for your inquiry. The policy of this debt was announced to the court of directors, by the very persons con- cerned in creating it. " Till very lately," (say the presidency) " the nabob placed his dependence on the company. Now he has been taught by ill advisers, that an interest out of doors may stand him in good stead. He has been made to believe that his private creditors have power and interest to overrule the court of directors." The nabob was not misinformed. The private creditors instantly qualified a vast number of votes ; and having made themselves masters of the court of proprie- tors, as well as extending a powerful cabal in other places as important, they so completely overturned the authority of the court of directors at home and abroad, that this poor baffled government was soon obliged to lower its tone. It was glad to be admitted into partnership with its own servants. The court of directors establishing the debt which they had repro- bated as a breach of trust, and which was planned for the sub- version of their authority, settled its payments on a par with those of the public ; and even so, were not able to obtain peace or even equality in their demands. All the consequences lay in a regular and irresistible train. By employing their influ- ence for the recovery of this debt, their orders, issued in the same breath, against creating new debts, only animated the strong desires of their servants to this prohibited prolific sport, and it soon produced a swarm of sons and daughters, not in the least degenerated from the virtue of their parents. From that moment, the authority of the court of directors expired in the Carnatic, and everywhere else. " Every man," says the presidency, " who opposes the government and its measures, finds an immediate countenance from the nabob; even our discarded officers, however unworthy, are received into the nabob's service." It was indeed a matter of no won NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. 143 derful sagacity to determine whether the court of directors, with their miserable salaries to their servants, of four or five hundred pounds a year, or the distributor of millions, was most likely to be obeyed. It was an invention beyond the imr.gina- tion of all the speculatists of our speculating age, to see a government quietly settled in one and the same town, com- posed of two distinct members ; one to pay scantily for obe- dience, and the other to bribe high for rebellion and revolt. The next thing which recommends this particular debt to the right honorable gentleman is, it seems, the moderate inter- est of ten per cent. It would be lost labor to observe on this assertion. The nabob, in a long apologetic letter for the trans- action between him and the body of the creditors, states the fact, as I shall state it to you. In the accumulation of this debt, the first interest paid, was from thirty to thirty-six per cent, it was then brought down to twenty-five per cent., at length it was reduced to twenty ; and there it found its rest. During the whole process, as often as any of these monstrous interests fell into an arrear (into which they were continually falling) the arrear, formed into a new capital, was added to the old, and the same interest of twenty per cent, accrued upon both. The company, having got some scent of the enormous usury which prevailed at Madras, thought it necessary to interfere, and to order all interests to be lowered to ten per cent. This order, which contained no exception, though it by no means pointed particularly to this class of debts, came like a thunderclap on the nabob. He considered his political credit as ruined ; but to find a remedy to this unexpected evil, he again added to the old principal twenty per cent, interest accruing for the last year. Thus a new fund was formed ; and it was on that ac- cumulation of various principals, and interests heaped upon in- terests, not on the sum originally lent, as the right honorable gentleman would make you believe, that ten per cent, was set- tled on the whole. When you consider the enormity of the interest at which these debts were contracted, and the several interests added to the principal, I believe you will not think me too sceptical, if I should doubt, whether 'for this debt of 880,000/. the nabob ever saw 100,000/. in real money. The right honorable gen- tleman suspecting, with all his absolute dominion over fact, that he never will be able to defend even this venerable patri- archal job, though sanctified by its numerous issue, and hoary with prescriptive years, has recourse to recrimination, the last resource of guilt. He says that this loan of 1767 was pro- vided for in Mr. Fox's India bill ; and judging of others by his own nature and principles, he more than insinuates, that J 44 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE this provision was made, not from any sense of merit in the claim, but from partiality to general Smith, a proprietor, and an agent for that debt. If partiality could have had any weight against justice and policy, with the then ministers and their friends, general Smith had titles to it. But the right honorable gentleman knows as well as I do, that general Smith was very far from looking on himself as partially treated in the arrangements of that time ; indeed what man dared to hope for private partiality in that sacred plan for relief to nations? It is not necessary that the right honorable gentleman should sarcastically call that time to our recollection. Well do I re- member every circumstance of that memorable period. God forbid I should forget it. O illustrious disgrace ! O victorious defeat ! may your memorial be fresh and new to the latest generations ! May the day of that generous conflict be stamped in characters never to be cancelled or worn out from the re- cords of time ! Let no man hear of us, who shall not hear that in a struggle against the intrigues of courts, and the perfidious levity of the multitude, we fell in the cause of honor, in the cause of our country, in the cause of human nature itself! But if fortune should be as powerful over fame, as she has been prevalent over virtue, at least our conscience is beyond her jurisdiction. My poor share in the support of that great measure, no man shall ravish from me. It shall be safely lodged in the sanctuary of my heart ; never, never to be torn from thence, but with those holds that grapple it to life. I say, I well remember that bill, and every one of its honest and its wise provisions. It is not true that this debt was ever protected or enforced, or any revenue whatsoever set apart for it. It was left in that bill just where it stood ; to be paid or not to be paid out of the nabob's private treasures, according to his own discretion. The company had actually given it their sanc- tion ; though always relying for its validity on the sole security of the faith of him, who, without their knowledge or consent, entered into the original obligation. It had no other sanction ; it ought to have had no other. So far was Mr. Fox's bill for providing funds for it, as this ministry have wickedly done for this, and for ten times worse transactions, out of the pub- lic estate, that an express clause immediately preceded, posi- tively forbidding any British subject from receiving assign- ments upon any part of the territorial revenue, on any pretence whatsoever. You recollect, Mr. Speaker, that the chancellor of the ex- chequer strongly professed to retain every part of Mr. Fox's bill, which was intended to prevent abuse ; but in his India bill, which (let me do justice) is as able and skilful a performance NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. 145 for its own purposes, as ever issued from the wit of man, pre- meditating this iniquity — hoc ipsum ut strueret Trojamque aperiret Achivis, expunged this essential clause, broke down the fence which was raised to cover the public property against the rapacity of his partisans, and thus levelling every obstruc- tion, he made a firm, broad highway for sin and death, for usury and oppression, to renew their ravages throughout the devoted revenues of the Carnatic. The tenor, the policy, and the consequences of this debt of 1767, are, in the eyes of ministry, so excellent, that its merits are irresistible ; and it takes the lead to give credit and coun- tenance to all the rest. Along with this chosen body of heavy- armed infantry, and to support it, in the line, the right honorable gentleman has stationed his coi'ps of black cavalry. If there be any advantage between this debt and that of 1769, according to him the cavalry debt has it. It is not a subject of defence ; it is a theme of panegyric. Listen to the right honorable gen- tleman, and you will find it was contracted to save the country ; to prevent mutiny in armies ; to introduce economy in reve- nues ; and for all these honorable purposes, it originated at the express desire, and by the representative authority, of the com- pany itself. First, let me say a word to the authority. This debt was contracted not by the authority of the company, not by its re- presentatives (as the right honorable gentleman has the unpar- alleled confidence to assert), but in the ever memorable period of 1777, by the usurped power of those who rebelliously, in conjunction with the nabob of Arcot, had overturned the lawful government of Madras. For that rebellion, this house unani- mously directed a public prosecution. The delinquents, after they had subverted government, in order to make themselves a party to support them in their power, are universally known to have dealt jobs about to the right and to the left, and to any who were wiUing to receive them. This usurpation, which the right honorable gentleman well knows, was brought about by and for the great mass of the sepretended debts, is the author- ity which is set up by him to represent the company ; to re- present that company which, from the first moment of their hearing of this corrupt and fraudulent transaction to this hour, have uniformly disowned and disavowed it. So much for the authority. As to the facts, partly true, and partly colorable, as they stand recorded, they are in substance these. — The nabob of Arcot, as soon as he had thrown off the superiority of this country by means of these creditors, kept up a great army which he never paid. Of course, his soldiers were generally in a state of mutiny. The usurping council say T 13 146 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE that they labored hard with their master the nabob, to persuade him to reduce these mutinous and useless troops. He consented; but as usual, pleaded inability to pay them their arrears. Here was a difficulty. The nabob had no money ; the company had no money; every public supply was empty. But there was one resource which no season has ever yet dried up in that climate. The soucars were at hand ; that is, private English money-jobbers offered their assistance. Messieurs Taylor, Majendie and Call, proposed to advance the small sum of 160,000/. to pay off" the nabob's black cavalry, provided the company's authority was given for their loan. This was the great point of policy always aimed at, and pursued through a hundred devices, by the servants at Madras. The presidency, who themselves had no authority for the functions they pre- sumed to exercise, very readily gave the sanction of the company to those servants who knew that the company, whose sanction was demanded, had positively prohibited all such transactions. However, so far as the reality of the dealing goes, all is hith- erto fair and plausible; and here the right honorable gentleman concludes, with commendable prudence, his account of the business. But here it is I shall beg leave to commence my « supplement : for the gentleman's discreet modesty has led him to cut the thread of the story somewhat abruptly. One of the most essential parties is quite forgotten. Why should the episode of the poor nabob be omitted? When that prince chooses it, nobody can tell his story better. Excuse me, if I apply again to my book, and give it you from the first hand ; from the nabob himself. " Mr. Stratton became acquainted with this, and got Mr. Taylor and others to lend me four lacs of pagodas towards discharging the arrears of pay of my troops. Upon this, I wrote a letter of thanks to Mr. Stratton; and upon the faith of this money being paid immediately, I ordered many of my troops to be discharged by a certain day, and lessened the number of my servants. Mr. Taylor, &c. some time after ac- quainted me, that they had no ready money, but they would grant teeps payable in four months. This astonished me ; for I did not know what might happen, when the sepoys were dis- missed from my service. I begged of Mr. Taylor and the others to pay this sum to the officers of my regiments at the time they mentioned ; and desired the officers, at the same time, to pacify and persuade the men belonging to them, that their pay would be given to them at the end of four months; and that till those arrears were discharged, their pay should be con- tinued to them. Tico years are nearly expired since that time, but Mr. Taylor has not yet entirely discharged the arrears of NABOB OF ARCOT'S DEBTS. 147 those troops, and I am obliged to continue their pay from that time till this. I hoped to have been able, by this expedient, to have lessened the number of my troops, and discharged the arrears due to them, considering the trifle of interest to Mr. Taylor, and the others, as no great matter ; but instead of this, / am oppressed with the burthen of pay due to those troops ; and the interest, ichich is going on to Mr. Taylor from the day t/ie ieeps icere granted to himJ'^ What I have read to you is an ex- tract of a letter from the nabob of the Carnatic to governor Rumbold, dated the 22d, and received the 24th of March, 1779. Suppose his highness not to be well broken in to things of this kind, it must indeed surprise so known and established a bond- vender, as the nabob of Arcot, one who keeps himself the largest bond warehouse in the world, to find that he was now to receive in kind ; not to take money for his obligations, but to give his bond in exchange for the bond of Messieurs Taylor, Majendie and Call, and to pay, besides, a good smart interest, legally 12 per cent, [in reality perhaps twenty, or twenty-four per cent.'] for this exchange of paper. But his troops were not to be so paid, or so disbanded. They wanted bread, and could not live by cutting and shufliing of bonds. The nabob still kept the troops in service, and was obliged to continue, as you have seen, the whole expense, to exonerate himself, from which he became indebted to the soucars. Had it stood here, the transaction would have been of the most audacious strain of fraud and usury, perhaps ever before discovered, whatever might have been practised and concealed. But the same authority (I mean the nabob's) brings before you something if possible more striking. He states, that for this their paper, he immediately handed over to these gentlemen something very different from paper ; that is, the receipt of a territorial revenue, of which it seems they continued as long in possession as the nabob himself continued in possession of any- thing. Their payments, therefore, not being to commence be- fore the end of four months, and not being completed in two years, it must be presumed (unless they proved the contrary) that their payments to the nabob were made out of the revenues they had received from his assignment. Thus, they conde- scended to accumulate a debt of 160,000/. with an interest of 12 per cent, in compensation for a lingering payment to the na- bob of 160,000/. of his own money. Still we have not the whole ; about two years after the as signment of those territorial revenues to these gentlemen, the nabob receives a remonstrance from his chief manager, in a principal province, of which this is the tenor : — " The entire revenue of those districts is by your highness's order set apart 148 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE to discharge the tunkaws [assignments] granted to the Euro- peans. The gomastahs [agents] of Mr. Taylor, to Mr. De Fries, are there in order to collect those tunkaws ; and as they receive all the revenue that is collected, your highness's troops have seven or eight months' pay due, which they cannot receive, and are thereby reduced to the greatest distress. In such times, it is highly necessary to provide for the sustenance of the troops, that they may be ready to exert themselves in the ser- vice of your highness." Here, Sir, you see how these causes and effects act upon one another. One body of troops mutinies for want of pay; a debt is contracted to pay them ; and they still remain unpaid. A territory destined to pay other troops, is assigned for this debt ; and these other troops fall into the same state of indi- gence and mutiny with the first. Bond is paid by bond ; ar- rear is turned into new arrear ; usury engenders new usury ; mutiny suspended in one quarter, starts up in another ; until all the revenues and all the establishments are entangled into one inextricable knot of confusion, from which they are only dis- engaged by being entirely destroyed. In that state of confu- sion, in a very few months after the date of the memorial I have just read to you, things were found, when the nabob's troops, famished to feed English soucars, instead of defending the country, joined the invaders, and deserted in entire bodies to Hyder Ali. The manner in which this transaction was carried on, shows that good examples are not easily forgot, especially by those who are bred in a great school. One of those splendid exam- ples, give me leave to mention at a somewhat more early pe- riod, because one fraud furnishes light to the discovery of an- other, and so on, until the whole secret of mysterious iniquity burst upon you in a blaze of detection. The paper I shall read you, is not on record. If you please, you may take it on my word. It is a letter written from one of undoubted inform- ation in Madras, to Sir John Clavering, describing the prac- tice that prevailed there, whilst the company's aUies were under sale, during the time of governor Winch's adminis- tration. *' One mode," says Clavering's correspondent, " of amassing money at the nabob's cost is curious. He is gene- rally in arrears to the company. Here the governor, being cash-keeper, is generally on good terms with the banker, who manages matters thus: The governor presses the nabob for the balance due from him; the nabob flies to his banker for relief; the banker engages to pay the money, and grants his notes accordingly, which he puts in the cash-book as ready NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. 149 money ; the nabob pays him an interest for it at iivo and three per cent, per mensem, till the tunkaws he grants on the particu- lar districts for it are paid. Matters in the mean time are so managed, that there is no call for this money for the com- pany's service, till the tmikaws become due. By this means not a cash is advanced by the banker, though he receives a heavy interest from the nabob, which is divided as lawful spoil." Here, Mr. Speaker, you have the whole art and mystery, the true freemason secret of the profession oi soucaring ; by which a few innocent, inexperienced young Enghshmen, such as Mr. Paul Benfield, for instance, without property upon which any one would lend to themselves a single shilling, are enabled at once to take provinces in mortgage, to make princes their debtors, and to become creditors for millions. But it seems the right honorable gentleman's favorite soucar cavalry, have proved the payment before the Mayor's court at Madras! Have they so? Why then defraud our anxiety and their characters of that proof? Is it not enough that the charges which I have laid before you, have stood on record against these poor injured gentlemen for eight years? Is it not enough that they are in print by the orders of the East India company for five years ? After these gentlemen have borne all the odium of this publication, and all the indignation of the directors, with such unexampled equanimity, now that they are at length stimulated into feeling, are you to deny them their just relief? But will the right honorable gentleman be pleased to tell us, how they came not to give this satisfaction to the coui't of directors, their lawful masters, during all the eight years of this litigated claim ? Were they not bound, by every tie that can bind man, to give them this satisfaction ? This day, for the first time, we hear of the proofs. But when were these proofs offered ? In what cause ? Who were the parties ? Who inspected ? Who contested this belated ac- count? Let us see something to oppose to the body of record which appears against them. The mayor's court ! the may or's court ! Pleasant ! Does not the honorable gentleman know, that the first corps of creditors [the creditors of 1767] stated it as a sort of hardship to them, that they could not have justice at Madras, from the impossibility of their support- ing their claims in the mayor's court? Why? because, sav they, the members of that court were themselves creditors, and therefore could not sit as judges. Are we ripe to say, that no creditor under similar circumstances was member of the court, when the payment which is the ground of this cav- alry debt was put in proof? Nay, are we not in a manner 13* 150 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE compelled to conclude, that the court was so constituted, when we know there is scarcely a man in Madras, who has not some participation in these transactions? It is a shame to hear such proofs mentioned, instead of the honest, vigorous scrutiny which the circumstances of such an affair so indis- pensably call for. But his majesty's ministers, indulgent enough to other scru- tinies, have not been satisfied with authorizing the payment of this demand without such inquiry as the act has prescribed ; but they have added the arrear of twelve per cent, interest, from the year 1777 to the year 1784, to make a new capital, raising thereby 160 to 294,000/. Then they charge a new twelve fer cent, on the whole from that period, for a transac- tion, in which it will be a miracle if a single penny will be ever found really advanced from the private stock of the pre- tended creditors. In this manner, and at such an interest, the ministers have thought proper to dispose of 294,000/. of the public revenues for what is called the cavalry loan. After dispatching this, the right honorable gentleman leads to battle his last grand divi- sion, the consolidated debt of 1777. But having exhausted all his panegyric on the two first, he has nothing at all to say in favor of the last. On the contrary, he admits that it was con- tracted in defiance of the company's orders, without even the pretended sanction of any pretended representatives. Nobody, indeed, has yet been found hardy enough to stand forth avow- edly in its defence. But it is little to the credit of the age, that what has not plausibility enough to find an advocate, has influence enough to obtain a protector. Could any man ex- pect to find that protector anywhere? But what must every man think, when he finds that protector in the chairman of the committee of secrecy, who had published to the house, and to the world, the facts that condemn these debts — the orders that forbid the incurring of them — the dreadful consequences which attended them. Even in his official letter, when he tramples on his parliamentary report, yet his general language is the same. Read the preface to this part of this ministerial ar- rangement, and you would imagine that this debt was to be crushed, with all the weight of indignation which could fall from a vigilant guardian of the public treasury, upon those who attempted to rob it. What must be felt by every man who has feeling, when, after such a thundering preamble of condemnation, this debt is ordered to be paid without any sort of inquiry into its authenticity ? without a single step taken to settle even the amount of the demand ? without an attempt so much as to ascertain the real persons claiming a sum, which NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. 151 rises in the accounts from one million three hundred thousand pounds sterling to two millions four hundred thousand pounds principal money? without an attempt made to ascertain the proprietors, of whom no list has ever yet been laid before the court of directors ; of proprietors, who are known to be in a collusive shuffle, by which they never appear to be the same in any two lists, handed about for their own particular pur- poses ? My honorable friend who made you the motion, has suffi- ciently exposed the nature of this debt. He has stated to you that its own agents in the year 1781, in the arrangement they proposed to make at Calcutta, were satisfied to have twenty-five per cent, at once struck oflf from the capital of a great part of this debt ; and prayed to have a provision made for this reduced principal, without any interest at all. This was an arrangement of their own, an arrangement made by those who best knew the true constitution of their own debt ; who knew how little favor it merited, and how little hopes they had to find any persons in authority abandoned enough to support it as it stood. But what corrupt men, in the fond imaginations of a sanguine avarice, had not the confidence to propose, they have found a chancellor of the exchequer in England hardy enough to under- take for them. He has cheered their drooping spirits. He has thanked the peculators for not despairing of their commonwealth. He has told them they were too modest. He has replaced the twenty-five per cent, which, in order to lighten themselves, they had abandoned in their conscious terror. Instead of cutting off the interest, as they had themselves consented to do, with the fourth of the capital, he has added the whole growth of four years' usury of twelve per cent, to the first overgrown principal; and has again grafted on this meliorated stock a perpetual annuity of six -per cent, to take place from the year 1781. Let no man hereafter talk of the decaying energies of nature. All the acts and monuments in the records of pecula- tion; the consolidated corruption of ages; the patterns of exemplary plunder in the heroic times of Roman iniquity, never equalled the gigantic corruption of this single act Never did Nero, in all the insolent prodigality of despotism, deal out to his pretorian guards a donation fit to be named with the largess showered down by the bounty of our chancellor of the exchequer on the faithful band of his Indian sepoys. The right honorable gentleman lets you freely and voluntarily into the whole transaction. So perfectly has his conduct con- founded his understanding, that he fairly tells you, that through the course of the whole business he has never conferred with any but the agents of the pretended creditors. After this, do you 152 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE want more to establish a secret understanding with the parties ? to fix, beyond a doubt, their collusion and participation in a common fraud? If this were not enough, he has furnished you with other presumptions that are not to be shaken. It is one of the known indications of guilt to stagger and prevaricate in a story ; and to vary in the motives that are assigned to conduct. Try these ministers by this rule. In their ofiicial dispatch, they tell the presidency of Madras, that they have established the debt for two reasons ; first, because the nabob (the party indebted) does not dispute it ; secondly, because it is mischievous to keep it longer afloat ; and that the payment of the European creditors will promote circulation in the country. These two motives (for the plainest reasons in the world) the right honorable gentle- man has this day thought fit totally to abandon. In the first place, he rejects the authority of the nabob of Arcot. It would indeed be pleasant to see him adhere to this exploded testimony. He next, upon grounds equally solid, abandons the benefits of that circulation, which was to be produced by drawing out all the juices of the body. Laying aside, or forgetting, these pretences of his dispatch, he has just now assumed a principle totally diflferent, but to the full as extraordinary. He proceeds upon a supposition, that many of the claims may be fictitious. He then finds, that in a case where many valid and many fraud- ulent claims are blended together, the best course for their discrimination is indiscriminately to establish them all. He trusts (I suppose) as there may not be a fund sufficient for every description of creditors, that the best warranted claimants M'ill exert themselves in bringing to light those debts which will not bear an inquiry. What he will not do himself, he is persuaded will be done by others ; and for this purpose he leaves to any person a general power of excepting to the debt. This total change of language, and prevarication in principle, is enough, if it stood alone, to fix the presumption of unfair dealing. His dispatch assigns motives of policy, concord, trade, and circu- lation. His speech proclaims discord and litigations ; and pro- poses, as the ultimate end, detection. But he may shift his reasons, and wind and turn as he will — confusion waits him at all his doubles. Who will undertake this detection? Will the nabob? But the right honorable gentleman has himself this moment told us, that no prince of the country can by any motive be prevailed upon to discover any fraud that is practised upon him by the company's servants. He says what (with the exception of the complaint against the cavalry loan) all the world knows to be true : and without that prince's concurrence, what evidence can be had of the fraud of any the NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. 153 smallest of these demands? The ministers never authorized any person to enter into his exchequer, and to search his records. Why then this shameful and insulting mockery of a pretended contest 1 Already contests for a preference have arisen among these rival bond creditors. Has not the company itself struggled for a preference for years, without any attempt at detection of the nature of those debts with which they contended ? Well is the nabob of Arcot attended to, in the only specific complaint he has ever made. He complained of unfair dealing in the cavalry loan. It is fixed upon him with interest on interest ; and this loan is excepted from all power of ligitation. This day, and not before, the right honorable gentleman thinks that the general establishment of all claims is the surest way of laying open the fraud of some of them. In India this is a reach of deep policy. But what would be thought of this mode of acting on a demand upon the treasury in England 1 Instead of all this cunning, is there not one plain way open, that is, to put the burthen of the proof on those who make the demand ? Ought not ministry to have said to the creditors : " The person who admits your debt stands excepted to as evidence ; he stands charged as a collusive party, to hand over the public revenues to you for sinister purposes 1 You say, you have a demand of some millions on the Indian treasury; prove that you have acted by lawful authority ; prove at least that your money has been bona fide advanced; entitle yourself to my protection, by the fairness and fullness of the communications you make." Did an honest creditor ever refuse that reasonable and honest test? There is little doubt, that several individuals have been seduced by the purveyors to the nabob of Arcot to put their money (perhaps the whole of honest and laborious earnings) into their hands, and that at such high interest, as, being condemned at law, leaves them at the mercy of the great managers whom they trusted. These seduced creditors are probably persons of no power or interest, either in England or India, and may be just objects of compassion. By taking, in this arrangement, no measures for discrimination and discovery; the fraudulent and the fair are in the first instance confounded in one mass. The subsequent selection and distribution is left to the nabob. With him the agents and instruments of his corruption, whom he sees to be omnipotent in England, and who may serve him in future, as they have done in times past, will have precedence, if not an exclusive preference. These leading interests domi- neer, and have always domineered, over the whole. By this arrangement, the persons seduced are made dependent on their seducers ; honesty (comparative honesty at least) must become U 154 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE of the party of fraud, and must quit its proper character, and its just claims, to entitle itself to the alms of bribery and pecu- lation. But be these Enghsh creditors what they may, the creditors, most certainly not fraudulent, are the natives, who are numer- ous and wretched indeed ; by exhausting the whole revenues of the Carnatic, nothing is left for them. They lent bona fide; in all probabihty they were even forced to lend, or to give goods and service for the nabob's obligations. They had no trust to carry to his market. They had no faith of alliances to sell. They had no nations to betray to robbery and ruin. They had no lawful government seditiously to overturn ; nor had they a governor to whom it is owing that you exist in India, to de- liver over to captivity, and to death, in a shameful prison. These were the merits of the principal part of the debt of 1777, and the universally conceived cause of its growth; and thus the unhappy natives are deprived of every hope of pay- ment for their real debts, to make provision for the arrears of unsatisfied bribery and treason. You see in this instance, that the presumption of guilt is not only no exception to the de- mands on the public treasury ; but with these ministers it is a necessary condition to their support. But that you may not think this preference solely owing to their known contempt of the natives, who ought, with every generous mind, to claim their first charities, you will find the same rule religiously ob- served with Europeans too. Attend, Sir, to this decisive case. Since the beginning of the war, besides arrears of every kind, a bond debt has been contracted at Madras, uncertain in its amount, but represented from four hundred thousand pounds to a million sterhng. It stands only at the low interest of eight jper cent. Of the legal authority on which this debt was con- tracted, of its purposes for the very being of the state, of its publicity and fairness, no doubt has been entertained for a mo- ment. For this debt, no sort of provision whatever has been made. It is rejected as an outcast, whilst the whole undissi- pated attention of the minister has been employed for the dis- charge of claims entitled to his favor by the merits we have seen. I have endeavored to find out, if possible, the amount of the whole of those demands, in order to see how much, supposing the country in a condition to furnish the fund, may remain to satisfy the public debt and the necessary establishments. But I have been foiled in my attempt. About one-fourth, that is, about 220,000/. of the loan of 1767, remains unpaid. How much in- terest is in arrear, I could never discover; seven or eight years at least, which would make the whole of that debt about NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. I55 396,000/. This stock, which the ministers in their instructions to the governor of Madras state as the least exceptionable, they have thought proper to distinguish by a marked severity, leaving it the only one, on which the interest is not added to the principal, to beget a new interest. The cavalry loan, by the operation of the same authority, is made up to 294,000/. ; and this 294,000/., made up of prin- cipal and interest, is crowned with a new interest of twelve 'per cent. What the grand loan, the bribery loan of 1777, may be, is amongst the deepest mysteries of state. It is probably the first debt ever assuming the title of consolidation, that did not express what the amount of the sum consolidated was. It is little less than a contradiction in terms. In the debt of the year 1767, the sum was stated in the act of consolidation, and made to amount to 880,000/., capital. When this consolidation of 1777 was first announced at the Durbar, it was i-epre- sented authentically at 2,400,000/. In that, or rather in a higher state, Sir Thomas Rumbold found and condemned it. It afterwards fell into such a terror, as to sweat away a million of its weight at once; and it sunk to 1,400,000/. However, it was never without a resource for recruiting it to its old plump- ness. There was a sort of floating debt of about 4 or 500,000/. more, ready to be added, as occasion should require. In short, when you pressed this sensitive plant, it always con- tracted its dimensions. When the rude hand of inquiry was withdrawn, it expanded in all the luxuriant vigor of its original vegetation. In the ti'eaty of 1781, the whole of the nabob's debt to private Europeans, is, by Mr. Sullivan, agent to the nabob and the creditors, stated at 2,800,000/., which (if the cavalry loan, and the remains of the debt of 1767, be subtract- ed) leaves it at the amount originally declared at the Durbar, in 1777. But then there is a private instruction to Mr. Sulli- van, which it seems will reduce it again to the lower standard of 1,400,000/. Failing in all my attempts, by a direct account, to ascertain the extent of the capital claimed (where in all probability no capital was ever advanced) I endeavored, if pos- sible, to discover it by the interest which was to be paid. For that purpose, I looked to the several agreements for assigning the territories of the Carnatic to secure the principal and in- terest of this debt. In one of them I found in a sort of postscript, by way of an additional remark (not in the body of the obhga- tion) the debt represented at 1,400,000/. But when I computed the sums to be paid for interest by instalments, in another paper, I found they produced the interest of two millions, at twelve per cent. ; and the assignment supposed, that if these instal- 156 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE merits might exceed, they might also fall short of the real pro- vision for that interest. Another instalment bond was afterwards granted. In that bond the interest exactly tallies with a capital of 1,400,000/. But pursuing this capital through the correspondence, I lost sight of it again, and it was asserted that this instalment bond was considerably short of the interest that ought to be com- puted to the time mentioned. Here are, therefore, two state- ments of equal authority, differing at least a million from each other ; and as neither persons claiming, nor any special sum as belonging to each particular claimant, is ascertained in the instruments of consohdation, or in the instalment bonds, a large scope was left to throw in any sums for any persons, as their merits in advancing the interest of that loan might require ; a power was also left for reduction, in case a harder hand, or more scanty funds, might be found to require it. Stronger grounds for a presumption of fi^aud never appeared in any transaction. But the ministers, faithful to the plan of the in- terested persons, whom alone they thought fit to confer with on this occasion, have ordered the payment of the whole mass of these unknown unliquidated sums, without an attempt to ascer- tain them. On this conduct. Sir, I leave you to make your own reflections. It is impossible (at least I have found it impossible) to fix on the real amount of the pretended debts with which your minis- ters have tliought proper to load the Carnatic. They are ob- scure; they shun inquiry; they are enormous. That is all you know of them. That you may judge what chance any honorable and useful end of government has for a provision that comes in for the leavings of these gluttonous demands, I must take it on myself to bring before you the real condition of that abused, insulted, racked, and ruined country, though in truth my mind revolts from it ; though you will hear it with horror ; and I confess I tremble when I think on these awful and confounding dispensa- tions of Providence. I shall first trouble you with a few words as to the cause The great fortunes made in India in the beginnings of con- quest, naturally excited an emulation in all the parts, and through the whole succession, of the company's serviqe. But in the company it gave rise to other sentiments. They did not find the new channels of acquisition flow with equal riches to them. On the contrary, the high flood-tide of private emolu- ment was generally in the lowest ebb of their affairs. They began also to fear, that the fortune of war might take away what the fortune of war had given. Wars were accordingly NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. 157 discouraged by repeated injunctions and menaces ; and that the servants might not be bribed into them by the native princes, they were strictly forbidden to take any money what- soever from their hands. But vehement passion is ingenious in resources. The company's servants were not only stimulated, but better instructed by the prohibition. They soon fell upon a contrivance which answered their purposes far better than the methods which were forbidden ; though in this also they violated an ancient, but they thought, an abrogated order. They re- versed their proceedings. Instead of receiving presents, they made loans. Instead of carrying on wars in their own name, they contrived an authority, at once irresistible and irresponsi- ble, in whose name they might ravage at pleasure ; and being thus freed from all restraint, they indulged themselves in the most extraordinary speculations of plunder. The cabal of creditors who have been the object of the late bountiful grant from his majesty's ministers, in order to possess themselves, under the name of creditors and assignees, of every country in India, as fast as it should be conquered, inspired into the mind of the nabob of Arcot (then a dependant on the company of the humblest order) a scheme of the most wild and desperate ambition that I believe ever was admitted into the thoughts of a man so situated. First, they persuaded him to consider him- self as a principal member in the political system of Europe. In the next place they held out to him, and he readily imbibed the idea of the general empire of Indostan. As a preliminary to this undertaking, they prevailed on him to propose a tripar- tite division of that vast country. One part to the company ; another to the Marattas ; and the third to himself. To himself he reserved all the southern part of the great peninsula, com- prehended under the general name of the Decan. On this scheme of their servants, the company was to appear in the Carnatic in no other light than as contractor for the pro- vision of armies, and the hire of mercenaries for his use, and under his direction. This disposition was to be secured by t'he nabob's putting himself under the guarantee of France; and by the means of that rival nation, preventing the English for ever from assuming an equality, much less a superiority in the Carnatic. In pursuance of this treasonable project (treasona- ble on the part of the English) they extinguished the company as a sovereign power in that part of India ; they withdrew the company's garrisons out of all the forts and strong-holds of the Carnatic ; they declined to receive the ambassadors from foreign courts, and remitted them to the nabob of Arcot; they fell upon, and totally destroyed the oldest ally of the company, the king of Tanjore, and plundered the country to the amount 14 158 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE of near five millions sterling ; one after another, in the nabob's name, but with English force, they brought into a miserable servitude all the princes, and great independent nobility, of a vast country. In proportion to these treasons and violences, which ruined the people, the fund of the nabob's debt grew and flourished. Among the victims to this magnificent plan of universal plunder, worthy of the heroic avarice of the projectors, you have all heard (and he has made himself to be well remem- bered) of an Indian chief called Hyder Ali Khan. This man possessed the western, as the company under the name of the nabob of Arcot does the eastern division of the Carnatic. It was among the leading measures in the design of this cabal (accord- ing to their own emphatic language) to extirpate this Hyder Ali. They declared the nabob of Arcot to be his sovereign, and himself to be a rebel, and publicly invested their instrument with the sovereignty of the kingdom of Mysore. But their victim was not of the passive kind. They were soon obliged to conclude a treaty of peace and close alliance with this rebel, at the gates of Madras. Both before and since that treaty, every principle of policy pointed out this power as a natural alliance ; and on his part, it was courted by every sort of ami- cable oflice. But the cabinet-council of English creditors would not suffer their nabob of Arcot to sign the treaty, nor even to give to a prince, at least his equal, the ordinary titles of re- spect and courtesy. From that time forward, a continued plot was carried on within the divan, black and white, of the nabob of Arcot, for the destruction of Hyder Ali. As to the out- ward members of the double, or rather treble government of Madras, which had signed the treaty, they were always pre- vented by some overruling influence (which they do not de- scribe, but which cannot be misunderstood) from performing what justice and interest combined so evidently to enforce. When at length Hyder Ali found that he had to do with men who either would sign no convention, or whom no treaty and no signature could bind, and who were the determined enemies of human intercourse itself, he decreed to make the country possessed by these incorrigible and predestinated criminals a memorable example to mankind. He resolved, in the gloomy recesses of a mind capacious of such things, to leave the whole Carnatic an everlasting monument of vengeance ; and to put perpetual desolation as a barrier between him and those against whom the faith which holds the moral elements of the world together was no protection. He became at length so confident of his force, so collected in his might, that he made no secret whatsoever of his dreadful resolution. Having terminated his NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. 159 disputes with every enemy, and every rival, who buried their mutual animosities in their common detestation against the creditors of the nabob of Arcot, he drew from every quarter whatever a savage ferocity could add to his new rudiments in the arts of destruction ; and compounding all the materials of fury, havoc, and desolation, into one black cloud, he hung for awhile on the declivities of the mountains. Whilst the authors of all these evils were idly and stupidly gazing on this men- acing meteor, which blackened all their horizon, it suddenly burst, and poured down the wdiole of its contents upon the plains of the Carnatic. — Then ensued a scene of woe, the like of which no eye had seen, no heart conceived, and which no tongue can adequately tell. All the horrors of war before known or heard of were mercy to that new havoc. A storm of universal fire blasted every field, consumed every house, destroyed every temple. The miserable inhabitants flying from their flaming villages, in part were slaughtered ; others, without regard to sex, to age, to the respect of rank, or sacred- ness of function; fathers torn from children, husbands from wives, enveloped in a whirlwind of cavalry, and amidst the goading spears of drivers, and the tramphng of pursuing horses, were swept into captivity, in an unknown and hostile land. Those who were able to evade this tempest, fled to the walled cities. But escaping from fire, sword, and exile, they fell into the jaws of famine. The alms of the settlement, in this dreadful exigency, were certainly liberal ; and all was done by charity that private charity could do : but it was a people in beggary ; it was a nation which stretched out its hands for food. For months together these creatures of sufferance, whose very excess and luxury in their most plenteous days had fallen short of the allowance of our austerest fasts, silent, patient, resigned, with- out sedition or disturbance, almost without complaint, perished by a hundred a day in the streets of Madras ; every day seventy at least laid their bodies in the streets, or on the glacis of Tan- jore, and expired of famine in the granary of India. I was going to awake your justice towards this unhappy part of our fellow-citizens, by bringing before you some of the circum- stances of this plague of hunger. Of all the calamities which beset and waylay the life of man, this comes the nearest to our heart, and is that wherein the proudest of us all feels him- self to be nothing more than he is : but I find myself unable to manage it whh decorum : these details are of a species of hor- ror so nauseous and disgusting ; they are so degrading to the sufferers and to the hearers ; they are so humiliating to human nature itself, that, on better thoughts, I find it more advisable 160 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE to throw a pall over this hideous object, and to leave it to your general conceptions. For eighteen months, without intermission, this destruction raged from the gates of Madras to the gates of Tanjore ; and so completely did these masters in their art, Hyder AH, and his more ferocious son, absolve themselves of their impious vow, that when the British armies traversed, as they did, the Carnatic for hundreds of miles in all directions, through the whole line of their march, they did not see one man, not one woman, not one child, not one four-footed beast of any descrip- tion whatever. One dead uniform silence reigned over the whole region. V/ith the inconsiderable exceptions of the nar- row vicinage of some few forts, I Vv'ish to be understood as speaking literally. I mean to produce to you more than three witnesses, above all exception, who will support this assertion in its full extent. That hurricane of war passed through every part of the central provinces of the Carnatic. Six or seven districts to the north and to the south (and these not wholly untouched) escaped the general ravage. The Carnatic is a country not much inferior in extent to England. Figure to yourself, Mr. Speaker, the land in whose representative chair you sit ; figure to yourself the form and fashion of your sweet and cheerful country from Thames to Trent, north and south, and from the Irish to the German sea east and west, emptied and embovvelled (may God avert the omen of our crimes !) by so accomplished a desolation. Ex- tend your imagination a little further, and then suppose your ministers taking a survey of this scene of waste and desola- tion ; what would be your thoughts, if you should be informed that they were computing how much had been the amount of the excises, how much the customs, how much the land and malt tax, in order that they should charge (take it in the most favorable light) for public service, upon the relics of the sa- tiated vengeance of relentless enemies, the whole of what Eng- land had yielded in the most exuberant seasons of peace and abundance? What would you call it? To call it tyranny, sublimed into madness, would be too faint an image ; yet this very madness is the principle upon which the ministers at your right hand have proceeded in their estimate of the reve- nues of the Carnatic, when they were providing not supply for the establishments of its protection, but rewards for the authors of its ruin. Every day you are fatigued and disgusted with this cant, " the Carnatic is a country that will soon recover, and become instantly as prosperous as ever." They think they are talking to innocents, who will believe that by sowing of dragons' teeth, NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. 161 men may come up ready grown and ready armed. They who will give themselves the trouble of considering (for it requires no great reach of thought, no very profound knowledge) the manner in which mankind are increased, and countries culti- vated, will regard all this raving as it ought to be regarded. In order that the people, after a long period of vexation and plunder, may be in a condition to maintain government, gov- ernment must begin by maintaining them. — Here the road to economy lies not through receipt, but through expense ; and in that country nature has given no short cut to your object. Men must propagate, like other animals, by the mouth. Never did oppression light the nuptial torch ; never did extortion and usury spread out the genial bed. Does any of you think that England, so wasted, would, under such a nursing attendance, so rapidly and cheaply recover ? But he is meanly acquainted with either England or India, who does not know that England would a thousand times sooner resume population, fertility, and what ought to be the ultimate secretion from both, revenue, than such a country as the Carnatic. The Carnatic is not by the bounty of nature a fertile soil. The general size of its cattle is proof enough that it is much otherwise. It is some days since I moved, that a curious and interesting map kept in the India House, should be laid before you. The India House is not yet in readiness to send it ; I have therefore brought down my own copy, and there it lies for the use of any gentleman who may think such a matter worthy of his attention. It is, indeed, a noble map, and of noble things; but it is decisive against the golden dreams and sanguine speculations of avarice run mad. In addition to what you know must be the case in every part of the world (the necessity of a previous provision of habitation, seed, stock, capital) that map will show you, that the use of the influences of Heaven itself, are in that country a work of art. The Carnatic is refreshed by few or no living brooks or running streams, and it has rain only at a season ; but its pro- duct of rice exacts the use of water subject to perpetual com- mand. This is the national bank of the Carnatic, on which it must have a perpetual credit, or it perishes irretrievably. For that reason, in the happier times of India, a number almost incredible of reservoirs have been made in chosen places throughout the whole country ; they are formed for the greater part of mounds of earth and stones, with sluices of solid ma- sonry; the whole constructed with admirable skill and labor, and maintained at a mighty charge. In the territory contained in that map alone, I have been at the trouble of reckoning the reservoirs, and they amount to upwards of eleven hundred, V 14* 162 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE from the extent of two or three acres to five miles in circuit. From these reservoirs cm'rents are occasionally drawn over the fields, and these water-courses again call for a considera- ble expense to keep them properly secured and duly levelled. Taking the district in that map as a measure, there cannot be in the Carnatic and Tanjore fewer than ten thousand of these reservoirs of the larger and middhng dimensions, to say nothing of those for domestic services, and the use of religious purifi- cations. These are not the enterprises of your power, nor in a style of magnificence suited to the taste of your minister. These are the monuments of real kings, who were the fathers of their people; testators to a posterity which they embraced as their own. These are the grand sepulchres built by ambi- tion ; but by the ambition of an unsatiable benevolence, which, not contented with reigning in the dispensation of happiness during the contracted term of human life, had strained, with all the reachings and graspings of a vivacious mind, to extend the dominion of their bounty beyond the limits of nature, and to perpetuate themselves through generations of generations, the guardians, the protectors, the nourishers of mankind. Long before the late invasion, the persons who are objects of the grant of public money now before you, had so diverted the supply of the pious funds of culture and population, that everywhere the reservoirs were fallen into a miserable decay. But after those domestic enemies had provoked the entry of a cruel foreign foe into the country, he did not leave it until his revenge had completed the destruction begun by their avarice. Few, very few indeed, of these magazines of water that are not either totally destroyed, or cut through with such gaps, as to require a serious attention and much cost to re-establish them, as the means of present subsistence to the people, arid ot future revenue to the state. What, Sir, would a virtuous and enlightened ministry do, on the view of the ruins of such works before them ? On the view of such a chasm of desolation as that which yawned in the midst of those countries to the north and south, which still bore some vestiges of cultivation? They would have reduced all their most necessary establishments ; they would have suspend- ed the justest payments; they would have employed every shilling derived from the producing to reanimate the powers of the unproductive parts. While they were performing this fundamental duty, whilst they were celebrating these mysteries of justice and humanity, they would have told the corps of fic- titious creditors, whose crimes were their claims, that they must keep an awful distance ; that they must silence their in- auspicious tongues; that they must hold off their profane and NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. KJg unhallowed paws from this holy work ; they would have pro- claimed W'ith a voice that should make itself heard, that on every country the first creditor is the plough ; that this original, indefeasible claim supersedes every other demand. This is what a wise and virtuous ministry would have done and said. This, therefore, is what our minister could never think of saying or doing. A ministry of another kind would have first improved the country, and have thus laid a solid foundation for future opulence and future force. But on this grand point of the restoration of the country, there is not one syllable to be found in the correspondence of our ministers, from the first to the last. They felt nothing for a land desolated by fire, sword, and famine ; their sympathies took another di- rection. They were touched with pity for bribery, so long tor- mented with a fruitless itching of its palms; their bow^els yearned for usury, that had long missed the harvest of its re- turning months ; they felt for peculation, which had been for so many years raking in the dust of an empty treasury ; they were melted into compassion for rapine and oppression, ficking their dry, parched, unbloody jaws. These were the objects of their solicitude. These were the necessities for which they were studious to provide. But I, Sir, who profess to speak to your understanding and to your conscience, and to brush away from this business all false colors, all false appellations, as well as false facts, do pos- itively deny that the Carnatic owes a shilling to the company, w^hatever the company may be indebted to that undone coun- try. It owes nothing to the company for this plain and simple reason — The territory charged with the debt is their own. To say that their revenues fall short, and ow^e them money, is to say they are in debt to themselves, which is only talking non- sense. The fact is, that by the invasion of an enemy, and the ruin of the country, the company, either in its own name or in the names of the nabob of Arcot, and rajah of Tanjore, has lost for several years what it might have looked to receive from its own estate. If men were allowed to credit themselves upon such principles, any one might soon grow rich by this mode of accounting. A flood comes down upon a man's estate in the Bedford Level of a thousand pounds a year, and drowns his rents for ten years. The chancellor would put that man into the hands of a trustee, who would gravely make up his books, and for this loss credit himself in his account for a debt due to him of 10,000/. It is, however, on this principle the company makes up its demands on the Carnatic. In peace they go the full length, and indeed more than the full length, of what the people can bear for current establishments ; then they are ab- 164 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE surd enough to consolidate all the calamities of war into debts , to metamorphose the devastations of the country into demands upon its future production. What is this but to avow a resolu- tion utterly to destroy their own countiy, and to force the peo- ple to pay for their sufferings, to a government which has proved unable to protect either the share of the husbandman, or their own? In every lease of a farm, the invasion of an enemy, instead of forming a demand for arrear, is a release of rent ; nor for that release is it at all necessary to show, that the invasion has left nothing to the occupier of the soil ; though in the present case it would be too easy to prove that melan- choly fact. I therefore applaud my right honorable friend, who, when he canvassed the company's accounts, as a preliminary to a bill that ought not to stand on falsehood of any kind, fixed his discerning eye, and his deciding hand, on these debts of the company, from the nabob of Arcot and rajah of Tanjore, and at one stroke expunged them all, as utterly irrecoverable ; he might have added, as utterly unfounded. On these grounds I do not blame the arrangement this day in question, as a preference given to the debt of individuals over the company's debt. In my eye it is no more than the preference of a fiction over a chimera ; but I blame the prefer- ence given to those fictitious private debts over the standing defence and the standing government. It is there the public is robbed. It is robbed in its army ; it is robbed in its civil ad- ministration ; it is robbed in its credit ; it is robbed in its invest- ment which forms the commercial connexion between that country and Europe. There is the robbery. But my principal objection lies a good deal deeper. That debt to the company is the pretext under which all the other debts lurk and cover themselves. That debt forms the foul, putrid mucus, in which are engendered the whole brood of creeping ascarides, all the endless involutions, the eternal knot, added to a knot of those inexpugnable tape-worms which de- vour the nutriment, and eat up the bowels of India. It is neces- sary. Sir, you should recollect two things : first, that the nabob's debt to the company carries no interest. In the next place you will observe, that whenever the company has occa- sion to borrow, she has always commanded whatever she thought fit at eight per cent. Carrying in your mind these two facts, attend to the process with regard to the public and pri- vate debt, and with what little appearance of decency they play into each other's hands a game of utter perdition to the unhappy natives of India. The nabob falls into an arrear to the company. The presidency presses for payment. The na- bob's answer is, I have no money. Good. But there are soucars NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. 165 who will supply you on the mortgage of your territories. Then steps forward some Paul Benfield, and from his grateful com- passion to the nabob, and his filial regard to the company, he unlocks the treasures of his virtuous industry ; and for a con- sideration of twenty-four or thirty-six fer cent on a mortgage of the territorial revenue, becomes security to the company for the nabob's arrear. All this intermediate usury thus becomes sanctified by the ultimate view to the company's payment. In this case, would not a plain man ask this plain question of the company ; if you know that the nabob must annually mortgage his territories to your servants to pay his annual arrear to you, why is not the assignment or mortgage made directly to the company itself? By this simple, obvious operation, the company would be re- lieved and the debt paid, without the charge of a shilling interest to that prince. But if that course should be thought too indulgent, why do they not take that assignment whh such interest to themselves as they pay to others, that is eight per cent 1 Or if it were thought more advisable (why it should I know not) that he must borrow, why do not the company lend their own credit to the nabob for their own payment? That credit would not be weakened by the collateral security of his territorial mortgage. The money might still be had at eight fer cent. Instead of any of these honest and obvious methods, the company has for years kept up a show of disinterestedness and moderation, by suflfering a debt to accumulate to them from the country powers without any interest at all ; and at the same time have seen before their eyes, on a pretext of borrow- ing to pay that debt, the revenues of the country charged with a usury of twenty, twenty-four, thirty-six, and even eight-and- forty per cent, with compound interest, for the benefit of their servants. All this time they know that by having a debt sub- sisting without any interest, which is to be paid by contracting a debt on the highest interest, they manifestly render it neces- sary to the nabob of Arcot to give the private demand a prefer- ence to the public ; and by binding him and their servants together in a common cause, they enable him to form a party to the utter ruin of their own authority, and their own affairs. Thus their false moderation, and their affected purity, by the natural operation of everything false, and everything affected, becomes pander and pawd to the unbridled debauchery and licentious lewdness of usury and extortion. In consequence of this double game, all the territorial revenues have, at one time or other, been covered by those locusts, the English soucars. Not one single foot of the Car- natic has escaped them ; a territory as large as England. 166 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE During these operations, what a scene has that country pre sented ! The usurious European assignee supersedes the nabob's native farmer of the revenue : the farmer flies to the nabob's presence to claim his bargain ; whilst his servants mur- mur for wages, and his soldiers mutiny for pay. The mortgage to the European assignee is then resumed, and the native farmer replaced; replaced, again to be removed on the new clamor of the European assignee. Every man of rank and landed fortune being long since extinguished, the remaining miserable last cul- tivator, who grows to the soil, after having his back scored by the farmer, has it again flayed by the whip of the assignee, and is thus, by a ravenous because a short-lived succession of claim- ants, lashed from oppressor to oppressor, whilst a single drop of blood is left as the means of extorting a single grain of corn. Do not think I paint. Far, very far from it ; I do not reach the fact, nor approach to it. Men of respectable condition, men equal to your substantial English yeomen, are daily tied up and scourged to answer the multiplied demands of various contend- ing and contradictory titles, all issuing from one and the same source. Tyrannous exaction brings on servile concealment; and that again calls forth tyrannous coercion. They move in a circle, mutually producing and produced; till at length nothing of humanity is left in the government, no trace of in- tegrity, spirit, or manliness in the people, who drag out a pre- carious and degraded existence under this system of outrage upon human nature. Such is the effect of the establishment of a debt to the company, as it has hitherto been managed, and as it ever will remain, until ideas are adopted totally different from those which prevail at this time. Your worthy ministers, supporting what they are obliged to condemn, have thought fit to renew the company's old order against contracting private debts in future. They begin by rewarding the violation of the ancient law; and then they gravely re-enact provisions, of which they have given bounties for the breach. This inconsistency has been well exposed. But what will you say to their having gone the length of giving positive directions for contracting the debt which they posi- tively forbid ? I will explain myself They order the nabob, out of the revenues of the Carnatic, to allot four hundred and eighty thousand pounds a year, as a fund for the debts before us. For the punctual payment of tliis annuity, they order him to give soucar security. When a soucar, that is a money-dealer, be- comes security for any native prince, the course is, for the na- tive prince to counter-secure the money-dealer, by making over to him in mortgage a portion of his territory, equal to the sum NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. 167 annually to be paid, with an interest of at least twenty-four per cent The point fit for the house to know is, who are these soucars, to whom this security on the revenues in favor of the nabob's creditors is to be given? The majority of the house, unaccustomed to these transactions, will hear with astonish- ment that these soucars are no other than the creditors them- selves. The minister, not content with authorizing these transactions in a manner and to an extent unhoped for by the rapacious expectations of usury itself, loads the broken back of the Indian revenues, in favor of his worthy friends the soucars, with an additional twenty-four per cent, for being security to themselves for their own claims ; for condescending to take the country in mortgage, to pay to themselves the fruits of their extortions. The interest to be paid for this security, according to the most moderate strain of soucar demand, comes to one hundred and eighteen thousand pounds a year, which added to the 480,000/. on which it is to accrue, will make the whole charge on account of these debts on the Carnatic revenues amount to 598,000/. a year, as much as even a long peace will enable those revenues to produce. Can any one reflect for a moment on all those claims of debt, which the minister exhausts himself in contrivances to augment with new usuries, without lifting up his hands and eyes in astonishment of the impudence, both of the claim and of the adjudication? Services of some kind or other these servants of the company must have done, so great and eminent, that the chancellor of the exchequer cannot think that all they have brought home is half enough. He halloos after them : " Gentlemen, you have forgot a large packet behind you, in your hurry ; you have not sufficiently recovered your- selves ; you ought to have, and you shall have interest upon interest, upon a prohibited debt that is made up of interest upon interest. Even this is too little. I have thought of another character for you, by which you may add something to your gains ; you shall be security to yourselves ; and hence will arise a new usury, which shall cfiace the memory of all the usuries suggested to you by your own dull inventions." I have done with the arrangement relative to the Carnatic. After this it is to little purpose to observe on what the ministers have done to Tanjore. Your ministers have not observed even form and ceremony in their outrageous and insulting robbery of that country, whose only crime has been, its early and constant adherence to the power of this, and the suffering of a uniform pillage in consequence of it. The debt of the company from the rajah of Tanjore, is just of the same stuff with that of the nabob of Arcot. 168 ^lii- BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE The subsidy from Tanjore, on the arrear of which this pre- tended debt (if any there be) has accrued to the company, is not, hke that paid by the nabob of Arcot, a compensation for vast countries obtained, augmented, and preserved for him ; not the price of pillaged treasuries, ransacked houses, and plundered territories. — It is a large grant, from a small kingdom, not obtained by our arms ; robbed, not protected by our power ; a grant for which no equivalent was ever given, or pretended to be given. The right honorable gentleman, however, bears witness in his reports to the punctuality of the payments of this grant of bounty, or, if you please, of fear. It amounts to one hundred and sixty thousand pounds sterling net annual subsidy. He bears witness to a further grant of a town and port, with an annexed district of thirty thousand pounds a year, surrendered to the company since the first donation. He has not borne wit- ness, but the fact is (he will not deny it) that in the midst of war, and during the ruin and desolation of a considerable part of his territories, this prince made many very large payments. Not- withstanding these merits and services, the first regulation of ministry is to force from him a territory of an extent which they have not yet thought proper to ascertain, for a military peace establishment, the particulars of which they have not yet been pleased to settle. The next part of their arrangement is with regard to war. As confessedly this prince had no share in stirring up any of the former wars, so all future wars are completely out of his power ; for he has no troops whatever, and is under a stipula- tion not so much as to correspond with any foreign state, except through the company. Yet in case the company's servants should be again involved in war, or should think proper again to provoke any enemy, as in times past they have wantonly provoked all India, he is to be subjected to a new penalty. To what penalty 1 — Why, to no less than the confiscation of all his revenues. But this is to end with the war, and they are to be faithfully returned ? — Oh ! no ; nothing like it. The country is to remain under confiscation until all the debt which the com- pany shall think fit to incur in such war shall be discharged ; that is to say, for ever. His sole comfort is to find his old enemy, the nabob of Arcot, placed in the very same condition. The revenues of that miserable country were, before the invasion of Hyder, reduced to a. gross annual receipt of three hundred and sixty thousand pounds. From this receipt the subsidy I have just stated is taken. This again, by payments in advance, by extorting deposits of additional sums to a vast amount for the benefit of Iheir soucars, and by an endless variety of other extortions, public and private, is loaded with a debt NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. 169 the amount of which I never could ascertain, but which is large undoubtedly, generating a usury the most completely ruinous that probably was ever heard of; that is, foriy-eight per cent, payable monthly, ivith compound interest. Such is the state to which the company's servants have reduced that country. Now come the reformers, restorers, and comforters of India. What have they done ? In addition to all these tyrannous exactions with all these ruinous debts in their train, looking to one side of an agreement whilst they wilfully shut their eyes to the other, they withdraw from Tanjore all the benefits of the treaty of 1762, and they subject that nation to a perpetual tribute of forty thousand a year to the nabob of Arcot; a tribute never due, or pretended to be due to Mm, even when he appeared to be something ; a tribute, as things now stand, not to a real potentate, but to a shadow, a dream, an incubus of oppression. After the company has accepted in subsidy, in grant of territory, in remission of rent, as a com- pensation for their own protection, at least two hundred thousand pounds a year, without discounting a shilling for that receipt, the ministers condemn this harassed nation to be tributary to a person who is himself, by their own arrangement, deprived of the right of war or peace ; deprived of the power of the sword ; forbid to keep up a single regiment of soldiers ; and is therefore wholly disabled from all protection of the country, which is the object of the pretended tribute. Tribute hangs on the sword. It is an incident inseparable from real sovereign power. In the present case to suppose its existence, is as absurd as it is cruel and oppressive. And here, Mr. Speaker, you have a clear exemplification of the use of those false names, and false colors, which the gentlemen who have lately taken possession of India choose to lay on for the purpose of disguising tiieir plan of oppression. The nabob of Arcot, and rajah of Tanjore, have, in truth and substance, no more than a merely civil authority, held in the most entire dependence on the company. The nabob, without military, without federal capacity, is extinguished as a potentate; but then he is carefully kept alive as an inde- pendent and sovereign power, for the purpose of rapine and extortion; for the purpose of perpetuating the old intrigues, animosities, usuries, and corruptions. It was not enough that this mockery of tribute was to be continued without the correspondent protection, or any of the stipulated equivalents, but ten years of arrear, to the amount of 400,000/. sterling, is added to all the debts to the company, and to individuals, in order to create a new debt, to be paid (if at all possible to be paid in whole or in part) only by new usuries ; and all this for the nabob of Arcot, or rather for Mr. W 15 170 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE Benfield, and the corps of the nabob's creditors, and their soucars. Thus these miserable Indian princes are continued in their seats, for no other purpose than to render them in the first instance objects of every species of extortion ; and in the second, to force them to become, for the sake of a momentary shadow of reduced authority, a sort of subordinate tyrants, the ruin and calamity, not the fathers and cherishers of their people. But take this tribute only as a mere charge (without title, cause, or equivalent) on this people ; what one step has been taken to furnish grounds for a just calculation and estimate of the proportion of the burthen and the ability 1 None ; not an attempt at it. They do not adapt the burthen to the strength ; but they estimate the strength of the bearers by the burthen they impose. Then what care is taken to leave a fund sufficient to the future reproduction of the revenues that are to bear all these loads ? Every one, but tolerably conversant in Indian affairs, must know that the existence of this little kingdom depends on its control over the river Cavery. The benefits of heaven to any community, ought never to be connected with political arrangements, or made to depend on the personal conduct of princes ; in which the mistake, or error, or neglect, or distress, or passion of a moment on either side, may bring famine on millions, and ruin an innocent nation perhaps for ages. The means of the subsistence of mankind should be as immu- table as the laws of nature, let power and dominion take what course they may. — Observe what has been done with regard to this important concern. The use of this river is indeed at length given to the rajah, and a power provided for its enjoy- ment at his oivn charge ; but the means of furnishing that charge (and a mighty one it is) are wholly cut off". This use of the water, which ought to have no more connexion than clouds, and rains, and sunshine, with the poHtics of the rajah, the nabob, or the company, is expressly contrived as a means of enforcing demands and arrears of tribute. This horrid and unnatural instrument of extortion had been a distinguishing feature in the enormities of the Carnatic politics that loudly called for reform- ation. But the food of a whole people is by the reformers of India conditioned on payments from its prince, at a moment that he is overpowered with a swarm of their demands, with- out I'egard to the ability of either prince or people. In fine, by opening an avenue to the irruption of the nabob of Arcot^s creditors and soucars, whom every man who did not fall in love with oppression and corruption on an experience of the calami- ties they produced, would have raised wall before wall, and mound before mound, to keep from a possibility of entrance, a more destructive enemy than Hvder Ali is introduced into that NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. 171 kingdom. By this part of their arrangement in which they estabhsh a debt to the nabob of Arcot, in effect and substance they deliver over Tanjore, bound hand and foot, to Paul Ben- field, the old betrayer, insulter, oppressor, and scourge of a country, which has for years been an object of an unremitted, but unhappily an unequal struggle, between the bounties of Providence to renovate, and the wickedness of mankind to destroy. The right honorable gentleman talks of his fairness in deter- mining the territorial dispute between the nabob of Arcot and the prince of that country, when he superseded the determina- tion of the directors, in whom the law had vested the decision of that controversy. He is in this just as feeble as he is in every other part. But it is not necessary to say a word in refutation of any part of his argument. The mode of the pro- ceeding sufficiently speaks the spirit of it. It is enough to fix his character as a judge, that he never Iieard the directors in de- fence of their adjudication, nor either of the parties in support of their respective claims. It is sufficient for me, that he takes from the rajah of Tanjore by this pretended adjudication, or rather from his unhappy subjects, 40,000/. a year of his and their revenue, and leaves upon his and their shoulders all the charges that can be made on the part of the nabob, on the part of his creditors, and on the part of the company, without so much as hearing him as to right or ability. But what principally in- duces me to leave the affair of the territorial dispute between the nabob and the rajah to another day, is this, that both the parties being stripped of their all, it little signifies under which of their names the unhappy undone people are delivered over to the merciless soucars, the allies of that right honorable gentleman, and the chancellor of the exchequer. In them ends the account of this long dispute of the nabob of Arcot, and the rajah of Tanjore. The right honorable gentleman is of opinion, that his judg- ment in this case can be censured by none but those who seem to act as if they were paid agents to one of the parties. What does he think of his court of directors ? If they are paid by either of the parties, by which of them does he think they are paid ? He knows that their decision has been directly contrary to his. Shall I believe that it does not enter into his heart to conceive, that any person can steadily and actively interest himself in the protection of the injured and oppressed, without being well paid for his service ? I have taken notice of this sort of discourse some days ago, so far as it may be supposed to relate to me. I then contented myself, as I shall now do, with giving it a cold, though a very direct contradiction. Thus 172 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE much I do from respect to truth. If I did more, it might be supposed, by my anxiety to clear myself, that I had imbibed the ideas, which, for obvious reasons, the right honorable gentle- man wishes to have received concerning all attempts to plead the cause of the natives of India, as if it were a disreputable employment. If he had not forgot, in his present occupation, every principle which ought to have guided him, and I hope did guide him, in his late profession, he would have known, that he who takes a fee for pleading the cause of distress against power, and manfully performs the duty he has assumed, re- ceives an honorable recompense for a virtuous service. But if the right honorable gentleman will have no regard to fact in his insinuations, or to reason in his opinions, I wish him at least to consider, that if taking an earnest part with regard to the oppressions exercised in India, and with regard to this most oppressive case of Tanjore in particular, can ground a pre- sumption of interested motives, he is himself the most mercena- ry man I know. His conduct, indeed, is such that he is on all occasions the standing testimony against himself He it was that first called to that case the attention of the house : the reports of his own committee are ample and affecting upon that subject ; and as many of us as have escaped his massacre, must remember the very pathetic picture he made of the suf- ferings of the Tanjore country, on the day when he moved the unwieldy code of his Indian resolutions. Has he not stated over and over again in his reports, the ill treatment of the rajah of Tanjore (a branch of the royal house of the Marattas, every injury to whom the Marattas felt as offered to themselves) as a main cause of the alienation of that people from the British power ? And does he now think, that to betray his principles, to contradict his declarations, and to become himself an active instrument in those oppressions which he had so tragically lamented, is the way to clear himself of having been actuated by a pecuniary interest, at the time when he chose to appear full of tenderness to that ruined nation ? The right honorable gentleman is fond of parading on the motives of others, and on his own. As to himself, he despises the imputations of those who suppose that anything corrupt could influence him in this his unexampled liberality of the public treasure. I do not know that I am obliged to speak to the motives of ministry, in the arrangements they have made of the pretended debts of Arcot and Tanjore. If I prove fraud and collusion with regard to public money on those right honorable gentlemen, I am not obliged to assign their motives ; because no good motives can be pleaded in favor of their con- duct. Upon that case I stand ; we are at issue ; and I desire to NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. 173 go to trial. This, I am sure, is not loose railing, or mean in- sinuation, according to their low and degenerate fashion, when they make attacks on the measures of their adversaries. It is a regular and juridical course ; and, unless I choose it, nothing can compel me to go further. But since these unhappy gentlemen have dared to hold a lofty tone about their motives, and affect to despise suspicion, instead of being careful not to give cause for it, I shall beg leave to lay before you some general observations on what I conceive was their duty in so delicate a business. If I were worthy to suggest any line of prudence to that right honorable gentleman, I would tell him, that the way to avoid suspicion in the settlement of pecuniary transactions, in which great frauds have been very strongly presumed, is, to attend to these few plain principles : — First, to hear all parties equally, and not the managers for the suspected claimants only. — Not to proceed in the dark ; but to act with as much publicity as possible. — Not to precipitate decision. — To be religious in following the rules prescribed in the commission under which we act. And, lastly, and above all, not to be fond of straining constructions, to force a jurisdiction, and to draw to ourselves the management of a trust in its nature invidious and obnoxious to suspicion, where the plainest letter of the law does not com- pel it. If these few plain rules are observed, no corruption ought to be suspected; if any of them are violated, suspicion will attach in proportion. If all of them are violated, a corrupt motive of some kind or other will not only be suspected, but must be violently presumed. The persons in whose favor all these rules have been vio- lated, and the conduct of ministers towards them, will natu- rally call for your consideration, and will serve to lead you through a series and combination of facts and characters, if 1 do not mistake, into the very inmost recesses of this myste- rious business. You will then be in possession of all the ma- terials on which the principles of sound jurisprudence will found, or will reject the presumption of corrupt motives ; or if such motives are indicated, will point out to you of what particular nature the corruption is. Our wonderful minister, as you all know, formed a new plan, a plan insigne recens alio indicium are, a plan for supporting the freedom of our constitution by court intrigues, and for re- moving its corruptions by Indian delinquency. To carry that bold paradoxical design into execution, sufficient funds and apt instruments became necessary. You are perfectly sensible that a parliamentary reform occupies his thoughts day and night, as an essential member of this extraordinary project. 15* 174 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE In his anxious researches upon this subject, natural instinct, as well as sound policy, would direct his eyes, and settle his choice on Paul Benfield. Paul Benfield is the grand parlia- mentary reformer, the reformer to whom the whole choir of reformers bow, and to whom even the right honorable gentle- man himself must yield the palm : for what region in the em- pire, what city, what borough, what county, what tribunal, in this kingdom, is not full of his labors 1 Others have been only speculators ; he is the grand practical reformer ; and whilst the chancellor of the exchequer pledges in vain the man and the minister, to increase the provincial members, Mr. Benfield has auspiciously and practically begun it. Leav- ing far behind him even lord Camelford's generous design of bestowing Old Sarum on the bank of England, Mr. Benfield has thrown in the borough of Cricklade to reinforce the county representation. Not content with this, in order to station a steady phalanx for all future reforms, this pubhc-spirited usu- rer, amidst his charitable toils for the rehef of India, did not forget the poor rotten constitution of his native country. For her, he did not disdain to stoop to the trade of a wholesale up- holsterer for this house, to furnish it not with the faded tapestry figures of antiquated merit, such as decorate, and may re- proach some other houses, but with real, solid, living patterns of true modern virtue. Paul Benfield made (reckoning him- self) no fewer than eight members in the last parliament. What copious streams of pure blood must he not have transfused into the veins of the present ! But what is even more striking than the real services of this new-imported patriot, is his modesty. As soon as he had con- ferred this benefit on the constitution, he withdrew himself from our applause. He conceived that the duties of a mem- ber of parliament (which with the elect faithful, the true be- lievers, the Islam of parliamentary reform, are of little or no merit, perhaps not much better than specious sins) might be as well attended to in India as in England, and the means of re- formation to parliament itself, be far better provided. Mr. Benfield was therefore no sooner elected, than he set off for Madras, and defrauded the longing eyes of parliament. We have never enjoyed in this house the luxury of beholding that minion of the human race, and contemplating that visage, which has so long reflected the happiness of nations. It was therefore not possible for the minister to consult per- sonally with this great man. What then was he to do ? Through a sagacity that never failed him in these pursuits, he found out in Mr. Benfield's representative, his exact resemblance. A spe- cific attraction bv which he srravitates towards all such char- NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. 1 75 acters, soon brought our minister into a close connexion with Mr. Benfield's agent and attorney ; that is, with the grand con- tractor (whom I name to honor) Mr. Richard Atkinson ; a name that will be well remembered as long as the records of this house, as long as the records of the British treasury, as long as the monumental debt of England, shall endure. This gentleman, Sir, acts as attorney for Mr. Paul Benfield, Every one who hears me, is well acquainted with the sacred friendship, and the steady mutual attachment that subsists be- tween him and the present minister. As many members as chose to attend in the first session of this parliament, can best tell their own feelings at the scenes which were then acted. How much that honorable gentleman was consulted in the original frame and fabric of the bill, commonly called Mr. Pitt's India bill, is matter only of conjecture ; though by no means difficult to divine. But the public was an indignant witness of the ostentation with which that measure was made his own, and the authority with which he brought up clause after clause, to stuff' and fatten the rankness of that corrupt act. As fast as the clauses were brought up to the table, they were accepted. No hesitation ; no discussion. They were received by the new minister, not with approbation, but with implicit submission. The reformation may be estimated, by seeing who was the reformer. Paul Benfield's associate and agent was held up to the world as legislator of Indostan. But it was necessary to authenticate the coalition between the men of intrigue in India and the minister of intrigue in England, by a studied display of the power of this their connecting link. Every trust, every honor, every distinction, was to be heaped upon him. He was at once made a director of the India company; made an alderman of London; and to be made, if ministry could prevail (and I am sorry to say how near they were prevailing) representative of the capital of this kingdom. But to secure his services against all risk, he was brought in for a ministerial borough. On his part, he was not wanting in zeal for the common cause. His adver- tisements show his motives, and the merits upon which he stood. For your minister, this worn-out veteran submitted to enter into the dusty field of the London contest ; and you all remember, that in the same virtuous cause he submitted to keep a sort of public office or counting-house, where the whole business of the last general election was managed. It was openly managed by the direct agent and attorney of Benfield. It was managed upon Indian principles, and for an Indian in- terest. This was the golden cup of abominations ; this the chalice of the fornications of rapine, usury, and oppression, 176 MR. ^JURKE'S SPEECH ON THE which was held out by the gorgeous eastern harlot ; which so many of the people, so many of the nobles of this land, had drained to the very dregs. Do you think that no reckoning was to follow this lewd debauch ? that no payment was to be de- manded for this riot of public drunkenness and national prostitu- tion ? Here ! you have it here before you. The principal of the grand election manager must be indemnified ; accordingly the claims of Benfield and his crew must be put above all inquiry. Here is a specimen of the new and pure aristocracy cre- ated by the right honorable gentleman, as the support of the crown and constitution, against the old, corrupt, refractory, natural interests of this kingdom ; and this is the grand coun- terpoise against all odious coalitions of these interests. A sin- gle Benfield outweighs them all ; a criminal, who long since ought to have fattened the region kites with his offal, is, by his majesty's ministers, enthroned in the government of a great kingdom, and enfeoffed with an estate, which in the compari- son effaces the splendor of all the nobility of Europe. To bring a Uttle more distinctly into view the true secret of this dark transaction, I beg you particularly to advert to the circum- stances which I am going to place before you. The general corps of creditors, as well as Mr. Benfield him- self, not looking well into futurity, nor presaging the minister of this day, thought it not expedient for their common inter- est, that such a name as his should stand at the head of their list. It was therefore agreed amongst them, that Mr. Benfield should disappear, by making over his debt to Messrs. Taylor, Majendie, and Call, and should in return be secured by their bond. The debt thus exonerated of so great a weight of its odium, and otherwise reduced from its alarming bulk, the agents thought they might venture to print a list of the creditors. This was done for the first time in the year 1783, during the duke of Portland's administration. In this fist the name of Benfield was not to be seen. To this strong negative testimo- ny was added the further testimony of the nabob of Arcot. That prince (or rather Mr. Benfield for him) writes to the court of directors a letter full of complaints and accusations against lord Macartney, conveyed in such terms as were natu- ral for one of Mr. Benfield's habits and education to employ. Amongst the rest, he is made to complain of his lordship's en- deavoring to prevent an intercourse of politeness and sentiment between him and Mr. Benfield ; and, to aggravate the affront, he expressly declares Mr. Benfield's visits to be only on account of respect and of gratitude, as no pecuniary transactions sub- sisted between them. NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. 177 Such, for a considerable space of time, was the outward form of the loan of 1777, in which Mr. Benfield had no sort of concern. At length intelligence arrived at Madras, that this debt, which had always been renounced by the court of directors, was rather like to become the subject of something more like a criminal inquiry, than of any patronage or sanc- tion from parliament. Every ship brought accounts, one stronger than the other, of the prevalence of the determined enemies of the Indian system. The public revenues became an object desperate to the hopes of Mr. Benfield; he there- fore resolved to fall upon his associates, and, in violation of that faith which subsists among those who have abandoned all other, commences a suit in the mayor's court against Taylor, Majendie, and Call, for the bond given to him, when he agreed to disappear for his own benefit as well as that of the common concern. The assignees of his debt, who little expected the springing of this mine, even from such an engineer as Mr. Benfield, after recovering their first alarm, thought it best to take ground on the real state of the transaction. They di- vulged the whole mystery, and were prepared to plead, that they had never received from Mr. Benfield any other consider- ation for the bond, than a transfer, in trust for himself, of his demand on the nabob of Arcot. A universal indignation arose against the perfidy of Mr. Benfield's proceeding ; the event of the suit was looked upon as so certain, that Benfield was com- pelled to retreat as precipitately as he had advanced boldly ; he gave up his bond, and was reinstated in his original demand, to wait the fortune of other claimants. At that time, and at Madras, this hope was dull indeed ; but at home another scene was preparing. It was long before any public account of this discovery at Mad- ras had arrived in England, that the present minister, and his board of control, thought fit to determine on the debt of 1777. The recorded proceedings at this time knew nothing of any debt to Benfield. There was his own testimony; there was the testimony of the list; there was the testimony of the nabob of Arcot against it. Yet such was the ministers' feeling of the true secret of this trans- action, that they thought proper, in the teeth of all these testimo- nies, to give him license to return to Madras. Here the ministers were under some embarrassment. Confounded between their resolution of rewarding the good services of Benfield's friends and associates in England, and the shame of sending that noto- rious incendiary to the court of the nabob of Arcot, to renew his intrigues against the British government, at the time they authorize his return, they forbid him, under the severest penal- ties, from any con\'ersation with the nabob or his ministers ; 178 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE that is, they forbid his communication with the very person on account of his deahngs with whom they permit his return to that city. To overtop this contradiction, there is not a word restraining him from the freest intercourse with the nabob's second son, the real author of all that is done in the nabob's name ; who, in conjunction with this very Benfield, has acquired an absolute dominion over that unhappy man, is able to per- suade him to put his signature to whatever paper they please, and often without any communication of the contents. This management was detailed to them at full length by lord Ma- cartney, and they cannot pretend ignorance of it. I believe, after this exposure of facts, no man can entertain a doubt of the collusion of ministers with the corrupt interest of the delinquents in India. Whenever those in authority pro- vide for the interest of any person, on the real but concealed state of his aftairs, without regard to his avowed, public, and ostensible pretences, it must be presumed that they are in con- federacy with him, because they act for him on the same fraudulent principles on which he acts for himself It is plain, that the ministers were fully apprized of Benfield's real situation, which he had used means to conceal whilst concealment an- swered his purposes. They were, or the person on whom they relied was, of the cabinet council of Benfield, in the very depth of all his mysteries. An honest magistrate compels men to abide by one story. An equitable judge would not hear of the claim of a man who had himself thought proper to renounce it. With such a judge, his shuffling and prevarication would have damned his claims ; such a judge never would have known, but in order to animadvert upon, proceedings of that character. I have thus laid before you, Mr. Speaker, I think with suffi- cient clearness, the connexion of the ministers with Mr. Atkin- son at the general election; I have laid open to you the connexion of Atkinson with Benfield ; I have shown Benfield's employment of his wealth, in creating a parliamentary interest, to procure a ministerial protection; I have set before your eyes his large concern in the debt, his practices to hide that concern from the public eye, and the liberal protection which he has received from the minister. If this chain of circum- stances do not lead you necessarily to conclude that the minister has paid to the avarice of Benfield the services done by Ben- field's connexions to his ambition, I do not know anything short of the confession of the party that can persuade you of his guilt. Clandestine and collusive practice can only be traced by combination and comparison of circumstances. To reject such combination and comparison is to reject the only means of NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. 179 detecting fraud ; it is indeed to give it a patent and free license to cheat with impunity. I confine myself to the connexion of ministers, mediately or immediately, with only two persons concerned in this debt. How many others, who support their power and greatness within and without doors, are concerned originally, or by transfers of these debts, must be left to general opinion. I refer to the reports of the select committee for the proceedings of some of the agents in these affairs, and their attempts, at least, to furnish ministers with the means of buying general courts, and even whole parliaments, in the gross. I know that the ministers will think it little less than acquittal, that they are not charged with having taken to themselves some part of the money of which they have made so liberal a dona- tion to their partisans, though the charge may be indisputably fixed upon the corruption of their politics. For my part, I fol- low their crimes to that point to which legal presumptions and natural indications lead me, without considering what species of evil motive tends most to aggravate or to extenuate the guilt of their conduct. But if I am to speak my private sentiments, I think that in a thousand cases for one it would be far less mischievous to the public, and full as little dishonorable to themselves, to be polluted with direct bribery, than thus to be- come a standing auxiliary to the oppression, usury, and pecula- tion of multitudes, in order to obtain a corrupt support to their power. It is by bribing, not so often by being bribed, that wicked politicians bring ruin on mankind. Avarice is a rival to the pursuits of many. It finds a multitude of checks, and many opposers, in every walk of life. But the objects of am- bition are for the few; and every person who aims at indirect profit, and therefore w^ants other protection than innocence, and law, instead of its rival, becomes its instrument. There is a natural allegiance and fealty due to this domineering paramount evil, from all the vassal vices, which acknowledge its supe- riority, and readily militate under its banners; and it is under that discipline alone that avarice is able to spread to any con- siderable extent, or to render itself a general public mischief. It is therefore no apology for ministers that they have not been bought by the East India delinquents, but that they have onlv formed an alliance with them for screening each other from justice, according to the exigence of their several necessities. That they have done so is evident; and the junction of the power of office in England, with the abuse of authority in the East, has not only prevented even the appearance of redress to the grievances of India, but I wish it may not be found to have 180 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE dulled, if not extinguished, the honor, the candor, the generosity, the good nature, which used formerly to characterize the people of England. I confess, I wish that some more feeling than I have yet observed for the suflerings of our fellow-crea- tures and fellow-subjects in that oppressed part of the world, had manifested itself in any one quarter of the kingdom, or in any one large description of men. That these oppressions exist, is a fact no miore denied, than it is resented as it ought to be. Much evil has been done in India under the British autiiority. What has been done to re- dress it ? We are no longer surprised at anything. We are above the unlearned and vulgar passion of admiration. But it will astonish posterity, when they read our opinions in our actions, that after years of inquiry we have found out that the sole grievance of India consisted in this, that the servants of the company there had not profited enough of their opportuni- ties, nor drained it sufficiently of its treasures; when they shall hear that the very first and only important act of a commission specially named by act of parliament, is to charge upon an undone country, in favor of a handful of men in the humblest ranks of the public service, the enormous sum of perhaps four millions of sterling money. It is difficult for the most Avise and upright government to correct the abuses of remote delegated power, productive of unmeasured wealth, and protected by the boldness and strength of the same ill-got riches. These abuses, full of their own wild native vigor, will grow and flourish under mere neglect. But where the supreme authority, not content with winking at the rapacity of its inferior instruments, is so shameless and cor- rupt as openly to give bounties and premiums for disobedience to its laws ; when it will not trust to the activity of avarice in the pursuit of its own gains ; when it secures public robbery by all the careful jealousy and attention with which it ought to protect property from such violence ; the commonwealth then is become totally perverted from its purposes ; neither God nor man will long endure it ; nor will it long endure itself. In that case, there is an unnatural infection, a pestilential taint ferment- ing in the constitution of society, which fever and convulsions of some kind or other, must throw oflT; or in which the vital powers, worsted in an unequal struggle, are pushed back upon themselves, and by a reversal of their whole functions, fester to gangrene, to death ; and instead of what was but just now the delight and boast of ci'eation, there will be cast out in the face of the sun, a bloated, putrid, noisome carcase, full of stench and poison, an offence, a horror, a lesson to the world. NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. 181 In my opinion, we ought not to wait for the fruitless instruc- tion of calamity, to inquire into the abuses which bring upon us ruin in the worst of its forms, in the loss of our fame and virtue. But the right honorable gentleman says, in answer to all the powerful arguments of my honorable friend — " that this inquiry is of a delicate nature, and that the state will suffer detriment, by the exposure of this transaction." But it is ex- posed ; it is perfectly known in every member, in every parti- cle, and in every way, except that which may lead to a remedy. He knows that the papers of correspondence are printed, and that they are in every hand. He and delicacy are a rare and singular coalition. He thinks that to divulge our Indian politics, may be highly dangerous. He ! the mover ! the chairman ! the reporter of the committee of secrecy ! he that brought forth in the utmost detail, in sev- eral vast, printed folios, the most recondite parts of the politics, tlie military, the revenues of the British empire in India. With six great chopping bastards, each as lusty as an infant Hercu- les, this delicate creature blushes at the sight of his new bride- groom, assumes a virgin delicacy ; or, to use a more fit, as well as a more poetic comparison, the person so squeamish, so timid, so trembUng lest the winds of heaven should visit too roughly, is expanded to broad sunshine, exposed hke the sow of imperial augury, lying in the mud with all the prodigies of her fertility about her, as evidence of her delicate amours — Triginta capiium fatus enixa jacebat, aJha solo recuhans alhi circum uhera nati. Whilst discovery of the misgovernment of others, led to his own power, it was wise to inquire ; it was safe to pubhsh : there was then no danger. But when his object is obtained, and in his imitation he has outdone the crimes that he had reprobated in volumes of reports, and in sheets of bills of pains and penal- ties, then concealment becomes prudence ; and it concerns the safety of the state, that we should not know, in a mode of par- liamentary cognizance, what all the world knows but too well: that is, in what manner he chooses to dispose of the public, revenues to the creatures of his politics. The debate has been long, and as much so on my part, at least, as on the part of those who have spoken before me. But long as it is, the more material half of the subject has hardty been touched on ; that is, the corrupt and destructive system to which this debt has been rendered subservient, and which seems to be pursued with at least as much vigor and regu- larity as ever. If I considered your ease or my own, rather than the weight and importance of this question, I oua:ht to 14 182 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE make some apology to you, perhaps some apology to myself, for having detained yom- attention so long. I know on what ground I tread. This subject, at one time taken up with so much fervor and zeal, is no longer a favorite in this house. The house itself has undergone a great and signal revolution. To some, the subject is strange and uncouth ; to several, harsh and distasteful ; to the relics of the last parUament, it is a mat- ter of fear and apprehension. It is natural for those who have seen their friends sink in the tornado which raged during the late shift of the monsoon, and have hardly escaped on the planks of the general wreck, it is but too natural for them, as soon as they make the rocks and quicksands of their former disasters, to put about their new-built barks, and, as much as possible, to keep aloof from this perilous lee-shore. But let us do what we please to put India from our thoughts, we can do nothing to separate it from our public interest and our national reputation. Our attempts to banish this importu- nate duty, will only make it return upon us again and again, and every time in a shape more unpleasant than the former. A government has been fabricated for that great province; the right honorable gentleman says, that therefore you ought not to examine into its conduct. Heaven! what an argu- ment is this ! We are not to examine into the conduct of the direction, because it is an old government; we are not to examine into this board of control, because it is a new one. Then we are only to examine into the conduct of those who have no conduct to account for. Unfortunately the basis of this new government has been laid on old condemned de- linquents, and its superstructure is raised out of prosecutors turned into protectors. The event has been such as might be expected. But if it had been otherwise constituted ; had it been constituted even as I wished, and as the mover of this question had planned, the better part of the proposed establishment was in the publicity of its proceedings ; in its perpetual responsibility to parliament. Without this check, what is our government at home, even awed, as every Euro- pean government is, by an audience formed of the other states of Europe, by the applause or condemnation of the discern ing and critical company before which it acts ? But if the scene on the other side the globe, which tempts, invites, almost compels to tyranny and rapine, be not inspected with the eye of a severe and unremitting vigilance, shame and destruc- tion must ensue. For one, the worst event of this day, though it may deject, shall not break or subdue me. The call upon us is authoritative. Let who will shrink back, I shall be NABOB OF ARGOT'S DEBTS. 183 found at my post. Baffled, discountenanced, subdued, dis- credited, as tiie cause of justice and humanity is, it will be only the dearer to me. Whoever, therefore, shall at any time bring before you anything towards the relief of our distressed fellow-citizens in India, and towards a subversion of the pres- ent most corrupt and oppressive system for its government, in me shall find a weak, I am afraid, but a steady, earnest, and faithful assistant. MR. BURKE'S SPEECH, ON THE BILL FOR THE RELIEF OF PROTESTANT DISSENTERS. 1 ASSURE you, Sir, that the honorable gentleman, who spoke last but one, need not be in the least fear that I should make a war of particles upon his opinion, whether the church of Eng- land should, would, or ought to be alarmed. I am very clear that this house has no one reason in the world to think she is alarmed by the bill brought before you. It is something ex- traordinary that the only symptom of alarm in the church of England should appear in the petition of some dissenters ; with whom, I beheve, very few in this house are yet acquainted ; and of whom you know no more than you are assured by the honorable gentleman, that they are not Mahometans. Of the church we know they are not, by the name that they assume. They are then dissenters. The first symptom of an alarm comes from some dissenters assembled round the lines of Chat- ham : these fines become the security of the church of Eng- land ! The honorable gentleman, in speaking of the lines of Chatham, tells us, that they serve not only for the security of the wooden wafis of England, but for the defence of the church of England. I suspect, the wooden wafis of England secure the lines of Chatham, rather than the lines of Chatham secure the wooden walls of England. Sir, the church of England, if only defended by this misera- ble petition upon your table, must, I am afraid, upon the prin- ciples of true fortification, be soon destroyed. But fortunately her walls, bulwarks, and bastions, are constructed of other materials than of stubble and straw ; are built up with the strong and stable matter of the gospel of liberty, and founded on a true, constitutional, legal establishment. But, Sir, she has other securities ; she has the security of her own doctrines ; she has the security of the piety, the sanctity of her own pro- fessors ; their learning is a bulwark to defend her ; she has the security of the two universities, not shook in any single battle- ment, in any single pinnacle. But the honorable gentleman has mentioned, indeed, princi- ples which astonish me rather more than ever. The honorable gentleman thinks that the dissenters enjoy a large share of SPEECH ON THE RELIEF OF PROTESTANT DISSENTERS. 1 85 liberty under a connivance ; and he thinks that the estabhshing toleration by law is an attack upon Christianity. The first of these is a contradiction in terms. Liberty under a connivance ! Connivance is a relaxation from slavery, not a definition of Hberty. What is connivance, but a state under which all slaves live ? If I was to describe slavery, I would say with those who hate it, it is living under will, not under law : if, as it is stated by its advocates, I would say, that, like earthquakes, like thunder, or other wars the elements make upon mankind, it happens rarely, it occasionally comes now and then upon people, who upon ordinary occasions enjoy the same legal government of liberty. Take it under the descrip- tion of those who would soften those features, the state of slavery and connivance is the same thing. If the liberty en- joyed be a liberty not of toleration, but of connivance, the only question is, whether establishing such a law is an attack upon Christianity. Toleration an attack upon Christianity ! What then, are we come to this pass, to suppose that nothing can support Christianity, but the principles of persecution ? Is that then the idea of Christianity itself, that it ought to have estab- hshments, that it ought to have laws against dissenters, but the breach of which laws is to be connived at ? What a picture of toleration ; what a picture of laws, of establishments ; what a picture of rehgious and civil liberty ! I am persuaded the honorable gentleman does not see it in this light. But these very terms become the strongest reasons for my support of the bill ; for I am persuaded that toleration, so far from being an attack upon Christianity, becomes the best and surest support that possibly can be given to it. The Christian religion itself arose without establishment, it arose even without toleration ; and whilst its own principles were not tolerated, it conquered all the powers of darkness, it conquered all the powers of the world. The moment it began to depart from these principles, it converted the establishment into tyranny ; it subverted its foundations from that very hour. Zealous as I am for the principle of an estabUshment, so just an abhorrence do I con- ceive against whatever may shake it. I know nothing but the supposed necessity of persecution that can make an establish- ment disgusting. I would have toleration a part of the estab- lishment, as a principle favorable to Christianity, and as a part of Christianity. All seem agreed that the law, as it stands, inflicting penalties on all religious teachers and on schoolmasters, who do not sign the thirty-nine articles of religion, ought not to be executed. We are all agreed that the law is not good; for that, I presume, is undoubtedlv the itlea of a law that ought not to be executed. Y 16* 186 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON A BILL FOR THE The question therefore is, whether in a well-constituted common- wealth, which we desire ours to be thought, and I trust, intend that it should be, whether in such a commonwealth it is wise to retain those laws which it is not proper to execute. A penal law, not ordinarily put in execution, seems to me to be a very absurd and a very dangerous thing. For if its principle be right, if the object of its prohibitions and penalties be a real evil, then you do in effect permit that very evil, which not only the reason of the thing, but your very law, declares ought not to be permitted ; and thus it reflects exceedingly on the wisdom, Jind consequently derogates not a little from the authority of a legislature, who can at once forbid and suffer, and in the same breath promulgate penalty and indemnity to the same persons, and for the very same actions. But if the object of the law be no moral or political evil, then you ought not to hold even a terror to those, whom you ought certainly not to punish — for if it is not right to hurt, it is neither right nor wise to menace. Such laws, therefore, as they must be defective either in justice or wisdom, or both, so they cannot exist without a considerable degree of danger. Take them which w^ay you will, they are prest with ugly alternatives. 1st. All penal laws are either upon popular prosecution, or on the part of the crown. Now, if they may be roused fi'om their sleep, whenever a minister thinks proper, as instruments of oppression, then they put vast bodies of men into a state of slavery and court dependence ; since their liberty of conscience and their power of executing their functions depend entirely on his will. I would have no man derive his means of continuing any function, or his being restrained from it, but from the laws only ; they should be his only superior and sovereign lords. 2d. They put statesmen and magistrates into a habit of playing fast and loose with the laws, straining or relaxing them as may best suit their political purposes; and, in that light, tend to corrupt the executive power through all its offices. 3d. If they are taken up on popular actions, their operation in that light also is exceedingly evil. They become the instru- ments of private malice, private avarice, and not of public regulation ; they nourish the worst of men to the prejudice of the best, punishing tender consciences, and rewarding informers. Shall we, as the honorable gentleman tells us we may with perfect security, trust to the manners of the age ? I am well pleased wnth the general manners of the times ; but the desultory execution of penal laws, the thing I condemn, does not depend on the manners of the times. I would however have the laws tuned in unison with the manners — very dissonant are a gentle country and cruel laws; very dissonant that your reason is RELIEF OF PROTESTANT DISSENTERS, 187 furious, but your passions moderate, and that you are always equitable except in your courts of justice. I will beg leave to state to the house one argument, which has been much relied upon — that the dissenters are hot unani- mous upon this business ; that many persons are alarmed ; that it will create a disunion among the dissenters. When any dissenters, or any body of people, come here with a petition, it is not the number of people, but the reasonableness of the request, that should weigh with the house. A body of dissenters come to this house, and say. Tolerate us — we desire neither the parochial advantage of tithes, nor dignities, nor the stalls of your cathedrals : No ! let the venerable orders of the hierarchy exist with all their advantages. And shall I tell them, I reject your just and reasonable petition, not because it shakes the church, but because there are others, while you lie grovelling upon the earth, that will kick and bite you ? Judge which of these descriptions of men comes with a fair request — that which says. Sir, I desire liberty for my own, because I trespass on no man's conscience ; — or the other, which says, I desire that these men should not be suffered to act according to their consciences, though I am tolerated to act according to mine. But I sign a body of ai'ticles, which is my title to toleration ; I sign no more, because more are against my conscience. But I desire that you will not tolerate these men, because they will not go so far as I, though I desire to be tolerated, who vt'ill not go as far as you. No : imprison them, if they come within five miles of a corporate tow'n, because they do not believe what I do in point of doctrines. Shall I not say to these men, arrangez vous canaille. You, who are not the predominant power, will not give to others the relaxation under which you are yourself suffered to live. I have as high an opinion of the doctrines of the church as you. I receive them implicitly, or I put my own explanation on them, or take that which seems to me to come best recommended by authority. There are those of the dissenters w'ho think more rigidly of the doctrine of the articles relative to predestination, than others do. They sign the article relative to it ex animo and literally. Others allow a latitude of construction. These two parties are in the church, as well as among the dissenters ; yet, in the church, we live quietly under the same roof I do not see why, as long as Providence gives us no further light into this great mystery, we should not leave things as the divine wisdom has left them. But suppose all these things to me to be clear (which Providence however seems to have left obscure), yet whilst dissenters claim a toleration in things, which seeming clear to me, are obscure to them, without entering into the merit 188 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON A BILL FOR THE of the articles, with what face can these men say, Tolerate us, but do not tolerate them ? Toleration is good for all, or it is good for none. The discussion this day is not between establishment on one hand, and toleration on the other ; but between those who, being tolerated themselves, refuse toleration to others. That power should be puffed up with pride, that authority should degenerate into rigor, if not laudable, is but too natural. But this proceed- ing of theirs is much beyond the usual allowance to human weakness ; it not only is shocking to our reason, but it provokes our indignation. Quid domini facient, audent cum talia fures? It is not the proud prelate thundering in his commission court, but a pack of manumitted slaves, with the lash of the beadle flagrant on their backs, and their legs still galled with their fetters, that would drive their brethren into that prison-house from whence they have just been permitted to escape. If, instead of puzzling themselves in the depths of the divine coun- sels, they would turn to the mild morality of the gospel, they would read their own condemnation — O, thou wicked servant, I forgave thee all that debt because thou desiredst me : shouldest not thou also have compassion on thy fellow-servant, even as I had pity on thee 1 In my opinion, Sir, a magistrate, whenever he goes to put any restraint upon religious freedom, can only do it upon this ground, that the person dissenting does not dissent from the scruples of ill-informed conscience, but from a party ground of dissension, in order to raise a faction in the state. We give, with regard to rites and ceremonies, an indulgence to tender consciences. But if dissent is at all punished in any country, if at all it can be punished upon any pretence, it is upon a presumption, not that a man is supposed to differ conscientiously from the establishment, but that he r-esists truth for the sake of faction ; that he abets diversity of opinions in religion to distract the state, and to destroy the peace of his country. This is the only plausible, for there is no true ground of persecution. As the laws stand, therefore, let us see how we have thought fit to act. If there is any one thing within the competency of a ma- gistrate with regard to religion, it is this, that he has a right to direct the exterior ceremonies of religion ; that whilst interior religion is within the jurisdiction of God alone, the external part, bodily action, is within the province of the chief governor. Hooker, and all the great lights of the church, have constantly argued this to be a part within the province of the civil ma- gistrate ; but look at the act of toleration of William and Mary, RELIEF OF PROTESTANT DISSENTERS. 189 there you will see the civil magistrate has not only dispensed with those things which are more particularly within his pro- vince, with those things which faction might be supposed to take up for the sake of making visible and external divisions, and raising a standard of revolt, but has also, from sound politic considerations, relaxed on those points which are con- fessedly without his province. The honorable gentleman, speaking of the heathens, certainly could not mean to recommend anything that is derived from that impure source. But he has praised the tolerating spirit of tlie heathens. Well ! but the honorable gentleman will recollect that heathens, that polytheists, must permit a number of di- vinities. It is the very essence of its constitution. But was it ever heard that polytheism tolerated a dissent from a polythe- istic establishment ? the belief of one God only? Never, never! Sir, they constantly carried on persecution against that doctrine. I will not give heathens the glory of a doctrine which I consider the best part of Christianity. The honorable gentleman must recollect the Roman law that was clearly against the introduc- tion of any foreign rites in matters of religion. You have it at large in Livy, how they persecuted in the first introduction the rites of Bacchus : and even before Christ, to say nothing of their subsequent persecutions, they persecuted the druids and others. Heathenism, therefore, as in other respects erroneous, was erroneous in point of persecution. I do not say, every heathen, who persecuted, was therefore an impious man : I only say he was mistaken, as such a man is now. But, says the honorable gentleman, they did not persecute epicureans. No ; the epicureans had no quarrel with their religious establishment, nor desired any rehgion for themselves. It would have been very extraordinary, if irreligious heathens had desired either a religious establishment or toleration. But, says the honorable gentleman, the epicureans entered, as others, into the temples. They did so ; they defied all subscription ; they defied all sorts of conformity ; there was no subscription to which they were not ready to set their hands, no ceremonies they refused to practise ; they made it a principle of their irreligion, outwardly to conform to any religion. These atheists eluded all that you could do ; so will all freethinkers for ever. Then you suffer, or the weakness of your law has suffered, those great dangerous animals to escape notice, whilst you have nets that entangle the poor fluttering silken wings of a tender conscience. The honorable gentleman insists much upon this circumstance of objection, namely, the division amongst the dissenters. Why, Sir, the dissenters by the nature of the term are open to have a division among themselves. They are dissenters, because they 190 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON A BILL FOR THE differ from the church of England ; not that they agree among themselves. There are presbyterians, there are independents, some that do not agree to infant-baptism, others that do not agree to the baptism of adults, or any baptism. All these are however tolerated under the acts of King William, and subse- quent acts ; and their diversity of sentiments with one another did not, and could not, furnish an argument against their tolera- tion, when their diflerence with ourselves furnished none. But, says the honorable gentleman, if you suffer them to go on, they will shake the fundamental principles of Christianity. Let it be considered that this argument goes as strongly against connivance, which you allow, as against toleration, which you reject. The gentleman sets out with a principle of perfect liberty, or, as he describes it, connivance. But for fear of dangerous opin- ions, you leave it in your power to vex a man who has not held any one dangerous opinion whatsoever. If one man is a professed atheist, another man the best Christian, but dissents from two of the thirty-nine articles, I may let escape the atheist, because I know him to be an atheist, because I am perhaps so inclined myself, and because I may connive where I think proper ; but the conscientious dissenter, on account of his attachment to that general religion, which perhaps I hate, I shall take care to punish, because I may punish when I think proper. Therefore, connivance being an engine of private malice or private favor, not of good government ; an engine, which totally fails of sup- pressing atheism, but oppresses conscience ; I say, that principle becomes not serviceable, but dangerous to Christianity; that it is not toleration, but contrary to it, even contrary to peace ; that the penal system to which it belongs is a dangerous prin- ciple in the economy either of religion or government. The honorable gentleman, and in him I comprehend all those who oppose the bill, bestowed in support of their side of the question as much argument as it could bear, and much more of learning and decoration than it deserved. He thinks conni- vance consistent, but legal toleration inconsistent with the inter- ests of Christianity. Perhaps I would go as far as that honorable gentleman, if I thought toleration inconsistent with those inter- ests. God forbid ! I may be mistaken, but I take toleration to be a part of religion. I do not know which I would sacrifice ; I would keep them both ; it is not necessary I should sacrifice either. I do not like the idea of tolerating the doctrines of Epicurus : but nothing in the world propagates them so much as the oppression of the poor, of the honest, and candid disciples of the religion we profess in comnwn, I mean revealed religion ; nothing sooner makes them take a short cutout of the bondage cf sectarian vexation, into open and direct infidelity, than tor- RELIEF OF PROTESTANT DISSENTERS. 191 meriting men for every diflerence. My opinion is, that in establishing the Christian rehgion wherever you find it, curiosity or research is its best security; and in this way a man is a great deal better justified in saying, tolerate all kinds of con- sciences, than in imitating the heathens, whom the honorable gentleman quotes, in tolerating those who have none. I am not over-fond of calling for the secular arm upon these misguided or misguiding men; but if ever it ought to be raised, it ought surely to be raised against these very men, not against others, whose liberty of religion you make a pretext for proceedings which drive them into the bondage of impiety. What figure do I make in saying, I do not attack the works of these athe- istical writers, but I will keep a rod hanging over the consci- entious man, their bitterest enemy, because these atheists may take advantage of the liberty of their foes, to introduce irreligion? The best book that ever perhaps has been written against these people, is that in which the author has collected in a body the whole of the infidel code, and has brought the writers into one body to cut them all oft' together. This was done by a dissenter, who never did subscribe the thirty-nine articles — Dr. Leland. But if, after all, this danger is to be apprehended, if you are really fearful that Christianity will indirectly suffer by this liberty, you have my free consent ; go directly and by the straight way, and not by a circuit in w^hich in your road you may destroy your friends : point your arms against these men, who do the mischief you fear promoting; point your arms against men, who, not contented with en- deavoring to turn your eyes from the blaze and efflilgence of light, by which life and immortality is so gloriously demon- strated by the gospel, would even extinguish that faint glim- mering of nature, that only comfort supplied to ignorant man before this great illumination — those, who, by attacking even the possibility of all revelation, arraign all the dispensations of providence to man. These are the wicked dissenters you ought to fear ; these are the people against whom you ought to aim the shaft of the law ; these are the men to whom, arrayed in all the terrors of government, I would say, you shall not degrade us into brutes ; these men, these factious men, as the honorable gentleman properly called them, are the just objects of vengeance, not the conscientious dissenter; these men, who would take away whatever ennobles the rank or consoles the misfortunes of human nature, by breaking off' that connexion of observances, of affections, of hopes and fears, which bind us to the divinity, and constitute the glorious and distinguishing prerogative of humanity, that of being a religious creature ; against these I would have the laws rise in all their majesty of 192 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON A BILL FOR THE terrors, to fulminate such vain and impious wretches, and to awe them into impotence by the only dread they can fear or beheve, to learn that eternal lesson — Discite justitiam moniti, el 71011 temnere Divos. At the same time that I would cut up the very root of atheism, I would respect all conscience, all conscience that is really such, and which, perhaps, its very tenderness proves to be sincere. I wish to see the established church of England great and powerful ; I wish to see her foundations laid low and deep, that she may crush the giant powers of rebellious darkness ; I would have her head raised up to that Heaven to which she conducts us. I would have her open wide her hospitable gates by a noble and liberal comprehension ; but I would have no breaches in her wall ; I would have her cherish all those who are within, and pity all those who are without ; I would have her a com- mon blessing to the world, an example, if not an instructor, to those who have not the happiness to belong to her ; I would have her give a lesson of peace to mankind, that a vexed and wandering generation might be taught to seek for repose and toleration in the maternal bosom of Christian charity, and not in the harlot lap of infidelity and indifference. Nothing has driven people more into that house of seduction than the mutual hatred of Christian congregations. Long may we enjoy our church under a learned and edifying episcopacy. But episco- pacy may fail, and religion exist. The most horrid and cruel blow that can be offered to civil society is through atheism. Do not promote diversity ; when you have it, bear it ; have as many sorts of religion as you find in your country ; there is a reasonable worship in them all. The others, the infidels, are outlaws of the constitution ; not of this country, but of the human race. They are never, never to be supported, never to be tolerated. Under the systematic attacks of these people, I see some of the props of good government already begin to fail ; I see propagated principles, which will not leave to religion even a toleration. I see myself sinking every day under the attacks of these wretched people — How shall I arm myself against them ? by uniting all those in aflTection who are united in the belief of the great principles of the Godhead that made and sustains the world. They who hold revelation give double assurance to the country. Even the man who does not hold revelation, yet who wishes that it were proved to him, who observes a pious silence with regard to it, such a man, though not a Christian, is governed by religious principles. Let him be tolerated in th">s country. Let it be but a serious religion, natural or revealed, take what you can get ; cherish, blow up the slighest spark. One day it may be a pure and holy flame. RELIEF OF PROTESTANT DISSENTERS. 193 By this proceeding you form an alliance, offensive and defen- sive, against those great ministers of darkness in the w^orld, who are endeavoring to shake all the works of God established in order and beauty. Perhaps I am carried too far ; but it is in the road into which the honorable gentleman has led me. The honorable gentleman would have us fight this confederacy of the powers of darkness whh the single arm of the church of England ; would have us not only fight against infidelity, but fight at the same time with all the faith in the world except our own. In the moment we make a front against the common enemy, we have to combat with all those who are the natural friends of our cause. Strong as we are, we are not equal. to this. The cause of the church of England is included in that of religion, not that of religion in the church of England. I will stand up at all times for the rights of conscience, as it is such, not for its particular modes against its general principles. One may be right, another mistaken ; but if I have more strength than my brother, it shall be employed to support, not to oppress his weakness ; if I have more light, it shall be used to guide not to dazzle him. Z 17 EXTRACT FROM THE SPEECH OF MR. BURKE, UPON MR. FOX'S EAST INDIA BILL. Mr. Speaker, I THANK you for pointing to me. I really wished much to en gage your attention in an early stage of the debate. I have been long very deeply, though perhaps ineffectually, engaged in the preliminary inquiries, which have continued without intermission for some years. Though I have felt, with some degree of sen- sibility, the natural and inevitable impressions of the several matters of fact, as they have been successively disclosed, I have not at any time attempted to trouble you on the merits of the sub- ject ; and very little on any of the points which incidentally arose in the course of our proceedings. But I should be sorry to be found totally silent upon this day. Our inquiries are now come to their final issue :^It is now to be determined whether the three years of laborious parliamentary research, whether the twenty years of patient Indian suffering, are to produce a substantial reform in our eastern administration ; or whether our knowledge of the grievances has abated our zeal for the correction of them, and our very inquiry into the evil was only a pretext to elude the remedy which is demanded from us by humanity, by justice, and by every principle of true policy. Depend upon it, this business cannot be indiflferent to our fame. It will turn out a matter of great disgrace or great glory to the whole British nation. We are on a conspicuous stage, and the wor'd mai'ks our demeanor. J am therefore a little concerned to perceive the spirit and temper in which the debate has been all along pursued upon one side of the house. The declamation of the gentlemen who oppose the bill has been abundant and vehement ; but they have been reserved and even silent about the fitness or unfitness of the plan to attain the direct object it has in view. By some gentlemen it is taken up (by way of exercise, I presume) as a point of law on a question of private property, and corporate franchise ; by others it is regarded as the petty intrigue of a faction at court, and argued merely as it tends to set this man a little higher, or that a little lower in situation and power. All the void has been filled up with invectives against coalition ; with allusions to the loss of America ; with the activity and BURKE'S SPEECH ON MR. FOX'S EAST INDIA BILL. 195 inactivity of ministers. The total silence of these gentlemen concerning the interest and well-being of the people of India, and concerning the interest which this nation has in the com- merce and revenues of that country, is a strong indication of the value which they set upon these objects. It has been a little painful to me to observe the intrusion into this important debate of such company as quo ivarranto, and mandamus, and certiorari; as if we were on a trial about mayors and aldermen, and capital burgesses ; or engaged in a suit concerning the borough of Penryn, or Saltash, or St. Ives, or St. Mawes. Gentlemen have argued with as much heat and passion, as if the first things in the world were at stake ; and their topics are such, as belong only to matter of the lowest and meanest htigation. It is not right, it is not worthy of us, in this manner to depreciate the value, to degrade the majesty, of this grave deliberation of policy and empire. For my part, I have thought myself bound, when a matter of this extraordinary weight came before me, not to consider (as some gentlemen are so fond of doing) whether the bill originated from a secretary of state for the home department, or from a secretary for the foreign ; from a minister of influ- ence or a minister of the people ; from Jacob or from Esau. I asked myself, and I asked myself nothing else, w^hat part it was fit for a member of parliament, who has supplied a mediocrity of talents by the extreme of diligence, and who has thought himself obliged, by the research of years, to wind himself into the inmost recesses and labyrinths of the Indian detail, what part, I say, it became such a member of parUament to take, when a minister of state, in conformity to a recommendation from the throne, has brought before us a system for the better government of the territory and commerce of the east. In this light, and in this only, I will trouble you with my sentiments. It is not only agreed but demanded, by the right honorable gentleman, and by those who act with him, that a whole system ought to be produced ; that it ought not to be an half measure ; that it ought to be no 'palliative ; but a legislative provision, vigorous, substantial, and effective. — I believe that no man who understands the subject can doubt for a moment, that those must be the conditions of anything deserving the name of a reform in the Indian government : that anything short of them would not only be delusive, but, in this matter which admits no medium, noxious in the extreme. To all the conditions proposed by his adversaries, the mover of the bill perfectly agrees ; and on his performance of them he rests his cause. On the other hand, not the least objection has been taken, with regard to the efficiency, the vigor, or the 196 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH completeness of the scheme. I am therefore warranted to as sume, as a thmg admitted, that the bills accomplish what both sides of the house demand as essential. The end is completely answered, so far as the direct and immediate object is concerned. But though there are no direct, yet there are various col- lateral objections made ; objections from the effects which this plan of relbrm for Indian administration may have on the privi- leges of great public bodies in England; from its probable influ- ence on the constitutional rights, or on the freedom and integ- rity of the several branches of the legislature. Before I answer these objections, I must beg leave to observe, that if we are not able to contrive some method of governing India well, which will not of necessity become the means of governing Great Britain ill, a ground is laid for their eternal separation ; but none for sacrificing the people of that country to our constitution. I am however far from being persuaded that any such incompatibility of interest does at all exist. On the contrary, I am certain that every means, effectual to pre- serve India from oppression, is a guard to preserve the British constitution from its worst corruption. To show this, I will consider the objections, which I think are four. 1st. That the bill is an attack on the chartered rights of men. 2dly. That it increases the influence of the crown. 3dly. That it does not increase, but diminishes, the influence of the crown, in order to promote the interests of certain ministers and their party. 4thly. That it deeply aflects the national credit. As to the first of these objections ; I must observe that the phrase of " the chartered rights of men" is full of affectation ; and very unusual in the discussion of privileges conferred by charters of the present description. But it is not difficult to discover what end that ambiguous mode of expression, so often reiterated, is meant to answer. The rights of men, that is to say, the natural rights of man- kind, are indeed sacred things ; and if any public measure is proved mischievously to affect them, the objection ought to be fatal to that measure, even if no charter at all could be set up against it. If these natural rights are further afiirmed and de- clared by express covenants, if they are clearly defined and secured against chicane, against power, and authority, by writ- ten instruments and positive engagements, they are in a still better condition : they partake not only of the sanctity of the object so secured, but of that solemn pubUc faith itself, which secures an object of such importance. Indeed this formal recognition, by the sovereign power, of an original right in the subject, can never be subverted, but by rooting up the holding ON MR. FOX'S EAST INDIA BILL. 197 radical principles of government, and even of society itself. The charters, which we call by distinction great, are public in- struments of this nature ; I mean the charters of king John and king Henry the third. The things secured by these instru- ments may, without any deceitful ambiguity, be very fitly called the chartered rights of men. These charters have made the very name of a chartei dear to the heart of every Englishman. — But, Sir, there may be, and there are charters, not only different in nature, but formed on principles the very reverse of those of the great charter. Of this kind is the charter of the East India company. Magna charta is a charter to restrain power, and to destroy monopoly. The East India charter is a charter to establish monopoly, and to create power. Political power and commercial monopoly are not the rights of men ; and the rights of them derived from charters, it is fallacious and sophistical to call " the chartered rights of men." These chartered rights, (to speak of such chaiiers and of their effects in terms of the greatest possible moderation,) do at least suspend the natural rights of mankind at large ; and in their very frame and constitution are liable to fall into a direct violation of them. It is a charter of this latter description (that is to say, a charter of power and monopoly) which is affected by the bill before you. The bill. Sir, does, without question, affect it ; it does affect it essentially and substantially. But having stated to you of what description the chartered rights are which this bill touches, I feel no difficulty at all in acknowledging the ex- istence of those chartered rights, in their fullest extent. They belong to the company in the surest manner ; and they are secured to that body by every sort of public sanction. They are stamped by the faith of the king ; they are stamped by the faith of parliament ; they have been bought for money, for money honestly and fairly paid ; they have been bought for valuable consideration, over and over again. I therefore freely admit to the East India company their claim to exclude their fellow-subjects from the commerce of half the globe. I admit their claim to administer an annual territorial revenue of seven millions sterling ; to command an army of sixty thousand men ; and to dispose, (under the con- trol of a sovereign imperial discretion, and with the due ob- servance of the natural and local law) of the lives and fortunes of thirty millions of their fellow-creatures. All this they pos- sess by charter and by acts of parliament, (in my opinion,) without a shadow of controversy. Those who carry the rights and claims of the company the urthest do not contend for more than this ; and all this I freely 17* 198 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH grant. But granting all this, they must grant to me in my turn, that all political power which is set over men, and that all privilege claimed or exercised in exclusion of them, being wholly artificial, and for so much a derogation from the natural equality of mankind at large, ought to be some way or other exercised ultimately for their benefit. If this is true with regard to every species of political do- minion, and every description of commercial privilege, none of which can be original self-derived rights, or grants for the mere private benefit of the holders, then such rights, or privi- leges, or whatever else you choose to call them, are all in the strictest sense a trust ; and it is of the very essence of every trust to be rendered accountable; and even totally to cease, when it substantially varies from the purposes for which alone it could have a lawful existence. This I conceive. Sir, to be true of trusts of power vested in the highest hands, and of such as seem to hold of no human creature. But about the application of this principle to subor- dinate derivative trusts, I do not see how a controversy can be maintained. To whom then would I make the East India company accountable? Why, to parliament, to be sure; to parliament, from whom their trust was derived ; to parliament, which alone is capable of comprehending the magnitude of its object, and its abuse ; and alone capable of an effectual legis- lative remedy. The very charter, which is held out to exclude parliament from correcting malversation with regard to the high trust vested in the company, is the very thing which at once gives a title and imposes a duty on us to interfere with effect, wherever power and authority originating from ourselves are perverted from their purposes, and become instruments of wrong and violence. If parliament, Sir, had nothing to do with this charter, we might have some sort of Epicurean excuse to stand aloof, in- different spectators of what passes in the company's name in India and in London. But if we are the very cause of the evil, we are in a special manner engaged to the redress ; and for us passively to bear with oppressions committed under the sanction of our own authority, is in truth and reason for this house to be an active accompUce in the abuse. That the power notoriously, grossly abused has been bought from us is very certain. But this circumstance, which is urged against the bill, becomes an additional motive for our inter- ference ; lest we should be thought to have sold the blood of millions of men, for the base consideration of money. We sold, I admit, all that we had to sell ; that is, our authority, ON MR. FOX'S EAST INDIA BILL. 1 99 not our control. We had not a right to make a market of our duties. I ground myself therefore on this principle — that if the abuse is proved, the contract is broken; and we re-enter into all our rights ; that is, into the exercise of all our duties. Our own authority is indeed as much a trust originally, as the com- pany's authority is a trust derivatively ; and it is the use we make of the resumed power that must justify or condemn us in the resumption of it. When we have perfected the plan laid before us by the right honorable mover, the world will then see what it is we destroy, and what it is we create. By that test we stand or fall ; and by that test I trust that it will be found in the issue, that we are going to supersede a charter abused to the full extent of all the powers which it could abuse, and exercised in the plenitude of despotism, tyranny, and cor- ruption ; and that in one and the same plan, we provide a real chartered security for the rights of men cruelly violated under that charter. This bill, and those connected with it, are intended to form the magna charta of Hindostan. Whatever the treaty of Westphalia is to the liberty of the princes and free cities of the empire, and to the three religions there professed — Whatever the great charter, the statute of tallage, the petition of right, and the declaration of right, are to Great Britain, these bills are to the people of India. Of this benefit, I am certain, their condition is capable ; and when I know that they are capable of more, my vote shall most assuredly be for our giving to the full extent of their capacity of receiving ; and no charter of dominion shall stand as a bar in my way to their charter of safety and protection. The strong admission I have made of the company's rights (I am conscious of it) binds me to do a great deal. I do not pre- sume to condemn those who argue a priori, against the pro- . priety of leaving such extensive political powers in the hands of a company of merchants. I know much is, and much more may be, said against such a system. But, with my particular ideas and sentiments, I cannot go that way to work. I feel an insuperable reluctance in giving my hand to destroy any es- tablished institution of government, upon a theory, however plausible it may be. My experience in life teaches me nothing clear upon the subject. I have known merchants with the sentiments and the abilities of great statesmen ; and I have seen persoi>3 in the rank of statesmen, with the conceptions and characters of pedlars. Indeed, my observation has furnished me with nothing that is to be found in any habits of hfe or education, which tends wholly to disquaUfy men for the func- 200 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH tions of government, but that, by which the power of exer- cising those functions is very frequently obtained, I mean a spirit and habits of low cabal and intrigue ; which I have never, in one instance, seen united with a capacity for sound and manly policy. To justify us in taking the administration of their affairs out of the hands of the East India company, on my principles, I must see several conditions. 1st. The object affected by the abuse should be great and important. 2d. The abuse affecting this great object ought to be a great abuse. 3d. It ought to be habitual, and not accidental. 4th. It ought to be utterly in- curable in the body as it now stands constituted. All this ought to be made as visible to me as the light of the sun, be- fore I should strike off an atom of their charter. A right hon- orable gentleman has said, and said I think but once, and that very slightly (whatever his original demand for a plan might seem to require) that " there are abuses in the company's gov- ernment." If that were all, the scheme of the mover of this bill, the scheme of his learned friend, and his own scheme of reformation (if he has any) are all equally needless. There are, and must be, abuses in all governments. It amounts to no more than a nugatory proposition. But before I consider of what nature these abuses are, of which the gentleman speaks so very lightly, permit me to recall to your recollection the map of the country which this abused chartered right affects. This I shall do, that you may judge whether in that map I can discover anything like the first of my conditions ; that is, Whether the object affected by the abuse of the East India company's power be of importance sufficiently to justify the measure and means of reform applied to it in this bill. With very few, and those inconsiderable intervals, the Brit- ish dominion, either in the company's name, or in the names of princes absolutely dependent upon the company, extends from the mountains that separate India from Tartary, to cape Co- morin, that is, one-and-twenty degrees of latitude ! In the northern parts it is a solid mass of land, about eight hundred miles in length, and four or five hundred broad. As you go southward, it becomes narrower for a space. It after- wards dilates ; but narrower or broader, you possess the whole eastern and north-eastern coast of that vast country, quite from the borders of Pegu. — Bengal, Bahar, and Orissa, with Bena- res, (now unfortunately in our immediate possession,) measure 161,978 square English miles; a territory considerably larger than the whole kingdom of France. Oude, with its dependent provinces, is 53,286 square miles, not a great deal less than England. The Carnatic, with Tanjore and the Circars, is ON MR. FOX'S EAST INDIA BILL. 201 65,948 square miles, very considerably larger than England ; and the whole of the company's dominions, comprehending Bombay and Salsette, amounts to 281,412 square miles; which forms a territory larger than any European dominion, Russia and Turkey excepted. Through all that vast extent of country there is not a man who eats a mouthful of rice but by permis- sion of the East India company. So far with regard to the extent. The population of this great empire is not easy to be calculated. When the countries, of which it is composed, came into our possession, they were all eminently peopled, and eminently productive ; though at that time considerably declined from their ancient prosperity. But since they are come into our hands ! ! However, if we make the period of our estimate immediately before the utter desolation of the Carnatic, and if we allow for the havoc which our government had even then made in these regions, we cannot, in my opinion, rate the population at much less than thirty millions of souls ; more than four times the number of persons in the island of Great Britain. My next inquiry to that of the number, is the quality and description of the inhabitants. This multitude of men does not consist of an abject and barbarous populace ; much less of gangs of savages, like the Guaranies and Chiquitos, who wan- der on the waste borders of the river of Amazons, or the Plate ; but a people for ages civiUzed and cultivated ; cultiva- ted by all the arts of polished life, whilst we were yet in the woods. There, have been (and still the skeletons remain) princes once of great dignity, authority, and opulence. There, are to be found the chiefs of tribes and nations. There, is to be found an ancient and venerable priesthood, the depository of their laws, learning, and history, the guides of the people whilst living, and their consolation in death ; a nobility of great anti- quity and renown; a multitude of cities, not exceeded in popu- lation and trade by those of the first class in Europe ; merchants and bankers, individual houses of whom have once vied in capital with the bank of England ; whose credit had often sup- ported a tottering state, and preserved their governments in the midst of war and desolation ; millions of ingenious manufac- turers and mechanics ; millions of the most diligent, and not the least intelligent, tillers of the earth. Here are to be found almost all the religions professed by men ; the Braminical, the Mussulman, the Eastern and the Western Christian. If I were to take the whole aggregate of our possessions there, I should compare it, as the nearest parallel I can find, with the empire of Germany. Our immediate possessions I should compare with the Austrian dominions, and they would 2 A 202 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH not suffer in the comparison. The nabob of Oude might stand for the King of Prussia ; the nabob of Arcot I would compare, as superior in territory, and equal in revenue, to the elector of Saxony. Cheyt Sing, the rajah of Benares, might well rank with the prince of Hesse, at least ; and the rajah of Tanjore (thougli hardly equal in extent of dominion, superior in reve- nue) to the elector of Bavaria. The Polygars and the northern Zemindars, and other great chiefs, might well class with the rest of the princes, dukes, counts, marquises, and bishops in the empire ; all of whom I mention to honor, and surely with- out disparagement to any or all of those most respectable princes and grandees. All this vast mass, composed of so many orders and classes of men, is again infinitely diversified by manners, by religion, by hereditary employment, through all their possible combina- tions. This renders the handling of India a matter in a high degree critical and dehcate. But oh ! it has been handled rudely indeed. Even some of the reformers seem to have for- got that they had anything to do but to regulate the tenants of a manor, or the shopkeepers of the next county town. It is an empire of this extent, of this complicated nature, of this dignity and importance, that I have compared to Ger- many, and the German government ; not for an exact resem- blance, but as a sort of a middle term, by which India might be approximated to our understandings, and if possible to our feelings ; in order to awaken something of sympathy for the unfortunate natives, of which I am afraid we are not perfectly susceptible, whilst we look at this very remote object through a false and cloudy medium. My second condition, necessary to justify me in touching the charter, is. Whether the company's abuse of their trust, with regard to this great object, be an abuse of great atrocity. I shall beg your permission to consider their conduct in two lights ; first the political, and then the commercial. Their political conduct (for distinctness) I divide again into two heads ; the external, in which I mean to comprehend their con- duct in their federal capacity, as it relates to powers and states independent, or that not long since were such ; the other inter- nal, namely their conduct to the countries either immediately subject to the company, or to those who, under the apparent government of native sovereigns, are in a state of much lower, and much more miserable, than common subjection. The attention. Sir, which I wish to preserve to method will not be considered as unnecessary or affected. Nothing else can help me to selection out of the infinite mass of materials ON MR. FOX'S EAST INDIA BILL. 203 which have passed under my eye ; or can keep my mind steady to the great leading points I have in view. With regard therefore to the abuse of the external federal trust, I engage myself to you to make good these three posi- tions : — First, I say, that from mount Imaus, (or whatever else you call that large range of mountains that walls the northern frontier of India,) where it touches us in the latitude of twenty- nine, to Cape Comorin, in the latitude of eight, there is not a single prince, state, or potentate, great or small, in India, with whom they have come into contact, whom they have not sold. I say sold, though sometimes they have not been able to deliver according to their bargain. — Secondly, I say, that there is not a single treaty they have ever made, which they have not broken. — Thirdly, I say, that there is not a single prince or state, who ever put any trust in the company, who is not utterly ruined; and that none are in any degree secure or flourishing, but in the exact proportion to their settled distrust and irrecon- cilable enmity to this nation. These assertions are universal. I say in the full sense universal. They regard the external and political trust only ; but I shall produce others fully equivalent in the internal. For the present, I shall content myself with explaining my meaning ; and if I am called on for proof whilst these bills are depending (which I believe I shall not) I will put my finger on the appen- dixes to the reports, or on papers of record in the house, or the committees, which I have distinctly present to my memory, and which I think I can lay before you at half an hour's warning. The first potentate sold by the company for money, was the Great Mogul — the descendant of Tamerlane. This high per- sonage, as high as human veneration can look at, is by every account amiable in his manners, respectable for his piety according to his mode, and accomplished in all the Oriental literature. All this and the title derived under his charter, to all that we hold in India, could not save him from the general sale. Money is coined in his name; in his name justice is administered; he is prayed for in every temple through the countries we possess — But he was sold. It is impossible, Mr. Speaker, not to pause here for a moment, to reflect on the inconstancy of human greatness, and the stupendous revolutions that have happened in our age of won- ders. Could it be believed when I entered into existence, or when you, a younger man, were born, that on this day, in this house, we should be employed in discussing the conduct of those British subjects who had disposed of the power and person of the grand Mogul ? This is no idle speculation. Awful 204 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH lessons are taught by it, and by other events, of which it is not yet too late to profit. This is hardly a digression ; but I return to the sale of the Mogul. Two districts. Corah, and Allahabad, out of his immense grants, were reserved as a royal demesne to the donor of a kingdom, and the rightful sovereign of so many nations. — After withholding the tribute of 260,000/. a year, which the company was, by the charier they had received from this prince, under the most solemn obligation to pay, these districts were sold to his chief minister Sujah ul Dowlah ; and, what may appear to some the worst part of the transaction, these two districts were sold for scarcely two years' purchase. The descendant of Tamerlane now stands in need almost of the common necessaries of life ; and in this situation we do not even allow him, as bounty, the smallest portion of what we ow^e him in justice. The next sale was that of the whole nation of the Rohillas, w^iich the grand salesman, without a pretence of quarrel, and contrary to his own declared sense of duty and rectitude, sold to the same Sujah ul Dowdah. He sold the people to utter extirpation, for the sum of four hundred thousand pounds. Faithfully was the bargain performed on our side. Hafiz Rhamet, the most eminent of their chiefs, one of the bravest men of his time, and as famous throughout the East for the elegance of his literature, and the spirit of his poetical compo- sitions (by which he supported the name of Hafiz) as for his courage, was invaded with an army of an hundred thousand men, and an English brigade. This man at the head of inferior forces was slain valiantly fighting for his country. His head was cut off, and delivered for money to a barbarian. His wife and children, persons of that rank, were seen begging a handful of rice through the English camp. The whole nation, with inconsiderable exceptions, was slaughtered or banished. The country was laid waste with fire and sword ; and that land, distinguished above most others by the cheerful face of paternal government and protected labor, the chosen seat of cultivation and plenty, is now almost throughout a dreary desert, covered with rushes and briars, and jungles full of wild beasts. The British officer who commanded in the delivery of the people thus sold, felt some compunction at his employment. He represented these enormous excesses to the president of Bengal, for wdiich he received a severe reprimand from the civil governor ; and I much doubt whether the breach caused by the conflict, betw^een the compassion of the mihtary and the firmness of the civil governor, be closed at this hour. In Bengal, Serajah Dowlah was sold to Mir Jaffier ; Mir ON MR. FOX'S EAST INDIA BILL. 205 Jaffier was sold to Mir Cossim; and Mir Cossim was sold to Mir Jaffier again. The succession of Mir Jaffier was sold to his eldest son; — another son of Mir Jaffier, Mobarech uj Dowlah, was sold to his step-mother — The Maratta empire was sold to Rogaba ; and Rogaba was sold and delivered to the Peishwa of the Marattas. Both Rogaba and the Peishwa of the Marattas were offered to sale to the rajah of Berar. Scin- dia, the chief of Malva, was offered to sale to the same rajah ; and the Subah of the Decan was sold to the great trader Ma- homet Ali, nabob of Arcot. To the same nabob of Arcot they sold Hyder Ali and the kingdom of Mysore. To Mahomet Ali they twice sold the kingdom of Tanjore. To the same Maho- met Ali they sold at least twelve sovereign princes, called the Polygars. But to keep things even, the territory of Tinnivelly, belonging to their nabob, they would have sold to the Dutch ; and to conclude the account of sales, their great customer, the nabob of Arcot himself, and his lawful succession, has been sold to his second son. Amir ul Omrah, whose character, views, and conduct, are in the accounts upon your table. It remains with you whether they shall finally perfect this last bargain. All these bargains and sales were regularly attended with the waste and havoc of the country, always by the buyer, and sometimes by the object of the sale. This was explained to you by the honorable mover, when he stated the mode of paying debts due from the country powers to the company. An honorable gentleman, who now is not in his place, objected to his jumping near two thousand miles for an example. But the southern example is perfectly applicable to the northern claim, as the northern is to the southern ; for, throughout the whole space of these two thousand miles, take your stand where you will, the proceeding is perfectly uniform, and what is done in one part will apply exactly to the other. My second assertion is, that the company never has made a treaty which they have not broken. This position is so con- nected with that of the sales of provinces and kingdoms, with the negotiation of universal distraction in every part of India, that a very minute detail may well be spared on this point. It has not yet been contended, by any enemy to the reform, that they have observed any public agreement. When I hear that they have done so in any one instance (which hitherto, I con- fess, I never heard alleged) I shall speak to the particular treaty. The governor general has even amused himself and the court of directors in a very singular letter to that board, in which he admits he has not been very delicate with regard to public faith ; and he goes so far as to state a regular estimate of the sums which the company would have lost, or never acquired, 18 206 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH if the rigid ideas of public faith entertained by his colleagues had been observed. The learned gentleman over against me has indeed saved me much trouble. On a former occasion, he obtained no small credit, for the clear and forcible manner in which he stated what we have not forgot, and I hope he has not forgot, that universal systematic breach of treaties which had made the British faith proverbial in the East. It only remains. Sir, for me just to recapitulate some heads. — The treaty with the mogul, by which we stipulated to pay him 260,000/. annually, was broken. This treaty they have broken, and not paid him a shilling. They broke their treaty with him, in which they stipulated to pay 400,000/. a year to the soubah of Bengal. They agreed with the mogul, for services admitted to have been performed, to pay Nudjif Cawn a pension. They broke this article with the rest, and stopped also this small pen- sion. They broke their treaties with the Nizam, and with Hyder Ali. As to the Marattas, they had so many cross trea- ties with the states general of that nation, and with each of the chiefs, that it was notorious that no one of these agreements could be kept without grossly violating the rest. It was ob- served, that if the terms of these several treaties had been kept, two British armies would at one and the same time have met in the field to cut each other's throats. The wars which desolate India, originated from a most atrocious violation of public faith on our part. In the midst of profound peace, the company's troops invaded the Maratta territories, and surprised the island and fortress of Salsette. The Marattas nevertheless yielded to a treaty of peace, by which solid advantages were procured to the company. But this treaty, like every other treaty, was soon violated by the company. Again the company invaded the Maratta dominions. The disaster that ensued gave occa- sion to a new treaty. The whole army of the company was obliged, in effect, to surrender to this injured, betrayed, and insulted people. Justly irritated, however, as they were, the terms which they prescribed were reasonable and moderate; and their treatment of their captive invaders of the most dis- tinguished humanity. But the humanity of the Marattas was of no power whatsoever to prevail on the company to attend to the observance of the terms dictated by their moderation. The war was renewed with greater vigor than ever ; and such was their insatiable lust of plunder, that they never would have given ear to any terms of peace, if Hyder Ali had not broke through the Gauts, and rushing like a torrent into the Carnatic, swept away everything in his career. This was in consequence of that confederacy, which by a sort of miracle united the most discordant powers for our destruction, as a nation in which no ON MR. FOX'S EAST INDIA BILL. 207 other could put any trust, and who were the declared enemies of the human species. My third assertion, relative to the abuse made of the right of war and peace is, that there are none who have ever con- fided in us who have not been utterly ruined. The examples I have given of Ragonaut Row, of Guickwar, of the rana of Gohud, are recent. There is proof more than enough in the condition of the mogul ; in the slavery and indigence of the nabob of Oude ; the exile of the rajah of Benares ; the beggary of the nabob of Bengal ; the undone and captive condition of the rajah and kingdom of Tanjore; the destruction of the Poly- gars ; and lastly, in the destruction of the nabob of Arcot himself, who, w^hen his dominions were invaded, was found entirely destitute of troops, provisions, stores, and (as he asserts) of money, being a million in debt to the company, and four millions to others : the many millions which he had exorted from so many extirpated princes and their desolated countries having (as he has frequently hinted) been expended for the ground-rent of his mansion-house in an alley in the suburbs of Madras. Compare the condition of all these princes with the power and authority of all the Marat ta states ; with the inde- pendence and dignity of the Soubah of the Decan; and the mighty strength, the resources, and the manly struggle of Hyder Ali ; and then the house will discover the effects on every power in India, of an easy confidence, or of a rooted distrust in the faith of the company. These are some of my reasons, grounded on the abuse of the external political trust of that body, for thinking myself not only justified, but bound, to declare against those chartered rights which produce so many wrongs. I should deem myself the wickedest of men, if any vote of mine could contribute to the continuance of so great an evil. Now, Sir, according to the plan I proposed, I shall take notice of the company's internal government, as it is exercised first on the dependent provinces, and then as it affects those under the direct and immediate authoritv of that body. And here, Sir, before I enter into the spirit of their interior government, permit me to observe to you, upon a few of the many lines of difference which are to be found between the vices of the company's government, and those of the conquerors who pre- ceded us in India ; that we may be enabled a little the better to see our way in an attempt to the necessary reformation. The several irruptions of Arabs, Tartars and Persians, into India were, for the greater part, ferocious, bloody, and wasteful in the extreme : our entrance into the dominion of that country, was, as generally, with small comparative effusion of blood ; 208 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH being introduced by various frauds and delusions, and by taking advantage of the incurable, blind, and senseless animosity, which the several country powers bear towards each other, rather than by open force. But the diflerence in favor of the first conquerors is this ; the Asiatic conquerors very soon abated of their ferocity, because they made the conquered country their own. They rose or fell with the rise or fall of the territory they lived in. Fathers there deposited the hopes of their pos- terity; and children there beheld the monuments of their fathers. Here their lot was finally cast ; and it is the natural wish of all, that their lot should not be cast in a bad land. Poverty, sterility, and desolation, are not a recreating prospect to the eye of man ; and there are very few who can bear to grow old among the curses of a whole people. If their passion or their avarice drove the Tartar lords to acts of rapacity or tyranny, there was time enough, even in the short life of man, to bring round the ill effects of an abuse of power upon the power itself If hoards were made by violence and tyranny, they were still domestic hoards; and domestic profusion, or the rapine of a more powerful and prodigal hand, restored them to the people. With many disorders, and with few political checks upon power, nature had still fair play; the sources of acquisition were not dried up ; and therefore the trade, the manufactures, and the commerce of the country flourished. Even avarice and usury itself operated, both for the preservation and the employment of national wealth. The husbandman and manufacturer paid heavy interest, but then they augmented the fund from w^hence they were again to borrow. Their resources were dearly bought, but they were sure ; and the general stock of the com- munity grew by the general effort. But under the English government all this order is reversed. The Tartar invasion w^as mischievous ; but it is our protection that destroys India. It was their enmity, but it is our friend- ship. Our conquest there, after twenty yeai's, is as crude as it was the first day. The natives scarcely know what it is to see the gray head of an Englishman. Young men (boys almost) govern there, without society, and without sympathy with the natives. They have no more social habits with the people, than if they still resided in England ; nor, indeed, any species of intercourse but that which is necessary to making a sudden fortune, with a view to a remote settlement. Animated with all the avarice of age, and all the impetuosity of youth, they roll in one after another ; wave after wave ; and there is nothing before the eyes of the natives but an endless, hopeless prospect of new flights of birds of prey and passage, with appetites continually renewing for a food that is continually wasting. ON MR. FOX'S EAST INDIA BILL. 209 Every rupee of profit made by an Englishman, is lost for ever to India. With us are no retributory superstitions, by which a foundation of charity compensates, through ages, to the poor, for the rapine and injustice of a day. With us, no pride erects stately monuments which repair the mischiefs which pride had produced, and which adorn a country out of its own spoils. England has erected no churches, no hospitals, no palaces, no schools ; England has built no bridges, made no high roads, cut no navigations, dug out no reservoirs. Every other conqueror of every other description has left some monument, either of state or beneficence, behind him. Were we to be driven out of India this day, nothing would remain, to tell that it had been possessed, during the inglorious period of our dominion, by any- thing better than the ouran-outang or the tiger. There is nothing in the boys we send to India worse, than in the boys whom we are whipping at school, or that we see trail- ing a pike, or bending over a desk at home. But as English youth in India drink the intoxicating draught of authority and dominion before their heads are able to bear it, and as they are full grown in fortune long before they are ripe in principle, neither nature nor reason have any opportunity to exert them- selves for remedy of the excesses of their premature power. The consequences of their conduct, which in good minds (and many of theirs are probably such) might produce penitence or amendment, are unable to pursue the rapidity of their flight. Their prey is lodged in England ; and the cries of India are given to seas and winds, to be blown about, in every breaking up of the monsoon, over a remote and unhearing ocean. In India, all the vices operate by which sudden fortune is acquired : in England are often displayed by the same persons, the virtues which dispense hereditary wealth. Arrived in England, the destroyers of the nobility and gentry of a whole kingdom will find the best company in this nation, at a board of elegance and hospitality. Here the manufacturer and husbandman will bless the just and punctual hand that in India has torn the cloth from the loom, or wrested the scanty portion of rice and salt from the peasant of Bengal, or wrung from him the very opium in which he forgot his oppressions and his oppressor. They marry into your families ; they enter into your senate ; they ease your estates by loans ; they raise their value by demands ; they cherish and protect your relations, which lie heavy on your patronage ; and there is scarcely a house in the kingdom that does not feel some concern and interest that makes all reform of our eastern government appear officious and disgusting ; and on the whole, a most discouraging attempt. In such an attempt you hurt those who are able to return kindness, or to resent injury. If you 2B 210 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH succeed, you save those who cannot so much as give you thanks. All these things show the difficulty of the work we have on hand : but they show its necessity too. Our Indian govern- ment is in its best state a grievance. It is necessary that the correctives should be uncommonly vigorous ; and the work of men, sanguine, warm, and even impassioned in the cause. But it is an arduous thing to plead against abuses of a power which originates from your own country, and affects those whom we are used to consider as strangers. I shall certainly endeavor to modulate myself to this temper; though I am sensible that a cold style of describing actions which appear to me in a very affecting light, is equally contrary to the justice due to the people, and to all genuine human feelings about them. I ask pardon of truth and nature for this compliance. But I shall be very sparing of epithets either to persons or things. It has been said (and, with regard to one of them, with truth) that Tacitus and Machiavel, by their cold way of relating enormous crimes, have in some sort appeared not to disapprove them ; that they seem a sort of professors of the art of tyranny, and that they corrupt the minds of their readers, by not express- ing the detestation and horror that naturally belong to horrible and detestable proceedings. But we are in general, Sir, so little acquainted with Indian details ; the instruments of oppression under which the people suffer are so hard to be understood ; and even the very names of the sufferers are so uncouth and strange to our ears, that it is very difficult for our sympathy to fix upon these objects. I am sure that some of us have come down stairs from the committee-room, with impressions on our minds, which to us were the inevitable results of our discoveries, yet if we should venture to express ourselves, in the proper language of our sentiments, to other gentlemen, not at all pre- pared to enter into the cause of them, nothing could appear more harsh and dissonant, more violent and unaccountable, than our language and behavior. All these circumstances are not, I confess, very favorable to the idea of our attempting to govern India at all. But there we are ; there we are placed by the Sovereign Disposer ; and we must do the best we can in our situation. The situation of man is the preceptor of his duty. Upon the plan which I laid down, and to which I beg leave to return, I was considering the conduct of the company to those nations which are indirectly subject to their authority. The most considerable of the dependent princes is the nabob of Oude. My right honorable friend, to whom we owe the remedial bills on your table, has already pointed out to you, in one of the reports, the condition of that prince, and as it stood in the time alluded to. I shall only add a few circumstances ON MR. FOX'S EAST INDIA BILL. 2 1 1 that may tend to awaken some sense of the manner in which the condition of the people is affected by that of the prince, and involved in it ; and to show you, that when we talk of the suf- ferings of princes, we do not lament the oppression of indi- viduals ; and that in these cases the high and the low suffer together. In the year 1779, the nabob of Oude represented, through the British resident at his court, that the number of company's troops stationed in his dominions was a main cause of his dis- tress ; and that all those which he was not bound by treaty to maintain should be withdrawn, as they had greatly diminished his revenue, and impoverished his country. It was now to be seen what steps the governor-general and council took for the relief of this distressed country, long laboring under the vexations of men, and now stricken by the haftd of God. The case of a general famine is known to relax the severity even of the most rigorous government. — Mr. Hastings does not deny, or show the least doubt of the fact. The repre- sentation is humble, and almost abject. On this representation from a great prince of the distress of his subjects, Mr. Hastings falls into a violent passion ; such (as it seems) would be unjusti- fiable in any one who speaks of any part of his conduct. He declares, " that the demands, the tone, in which they were asserted, and the season in which they were made, are all equally alarming, and appear to him to require an adequate degree of firmness in this board, in opposition to them." He proceeds to deal out very unreserved language, on the person and character of the nabob and his ministers. He declares, that in a division between him and the nabob, " tJie strongest must decide." With regard to the urgent and instant necessity, from the failure of the crops, he says, " that perhaps expedients ?nai/ be found for affording a gradual relief from the burthen of which he so heavily complains, and it shall be my endeavor to seek them out :" and lest he should be suspected of too much haste to alleviate sufferings, and to remove violence, he says, '• that these must be gradually applied, and their complete effect may be distant ; and this I conceive is all he can claim of right." Here, Sir, is much heat and passion ; but no more considera- tion of the distress of the country, from a failure of the means of subsistence, and (if possible) the worse evil of an useless and licentious soldiery, than if they were the most contempti- ble of all trifles. A letter is written in consequence, in such a style of lofty despotism, as I believe has hitherto been unex- ampled and unheard of in the records of the East. The troops were continued. The gradual reUef, whose effect was to be so «J12 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH distant, has never been substantially and beneficially applied — and the country is ruined. The invariable course of the company's policy is this : either they set up some prince too odious to maintain himself without the necessity of their assistance ; or they soon render him odious, by making him the intrument of their government. In that case troops are bountifully sent to him to maintain his authority. That he should have no want of assistance, a civil gentleman, called a resident, is kept at his court, who, under pretence of providing duly for the pay of these troops, gets assignments on the revenue into his hands. Under his provi- dent management, debts soon accumulate ; new assignments are made for these debts ; until, step by step, the whole revenue, and with it the whole power of the country, is delivered into his hands. The military do not behold without a virtuous emulation the moderate gains of the civil department. They feel that, in a country driven to habitual rebellion by the civil government, the military is necessary ; and they will not permit their services to go unrewarded. Ti'acts of country are de- livered over to their discretion. Then it is found proper to convert their commanding officers into farmers of revenue. Thus between the well-paid civil, and well-rewarded military establishment, the situation of the natives may be easily con- jectured. The authority of the regular and lawful government is everywhere and in every point extinguished. Disorders and violences arise ; they are repressed by other disorders and other violences. Wherever the collectors of the revenue, and the farming colonels and majors move, I'uin is about them, rebellion before and behind them. The people in crowds fly out of the country ; and the frontier is guarded by lines of troops, not to exclude an enemy, but to prevent the escape of the inhabitants. By these means, in the course of not more than four or five years, this once opulent and flourishing country, which, by the accounts given in the Bengal consultations, yielded more than three-score of Sicca rupees, that is, above three millions ster- ling annually, is reduced, as far as I can discover, in a matter purposely involved in the utmost perplexity, to less than one million three hundred thousand pounds, and that exacted by every mode of rigor that can be devised. To complete the business, most of the wretched remnants of this revenue are mortgaged, and delivered into the hands of the usurers at Benares (for there alone are to be found some lingering remains of the ancient wealth of these regions) at an interest of near thirty per cent, per annum. The revenues in this manner failing, they seized upon the ON MR. FOX'S EAST INDIA BILL. 213 estates of every person of eminence in the country, and under the name of resumption, confiscated their property. I wish. Sir, to be understood universally and literally, when I assert, that there is not left one man of property and substance for his rank, in the whole of these provinces, in provinces which are nearly the extent of England and Wales taken together. Not one landholder, not one banker, not one merchant, not one even of those who usually perish last, the ullimum moriens in a ruined state, not one farmer of revenue. One country for a while remained, which stood as an island in the midst of the grand waste of the company's dominion. My right honorable friend, in his admirable speech on moving the bill, just touched the situation, the oflences, and the punish- ment of a native prince, called FizuUa Khan. This man, by policy and force, had protected himself from the general extir- pation of the Rohilla chiefs. He was secured (if that were any security) by a treaty. It was stated to you, as it was stated by the enemies of that unfortunate man — " that the whole of his country is what the whole of the Rohillas was, cultivated hke a garden, without one neglected spot in it." — Another ac- cuser says, " Fyzoolah Khan, though a bad soldier, [that is the true source of his misfortune] has approved himself a good aumil ; having, it is supposed, in the course of a few years, at least doubled the population and revenue of his country." — In another part of the correspondence he is charged with making his country an asylum for the oppressed peasants, who fly from the territories of Oude. The improvement of his revenue, arising from this single crime, (which Mr. Hastings considers as tantamount to treason,) is stated at a hundred and fifty thousand pounds a year. Dr. Swift somewhere says, th.at he who could make two blades of grass grow where but one grew before, was a greater benefactor to the human race than all the politicians that ever existed. This prince, who would have been deified by anti- tiquity, who would have been ranked with Osiris, and Bacchus, and Ceres, and the divinities most propitious to men, was, for those very merits, by name attacked by the company's govern- ment, as a cheat, a robber, a traitor. In the same breath in which he was accused as a rebel, he was ordered at once to furnish 5,000 horse. On delay, or (according to the technical phrase, when any remonstrance is made to thehi) " on evasio7i," he was declared a violator of treaties, and everything he had was to be taken from him. — Not one word, however, of horse in this treaty. The territory of this Fizulla Khan, Mr. Speaker, is less than the county of Norfolk. It is an inland country, full seven hun- 214 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH dred miles from any sea-port, and not distinguished for any one considerable branch of manufacture whatsoever. From this territory several very considerable sums had at several times been paid to the British resident. The demand of cavalry, .without a shadow or decent pretext of right, amounted to three hundred thousand a year more, at the lowest computation ; and it is stated, by the last person sent to negotiate, as a de- mand of little use, if it could be complied with ; but that the compliance was impossible, as it amounted to more than his territories could supply, if there had been no other demand upon him — three hundred thousand pounds a year from an inland country not so large as Norfolk ! The thing most extraordinary was to hear the culprit defend himself from the imputation of his virtues, as if they had been the blackest ofiences. He extenuated the superior cultivation of his country. He denied its population. He endeavored to prove that he had often sent back the poor peasant that sought shelter with him. — I can make no observation on this. After a variety of extortions and vexations, too fatiguing to you, too disgusting to me, to go through with, they found " that they ought to be in a better state to warrant forcible means ;" they therefore contented themselves with a gross sum of 150,000 pounds for their present demand. They oftered him indeed an indemnity from their exactions in future for three hundred thou- sand pounds more. But he refused to buy their securities: pleading (probably with truth) his poverty : but if the plea were not founded, in my opinion very wisely ; not choosing to deal any more in that dangerous commodity of the company's faith ; and thinking it better to oppose distress and unarmed obstinacy to uncoloured exaction, than to subject himself to be considered as a cheat, if he should make a treaty in the least beneficial to himself Thus they executed an exemplary punishment on Fizulla Khan for the culture of his country. But, conscious that the prevention of evils is the great object of all good regulation, they deprived him of the means of increasing that criminal cultivation in future, by exhausting his coffers ; and, that the population of his country should no more be a standing re- proach and libel on the company's government, they bound him, by a poshive engagement, not to afford any shelter what- soever to the farmers and laborers who should seek refuge in his territories, from the exactions of the British residents in Oude. When they had done all this effectually, they gave him a full and complete acquittance from all charges of rebellion, or of any intention to rebel, or of his having originally had any interest in, or any means of rebellion. ON MR. FOX'S EAST INDIA BILL. 215 These intended rebellions are one of the company's standing resources. When money has been thought to be heaped up anywhere, its owners are universally accused of rebellion, Until they are acquitted of their money and their treasons at once. The money once taken, all accusation, trial, and pun- ishment ends. It is so settled a resource, that I rather wonder how it comes to be omitted in the directors' account ; but I take it for granted this omission will be supplied in their next edition. The company stretched this resource to the full extent, when they accused two old women, in the remotest corner of India (who could have no possible view or motive to raise dis- turbances) of being engaged in rebellion, with an intent to drive out the English nation, in whose protection, purchased by money and secured by treaty, rested the sole hope of their existence. But the company wanted money, and the old wo- men must be guilty of a plot. They were accused of rebellion, and they were convicted of wealth. Twice had great sums been extorted from them, and as often had the British faith guarantied the remainder. A body of British troops, with one of the military farmers general at their head, was sent to seize upon the castle in which these helpless w'omen resided. Their chief eunuchs, who were their agents, their guardians, pro- tectors, persons of high rank according to the Eastern man- ners, and of great trust, were thrown into dungeons, to make them discover their hidden treasures; and there they lie at present. The lands assigned for the maintenance of the wo- men were seized and confiscated. Their jewels and effects were taken, and set up to a pretended auction in an obscure place, and bought at such a price as the gentlemen thought proper to give. No account has ever been transmitted of the articles or produce of this sale. What money was obtained is unknown, or what terms were stipulated for the maintenance of these despoiled and forlorn creatures; for by some particu- lars it appears as if an engagement of the kind was made. I w'ish you, Sir, to advert particularly, in this transaction, to the quality and the numbers of the persons spoiled, and the instrument by whom that spoil was made. These ancient matrons, called the Begums, or Princesses, were of the first birth and quality in India, the one mother, the other wife, of the late nabob of Oude, Sujah Dowdah, a prince possessed of extensive and flourishing dominions, and the second man in the Mogul empire. This prince (suspicious, and not unjustly suspicious, of his son and successor) at his death committed his treasures and his family to the British faith. That family and household consisted of iico thousand icomen ; to which 216 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH were added two other seraglios of near kindred, and said to be extremely numerous, and (as I am well informed) of about four-score of the nabob's children, with all the eunuchs, the an- cient servants, and a multitude of the dependants of his splen- did court. These were all to be provided, for present main- tenance and future establishment, from the lands assigned as dower, and from the treasures which he left to these matrons, in trust for the whole family. So far as to the objects of the spoil. The instrument chosen by Mr. Hastings to despoil the rehct of Sujah Dowlah was her own son, the reigning nabob of Oude. It was the pious hand of a son that was selected to tear from his mother and grand- mother the provision of their age, the maintenance of his brethren, and of all the ancient household of his father. [Here a laugh from some young members] — The laugh is seasonable, and the occasion decent and proper. The women being thus disposed of, that is, completely de- spoiled, and pathetically lamented, Mr. Hastings at length re- collected the great object of his enterprise, which, during his zeal lest the officers and soldiers should lose any part of their reward, he seems to have forgot ; that is to say, " to draw from the rajah's guilt the means of relief to the company's dis- tresses." This was to be the strong-hold of his defence. This compassion to the company, he knew by experience would sanctify a great deal of rigor towards the natives. But the military had distresses of their own, which they considered first. Neither Mr. Hastings's authority, nor his supplications, could prevail on them to assign a shilling to the claim he made on the part of the company. They divided the booty amongst themselves. Driven from his claim, he was reduced to petition for the spoil as a loan. But the soldiers were too wise to ven- ture as a loan, what the borrower claimed as a right. In de- fiance of all authority, they shared among themselves about two hundred thousand pounds sterling, besides what had been taken from the women. In all this there is nothing wonderful. We may rest assured, that when the maxims of any government estabhsh among its resources extraordinary means, and those exerted with a strong hand, that strong hand will provide those extraordinary means for itself. Whether the soldiers had reason or not (per- haps much might be said for them,) certain it is, the military discipline of India was ruined from that moment; and the same rage for plunder, the same contempt of subordination, which blasted all the hopes of extraordinary means from your strong hand at Benares, have very lately lost you an army in ON MR. FOX'S EAST INDIA BILL. 217 Mysore. This is visible enough from the accounts in the last Gazette. It is only to complete the view I proposed of the conduct of the company, with regard to the dependent provinces, that I shall say any thing at all of the Carnatic, which is the scene, if possible, of greater disorder than the northern provinces. Perhaps it were better to say of this centre and metropolis of abuse, whence all the rest in India and in England diverge ; from whence they are fed and methodized, what was said of Carthage — de Carthagine satius est silere quam parum dicere. This country, in all its denominations, is about 46,000 square miles. It may be affirmed universally, that not one person of substance or property, landed, commercial or moneyed, except- ing two or three bankers, who are necessary deposits and dis- tributors of the general spoil, is left in all that region. In that country the moisture, the bounty of Heaven, is given but at a certain season. Before the era of our influence, the industry of man carefully husbanded that gift of God. The Gentoos preserved, with a provident and religious care, the precious deposit of the periodical rain in reservoirs, many of them works of royal grandeur; and from these, as occasion de- manded, they fructified the whole country. To maintain these reservoirs, and to keep up an annual advance to the cultivators, for seed and cattle, formed a principal object of the piety and policy of the priests and rulers of the Gentoo religion. This object required a command of money ; and there was no pollam, or castle, which in the happy days of the Carnatic was without some hoard of treasure, by which the governors were enabled to combat with the irregularity of the seasons, and to resist or to buy oft' the invasion of an enemy. In all the cities were multitudes of merchants and bankers, for all occa- sions of moneyed assistance ; and on the other hand, the native princes were in condition to obtain credit from them. The manufacturer was paid by the return of commodities, or by imported money, and not, as at present, in the taxes that had been originally exacted from his industry. In aid of casual distress, the country was full of choultries, which were inns and hospitals, whei-e the traveller and the poor were relieved. All ranks of people had their place in the public concern, and their share in the common stock and common prosperity ; but the chartered rights of men, and the right which it was thought proper to set up in the nabob of Arcot, introduced a new sys- tem. It was their policy to consider hoards of money as crimes ; to regard moderate rents as frauds on the sovereign ; and to view, in the lesser princes, any claim of exemption from more than settled tribute, as an act of rebellion. Accordingly 2C 19 ^ 218 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH all the castles were, one after the other, plundered and de- stroyed. The native princes were expelled ; the hospitals fell to ruin ; the reservoirs of water went to decay ; the merchants, bankers, and manufacturers disappeared ; and sterility, indi- gence, and depopulation, overspread the face of these once flourishing provinces. The company was very eai'ly sensible of these mischiefs, and of their true cause. They gave precise orders *• that the native princes, called polygars, should not be extirpated.''^ — " The rebellion [so they chose to call it] of the polygars, may (they fear) with too much justice, be attributed to the mal- administration of the nabob's collectors :" — They observe with concern, that their " troops have been put to disagreeable ser- vices." They might have used a stronger expression without impropriety. But they make amends in another place. Speak- ing of the polygars, the directors say, that " it was repugnant to humanity io force them to such dreadful extremities as they underwent ;" That some examples of severity might be neces- sary, " when they fell into the nabob's hands," and not by the destruction of the country: "That they fear his government is none of the mildest; and that there is great oppression in collect- ing his revenues." They state, that the wars in which he has involved the Carnatic, had been a cause of its distresses : " that these distresses have been certainly great ; but those by the nabob's oppressions they believe to be greater than alV Pray, Sir, attend to the reason for their opinion that the government of this their instrument is more calamitous to the country than the ravages of war. — Because, say they, his oppressions are " without intermission. — The other are temporary ; by all which oppressions we believe the nabob has great wealth in store." From this store neither he nor they could derive any advantage whatsoever upon the invasion of Hyder Ali in the hour of their greatest calamity and dismay. It is now proper to compare these declarations with the company's conduct. The principal reason which they assigned against the extirpation of the polygars was, that the iveavers were protected in their fortresses. They might have added, that the company itself, which stung them to death, had been warmed in the bosom of these unfortunate princes : for, on the taking of Madras by the French, it was in their hospitable pol- lams, that m.ost of the inhabitants found refuge and protection. But, notwithstanding all these orders, reasons, and declarations, they at length gave an indirect sanction, and permitted the use of a very direct and irresistible force, to measures which they had," over and over again, declared to be false policy, cruel, inhuman, and oppressive. Having, however, forgot all atten- ON MR. FOX'S EAST INDIA BILL. 2 1 9 tion to the princes and the people, they remembered that they had some sort of interest in the trade of the country ; and it is matter of curiosity to observe the protection which they af- forded this their natural object. Full of anxious cares on this head, they direct, " that in re- ducing the polygars they (their servants) were to be cautious, not to deprive the iceaoeis and manufacturers of the protection they often met with in the strong-holds of the polygar coun- tries ;" — and they write to their instrument, the nabob of Arcot, concerning these poor people, in a most pathetic strain. " We entreat your excellency (say they) in particular, to make the manufacturers the object of your tenderest care ; particularly when you root out the polygars, you do not deprive the weavers of the jjrotection they enjoyed under them." When they root out the protectoi's in favor of the oppressor, they show themselves religiously cautious of the rights of the protected. When they extirpate the shepherd and the shepherd's dog, they piously recommend the helpless flock to the mercy, and even to the tenderest care, of the wolf. This is the uniform strain of their policy, strictly forbidding, and at the same time strenuously encouraging and enforcing, every measure that can ruin and desolate the country committed to their charge. After giving the company's idea of the government of this their instrument, it may appear singular, but it is perfectly consistent with their system, that, besides wasting for him, at two difierent times, the most exquisite spot upon earth, Tanjore, and all the adja- cent countries, they have even voluntarilyput their own territory, that is, a large and fine country adjacent to Madras, called their jaghire, wholly out of their protection; and have con- tinued to farm their subjects, and their duty towards these sub- jects, to that very nabob, whom they themselves constantly represent as an habitual oppressor, and a relentless tyrant. This they have done without any pretence of ignorance of the objects of oppression for which this prince has thought fit to become their renter ; for he has again and again told them, that it is for the sole purpose of exercising authority he holds the jaghire lands; and he affirms (and I believe with truth) that he pays more for that territory than the revenues yield. This deficiency he must make up from his other territories ; and thus, in order to furnish the means of oppressing one part of the Carnatic, he is led to oppress all the rest. The house perceives that the livery of the company's gov- ernment is uniform. I have described the condition of the countries indirectly, but most substantially, under the com- pany's authority. And now I ask, whether, with this map of misgovernment before me, I can suppose myself bound by my 22r0 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH vote to continue, upon any principles of pretended public faith, the management of these countries in those hands? If I kept such a faith, (which in reality is no better than ^ fides latronum) with what is called the company, I must break the faith, the covenant, the solemn, original, indispensable oath, in which I am bound, by the eternal frame and constitution of things, to the whole human race. As I have dwelt so long on those who are indirectly under the company's administration, I will endeavor to be a little shorter upon the countries immediately under this charter gov- ernment. — These are the Bengal provinces. The condition of these provinces is pretty fully detailed in the sixth and ninth I'cports, and in their appendixes. I will select only such prin- ciples and instances as are broad and general. To your own thoughts I shall leave it, to furnish the detail of oppressions involved in them. I shall state to you, as shortly as I am able, the conduct of the company ; — 1st, tovv ards the landed interests ; — next, the commercial interests ; — 3dly, the native government ; — and lastly, to their own government. Bengal, and the provinces that are united to it, ai;e larger than the kingdom of France ; and once contained, as France does contain, a great and independent landed interest, com- posed of princes, of great lords, of a numerous nobility and gentry, of freeholders, of lower tenants, of religious communi- ties, and public foundations. So early as 1769, the company's servants perceived the decay into which these provinces had fallen under English administration, and they made a strong representation upon this decay, and what they apprehended to be the causes of it. Soon after this representation, Mr. Hast- ings became president of Bengal. Instead of administering a remedy to this melancholy disorder, upon the heels of a dread- ful famine, in the year 1772, the succor which the new president and the council lent to this afflicted nation was — shall I be believed in relating it ? — the landed interest of a whole king- dom, of a kingdom to be compared to France, was set up to public auction ! They set up (Mr. Hastings set up) the whole nobility, gentry, and freeholders, to the highest bidder. No preference was given to the ancient proprietors. They must bid against every usurer, every temporary adventurer, every jobber and schemer, every servant of every European, or they were obliged to content themselves, in lieu of their extensive domains, with their house, and such a pension as the state auctioneers thought fit to assign. In this general calamity, several of the first nobility thought (and in all appearance justly) that they had better submit to the necessity of this pen sion, than continue, under the name of zemindars, the objects ON MR. FOX'S EAST INDIA BILL. 221 and instruments of a system, by which they ruined their tenants, and were ruined themselves. Another reform has since come upon the back of the first ; and a pension having been assigned to these unhappy persons, in heu of their hereditary lands, a new scheme of economy has taken place, and deprived them of that pension. The menial servants of Englishmen, persons (to use the emphatical phrase of a ruined and patient eastern chief) ^^ whose fathers they would not have set idth the dogs of their fock,^' entered into their patrimonial lands. Mr. Hastings's banian was, after this auction, found possessed of territories yielding a rent of one hundred and forty thousand pounds a year. Such an universal proscription, upon any pretence, has few examples. Such a proscription, without even a pretence of delinquency, has none. It stands by itself. It stands as a monument to astonish the imagination, to confound the reason of mankind. I confess to you, when I first came to know this business in its true nature and extent, my surprise did a little suspend my indignation. I was in a manner stupefied by the desperate boldness of a few obscure young men, who, having obtained, by ways which they could not comprehend, a power of which they saw neither the purposes nor the limits, tossed about, subverted, and tore to pieces, as if it were in the gambols of a boyish unluckiness and malice, the most established rights, and the most ancient and most revered institutions, of ages and nations. Sir, I will not now trouble you with any detail with regard to what they have since done with these same lands and land-holders; only to inform you, that nothing has been suffered to settle for two seasons together upon any basis ; and that the levity and inconstancy of these mock legislators were not the least afflicting parts of the oppressions suffered under their usurpation ; nor will anything give stability to the property of the natives, but an administration in England at once protecting and stable. The country sustains, almost every year, the mise- ries of a revolution. At present, all is uncertainty, misery, and confusion. There is to be found through these vast regions no longer one landed man, who is a resource for voluntary aid, or an object for particular rapine. Some of them were, not long since, great princes; they possessed treasures, they levied armies. There was a zemindar in Bengal (I forget his name) that, on the threat of an invasion, supplied the soubah of these provinces with the loan of a million sterling. The family at this day wants credit for a breakfast at the bazar. I am now come to my last condition, without which, for one, I will never readily lend my hand to the destruction of any established government; which is, That in its present state, 19* 222 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH the government of the East India company is absolutely incor- rigible. Of this great truth I think there can be little doubt, after all that has appeared in this house. It is so very clear, that 1 must consider the leaving any power in their hands, and the deter- mined resolution to continue and' countenance every mode and every degree of peculation, oppression, and tyranny, to be one and the same thing. I look upon that body as incorrigible, from the fullest consideration both of their uniform conduct, and their present real and virtual constitution. If they had not constantly been apprized of all the enormities committed in India under their authority ; if this state of things had been as much a discovery to them as it was to many of us ; we might flatter ourselves that the detection of the abuses would lead to their reformation. I will go further : If the court of directors had not uniformly condemned every act which this house or any of its committees had condemned ; if the language in which they expressed their disapprobation against enormities and their authors had not been much more vehement and indig- nant than any ever used in this house, I should entertain some hopes. If they had not, on the other hand, as uniformly com- mended all their servants who had done their duty and obeyed their orders, as they had heavily censured those who rebelled; I might say, These people have been in an error, and when they are sensible of it they will mend. But w^hen I reflect on the uniformity of their support to the objects of their uniform censure ; and the state of insignificance and disgrace to w-hich all of those have been reduced w4iom they approved ; and that even utter ruin and premature death have been among the fruits of their favor ; I must be convinced, that in this case, as in all others, hypocrisy is the only vice that never can be cured. Attend, I pray you, to the situation and prosperity of Ben- field, Hastings, and others of that sort. The last of these has been treated by the company with an asperity of reprehension that has no parallel. They lament, " that the power of disposing of their property for perpetuity, should fall into such hands." Yet for fourteen years, with little interruption, he has governed all their affairs, of every description, with an absolute sway. He has had himself the means of heaping up immense wealth; and, during that whole period, the fortunes of hundreds have depended on his smiles and frowns. He himself tells you he is encumbered, w^ith two hundred and fifty young gentlemen, some of them of the best families in England, all of whom aim at returning with vast fortunes to Europe in the prime of life. He has then two hundred and fifty of your children as his hostages for your good behavior ; and loaded for years, as he has been, ON MR. FOX'S EAST INDIA BILL. 223 with the execrations of the natives, with the censures of the court of directors, and struck and blasted with the resolutions of this house, he still maintains the most despotic power ever known in India. He domineers with an overbearing sway in the assembhes of his pretended masters ; and it is thought in a degree rash to venture to name his offences in this house, even as grounds of a legislative remedy. On the other hand, consider the fate of those who have met with the applauses of the directors. Colonel Monson, one of the best of men, had his days shortened by the applauses, destitute of the support, of the company. General Clavering, whose panegyric was made in every dispatch from England, whose hearse was bedewed with the tears, and hung round with the eulogies of the court of directors, burst an honest and indignant heart at the treachery of those who ruined him by their praises. Uncommon patience and temper supported Mr. Francis a while longer under the baneful influence of the commendation of the court of directors. His health however gave way at length ; and, in utter despair, he returned to Europe. At his return the doors of the India House were shut to this man, who had been the object of their constant admiration. He has indeed escaped with life, but he has forfeited all expec- tation of credit, consequence, party, and following. He may well say. Me nemo ministro fur erit, atque ideo nulli comes exeo. This man, whose deep reach of thought, whose large legislative conceptions, and whose grand plans of policy make the most shining part of our reports, from whence we have all learned our lessons, if we have learned any good ones ; this man, from whose materials those gentlemen who have least acknowledged it have yet spoken as from a brief; this man, driven from his employment, discountenanced by the directors, has had no other reward, and no other distinction, but that inward " sun- shine of the soul," which a good conscience can always bestow upon itself. He has not yet had so much as a good word, but from a person too insignificant to make any other return, for the means with which he lias been furnished for performing his share of a duty which is equally urgent on us all. Add to this, that from the highest in place to the lowest, every British subject, who, in obedience to the company's or- ders, has been active in the discovery of peculations, has been ruined. They have been driven from India. When they made their appeal at home, they were not heard ; when they attempt- ed to return, they were stopped. No artifice of fraud, no vio- lence of power, has been omitted to desti'oy them in character as well as in fortune. Worse, far worse, has been the fate of the poor creatures, 224 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH the natives of India, whom the hypocrisy of the company has betrayed into complaint of oppression, and discovery of pecu- lation. The first women in Bengal, the ranny of Rajeshahi, the ranny of Burdwan, the ranny of Amboa, by their weak and thoughtless trust in the company's honor and protection, are utterly ruined : the first of these women, a person of princely rank, and once of correspondent fortune, who paid above two hundred thousand a year quit-rent to the state, is, according to very credible information, so completely beggared as to stand in need of the relief of alms. Mahomed Reza Khan, the second Mussulman in Bengal, for having been dis- tinguished by the ill-omened honor of the countenance and protection of the court of directors, was, without the pretence of any inquiry whatsoever into his conduct, stripped of all his employments, and reduced to the lowest condition. His an- cient rival for power, the rajah Nundcomar, was, by an insult on everything which India holds respectable and sacred, hang- ed in the face of all his nation, by the judges you sent to pro- tect that people ; hanged for a pretended crime upon an ex post facto British act of parliament, in the midst of his evidence against Mr. Hastings. The accuser they saw hanged. The culprit, without acquittal or inquiry, triumphs on the ground of that murder : a murder not of Nundcomar only, but of all living testimony, and even of evidence yet unborn. From that time not a complaint has been heard from the natives against their governors. All the grievances of India have found a complete remedy. Men will not look to acts of parhament, to regulations, to declarations, to votes, and resolutions. No, they are not such fools. They will ask, what is the road to power, credit, wealth, and honors ? They will ask, what conduct ends in neglect, dis- grace, poverty, exile, prison and gibbet? These will teach them the course which they are to follow. It is your distribu- tion of these that will give the character and tone of your gov- ernment. All the rest is miserable grimace. When I accuse the court of directors of this habitual treach- ery, in the use of reward and punishment, I do not mean to in- clude all the individuals in that court. There have been, Sir, very frequently, men of the greatest integrity and virtue amongst them ; and the contrariety in the declarations and conduct of that court has arisen, I take it, from this : — That the honest directors have, by the force of matter of fact On the records, carried the reprobation of the evil measures of the servants in India. This could not be prevented, whilst these records stared them in the face ; nor were the detinquents, either here or there, very solicitous about their reputation, as ON MR. FOX'S EAST INDIA BILL. 225 long as they were able to secure their power. The agreement of their partisans to censure them, blunted for a while the edge of a severe proceeding. It obtained for them a character of impartiality, which enabled them to recommend, with some sort of grace, what will always carry a plausible appearance, those treacherous expedients, called moderate measures. Whilst these were under discussion, new matter of complaint came over, which seemed to antiquate the first. The same circle was here trod round once more ; and thus through years they proceeded in a compromise of censure for punishment ; until, by shame and despair, one after another, almost every man, who preferred his duty to the company to the interest of their servants, has been driven from that court. This, Sir, has been their conduct ; and it has been the result of the alteration which was insensibly made in their constitu- tion. The change was made insensibly ; but it is now strong and adult, and as public and declared, as it is fixed beyond all power of reformation. So that there is none who hears me, that is not as certain as I am, that the company, in the sense in which it was formerly understood, has no existence. The question is not, what injury you may do to the proprietors of India stock; for there are no such men to be injured. If the active ruling part of the company, who form the general court, who fill the offices, and direct the measures (the rest tell for nothing) were persons who held their stock as a means of their subsistence, who in the part they took were only concerned in the government of India, for the rise or fall of their dividend, it would be indeed a defective plan of policy. The interest of the people who are governed by them would not be their pri- mary object ; perhaps a very small part of their consideration at all. But then they might well be depended on, and perhaps more than persons in other respects preferable, for preventing the peculation of their servants to their own prejudice. Such a body would not easily have left their trade as a spoil to the avarice of those who received their wages. But now things are totally reversed. The stock is of no value, whether it be the qualification of a director or proprietor ; and it is impos- sible that it should, A director's qualification may be worth about two thousand five hundred pounds — and the interest, at eight per cent, is about one hundred and sixty pounds a year. Of what value is that, whether it rise to ten, or fall to six, or to nothing, to him whose son, before he is in Bengal two months, and before he descends the steps of the council chamber, sells the grant of a single contract for forty thousand pounds ? Accordingly the stock is bought up in qualifications. The vote is not to protect the stock, but the stock is bought to 2D 226 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH acquire the vote ; and the end of the vote is to cover and sup- port, against justice, some man of power who has made an ob- noxious fortune in India ; or to maintain in power those who are actually employing it in the acquisition of such a fortune ; and to avail themselves in return of his patronage, that he may shower the spoils of the east, " barbaric pearl and gold," on them, their families, and dependants. So that all the rela- tions of the company are not only changed, but inverted. The servants in India ara not appointed by the directors, but the directors are chosen by them. The trade is carried on with their capitals. To them the revenues of the country are mortgaged. The seat of the supreme power is in Calcutta. The house in Leadenhall Street is nothing more than a 'change for their agents, factors, and deputies to meet in, to take care of their aflairs, and support their interests ; and this so avow- edly, that we see the known agents of the delinquent servants marshalling and disciplining their forces, and the prime spokes- men in all their assemblies. I therefore conclude, what you all conclude, that this body, being totally perverted from the purposes of its institution, is utterly incorrigible ; and because they are incorrigible, both in conduct and constitution, power ought to be taken out of their hands; just on the same principles on which have been made all the just changes and revolutions of government that have taken place since the beginning of the world. I will now say a few words to the general principle of the plan which is set up against that of my right honorable friend. It is to re-commit the government of India to the court of di- rectors. Those who would commit the reformation of India to the destr6yers of it, are the enemies to that reformation. They would make a distinction between directors and proprie- tors, which, in the present state of things, does not, cannot exist. But a right honorable gentleman says, he would keep the present government of India in the court of directors ; and would, to curb them, provide salutary regulations ; — wonderful ! That is, he would appoint the old offenders to correct the old offences ; and he would render the vicious and the foolish wise and virtuous, by salutary regulations. He would appoint the wolf as guardian of the sheep ; but he has invented a curious muzzle, by which this protecting wolf shall not be able to open his jaws above an inch or two at the utmost. Thus his work is finished. But I tell the right honorable gentleman, that con- trolled depravity is not innocence ; and that it is not the labor of delinquency in chains, that will correct abuses. Will these gentlemen of the direction animadvert on the partners of their own guilt ? Never did a serious plan of amending of any old ON MR. FOX'S EAST INDIA BILL. 227 tyrannical establishment propose the authors and abettors of the abuses as the reformers of them. If the undone people of India see their old oppressors in confirmed power, even by the reformation, they will expect nothing but what they will cer- tainly feel, a continuance, or rather an aggravation, of all their former sufferings. They look to the seat of power, and to the persons who fill it; and they despise those gentlemen's regulations as much as the gentlemen do who talk of them. But there is a cure for everything. Take away, say they, the court of proprietors, and the court of directors will do their duty. Yes; as they have done it hitherto. That the evils in India have solely arisen from the court of proprietors, is grossly false. In many of them, the directors were heartily concur- ring ; in most of them, they were encouraging, and sometimes commanding ; in all, they were conniving. But who are to choose this well-regulated and reforming court of directors 1 — Why, the very proprietors who are ex- cluded from all management, for the abuse of their power. They will choose, undoubtedly, out of themselves, men like themselves ; and those who are most forward in resisting your authority, those who are most engaged in faction or interest with the delinquents abroad, will be the objects of their selec- tion. But gentlemen say, that when this choice is made, the proprietors are not to interfere in the measures of the directors, whilst those directors are busy in the control of their common patrons and masters in India. No, indeed, I believe they will not desire to interfere. They will choose those whom they know may be trusted, safely trusted, to act in strict conformity to their common principles, manners, measures, interests, and connexions. They will want neither monitor nor control. It is not easy to choose m«n to act in conformity to a public in- terest against their private : but a sure dependence may be had on those who are chosen to forward their private interest, at the expense of the pubUc. But if the directors should slip, and deviate into rectitude, the punishment is in the hands of the general court, and it will surely be remembered to them at their next election. If the government of India wants no reformation; but gen- tlemen are amusing themselves with a theory, conceiving a more democratic or aristocratic mode of government for these dependencies, or if they are in a dispute only about patronage ; the dispute is with me of so little concern, that I should not take the pains to utter an affirmative or negative to any propo- sition in it. If it be only for a theoretical amusement that they are to propose a bill ; the thing is at best frivolous and unne- cessary. But if the company's government is not only full of 228 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH abuse, but is one of the most corrupt and destructive tyrannies, that probably ever existed in the woi'ld, (as I am sure it is,) what a cruel mockery would it be in me, and in those who think like me, to propose this kind of remedy for this kind of evil! I now come to the third objection, That this bill will increase the influence of the crown. An honorable gentleman has demanded of me, whether I was in earnest when I proposed to this house a plan for the reduction of that influence. Indeed, Sir, I was much, very nmch, in earnest. My heart was deeply concerned in it ; and I hope the public has not lost the effect of it. How far my judgment was right, for what concerned per- sonal favor and consequence to myself, I shall not presume to determine ; nor is its effect upon me of any moment. But as to this bill, whether it increases the influence of the crown; or not, is a question I should be ashamed to ask. If I am not able to connect a system of oppression and tyranny, that goes to the utter ruin of thirty millions of my fellow-creatures and fellow- subjects, but by some increase to the influence of the crown, I am ready here to declare, that I, who have been active to reduce it, shall be at least as active and strenuous to restore it again. I am no lover of names; I contend for the substance of good and protecting government, let it come from what quarter it will. But I am not obliged to have recourse to this expedient. Much, very much the contrary. I am sure that the influence of the crown will by no means aid a reformation of this kind ; which can neither be originated nor supported, but by the uncorrupt public virtue of the representatives of the people of England. Let it once get into the ordinary course of adminis- tration, and to me all hopes of reformation are gone. I am far from knowing or believing, that this bill will increase the influ- ence of the crown. We all know, that the crown has ever had some influence in the court of directors ; and that it has been extremely increased by the acts of 1773 and 1780. The gen- tlemen who, as a part of their reformation, propose " a more active control on the part of the crown," which is to put the directors under a secretary of state, specially named for that purpose, must know, that their project will increase it fui'ther. But that old influence has had, and the new will have, incurable inconveniences which cannot happen under the parliamentary establishment proposed in this bill. An honorable gentleman, not now in his place, but who is well acquainted with the India company, and by no means a friend to this bill, has told you, that a ministerial influence has always been predominant in that body ; and that to make the directors pliant to their pur- ON MR. FOX'S EAST INDIA BILL. 229 poses, ministers generally caused persons meanly qualified to be chosen directors. According to his idea, to secure subservi- ency, they submitted the company's affairs to the direction of incapacity. This was to ruin the company, in order to govern it. This was certainly influence in the very worst form in which it could appear. At best it was clandestine and irre- sponsible. Whether this was done so much upon system as that gentleman supposes, I greatly doubt. But such in effect the operation of government on that court unquestionably was; and such, under a similar constitution, it will be for ever. Ministers must be wholly removed from the management of the affairs of India, or they will have an influence in its pa- tronage. The thing is inevitable. Their scheme of a new secretary of state, "with a more vigorous control," is not much better than a repetition of the measure which we know by experience will not do. Since the year 1773 and the year 1780, the company has been under the control of the secretary of state's office, and we had then three secretaries of state. If more than this is done, then they annihilate the direction which they pretend to support; and they augment the influence of the crown, of whose growth they affect so great a horror. But in truth this scheme of reconciling a direction really and truly deliberative, with an office really and substantially controlling, is a sort of machinery that can be kept in order but a very short time. Either the directors will dwindle into clerks, or the secretary of state, as hitherto has been the course, will leave everything to them, often through design, often through neglect. If both should affect activity, collision, procrastina- tion, delay, and in the end, utter confusion must ensue. But, Sir, there is one kind of influence far greater than that of the nomination to office. This, gentlemen in opposition have totally overlooked, although it now exists in its full vigor ; and it will do so, upon their scheme, in at least as much foixe as it does now. That influence this bill cuts up by the roots: I mean the influence of protection. I shall explain myself: — The office given to a young man going to India is of trifling conse- quence. But he that goes out an insignificant boy, in a few years returns a great nabob. Mr. Hastings says he has two hundred and fifty of that kind of raw materials, who expect to be speedily manufactured into the merchantable quality I men- tion. One of these gentlemen, suppose, returns hither, loaded with odium and with riches. When he comes to England, he comes as to a prison, or as to a sanctuary ; and either is ready for him, according to his demeanor. What is the influence in the grant of any place in India, to that which is acquii-ed by the protection or compromise with such guilt, and with the com- 20 230 ^Ili- BURKE'S SPEECH mand of such riches, under the dominion of the hopes and fears which power is able to hold out to every man in that condi- tion ? That man's whole fortune, half a million perhaps, be- comes an instrument of influence, without a shilling of charge to the civil list ; and the influx of fortunes which stand in need of this protection is continual. It works both ways ; it influ- ences the dehnquent, and it may corrupt the minister. Compare the influence acquired by appointing for instance even a gov- ernor general, and that obtained by protecting him. I shall push this no further. But I wish gentlemen to roll it a little in their own minds. The bill before a'ou cuts ofl' this source of influence. Its design and main scope is to regulate the administration of India upon the principles of a court of judicature ; and to exclude, as far as human prudence can exclude, all possibility of a corrupt partiality, in appointing to oflice, or supporting in office, or covering from inquiry and punishment, any person who has abused or shall abuse his authority. At the board, as appointed and regulated by this bill, reward and punishment cannot be shifted and reversed by a whisper. That commission becomes fatal to cabal, to intrigue, and to secret representation, those instruments of the ruin of India. He that cuts oft' the means of premature fortune, and the power of protecting it when ac- quired, strikes a deadly blow at the great fund, the bank, the capital stock of Indian influence, which cannot be vested any- where, or in any hands, without most dangerous consequences to the public. The third and contradictory objection is, That this bill does not increase the influence of the crown. On the contrary. That the just power of the crown will be lessened, and transferred to the use of a party, by giving the patronage of India to a com- mission nominated by parliament, and independent of the crown. The contradiction is glaring, and it has been too well exposed to make it necessary for me to insist upon it. But passing the contradiction, and taking it without any relation, of all objec- tions that is the most extraordinary. Do not gentlemen know, that the crown has not at present the grant of a single office under the company, civil or military, at home or abroad ? So far as the crown is concerned, it is certainly rather a gainer ; for the vacant offices in the new commission are to be filled up by the king. It is ai-gued as a part of the bill, derogatory to the preroga- lives of the crown, that the commissioners named in the bill are to continue for a short term of years, too short in my opinion ; and because, during that time, they are not at the mercy of every predominant faction of the court. Does not this objec ON MR. FOX'S EAST INDIA BILL. 231 tion lie against the present directors ; none of whom are named by the crown, and a proportion of whom hold for this very term of four years ? Did it not lie against the governor general and council named in the act of 1773 — who were invested by name, as the present commissioners are to be appointed in the body of the act of parliament, who were to hold their places for a term of terms, and were not removable at the discretion of the crown? Did it not lie against the re-appointment, in the year 1780, upon the very same terms? Yet at none of these times, whatever other objections the scheme might be liable to, was it supposed to be a derogation to the just prerogative of the crown, that a commission created by act of parliament should have its members named by the authority which called it into existence ? This is not the disposal by parliament of any office derived from the authority of the crown, or now dispo- sable by that authority. It is so far from being anything new, violent, or alarming, that I do not recollect, in any parliament- ary commission, down to the commissioners of the land tax, that it has ever been otherwise. The objection of the tenure for four years is an objection to all places that are not held during pleasure ; but in that objec- tion I pronounce the gentlemen, from my knowledge of their complexion and of their principles, to be perfectly in earnest. The party (say these gentlemen) of the minister who proposes this scheme will be rendered powerful by it ; for he will name his party friends to the commission. This objection against party is a party objection ; and in this too these gentlemen are perfectly serious. They see that if, by any intrigue, they should succeed to office, they will lose the clandestine patronage, the true instrument of clandestine influence, enjoyed in the name of sut>servient directors, and of wealthy trembling Indian de- linquents. But as often as they are beaten off this ground, they return to it again. The minister will name his friends, and persons of his own party. — Whom should he name ? Should he name his adversaries ? Should he name those whom he cannot trust ? Should he name those to execute his plans, who are the declared enemies to the principles of his reform ? His charac- ter is here at stake. If he proposes for his own ends (but he never will propose) such names as, from their want of rank, fortune, character, ability, or knowledge, are likely to betray or to fall short of their trust, he is in an independent house of commons ; in a house of commons which has, by its own vir- tue, destroyed the instruments of parliamentary subservience. This house of commons would not endure the sound of such names. He would perish by the means which he is supposed to pursue for the security of his power. The first pledge he 232 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH must give of his sincerity in tiiis great reform, will be in the confidence which ought to be reposed in those names. For my part, Sir, in this business I put all indirect considera- tions wholly out of my mind. My sole question, on each clause of the bill, amounts to this : — Is the measure proposed required by the necessities of India ? I cannot consent totally to lose sight of the real wants of the people who are the objects of it, and to hunt after every matter of party squabble that may be started on the several provisions. On the question of the du- ration of the commission I am clear and decided. Can I, can any one who has taken the smallest trouble to be informed concerning the affairs of India, amuse himself with so strange an imagination, as that the habitual despotism and oppression, that the monopolies, the peculations, the universal destruction of all the legal authority of this kingdom, which have been for twenty years maturing to their present enormity, combined Mith the distance of the scene, the boldness and artifice of delin- quents, their combination, their excessive wealth, and the fac- tion they have made in England, can be fully corrected in a shorter term than four years? None has hazarded such an assertion — None, who has a regard for his reputation, will hazard it. Sir, the gentlemen, whoever they are, who shall be appointed to this commission, have an undertaking of magnitude on their nands, and their stability must not only be, but it must be thought, real ; — and who is it will believe, that anything short of an establishment made, supported, and fixed in its duration, with all the authority of parliament, can be thought secure of a reasonable stability 1 The plan of my honorable friend is the reverse of that of reforming by the authors of the abuse. The best we could expect from them is, that they should not con- tinue their ancient pernicious activity. To those we could think of nothing but applying control; as we are sure, that even a regard to their reputation (if any such thing exists in them) would oblige them to cover, to conceal, to suppress, and con- sequently to prevent, all cure of the grievances of India. For what can be discovered, which is not to their disgrace ? Every attempt to correct an abuse would be a satire on their former administration. Every man they should pretend to call to an account, would be found their instrument or their accomplice. They can never see a beneficial regulation, but with a view to defeat it. The shorter the tenure of such persons, the better would be the chance of some amendment. But the system of the bill is different. It calls in persons in nowise concerned with any act censured by parliament ; per- sons generated with, and for, the reform, of which they are ON MR. FOX'S EAST INDIA BILL. 233 themselves the most essential part. To these the chief regula- tions in the bill are helps, not fetters; they are authorities to support, not regulations to restrain them. From these we look for much more than innocence. From these we expect zeal, firmness, and unremitted activity. Their duty, their character, binds them to proceedings of vigor ; and they ought to have a tenure in their office which precludes all fear, whilst they are acting up to the purposes of their trust; a tenure without which, none will undertake plans that require a series and system of acts. When they know that they cannot be whis- pered out of their duty, that their pubhc conduct cannot be censured without a public discussion ; that the schemes which they have begun will not be committed to those who will have an interest and credit in defeating and disgracing them ; then we may entertain hopes. The tenure is for four years, or during their good behaviour. That good behaviour is as long as they are true to the principles of the bill ; and the judgment is in either house of parliament. This is the tenure of your judges ; and the valuable principle of the bill is to make a judicial administration for India. It is to give confidence in the execution of a duty, which requires as much perseverance and fortitude as can fall to the lot of any that is born of woman. As to gain by party, from the right honorable gentleman's bill, let it be shown, that this supposed party advantage is per- nicious to its object, and the objection is of weight ; but until this is done, and this has not been attempted, I shall consider the sole objection, from its tendency to promote the interest of a party, as altogether contemptible. The kingdom is divided into parties, and it ever has been so divided, and it ever will be so divided ; and if no system for relieving the subjects of this kingdom from oppression, and snatching its affairs from ruin, can be adopted until it is demonstrated that no party can derive an advantage from it, no good can ever be done in this country. If party is to derive an advantage from the reform of India, (which is more than I know, or believe,) it ought to be that party which alone, in this kingdom, has its reputation, nay its very being, pledged to the protection and preservation of that part of the empire. Great fear is expressed, that the commis- sioners named in this bill will show some regard to a ministei" out of place. To men made like the objectors, this must ap- pear criminal. Let it however be remembered by others, that if the commissioners should be his friends, they cannot be his slaves. But dependants are not in a condition to adhere to friends, nor to principles, nor to any uniform line of conduct. They may begin censors, and be obliged to end accomphces. 2E 20* 234 MR- BURKE'S SPEECH They may be even put under the dh'ection of those whom they were appointed to punish. The fourth and last objection is, that the bill will hurt public credit. I do not know whether this requires an answer. But if it does, look to your foundations. The sinking fund is the pillar of credit in this country ; and let it not be forgot, that the distresses, owing to the mismanagement of the East India company, have already taken a million from that fund by the non-payment of duties. The bills drawn upon the company, which are about four millions, cannot be accepted without the consent of the treasury. The treasury, acting under a parliamentary trust and au- thority, pledges the public for these millions. If they pledge the public, the public must have a security in its hands for the management of this interest, or the national credit is gone. For othervi'ise it is not only the East India company, which is a great interest, that is undone, but, clinging to the security of all your funds, it drags down the rest, and the whole fabric perishes in one ruin. If this bill does not provide a direction of integrity and of ability competent to that trust, the objec- tion is fatal. If it does, pubhc credit must depend on the sup- port of the bill. It has been said, if you violate this charter, what security has the charter of the bank, in which public credit is so deeply concerned, and even the charter of London, in which the rights of so many subjects are invoh^ed 1 I answer, in the hke case they have no security at all — No — no security at all. If the bank should, by every species of mismanagement, fall into a state similar to that of tiie East India company; if it should be oppressed with demands it could not answer, engagements which it could not perform, and with bills for which it could not procure payment ; no charter should protect the mismange- ment from correction, and such public grievances from redress. If the city of London had the means and will of destroying an empire, and of cruelly oppressing and tyrannizing over millions of men as good as themselves, the charter of the city of Lon- don should prove no sanction to such tyranny and such op pression. Charters are kept, when their purposes are main- tained : they are violated, when the privilege is supported against its end and its object. Now, Sir, I have finished all I proposed to say, as my reasons for giving my vote to this bill. ' If I am wrong, it is not for want of pains to know what is right. This pledge, at least, of my rectitude I have given to my country. And now, having done my duty to the bill, let me say a word to the author. I should leave him to his own noble sen- ON MR. FOX'S EAST INDIA BILL. 235 timents, if the unworthy and ilUberal language with which he has been treated, beyond all example of parliamentary liberty, did not make few words necessary ; not so much in justice to him, as to my own feelings. I must say then, that it will be a distinction honorable to the age, that the rescue of the greatest number of the human race that ever were so grievously op- pressed, from the greatest tyranny that was ever exercised, has fallen to the lot of abilities and dispositions equal to the task ; that it has fallen to one who has the enlargement to compre- hend, the spirit to undertake, and the eloquence to support, so great a measure of hazardous benevolence. His spirit is not owing to his ignorance of the state of men and things ; he well knows what snares are spread about his path, from personal animosity, from court intrigues, and possibly from popular delusion. But he has put to hazard his ease, his security, his interest, his power, even his darling popularity, for the benefit of a people whom he has never seen. This is the road that all heroes have trod before him. He is traduced and abused for his supposed motives. He will remember, that obloquy is a necessary ingredient in the composition of all true glory : he will remember, that it was not only in the Roman customs, but it is in the nature and constitution of things, that calumny and abuse are essential parts of triumph. These thoughts will sup- port a mind, which only exists for honor, under the burthen of temporary reproach. He is doing indeed a great good ; such as rarely falls to the lot, and almost as rarely coincides with the desires of any man. Let him use his time. Let him give the whole length of the reins to his benevolence. He is now on a great eminence, where the eyes of mankind are turned to. him. He may live long, he may do much. But here is the summit. He never can exceed what he does this day. He has faults ; but they are faults that, though they may in a small degree tarnish the lustre, and sometimes impede the march of his abilities, have nothing in them to extinguish the fire of great virtues. In those faults, there is no mixture of deceit, of hypocrisy, of pride, of ferocity, of complexional despotism, or want of feeling for the distresses of mankind. His are faults which might exist in a descendant of Henry the Fourth of France, as they did exist in that father of his country. Henry the Fourth wished that he might live to see a fowl in the pot of every peasant in his kingdom. That sentiment of homely benevolence was worth all the splendid sayings that are recorded of kings. But he wished perhaps for more than could be obtained, and the goodness of the man exceeded the power of the king. But this gentleman, a subject, may this day say this at least, with truth, that he secures the rice in 236 SPEECH ON MR. FOX'S EAST INDIA BILL. his pot to every man in India. A poet of antiquity thoughc it one of the first distinctions to a prince whom he meant to celebrate, that through a long succession of generations, he had been the progenitor of an able and virtuous citizen, who, by force of the arts of peace, had corrected governments of oppression, and suppressed wars of rapine. Indole proh quanta juvenis, quantumque daturus Ausonise populis, ventura in soecula civem. Ille super Gangem, super exaudiuts et Indos, Implebit terras voce ; et furialia bella Fulmine conipescet linguae. This was what was said of the predecessor of the only per- son to whose eloquence it does not wrong that of the mover of this bill to be compared. But the Ganges and the Indus are the patrimony of the fame of my honorable friend, and not of Cicero. I confess, I anticipate with joy the reward of those, whose whole consequence, power, and authority, exist only for the benefit of mankind ; and I carry my mind to all the people, and all the names and descriptions, that, relieved by this bill, will bless the labors of this parliament, and the confidence which the best house of commons has given to him who the best deserves it. The little cavils of party will not be heard, where freedom and happiness will be felt. There is not a tongue, a nation, or religion in India, which will not bless ihe presiding care and manly beneficence of this house, and of him who proposes to you this great work. Your names will never be separated before the throne of the Divine Goodness, in whatever language, or with whatever rites, pardon is asked for sin, and reward for those who imitate the Godhead in his universal bounty to his creatures. These honors you deserve, and they will surely be paid, when all the jargon of influence, and party, and patronage, are swept into oblivion. I have spoken what I think, and what I feel, of the mover of this bill. An honorable friend of mine, speaking of his merits, was charged with having made a studied panegyric. I don't know what his was. Mine, I am sure, is a studied pan- egyric ; the fruit of much meditation ; the result of the obser- vation of near twenty years. For my own part, I am happy that I have lived to see this day ; I feel myself overpaid for the labors of eighteen years, when, at this late period, I am able to take my share, by one humble vote, in destroying a tyranny that exists to the disgrace of this nation, and the de- struction of so large a part of the human species. EXTRACT FROM THE SPEECH OF MR. BURKE, ON OPENING THE IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ., FEBRUARY 15 AND 16, 1788. My Lords, The gentlemen who have it in command to support the im- peachment against Mr. Hastings, have directed me to open the cause with a general view of the grounds, upon which the Commons have proceeded in their charge against him. They have directed me to accompany this with another general view of the extent, the magnitude, the nature, the tendency, and the effect of the crimes, which they allege to have been by him committed. They have also directed me to give an explana- tion (with their aid I may be enabled to give it) of such cir- cumstances, preceding the crimes charged on Mr. Hastings, or concomitant with them, as may tend to elucidate whatever may be found obscure in the articles as they stand. To these they wished me to add a few illustrative remarks on the laws, cus- toms, opinions, and manners of the people concerned, and who are the objects of the crimes we charge on Mr. Hastings. The several articles, as they appear before you, will be open- ed by other gentlemen with more particularity, with more dis- tinctness, and, without doubt, with infinitely more ability, when they come to apply the evidence, which naturally belongs to each article of this accusation. This, my lords, is the plan which we mean to pursue, on the great charge which is now to abide your judgment. My lords, I must look upon it as an auspicious circumstance to this cause, in which the honor of the kingdom and the fate of many nations are involved, that, from the first commence- ment of our parliamentary process to this the hour of solemn trial, not the smallest difference of opinion has arisen between the two houses. My lords, there are persons, who, looking rather upon what was to be found in our records and histories, than what was to be expected from the public justice, had formed hopes consola- tory to themselves and dishonorable to us. They flattered themselves, that the corruptions of India would escape amidst the dissensions of parliament. They are disappointed. They will be disappointed in all the rest of their expectations, which 238 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE they have formed upon everything, except the merits of their cause. The Commons will not have the melancholy unsocial glory of having acted a solitary part in a noble, but imperfect, work. What the greatest in(]uest of the nation has begun, its highest tribunal will accomplish. At length justice will be done to India. It is true, that your lordsliii)s will have your full share in this great achievement ; but the Commons have al- ways considered, that wdiatcver honor is divided with you is doubled on themselves. My lords, I must confess, that amidst these encouraging prospects the Commons do not approach your bar without awe and anxiety. The magnitude of the interests, which we have in charge, will reconcile some degree of solicitude for the event with the undoubting confidence, w'ith which w^e repose our- selves upon your lordship's justice. For we are men, my lords : and men are so made, that it is not only the greatness of dan- ger, but the value of the adventure, which measures the degree of our concern in every undertaking. I solemnly assure your lordships, that no standard is sufficient to estimate the value, which the Commons set upon the event of the cause they now bring before you. My lords, the business of this day is not the business of this man — it is not solely, whether the prisoner at the bar be found innocent, or guilty ; but whether miUions of mankind shall be made miserable, or happy. Your lordships will see in the progress of this cause, that there is not only a long connected, systematic series of mis- demeanors, but an equally connected system of maxims and principles, invented to justify them. Upon both of these you must judge. According to the judgment, that you shall give upon the past transactions in India, inseparably connected as they are with the principles which support them, the whole character of your future government in that distant empire is to be unalterably decided. It will take its perpetual tenor, it wall receive its final impression, from the stamp of this very hour. It is not only the interest of India, now the most considera- ble part of the British empire, which is concerned, but the credit and honor of the British nation itself wall be decided by this decision. We are to decide by this judgment, w^hether the crimes of individuals are to be turned into public guilt and na- tional ignominy ; or whether this nation will convert ihe very offences, which have throw^n a transient shade upon its govern- mont, into something, that will reflect a permanent lusire upon the honor, justice, and humanity of this kingdom. My lords, there is another consideration, which aiu!;ments the solicitude of the Commons, equal to those other two great IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 239 interests I have stated, those of our empire and our national character ; something, that, if possible, comes more home to the hearts and feeUngs of every EngUshman : I mean, the in- terests of our constitution itself, which is deeply involved in the event of this cause. The future use, and the whole effect, if not the very existence, of the process of an impeachment of high crimes and misdemeanors before the peers of this king- dom, upon the charge of the Commons, will very much be de- cided by your judgment in this cause. This tribunal will be found (I hope it will always be found) too great for petty causes : if it should at the same time be found incompetent to one of the greatest ; that is, if little offences, from their minute- ness, escape you, and the gi'eatest, from their magnitude, op- press you ; it is impossible, that this form of trial should not, in the end, vanish out of the constitution. -For we must not deceive ourselves : whatever does not stand with credit cannot stand long. And if the constitution should be deprived, I do not mean in form, but virtually, of this resource, it is virtually deprived of everything else, that is valuable in it. For this process is the cement, which binds the whole together ; this is the individuating principle, that makes England what England is. In this court it is, that no subject, in no part of the empire, can fail of competent and proportionable justice : here it is, that we provide for that, which is the substantial excellence of our constitution ; I mean, the great circulation of responsibility, by which (excepting the supreme power) no man, in no cir- cumstance, can escape the account, which he owes to the laws of his country. It is by this process, that i,nagistracy, which tries and controls all other things, is itself tried and controlled. Other constitutions are satisfied with making good subjects ; this is a security for good governors. It is by this ti'ibunal, that statesmen, who abuse their power, are accused by states- men, and tried by statesmen, not upon the niceties of a narrow jurisprudence, but upon the enlarged and solid principles of state morahty. It is here, that those, who by the abuse of power have violated the spirit of law, can never hope for pro- tection from any of its forms : — it is here, that those, who have refused to conform themselves to its perfections, can never hope to escape through any of its defects. It ought, therefore, my lords, to become our common care to guard this your precious deposit, rare in its use, but powerful in its effect, with a religious vigilance, and never to suffer it to be either discred- ited or antiquated. For this great end your lordships are in- vested with great and plenary powers : but you do not suspend, you do not supersede, you do not annihilate any subordinate 240 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE jurisdiction; on the contrary, you are auxiliary and supple- mental to them all. Whether it is owing to the felicity of our times, less fertile in great offences, than those, which have gone before us ; or whether it is fi'om a sluggish apathy, which has dulled and en- ervated the public justice, I am not called upon to determine : but, whatever may be the cause, it is now sixty-three years since any impeachment, grounded upon abuse of authority and misdemeanor in otiice, has come before this tribunal. The last is that of Lord Macclesfield, which happened in the year 1725. So that the oldest process known to the constitution of this country has, upon its revival, some appearance of novelty. At this time, when all Europe is in a state of, perhaps, contagious fermentation ; when antiquity has lost all its reverence and all its eflect on the minds of men, at the same time that novelty is still attended with the suspicions, that always will be attached to whatever is new ; we have been anxiously careful in a busi- ness, which seems to combine the objections both to what is antiquated and what is novel, so to conduct ourselves, that no- thing in the revival of this great parliamentary process shall afford a pretext for its future disuse. My lords, strongly impressed as they are with these senti- ments, the commons have conducted themselves with singular care and caution. Without losing the spirit and zeal of a public prosecution, they have comported themselves with such mod- eration, temper, and decorum, as would not have ill becon^e the final judgment, if with them rested the final judgment, of this great cause. With very few intermissions, the affairs of India have con- stantly engaged the attention of the Commons for more than four- teen years. We may safely affirm, we have tried every mode of legislative provision, before we had recourse to anything of penal process. It was in the year 1774 we framed an act of parliament for remedy to the then existing disorders in India, such as the then information before us enabled us to enact. Finding, that the act of parliament did not answer all the ends that were expected from it, we had, in the year 1782, recourse to a body of monitory resolutions. Neither had we the ex- pected fruit from them. When, therefore, we found, that our inquiries and our reports, our laws and our admonitions, were alike despised ; that enormities increased in proportion as they were forbidden, detected, and exposed ; when we found, that guilt stalked with an erect and upright front, and that legal authority seemed to skulk and hide its head like outlawed guilt; when we found, that some of those very persons, who were appointed by parliament to assert the authority of the laws of IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 241 this kingdom, were the most forward, the most bold, and the most active, in the conspiracy for their destruction ; then it was time for the justice of the nation to re-collect itself. To have forborne longer would not have been patience, but collusion ; it would have been participation with guilt ; it would have been to make ourselves accomplices with the criminal. We found it was impossible to evade painful duty, without betraying a sacred trust. Having, therefore, resolved upon the last and only resource, a penal prosecution, it was our next business to act in a manner worthy of our long dehberation. In all points we proceeded with selection. We have chosen (we trust, it will so appear to your lordships) such a crime, and such a criminal, and such a body of evidence, and such a mode of process, as would have recommended this course of justice to posterity, even if it had not been supported by any example in the practice of our forefathers. First, to speak of the process : we are to inform your lord- ships, that, besides that long previous deliberation of fourteen years, we examined, as a preliminary to this proceeding, every circumstance, which could prove favorable to parties appa- rently delinquent, before we finally resolved to prosecute. There was no precedent to be found, in the journals, favorable to persons in Mr. Hastings's circumstances, that was not ap- plied to. Many measures utterly unknown to former parlia- mentary proceedings, and which, indeed, seemed in some degree to enfeeble them, but which were all to the advantage of those that were to be prosecuted, were adopted, for the first time, upon this occasion. — In an early stage of the proceeding, the criminal desired to be heard. He was heard ; and he pro- duced before the bar of the House that insolent and unbecoming paper, which lies upon our table. It was deliberately given in by his own hand, and signed with his own name. The Com- mons, however, passed by everything offensive in that paper with a magnanimity, that became them. They considered nothing in it, but the facts that the defendant alleged, and the principles he maintained ; and after a deliberation, not short of judicial, we proceeded with confidence to your bar. So far as to the process ; which, though I mentioned last in the line and order, in which I stated the objects of our selec- tion, I thought it best to dispatch first. As to the crime, which we chose, we first considered well what it was in its nature, under all the circumstances, which attended it. We weighed it with all its extenuations, and with all its aggravations. On that review we are warranted to as- sert, that the crimes, with which we charge the prisoner at tlie bar, are substantial crimes ; that they are no errors or mistakes, 2 F 21 242 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE such as wise and good men might possibly fall into ; which may even produce very pernicious effects, without being in fact great offences. The Commons are too liberal, not to allow for the difficulties of a great and arduous public situation. They know too well the domineering necessities, which frequently occur in all great affairs. They know the exigency of a press- ing occasion, which, in its pi^ecipitate career, bears everything down before it, which does not give time to the mind to recol- lect its faculties, to reinforce its reason, and to have recourse to fixed principles, but, by compeUing an instant and tumuhu- ous decision, too often obliges men to decide in a manner, that calm judgment would certainly have rejected. We know, as we are to be served by men, that the persons, who serve us, must be tried as men, and with a very large allowance indeed, to human infirmity and human error. This, my lords, we knew, and we weighed before we came before you. But the crimes, which we charge in these articles, are not lapses, defects, er- rors, of common frailty, which, as we know and feel, we can allow for. We charge this oflender with no crimes, that have not arisen from passions, which it is criminal to harbor ; with no offences, that have not their root in avarice, rapacity, pride, insolence, ferocity, treachery, cruelty, malignity of temper ; in short, in nothing, that does not argue a total extinction of all moral principle ; that does not manifest an inveterate blackness of heart, died in grain with malice, vitiated, corrupted, gan- grened to the very core. If we do not plant his crimes in those vices, which the breast of man is made to abhor, and the spirit of all laws, human and divine, to interdict, we desire no longer to be heard upon this occasion. Let everything, that can be pleaded on the ground of surprise or error, upon those grounds be pleaded with success : we give up the ^Jvhole of those predicaments. We urge no crimes, that were not crimes of forethought. We charge him with nothing, that he did not commit upon deliberation ; that he did not commit against ad- vice, supplication, and remonstrance ; that he did not commit against the direct command of lawful authority ; that he did not commit after reproof and reprimand, the reproof and re- primand of those who are authorized by the laws to reprove and reprimand him. The crimes of Mr. Hastings are crimes, not only in themselves, but aggravated by being crimes of con- tumacy. They were crimes, not against forms, but against those eternal laws of justice, which are our rule and our birth- right. His offences are not, in formal, technical language, but in reality, in substance and effect, high crimes and high misde- meanors. So far as to the crimes. As to the criminal, we have chosen IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 243 him on the same principle, on which we selected the crimes. We have not chosen to bring before you a poor, puny, trembling delinquent, misled, perhaps, by those, who ought to have taught him better, but who have afterwards oppressed him by their power, as they had first corrupted him by their example. In- stances there have been many, when the punishment of minor oftences, in inferior persons, has been made the means of screening crimes of a high order, and in men of high descrip- tion. Our course is difierent. We have not brought before you an obscure offender, who, when his insignificance and weakness are weighed against the power of the prosecution, gives even to public justice something of the appearance of op- pression ; no, my loi'ds, we have brought before you the first man of India in rank, authority, and station. We have brought before you the chief of the tribe, the head of the whole body of eastern offenders ; a captain-general of iniquity, under whom all the fraud, all the peculation, all the tyranny, in India, are embodied, disciplined, arrayed, and paid. This is the person, my lords, that we bring before you. We have brought before you such a person, that, if you strike at him with the firm arm of justice, you will not have need of a great many more ex- amples. You strike at the whole corps, if you strike at the head. So far as to the crime : so far as to the criminal. Now, my lords, I shall say a few words relative to the evidence, which we have brought to support such a charge, and which ought to be equal in weight to the charge itself. It is chiefly evidence of record, officially signed by the criminal himself in many instances. We have brought before you his own letters, au- thenticated by his own hand. On these we chiefly rely. But we shall likewise bring before you living witnesses, competent to speak to the points, to which they are brought. When you consider the late enormous power of the pris- oner ; when you consider his criminal, indefatigable assiduity in the destruction of all recorded evidence ; when you consider the influence he has over almost all Uving testimony; when you consider the distance of the scene of action ; I believe your lordships, and I believe the world, will be astonished, that so much, so clear, so solid, and so conclusive evidence of all kinds has been obtained against him. I have no doubt, that in nine instances in ten the evidence is such as would satisfy the narrow precision supposed to prevail, and to a degree rightly to prevail, in all subordinate power and delegated jurisdiction. But your lordships will maintain, what we assert and claim as the right of the subjects of Great Britain — that you are not 244 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE bound by any rules of evidence, or any other rules whatever, except those of natural, immutable, and substantial justice. God forbid the Commons should desire, that anything should be received as proof from them, which is not by nature adapt- ed to prove the thing in question. If they should make such a request, they would aim at overturning the very principles of that justice, to which they resort. They would give the nation an evil example, that would rebound back on themselves, and bring destruction upon their own heads, and on those of all their posterity. On the other hand, I have too much confidence in the learn- ing with which you will be advised, and the liberality and no- bleness of the sentiments with which you are born, to suspect, that you would, by any abuse of the forms, and a technical course of proceeding, deny justice to so great a part of the "w^orld, that claims it at your hands. Your lordships always had an ample power, and almost unlimited jurisdiction ; you have now a boundless object. It is not from this district, or from that parish, not from this city, or the other province, that relief is now applied for : exiled and undone princes, extensive tribes, suffering nations, infinite descriptions of men, different in language, in manners, and in rites — men, separated by every barrier of nature from you, by the providence of God are blended in one common cause, and are now become suppliants at your bar. For the honor of this nation, in vindication of this mysterious providence, let it be known, that no rule formed upon municipal maxims (if any such rule exists) will prevent the course of that imperial justice, which you owe to the peo- ple, that call to you from all parts of a great disjointed world. For, situated as this kingdom is, an object, thank God, of envy to the rest of the nations ; its conduct in that high and elevated situation will undoubtedly be scrutinized wuth a severity as great as its power is invidious. It is well know^n, that enormous wealth has poured into this country from India through a thousand channels, public and concealed ; and it is no particular derogation from our honor to suppose a possibility of being corrupted by that, by which other empires have been corrupted, and assemblies, almost as respectable and venerable as your lordships, have been directly or indirectly vitiated. Forty millions of money, at least, have within our memory been brought from India into England. In this case the most sacred judicature ought to look to its repu- tation. Without offence we may venture to suggest, that the best way to secure reputation is, not by a proud defiance ot public opinion, but by guiding our actions in such a manner, as that public opinion may in the end be securely defied, by hav- IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 245 ing been previously respected and dreaded. No direct false judgment is apprehended from the tribunals of this country. But it is feared, that partiality may lurk and nestle in the abuse of our forms of proceeding. It is necessary, therefore, that nothing in that proceeding should appear to mark the slightest trace, should betray the faintest odor, of chicane. God forbid, that, when you try the most serious of all causes, that when you try the cause of Asia in the presence of Europe, there should be the least suspicion, that a narrow partiality, utterly destructive of justice, should so guide us, that a British subject in power should appear in substance to possess rights, which are denied to the humble allies, to the attached dependants of this kingdom, who by their distance have a double demand upon your protection, and who, by an implicit (I hope not a weak and useless) trust in you, have stripped themselves of every other resource under heaven. I do not say this from any fear, doubt, or hesitation, con- cerning what your lordships will finally do : none in the world ; but I cannot shut my ears to the rumors, which you all know to be disseminated abroad. The abusers of power may have a chance to cover themselves by those fences and intrenchments, which were made to secure the liberties of the people against men of that very description. But God forbid it should be bruited from Pekin to Paris, that the laws of England are for the rich and the powerful ; but to the poor, the miserable, and defenceless, they afford no resource at all. God forbid it should be said, no nation is equal to the English in substantial violence and in formal justice — that in this kingdom we feel ourselves competent to confer the most extravagant and inordinate powers upon public ministers, but that we are deficient, poor, helpless, lame, and impotent in the means of calling them to account for their use of them. An opinion has been insidiously circulated through this kingdom, and through foreign nations too, that, in order to cover our participation in guilt, and our common interest in the plunder of the East, we have invented a set of scholastic distinctions, abhorrent to the common sense, and unpropitious to the common necessities, of mankind ; bv which we are to deny ourselves the knowledge of what the rest of the world knows, and what so great a part of the world both knows and feels. I do not deprecate any appearance which may give countenance to this aspersion, from suspicion that any corrupt motive can influence this court; I deprecate it from knowing, that hitherto we have moved within the narrow circle of municipal justice. I am afraid, that, from the habits ac- quired by moving within a circumscribed sphere, we may be induced rather to endeavor at forcing nature into that municipal 21* 246 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE circle, than to enlarge the circle of national justice to the neces- sities of the empire we have obtained. This is the only thing, which does create any doubt or diffi- culty in the minds of sober people. But there are those, who will not judge so equitably. Where two motives, neither of them perfectly justifiable, may be assigned, the worst has the chance of being preferred. If, from any appearance of chicane in the court, justice should fail, all men will say, better there were no tribunals at all. In my humble opinion, it would be better a thousand times to give all complainants the short answer the Dey of Algiers gave a British ambassador, representing certain grievances suffered by the British merchants, — " My friend," (as the story is related by Dr. Shawe) " do not you know, that my subjects are a band of robbers, and that I am their captain?" — better it would be a thousand times, and a thousand thousand times more manly, than a hypocritical process, which, under a pretended reverence to punctiUous ceremonies and observ- ances of law, abandons mankind, without help and resource, to all the desolatmg consequences of arbitrary power. The conduct and event of this cause will put an end to such doubts, wherever they may be entertained. Your lordships will exer- cise the great plenary powers, with which you are invested, in a manner, that will do honor to the protecting justice of this kingdom, that will completely avenge the great people, who are subjected to it. You will not suffer your proceedings to be squared by any rules, but by their necessities, and by that law of a common nature, which cements them to us, and us to them. The reports to the conti-ary have been spread abroad with uncommon industry ; but they will be speedily refuted by the humanity, simplicity, dignity, and nobleness of your lord- ships' justice. The first thing, in considering the merits or demerits of any governor, is to have some test, by which they are to be tried. And here, my lords, we conceive, that when a British governor is sent abroad, he is sent to pursue the good of the people as much as possible in the spirit of the laws of this country, which in all respects intend their conservation, their happiness, and their prosperity. This is the principle, upon which Mr. Hast- ings was bound to govern, and upon which he is to account for his conduct here. His rule was, what a British governor, intrusted with the power of this country, was bound to do, or to forbear. If he has performed, and if he has abstained, as he ought, dismiss him honorably acquitted from your bar — otherwise condemn him. He may resort to other principles and to other maxims ; but this country will force him to be tried by its laws. The IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 247 law of this country recognizes that well-known crime, called misconduct in office ; it is a head of the law of England, and, so far as inferior courts are competent to try it, may be tried in them. Here, your lordships' competence is plenary ; you are fully competent both to inquire into, and to punish the otfence. And, first, I am to state to your lordships, by the direction of those whom I am bound to obey, the principles on which Mr. Hastings declares he has conducted his govern- ment ; principles, which he has avowed — first, in several letters written to the East India company — next, in a paper of de- fence, delivered to the House of Commons, explicitly ; and more explicitly in his defence before your lordships. Nothing in Mr. Hastings's proceedings is so curious as his several de- fences ; and nothing in the defences is so singular, as the prin- ciples, upon which he proceeds. Your lordships will have to decide not only upon a large, connected, systematic train of misdemeanors, but an equally connected system of principles and maxims of government, invented to justify those misde- meanors. He has brought them forward and avowed them in the face of the day. He has boldly and insultingly thrown them in the face of the representatives of a free people, and we cannot pass them by without adopting them. I am directed to protest against those grounds and principles upon which he frames his defence ; for, if those grounds are good and vahd, they carry oft' a great deal at least, if not entirely, the foundation of our charge. My lords, we contend that Mr. Hastings, as a British governor, ought to govern on British principles, not by British forms — God forbid ; for, if ever there was a case, in w^hich the letter kills and the spirit gives life, it would be an attempt to introduce British forms and the substance of despotic principles together into any country. No. We call for that spirit of equity, that spirit of justice, that spirit of protection, that spirit of lenity, which ought to characterize every British subject in power ; and on these, and these principles only, he will be tried. But he has told your lordships, in his defence, that actions m Asia do not bear the same moral qualities, which the same actions would bear in Europe. My lords, we positively deny that principle. I am authorized and called upon to deny it. And having stated at large what he means by saying, that the same actions have not the same qualities in Asia and in Europe, we are to let your lordships know, that these gentlemen have formed a \)hn o( geogi'apkical morality, by which the duties of men, in public and in private situations, are not to be governed by their relation to the great Governor of the universe, or by their relation to mankind, but 248 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE by climates, degrees of longitude, parallels not of life but of latitudes ; as if, when you have crossed the equinoctial, all the virtues die, as they say some insects die, when they cross the line ; as if there were a kind of baptism, Uke that practised by seamen, by which they unbaptize themselves of all that they learned in Europe, and after which a new order and system of things commenced. This geographical morality we do protest against. Mr. Hast- ings shall not screen himself under it ; and on this point I hope and trust many words will not be necessary to satisfy your lordships. But we think it necessary, in justification of our- selves, to declare, that the laws of morality are the same everywhere; and that there is no action, which would pass for an act of exhortation, of peculation, of bribery, and of oppression in England, that is not an act of extortion, of peculation, of bribery, and oppression, in Europe, Asia, Africa, and all the world over. This I contend for, not in the technical forms of it, but I contend for it in the substance. Mr. Hastings comes before your lordships not as a British governor answering to a British tribunal, but as a soubahdar, as a bashaw of three tails. He says, "I had an arbitrary power to exercise : I exercised it. Slaves I found the people ; slaves they are, they are so by their constitution ; and if they are, I did not make it for them. I was unfortunately bound to exercise this arbitrary power, and accordingly I did exercise it. It was disagreeable to me, but I did exercise it, and no other power can be exercised in that country." This, if it be true, is a plea in bar. But I trust and hope your lordships will not judge, by laws and institutions which you do not know, against those laws and institutions which you do know, and under whose power and authority Mr. Hastings went out to India. Can your lordships patiently hear what we have heard with indignation enough, and what, if there were nothing else, would call these principles, as well as the actions which are justified on such principles, to your lordships' bar ; that it may be known whether the Peers of England do not sympathize with the Commons in their detestation of such doctrine ? Think of an English governor tried before you as a British subject, and yet declaring, that he governed on the principles of arbi- trary power. His plea is, that he did govern there on arbitrary and despotic, and, as he supposes, oriental principles. And as this plea is boldly avowed and maintained, and as, no doubt, all his conduct was perfectly correspondent to these principles, the principles and the conduct must be tried together. If your lordships will now permit me, I will state one of the many places, in which he has avowed these principles as the IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 249 basis and foundation of all his conduct. " The sovereignty, which they assumed, it fell to my lot, very unexpectedly, to exert ; and whether or not such powder, or powers of that na- ture, were delegated to me by any provisions of any act of parliament, I confess myself too little of a lawyer to pronounce. I only know, that the acceptance of the sovereignty of Bena- res, &c. is not acknowledged or admitted by any act of par- liament ; and yet, by the particular interference of the majority of the council, the company is clearly and indisputably seized of that sovereignty." So that this gentleman, because he is not a lawyer, nor clothed with those robes which distinguish and well distinguish the learning of this country, is not to know anything of his duty ; and whether he was bound by any, or what act of parliament, is a thing he is not lawyer enough to know. Now, if your lordships will suffer the laws to be broken by those who are not of the long robe, I am afraid those of the long robe will have none to punish but those of their own profession. He therefore goes to a law he is better acquainted with ; that is, the law of arbitrary power and force, if it deserves to be called by the name of law. " If, therefore," says he, " the sovereignty of Benares, as ceded to us by the vizier, have any rights whatever annexed to it, (and be not a mere empty word without meaning,) those rights must be such as are held, countenanced, and established by the law, custom, and usage of the Mogul empire, and not by the provisions of any British act of parliament hitherto enacted. Those I'ights, and none other, I have been the involuntary instrument of enforcing. And if any future act of parliament shall positively, or by im- phcation, tend to annihilate those very rights, or their exertion, as I have exerted them, I much fear, that the boasted sovereign- ty of Benares, which was held up as an acquisition almost obtruded on the company against my consent and opinion, (for I acknowledge, that even then I foresaw many difficulties and inconveniences in its future exercise ;) I fear, I say, that this sovereignty will be found a burden instead of a benefit, a heavy clog rather than a pi'ecious gem to its present possessors ; I mean, unless the whole of our territory in that quarter shall be rounded and made an uniform compact body by one grand and systematic arrangement; such an arrangement as shall do away all the mischiefs, doubts, and inconveniences (both to the governors and the governed) arising from the variety of tenures, rights, and claims in all cases of landed property and feudal jurisdiction in India, from the informality, invalidity, and insta- bility of all engagements in so divided and unsettled a state of society; and from the unavoidable anarchy and confusion of different laws, religions, and prejudices, moral, civil, and politi- 2 G 250 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE cal, all jumbled together in one unnatural and discordant mass. Every part of Hindostan has been constantly exposed to these and similar disadv^antages ever since the Mahomedan con- quests." " The Hindus, who never incorporated with their conquerors, were kept in order only by the strong hand of power. The constant necessity of similar exertions would increase at once their energy and extent, so that rebellion itself is the parent and promoter of despotism. Sovereignty in India implies nothing else. For I know not how we can form an estimate of its powers, but from its visible effects, and those are everywhere the same from Cabool to Assam. The whole history of Asia is nothing moi-e than precedents to prove the invariable exer- cise of arbitrary power. To all this I strongly alluded in the minutes I delivered in council, when the treaty with the new vizier was on foot in 1775; and I wished to make Cheil Sing independent, because in India dependence included a thousand evdls, many of which I enumerated at that time, and they are entered in the ninth clause of the first section of this charge. I knew the powders with which an Indian sovereignty is armed, and the dangers to which tributaries are exposed. I knew, that, from the history of Asia, and from the very nature of man- kind, the subjects of a despotic empire are always vigilant for the moment to rebel, and the sovereign is ever jealous of rebel- lious intentions. A zemindar is an Indian subject, and, as such, exposed to the common lot of his fellows. The mean and de- praved state of a mere zemindar is therefore this very dependence above-mentioned on a despotic government, this very prone- ness to shake off his allegiance, and this very exposure to continual danger from his sovereign's jealousy, which are con- sequent on the political state of Hindostanic governments. Bulwant Sing, if he had been, and Cheit Sing, as long as he %vas, a zemindar, stood exactly in this 7nean and depraved state by the constitution of his country. I did not make it for him, but would have secured him from it. Those who made him a zemindar, entailed upon him the consequences of so mean and depraved a tenure. Ally Verdy Cawn and Cossim Ally fined all their zemindars on the necessities of war, and on every pretence either of court necessity or court extravagance." My lords, you have now heard the principles, on which Mr. Hastings governs the part of Asia subjected to the British em- pire. You have heard his opinion of the mean and depraved state of those who are subject to it. You have heard his lec- ture upon arbitrary power, which he states to be the constitu- tion of Asia. You hear the application he makes of it; and you hear the practices which he employs to justify it, and who IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 251 the persons were, on whose authority he rehes, and whose ex- ample he professes to follow. In the first place, your lordships will be astonished at the audacity, with which he speaks of his own administration, as if he was reading a speculative lecture on the evils attendant upon some vicious system of foreign go- vernment, in which he had no sort of concern whatever. And then, when in this speculative way he has established, or thinks he has, the vices of the government, he conceives he has found a sufficient apology for his own crimes. And if he violates the most solemn engagements, if he oppresses, extorts, and robs, if he imprisons, confiscates, banishes, at his sole will and pleasure, when we accuse him for his ill treatment of the people com- mitted to him as a sacred trust, his defence is, — to be robbed, violated, oppressed, is their privilege — let the constitution of their country answer for it. — I did not make it for them. Slaves I found them, and as slaves I have treated them. I was a despotic prince, despotic governments are jealous, and the subjects prone to rebellion. This very proneness of the sub- ject to shake off his allegiance exposes him to continual danger from his sovereign's jealousy ; and this is consequent on the pohtical state of Hindostanic governments. He lays it down as a rule, that despotism is the genuine constitution of India, that a disposition to rebellion in the subject, or dependent, prince is the necessary efiect of this despotism, and that jea- lousy and its consequences naturally arise on the part of a sovereign — that the government is everything, and the subject nothing — that the great landed men are in a mean and depraved state, and subject to many evils. Such a state of things, if true, would warrant conclusions directly opposite to those which Mr. Hastings means to draw from them, both argumentativcly and practically, first to influ- ence his conduct, and then to bottom his defence of it. Perhaps you will imagine, that the man who avows these principles of arbitrary government, and pleads them as the jus- tification of acts which nothing else can justify, is of opinion, that they are on the whole good for the people, over whom thev are exercised. The very reverse. He mentions them as hor- rible things, tending to inflict on the people a thousand evils, and to bring on the ruler a continual train of dangers. Yet he states, that your acquisitions in India will be a detriment instead of an advantage, if you destroy arbitrary power, unless you can reduce all the religious establishments, all the civil institu- tions, and tenures of land, into one uniform mass; i. e. unless by acts of arbitrary power you extinguish all the laws, rio-hts, and religious principles of the people, and force them to an 252 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE uniformity ; and on that uniformity build a system of arbitrary power. But nothing is more false, than that despotism is the consti- tution of any country in Asia, that we are acquainted with. It is certainly not true of any Mahomedan constitution. But if it were, do your lordships really think, that the nation would bear, that any human creature would bear, to hear an EngUsh governor defend himself on such principles ? or, if he can de- fend himself on such principles, is it possible to deny the con- clusion, that no man in India has a security for anything, but by being totally independent of the British government ? Here he has declared his opinion, that he is a despotic prince, that he is to use arbitrary power, and of course all his acts are covered with that shield. " I know, says he, the constitution of Asia only from its practice.'" Will your lordships submit to hear the corrupt practices of mankind made the principles of gov- ernment 1 — No ; it will be your pride and glory to teach men intrusted with power, that, in their use of it, they are to con- form to principles, and not to draw their principles from the corrupt practice of any man whatever. Was there ever heard, or could it be conceived, that a governor would dare to heap up all the evil practices, all the cruelties, oppressions, extor- tions, corruptions, briberies, of all the ferocious usurpers, des- perate robbers, thieves, cheats, and jugglers, that ever had office from one end of Asia to another, and consolidating all this mass of the crimes and absurdities of barbarous domina- tion into one code, establish it as the whole duty of an English governor? I beUeve, that till this time so audacious a thing was never attempted by man. — He have arbitrary power ! My lords, the East India com- pany have not arbitrary power to give him ; the king has no arbitrary power to give him ; your lordships have not ; nor the Commons ; nor the vi'hole legislature. We have no arbitrary power to give, because arbitrary power is a thing which neither any man can hold nor any man can give. No man can lawfully govern himself according to his own will, much less can one person be governed by the will of another. We are all born in subjection, all born equally, high and low, gov- ernors and governed, in subjection to one great, immutable, pre-existent law, prior to all our devices, and prior to all our contrivances, paramount to all our ideas, and all our sensations, antecedent to our very existence, by which we are knit and connected in the eternal frame of the universe, out of which we cannot stir. This great law does not arise from our conventions or com- pacts ; on the contrary, it gives to our conventions and com- IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 253 pacts all the force and sanction they can have ; — it does not arise from our vain institutions. Every good gift is of God ; all power is of God ; — and He, who has given the power, and from whom alone it originates, will never suffer the exercise of it to be practised upon any less solid foundation than the power itself If then all dominion of man over man is the ef- fect of the divine disposition, it is bound by the eternal laws of Him that gave it, with which no human authority can dis- pense; neither he, that exercises it, nor even those, who are subject to it: and, if they were mad enough to make an express compact, that should release their magistrate from his duty, and should declare their lives, liberties, and properties depend- ent upon, not rules and laws, but his mere capricious will, that covenant would be void. The acceptor of it has not his au- thority increased, but he has his crime doubled. Therefore can it be imagined, if this be true, that he will suffer this great gift of government, the greatest, the best, that was ever given by God to mankind, to be the plaything and the sport of the feeble will of a man, who, by a blasphemous, absurd, and pet- ulant usurpation, w^ould place his own feeble, contemptible, ridiculous will in the place of the divine wisdom and justice ? The title of conquest makes no difference at all. No con- quest can give such a right; for conquest, that is force, cannot convert its own injustice into a just title, by which it may rule others at its pleasure. By conquest, which is a more immediate designation of the hand of God, the conqueror succeeds to all the painful duties and subordination to the power of God, which belonged to the sovereign, whom he has displaced, just as if he had come in by the positive law of some descent, or some election. To this at least he is strictly bound — he ought to govern them, as he governs his own subjects. But every wise conqueror has gone much further than he was bound to go. It has been his ambition and his policy to reconcile the vanquished to his fortune, to show that they had gained by the change, to convert their momentary suffering into a long bene- fit, and to draw from the humiliation of his enemies an acces- sion to his own glory. This has been so constant a practice, that it is to repeat the histories of all politic conquerors in all nations and in all times ; and I will not so much distrust your lordships' enlightened and discriminating studies and correct memories, as to allude to one of them. I will only show you, that the court of directors, under whom he served, has adopted that idea, that they constantly inculcated it to him, and to all the servants, that they run a parallel between their own and the native government, and supposing it to be very evil did not hold it up as an example to be followed, but as an abuse to be 22 254 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE corrected ; that they never made it a question, whether India is to be improved by Enghsh law and Hberty, or EngUsh law and liberty vitiated by Indian corruption. No, my lords, this arbitrary power is not to be had by con- quest. Nor can any sovereign have it by succession, for no man can succeed to fraud, rapine, and violence; neither by compact, covenant, or submission, — for men cannot covenant themselves out of their rights and their duties ; nor by any other means can arbitrary power be conveyed to any man. Those, who give to others such rights, perform acts, that are void as they are given, good indeed and valid only as tending to subject themselves, and those who act with them, to the di- vine displeasure ; because morally there can be no such power. Those who give, and those who receive, arbitrary power, are alike criminal ; and there is no man but is bound to resist it to the best of his power, wherever it shall show its face to the world. It is a crime to bear it, when it can be rationally shaken off. Nothing but absolute impotence can justify men in not resisting it to the utmost of their ability. Law and arbitrary power are in eternal enmity. Name me a magistrate, and I will name property ; name me power, and I will name protection. It is a contradiction in terms; it is blasphemy in religion; it is wickedness in politics, to say, that any man can have arbitrary power. In every patent of office the duty is included. For what else does a magistrate exist To suppose for power is an absurdity in idea. Judges are guided and governed by the eternal laws of justice, to which we are all subject. We may bite our chains if we will, but we shall be made to know ourselves, and be taught, that man is born to be governed by law ; and he, that will substitute iciU in the place of it, is an enemy to God. Despotism does not in the smallest degree abrogate, alter, or lessen any one duty of any one relation of life, or weaken the force or obligation of any one engagement or contract what- soever. Despotism, if it means anything, that is at all defen- sible, means a mode of government, bound by no written rules, and coerced by no controlling magistracies, or well settled or- ders in the state. But if it has no written law, it neither does, nor can, cancel the primeval, indefeasible, unalterable law of nature, and of nations ; and if no magistracies control its ex- ertions, those exertions must derive their limitation and direc lion either from the equity and moderation of the ruler, or from downright revolt on the part of the subject by rebellion, divested of all its criminal qualities. The moment a sovereign removes the idea of security and protection from his subjects, and declares, that he ia everything, and they nothing, when he IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 255 declares, that no contract he makes with them can or ought to bind him, he then declares war upon them. He is no longer sovereign ; they are no longer subjects. No man, therefore, has a right to arbitrary power. But the thought, which is suggested by the depravity of him, who brings it forward, is supported by a gross confusion of ideas and prin- ciples, which your lordships well know how to discern and separate. It is manifest, that in the eastern governments, and the western, and in all governments, the supreme power in the state cannot, whilst that state subsists, be rendered criminally responsible for its actions; otherwise it would not be the supreme power. It is certainly true ; but the actions do not change their nature by losing their responsibility. The arbi- trary acts, which are unpunished, are not the less vicious, though none but God, the conscience, and the opinions of mankind take cognizance of them. It is not merely so in this or that government, but in all countries. The king in this country is undoubtedly unaccount- able for his actions. The House of Lords, if it should ever exercise (God forbid I should suspect it would ever do what it has never done), but if it should ever abuse its judicial power, and give such a judgment as it ought not to give, whether from fear of popular clamor on the one hand, or predilection to the prisoner on the other; if they abuse their judgments, there is no calling them to an account for it. And so, if the Commons should abuse their power, — nay, if they should have been so greatly delinquent as not to have prosecuted this oflender, thev could not be accountable for it ; there is no punishing them for their acts, because we exercise a part of the supreme power. But are they less criminal, less rebellious against the Divine Majesty? are they less hateful to man, whose opinions they ought to cultivate as far as they are just 1 No. Till society fall into a state of dissolution, they cannot be accountable for their acts. But it is from confounding the unaccountable character, inherent in the supreme power, with arbitrary power, that all this confusion of ideas has arisen. Even upon a supposition, that arbitrary power can exist anywhere, which we deny totally, and which your lordships will be the first and proudest to deny, still absolute, supreme dominion was never conferred or delegated by you ; much less, arbitrary power, which never did in any case, nor ever will in any case, time or country, produce any one of the ends of just government. It is true, that the supreme power in every constitution of government must be absolute,; and this may be corrupted into the arbitrary. But all good constitutions have established cer- 256 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE tain fixed rules for the exercise of their functions, which they rarely or ever depart from, and which rules form the security against that worst of evils, the government of will and force instead of wisdom and justice. But though the supreme power is in a situation resembhng arbitrary, yet never was there heard of in the history of the world, that is, in that mixed chaos of human wisdom and folly, such a thing as an iniermediaie arbitrary power — that is, of an officer of government, who is to exert authority over the people without any law at all, and who is to have the benefit of all law^s, and all forms of law, when he is called to an account. For that is to let a wild beast (for such is a man without law) loose upon the people to prey on them at his pleasure ; whilst all the laws, which ought to secure the people against the abuse of power, are employed to screen that abuse against the cries of the people. This is de facto the state of our Indian government. But to establish it so in right as well as in fact, is a thing left for us to begin with, — the first of mankind. For a subordinate, arbitrary, or even despotic power never was heard of in right, claim, or authorized practice. Least of all has it been heard of in the eastern governments, where all the instances of severity and cruelty fall upon governors, and persons intrusted with power. This would be a gross contra- diction. Before Mr. Hastings none ever came before his supe- riors to claim it; because, if any such thing could exist, he claims the very power of that sovereign, who calls him to account. But suppose a man to come before us, denying all the benefits of law to the people under him, — and yet, when he is called to account, to claim all the benefits of that law, which was made to screen mankind from the excesses of power : such a claim, I will venture to say, is a monster, that never existed except in the wild imagination of some theorist. It cannot be admitted, because it is a perversion of the fundamental principle, that every power, given for the protection of the people below, should be responsible to the power above. It is to suppose, that the people shall have no laws with regard to him, yet when he comes to be tried, he shall claim the protection of those laws, which were made to secure the people from his violence; that he shall claim a fair trial, an equitable hearing, every advantage of counsel (God forbid he should not have them), yet that the people under him shall have none of these advantages. The reverse is the principle of every just and rational proce- dure. For the people, who have nothing to use but their natural faculties, ought to be gently dealt with; but those, who aro IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 257 intrusted with an artificial and instituted authority, have in their hands a great deal of the force of other people ; and as their temptations to injustice are greater, so their means are infinitely more effectual for mischief by turning the powers given for the preservation of society to its destruction ; so that if an arbitrary procedure be justifiable, a strong one I am sure is, it is when used against those who pretend to use it against others. My lords, I will venture to say of the governments of Asia, that none of them ever had an arbitrary power ; and, if any governments had an arbitrary power, they cannot delegate it to any persons under them ; that is, they cannot so delegate it to others as not to leave them accountable, on the principles upon which it was given. As this is a contradiction in terms, a gross absurdity as well as a monstrous wickedness, let me say, for the honor of human nature, that although undoubtedly we may speak it with the pride of England, that we have better institutions for the preservation of the rights of men, than any other country in the world ; yet I will venture to say, that no country has wholly meant, or ever meant, to give this power. As it cannot exist in right on any rational and solid princi- ples of government, so neither does it exist in the constitution of oriental governments; and I do insist upon it, that oriental governments know nothing of arbitrary power. I have taken as much pains as I could to examine into the constitutions of them. I have been endeavoring to inform myself at all times on this subject; of late, my duty has led me to a more minute inspection of them, and I do challenge the whole race of man to show me any of the oriental governors claiming to them- selves a right to act by arbitrary will. The greatest part of Asia is under Mahomedan governments. To name a Mahomedan government, is to name a government by law. It is a law enforced by stronger sanctions than any law, that can bind a Christian sovereign. Their law is believed to be given by God, and it has the double sanction of law and of religion, with which the prince is no more authorized to dispense than any one else. And, if any man will produce the Koran to me, and will but show me one text in it, that au- thorizes in any degree an arbitrary power in the government, I will confess, that I have read that book, and been conversant in the affairs of Asia, in vain. There is not such a syllable in it; but, on the contrary, against oppressors by name every letter of that law is fulminated. There are interpreters estab- lished throughout all Asia, to explain that law, an order of priesthood, whom they call men of the law. These men are conservators of the law; and, to enable them to preserve it in 2 H 22* 258 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE its perfection, they are secured from the resentment of the sovereign, for he cannot touch them. Even their kings are not always vested with a real supreme power ; but the government is in some degree republican. To bring this point a little nearer home, since we are chal- lenged thus, since we are led into Asia, since we are called upon to make good our charge on the principles of the govern- ments there, rather than on those of our own country, (which I trust your lordships will oblige him finally to be governed by, puffed up as he is with the insolence of Asia,) the nearest to us of the governments he appeals to is that of the Grand Seignior, the emperor of the Turks — He an arbitrary power! Why he has not the supreme power of his own country. Every one knows, that the Grand Seignior is exalted high in titles, as our prerogative lawyers exalt an abstract sovereign, and he cannot be exalted higher in our books. I say he is destitute of the first character of sovereign power. He cannot lay a tax upon his people. The next part, in which he misses of a sovereign power, is, that he cannot dispose of the life, of the property, or of the liberty of any of his subjects, but by what is called the felfa, or sentence of the law. He cannot declare peace or war without the same sentence of the law ; so much is he, more than European sovereigns, a subject of strict law, that he can- not declare war or peace without it. Then, if he can neither touch life or property, if he cannot lay a tax on his subjects, or declare peace or war, I leave it to your lordships' judgment, whether he can be called, according to the principles of that constitution, an arbitrary power. A Turkish sovereign, if he should be judged by the body of that law to have acted against its principles, (unless he happens to be secured by a faction of the soldiery,) is liable to be deposed on the sentence of that law, and his successor comes in under the strict limitations of the ancient law of that country : neither can he hold his place, dis- pose of his succession, or take any one step whatever, without being bound by law. Thus much may be said, when gentle- men talk of the affairs of Asia, as to the nearest of Asiatic sovereigns ; and he is more Asiatic than European, he is a Mahomedan sovereign ; and no Mahomedan is born, who can exercise any arbitrary power at all, consistently with their con- stitution : insomuch that this chief magistrate, who is the highest executive power among them, is the very person, who, by the constitution of the country, is the most fettered by law. Corruption is the true cause of the loss of all the benefits of the constitution of that country. The practice of Asia, as the gentleman at your bar has thought fit to say, is what he holds IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 259 to ; the constitution he flies away from. The question is, whether you will take the constitution of the country as your rule, or the base practices of those usurpers, robbers, and tyrants, who have subverted it. Undoubtedly much blood, murder, false imprisonment, much peculation, cruelty and rob- bery are to be found in Asia ; and if, instead of going to the sacred laws of the country, he chooses to resort to the iniqui- tous practices of it, and practices authorized only by the public tumult, contention, war, and riot, he may indeed find as clear an acquittal in the practices, as he would find condemnation in the institutions of it. He has rejected the law of England. Your lordships will not suffer it. God forbid ! For my part I should have no sort of objection to let him choose his law — Mahomedan, Tartarean, Gentu. But if he disputes, as he does, the authority of an act of parliament, let him state to me that law, to which he means to be subject, or any law, which he knows, that will justify his actions. I am not authorized to say, that I shall, even in that case, give up what is not in me to give up, because I represent an authority, of which I must stand in awe ; but, for myself, I shall confess, that I am brought to public shame, and am not fit to manage the great interests committed to my charge. I therefore again repeat of that Asiatic government, with which we are best acquainted, which has been constituted more in obedience to the laws of Mahomed, than any other, — that the sovereign cannot, agreeably to that constitution, exercise any arbitrary power whatever. The next point for us to con^'der is, whether or no the Ma- homedan constitution of India authorizes that power. The gentleman at your lordships' bar has thought proper to say, that it will be happy for India (though soon after he tells you it is a happiness they can never enjoy) " when the despotic institutes of Genghiz Khan or Tamerlane shall give place to the liberal spirit of the British legislature ; and," says he, " I shall be amply satisfied in my present prosecution, if it shall tend to hasten the approach of an event so beneficial to the great interests of mankind." My lords, you have seen what he says about an act of par- liament. Do you not now think it rather an extraordinary thing, that any British subject should, in vindication of the au- thority which he has exercised, here quote the names and institutes, as he calls them, of fierce conquerors, of men who were the scourges of mankind, whose power was a power which they held by force only ? As to the institutes of Genghiz Khan, which he calls arbitrary institutes, I never saw them. If he has that book, he will oblige the public by producing it. I have seen a book existing, 260 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE called Yassa of Genghiz Khan ; the other I never saw. If there be any part of it to justify arbitrary power, he will produce it. But, if we may judge by those ten precepts of Genghiz Khan which we have, there is not a shadow of arbitrary power to be found in any one of them. Institutes of arbitrary power ! Why, if there is arbitrary power, there can be no institutes. As to the institutes of Tamerlane ; here they are in their original, and here is a translation. I have carefully read every part of these institutes ; and if any one shows me one word in them, in which the prince claims in himself arbitrary power, I again repeat, that I shall for my own part confess, that I have brought myself to great shame. There is no book in the world, I believe, which contains nobler, more just, more manly, more pious principles of government than this book, called the Insti- tutions of Tamerlane. Nor is there one word of arbitrary power in it, much less of that arbitrary power which Mr. Hastings supposes himself justified by; namely, a delegated, subordinate, arbitrary power. So far was that great prince from permitting this gross, violent, intermediate, arbitrary power, that I will venture to say, the chief thing, by which he has recommended himself to posterity, was a most direct declaration of all the wrath and indignation of the supreme government against it. But here is the book. It contains the institutes of the founder of the Mogul empire, left as a sacred legacy to his posterity, as a rule for their conduct, and as a means of preserving their power. But it is not in this instance only, that I must do justice to the East. I assert that their morality is equal to ours, in what- ever regards the duties of governors, fathers, and superiors ; and I challenge the world to show, in any modern European book, more true morality and wisdom than is to be found in the writings of Asiatic men in high trust, and who have been counsellors to princes. If this be the true morality of Asia, as I affirm, and can prove, that it is, the plea founded on Mr. Hastings's geographical morality is annihilated. I Httle regard the theories of travellers, where they do not relate facts, on which they are founded. I have two instances of facts, attested by Tavernier, a traveller of power and con- sequence, which are very material to be mentioned here, be- cause they show, that, in some of the instances recorded, in which the princes of the country have used any of those cruel and barbarous executions, which make us execrate them, it has been upon governors who have abused their trust, and that this very oriental authority, to which Mr. Hastings appeals, would have condemned him to a dreadful punishment. I thank God, and I say it from my heart, that even for his enormous IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 261 offences there neither is, nor can be, anything like such punish- ments. God forbid, that we should not as much detest out of the way, mad, furious, and unequal punishments, as we detest enormous and abominable crimes ; because a severe and cruel penalty for a crime of a light nature is as bad and iniquitous as the crime which it pretends to punish. As the instances I allude to are curious, and as they go to the principles of Mr. Hastings's defence, I shall beg to quote them. The first is upon a governor, who did, what Mr. Hastings says he has a power delegated to him to do ; he levied a tax without the consent of his master. " Some years after my de- parture from Com, (says Tavernier,) the governor had, of his own accord, and without any communication with the king, laid a small impost upon every pannier of fruit brought into the city, for the purpose of making some necessary reparations in the walls and bridges of the town. It was towards the end of the year 1632, that the event, I am going to relate, happened. The king being informed of the impost, which the governor had laid upon the fruit, ordered him to be brought in chains to court. The king ordered him to be exposed to the people at one of the gates of the palace : then he commanded the son to pluck off the mustachios of his father, to cut off his nose and ears, to put out his eyes, and then cut off his head. The king then told the son to go and take possession of the government of his father, saying. See that you govern better than this deceased dog, or thy doom shall be a death more exquisitely tormenting." My lords, you are struck with horror, I am struck with hor- ror, at this punishment. I do not relate it to approve of such a barbarous act ; but to prove to your lordships, that whatever power the princes of that country have, they are jealous of it to such a degree, that, if any of their governors should levy a tax, even the most insignificant, and for the best purposes, he meets with a cruel punishment. I do not justify the punish- ment ; but the severity of it shows, how little of their power the princes of that country mean to delegate to their servants, the whole of which the gentleman at your bar says was dele- gated to him. There is another case, a very strong one, and that is the case of presents, which I understand is a custom admitted throughout Asia in all their governments. It was of a person, who was raised to a high office ; no business was suffered to come before him without a previous present. " One morning, the king being at this time on a hunting party, the nazar came to the tent of the king, but was denied entrance by the meter, or master of the wardrobe. About the same time the king came forth, and, seeing the nazar, commanded his officers to 262 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE take off the bonnet from the head of that dog, that took gifts from his people ; and that he should sit three days bareheaded in the heat of the sun, and as many nights in the air. After- wards he caused him to be chained about the neck and arms, and condemned him to perpetual imprisonment, with a mamoudy a day for his maintenance ; but he died for grief within eight days after he was put in prison." Do I mean, by reading this to your lordships, to express or intimate an approbation, either of the cruelty of the punish- ment, or of the coarse barbarism of the language? Neither one nor the other. I produce it to your lordships to prove to you from this dreadful example the horror which that government felt, when any person subject to it assumed to himself a privi- lege to receive presents. The cruelty and severity exercised by these princes is not levelled at the poor, unfortunate people, who complain at their gates, but, to use their own barbarous expression, to dogs, that impose taxes, and take presents. — God forbid, I should use that language. The people, when they complain, are not called dogs and sent away, but the governors, who do these things against the people ; they are called dogs, and treated in that cruel manner. I quote them to show, that no governors in the East, upon any principle of their constitu- tion, or any good practice of their government, can lay arbi- trary imposts, or receive presents. When they escape, it is probably by bribery, by corruption, by creating factions for themselves in the seraglio, in the country, in the army, in the divan. But how they escape such punishments, is not my busi- ness to inquire; it is enough for me, that the constitution dis- avows them, that the princes of the country disavow them ; that they revile them with the most horrible expressions, and inflict dreadful punishments on them, when they are called to answer for these offences. Thus much concerning the Mahomedan laws of Asia. That the people of Asia have no laws, rights, or liberty, is a doc- trine, that wickedly is to be disseminated through this country. But I again assert, every Mahomedan government is, by its principles, a government of law. I shall now state from what is known of the government of India, that it does not, and cannot delegate (as Mr. Hastings has frequently declared) the whole of its powers and authority to him. If they are absolute, as they must be in the supreme power, they ought to be arbitrary in none; they were, however, never absolute in any of their subordinate parts, and I will prove it by the known provincial constitutions of Hindostan, which are all Mahomedan, the laws of which are as clear, as explicit, and as learned as ours. IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 263 The first foundation of their law is the Khoran. The next part is the fetfa, or adjudged cases by proper authority, well known there. The next, the written interpretations of the principles of jurisprudence; and their books are as numerous upon the principles of jurisprudence, as in any country in Eu- rope. The next part of their law is what they call the hanon, that is, a positive rule equivalent to acts of parliament, the law of the several powers of the country, taken from the Greek word KANfIN, which was brought into their country, and is well known. The next is the rage ul mulk, or common law and custom of the kingdom, equivalent to our common law. Therefore they have laws from more sources than we have, exactly in the same order, grounded upon the same au- thority, fundamentally fixed to be administered to the people upon these principles. The next thing is to show, that in India there is a partition of the powers of the government, which proves that there is no absolute power delegated. In every province the first person is the soubahdar or nazim, or viceroy: he has the power of the sword, and the adminis- tration of criminal justice only. Then there is the dewan, or high steward ; he has the revenue, and all exchequer causes, under him, to be governed according to the law, and custom, and institutions of the kingdom. The law of inheritances, successions, and everything that relates to them, is under the cadi, in whose court these matters are tried. But this too was subdivided. The cadi could not judge, but by the advice of his assessors. Properly in the Mahomedan law there is no appeal, only a removal of the cause; but when there is no judgment, as none can be, when the court is not unanimous, it goes to the general assembly of all the men of the law. There are, I will venture to say, other divisions and subdi- visions; for there are the kanongoes, who hold their places for life, to be the conservators of the canons, customs, and good usages of the country ; all these, as well as the cadi and the mufti, hold their places and situations, not during the wanton pleasure of the prince, but, on permanent and fixed terms, for life. All these powers of magistracy, revenue, and law, are all different, consequently not delegated in the whole to any one person. This is the provincial constitution, and these the laws, of Bengal, which proves, if there were no other proof, by the division of the functions and authorities, that the su- preme power of the state in the Mogul empire did, by no means, delegate to any of its officers the supreme power in its fullness. Whether or no we have delegated to Mr. Hastings 264 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE the supreme power of king and parliament, that he should act with the plenitude of authority of the British legislature, you are to judge- Mr. Hastings has no refuge here. Let him run from law to law ; let him fly from the common law, and the sacred in- stitutions of the country, in which he was born ; let him fly from acts of parliament, from which his power originated ; let him plead his ignorance of them, or fly in the face of them. Will he fly to the Mahomedan law? — that condemns him. Will he fly to the high magistracy of Asia to defend taking of presents 1 Pad Sha and the sultan would condemn him to a cruel death. Will he fly to the sophis, to the laws of Persia, or to the practice of those monarchs ? I cannot utter the pains, the tortures, that would be inflicted on him, if he were to gov- ern there, as he has done in a British province ! Let him fly where he will, from law to law ; — law (I thank God) meets him everywhere, and enforced too by the practice of the most impious tyrants, which he quotes as if it would justify his con- duct. I would as willingly have him tried by the law of the Khoran, or the institutes of Tamerlane, as on the common law, or statute law, of this kingdom. The next question is, whether the Gentu laws justify arbi- trary power; and, if he finds any sanctuary there, let him take it, with the cow, in the pagoda. The Gentus have a law, which positively proscribes in magistrates any idea of will ; — a law, with which, or rather with extracts of it, that gentleman himself has furnished us. These people, in many points, are governed by their own ancient written law, called the shasier. Its interpreters and judges are the •pundits. This law is com- prehensive, extending to all the concerns of life, aflbrding prin- ciples and maxims, and legal theories, applicable to all cases, drawn from the sources of natural equity, modified by their in- stitutions, full of refinement and subtilty of distinction, equal to that of any other law, and has the grand test of all law, that, wherever it has prevailed, the country has been populous, flourishing, and happy. Upon the whole, then, follow him where you will, — let him have eastern or western law, you find everywhere arbitrary power and peculation of governors pi'oscribed and horribly punished : — more so than I should ever wish to punish any, the most guilty, human creature. And if this be the case, as I hope and trust it has been proved to your lordships, that there is la%v in these countries, that there is no delegation of power, which exempts a governor from the law, then I say at any rate a British governor is to answer for his conduct, and cannot be justified by wicked examples and profligate practices. IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 265 But another thing, which he says, is, that he was left to him- self to govern himself by his own practice ; that is to say, when he had taken one bribe, he might take another ; — when he had robbed one man of his property, he might rob another; when he had imprisoned one man arbitrarily, and extorted money from him, he might do so by another. He resorts at first to the practice of barbarians and usurpers; at last he comes to his own. Now, if your lordships will try him by such maxims and principles, he is certainly clear ; for there is no matter of doubt, that there is nothing he has practised once, which he has not practised again ; and then the repetition of crimes becomes the means of his indemnity. The next pleas he urges are not so much in bar of the im- peachment, as in extenuation. The first are to be laid by as claims to be made on motion for arrest of judgment, the others as an extenuation or mitigation of his fine. He says, and with a kind of triumph, the ministry of this country have great legal assistance; commercial lights of the greatest commercial city in the world ; the greatest generals and oflicers to guide and direct them in military affairs : whereas I, poor man, was sent almost a school-boy from England, or at least little better ; — sent to find my way in that new world as well as I could. I had no men of the law, no legal assistance, to supply my defi- ciencies. At Sphingem habehas domi. Had he not the chief justice, the tamed and domesticated chief justice, who waited on him like a familiar spirit, whom he takes from pi'ovince to province, his amanuensis at home, his postilion, and riding ex- press abroad ? Such a declaration would in some measure suit persons who had acted much otherwise than Mr. Hastings. When a man pleads ignorance in justification of his conduct, it ought to be an humble, modest, unpresuming ignorance; — an ignorance, which may have made him lax and timid in the exercise of his duty ; — but an assuming, rash, presumptuous, confident, daring, desperate, and disobedient ignorance, heightens every crime that it accompanies. Mr. Hastings, if through ignorance he left some of the company's orders unexecuted, because he did not understand them, might well say, / icas an ignorant man, and these things icere above my capacity. But when he under- stands them, and when he declares he will not obey them posi- tively and dogmatically ; — when he says, as he has said, and we shall prove it, that he never succeeds better than when he acts in an utter defiance of those orders, and sets at naught the laws of his country; I believe this will not be thought the language of an ignorant man. But I beg your lordships' pardon ; it is the language of an ignorant man ; for no man, who was not 2 1 23 266 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE full of a bold, determined, profligate ignorance, could ever think of such a system of defence. He quitted Westminster school almost a boy. We have reason to regret, that he did not finish his education in that noble seminary, which has given so many luminai-ies to the church, and ornaments to the state. Greatly it is to be lamented, tiiat he did not go to those univer- sities, [where arbitrary power will I hope never be heard of; but the true principles of religion, of liberty, and law, will ever be inculcated,] instead of studying in the school of Cossim Ally Cawn. If he had lived with us, he would have quoted the examples of Cicero in his government ; he would have quoted several of the sacred and holy prophets, and made them his example. His want of learning, profane as well as sacred, reduces him to the necessity of appealing to every name and authority of barba- rism, tyranny, and usurpation, that are to be found; and from these, he says, from the p-actlce of one part of Asia, or other, I have taken my rule. But your lordships will show him, that in Asia, as well as in Europe, the same law of nations prevails; the same principles are continually resorted to ; and the same maxims sacredly held and strenuously maintained ; and, how- ever disobeyed, no man suflers from the breach of them, who does not know how and where to complain of that breach ; — that Asia is enlightened in that respect as well as Europe ; but, if it were totally blinded, that England would send out gover- nors to teach them better ; and that he must justify himself to the piety, the truth, the faith of England ; and not by having recourse to the crimes and criminals of other countries, to the barbarous tyranny of Asia, or any other part of the world. I will go further with Mr. Hastings, and admit, that, if there be a boy in the fourth form of Westminster school, or any school in England, who does not know, when these ai^ticles are read to him, that he has been guilty of gross and enormous crimes, he may have the shelter of his present plea, as far as it will serve him. There are none of us, thank God, so unin- structed, who have learned our catechisms or the first elements of Christianity, who does not know, that such conduct is not to be justified, and least of all by examples. There is another topic he takes up more seriously, and as a general rebutter to the charge; — says he, "After a great many of these practices, with which I am charged, parliament ap- pointed me to my trust, and consequently has acquitted me." Has it, my lords? I am bold to say, that the Commons are wholly guiltless of this charge. I will admit, if parliament on a full state of his offences before them, and full examination of tliose offences, had appointed him to the government that then IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 267 the people of India and England would have just reason to exclaim against so flagitious a proceeding. A sense of pro- priety and decorum might have restrained us from prosecuting. They might have been restrained by some sort of decorum from pursuing him criminally. But the Commons stand before your lordships without shame. First, in their name we solemnly assure your lordsliips, that we had not in our parliamentary capacity, (and most of us — myself, I can say surely — heard very little, and that in confused rumors,) the slightest knowledge of any one of the acts charged upon this criminal at either of the limes of his being appointed to office ; and that we were not guilty of the nefarious act of collusion and flagitious breach of trust, with which he presumes obliquely to charge us ; but from the moment we knew them, we never ceased to condemn them by reports, by votes, by resolutions ; and that we admonished and declared it to be the duty of the court of directors to take measures for his recall ; and when frustrated in the way known to that court, we then proceeded to an inquiry. Your lordships know, whether you were better informed. We are, therefore, neither guilty of the precedent crime of colluding with the criminal, nor the subsequent indecorum of prosecuting what we had virtually and practically approved. Secondly; several of his worst crimes have been committed since the last parliamentary renewal of his trust, as appears by the dates in the charge. But I believe, my lords, the judges — ^judges to others, grave and weighty cjDunsellors, and assistants to your lordships, will not on reference assert to your lordships, which God forbid, and we cannot conceive, or hardly state in argument, if but for argument, that if one of the judges had received bribes before his appointment to a higher judiciary office, he would not still be open to prosecution. So far from admitting it as a plea in bar, we charge, and we hope your lordships will find it an extreme aggravation of Ills offences, that no favors heaped upon him could make him grateful, no renewed and repeated trusts could make him faithful and honest. We have now gone through most of the general topics. But, — he is not responsible, as being thanked by the court of directors. He has had the thanks and approbation of the India company for his services. We know too well here, I trust the world knows, — and you will always assert, that a pardon from the crown is not pleadable here, that it cannot bar the impeach- ment of the Commons; much less a pardon of the East India company, though it may involve them in guilt, which might induce us to punish them for such a pardon. If any corporation 268 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE by collusion with criminals refuse to do their duty in coercing them, the magistrates are answerable. It is the use, virtue, and efficacy of parliamentary judicia. procedure, that it puts an end to this dominion of faction, intrigue, cabal, and clandestine intelligences. The acts of men are put to their proper test, and the works of darkness tried in the face of day — not the corrupted opinions of others on them, but their own intrinsic merits. We charge it as his crime, that he bribed the court of directors to thank him for what they had condemned as breaches of his duty. The East India company, it is true, have thanked him. They ought not to have done it ; and it is a reflection upon their character, that they did it. But the directors praise him in the gross, after having condemned each act in detail. His actions are all, every one, censured one by one, as they arise. I do not recollect any one transaction, few there are, I am sure, in the whole body of that succession of crimes now brought before you for your judgment, in which the India company have not censured him. Nay, in one instance he pleads their censure in bar of this trial ; for he says, " In that censure I iiave already received my punishment." If, for any other rea- sons, they come and say, " We thank you. Sir, for all your services :" to that I answer, Yes ; and 1 would thank him for his services too, if I knew them. But / do not ; — perhaps they do. Let them thank him for those services. I am ordered to prosecute him for these crimes. Here therefore we are on a balance with the India company ; and your lordships may per- haps think it some addition to his crimes, that he has found means to obtain the thanks of the India company for the whole of his conduct, at the same time that their records are full of constant, uniform, particular censure and reprobation of every one of those acts, for which he now stands accused. He says, there is the testimony of Indian princes in his favor. But do we not know how seals are obtained in that country? do we not know, how those princes are imposed upon ? do we not know the subjection and thraldom, in which they are held, and that they are obliged to return thanks for the suflerings which they have felt? I believe your lordships will think, that there is not, with regard to some of these princes, a more dreadful thing, that can be said of them, than that he has ob- tained their thanks. I understand he has obtained the thanks of the miserable princesses of Oude, whom he has cruelly imprisoned, whose treasure he has seized, and whose eunuchs he has tortured. They thank him for going away. They thank him for leaving them the smallest trifle of their subsistence ; and I ven- IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 269 ture to say, if he wanted a hundred more panegyrics, provi- ded he never came again among them, he might have them. I understand, that Mahdajee iScindia has made his panegyric too. Mahdajee Scindia has not made his panegyric for nothing ; for, if your lordships will suffer him to enter into such a justifica- tion, we shall prove, that he has sacrificed the dignity of this country, and the interests of all its allies, to that prince. We appear here neither with panegyric, nor with satire; it is for substantial crimes we bring him before you, and amongst others for cruelly using persons of the highest rank and consi- deration in India; and, when we prove he has cruelly injured them, you will think the panegyrics either gross forgeries, or most miserable aggravations of his offences, since they show 'the abject and dreadful state, into which he has driven those people. For, let it be proved, that I have cruelly robbed and maltreated any persons, if I produce a certificate from them of my good behavior, would it not be a corroborative proof of the terror, into which those persons are thrown by my misconduct? My lords, these are, I believe, the general grounds of our charge — I have now closed completely, and I hope, to your •ordship's satisfaction, the whole body of history, of which I wished to put your lordships in possession. I do not mean, that many of your lordships may not have known it more per- fectly by your own previous inquiries ; but bringing to your remembrance the state of the circumstances of the persons, with whom he acted, the persons and power he has abused, — I have gone to the principles he maintains, the precedents he quotes, the laws and authorities which he refuses to abide by, and those on which he relies ; and at last I have refuted all those pleas in bar, on which he depends, and for the effect of which he presumes on the indulgence and patience of this coun- try, or on the corruption of some persons in it. And here I close what I had to say upon this subject ; wishing and hoping, that, when I open before your lordships the case more particu- larly, so as to state rather a plan of the proceeding, than the direct proof of the crimes, your lordships will hear me with the same goodness and indulgence I have hitherto experienced; that you will consider, if I have detained you long it was not with a view of exhausting my own strength, or putting your patience to too severe a trial ; but from the sense I feel, that it is the most difficult and the most complicated cause, that was ever brought before any human tribunal. 23* SPEECH OF MR. BURKE, ON THE IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ., ON OPENING THE CHARGE OF BRIBERY, FEBRUARY 18 AND 19, 1788. My Lords, The gentlemen who are appointed by the Commons to manage this prosecution, have directed me to inform your lordships, that they have very carefully and attentively weighed the magnitude of the subject, which they bring before you, with the time, which the nature and circumstances of aflairs allows for their conduct- ing it. My lords, on that comparison they are very apprehensive, that, if I should go very largely into a preliminary explanation of the several matters in charge, it might be to the prejudice of an early trial of the substantial merits of each article. We have weighed and considered this maturely. We have com- pared exactly the time with the matter, and we have found, that we are obhged to do, as all men must do, who would manage their affairs practicably, to make our opinion, of what might be most advantageous to the business, conform to the time that is left to perform it in. We must, as all men must, submit affairs to time, and not think of making time conform to our wishes : and therefore, my lords, I very willingly fall in with the incli- nations of the gentlemen, with whom I have the honor to act, to come as soon as possible to close fighting, and to grapple immediately and directly with the corruptions of India ; to bring before your lordships the direct articles; to apply the evidence to the articles, and to bring the matter forward for your lordships' decision in that manner, which the confidence we have in the justice of our cause demands from the Com- mons of Great Britain. My lords, these are the opinions of those with whom I have the honor to act, and in their opinions I readily acquiesce. For I am far from washing to waste any of your lordships' time upon any matter merely through any opinion I have of the na- ture of the business, when at the same time I find, that in the opinion of others it might militate against the production of its full, proper, and (if I may so say) its immediate effect. It was my design to class the crimes of the late governor of Bengal — to show their mutual bearings — how they were mutu- ally aided, and grew and were formed out of each other. I IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 271 proposed first of all to show your lordships, that they have their root in that, which is the origin of all evil, avarice and rapa- city — to show how that led to prodigality of the public money — and how prodigality of the public money, by wasting the treasures of the East India company, furnished an excuse to the governor-general to break its faith, to violate all its most solemn engagements, and to fall with a hand of stern, ferocious, and unrelenting rapacity upon all the allies and dependencies of the company. But I shall be obliged in some measure to abridge this plan ; and as your lordships already possess, from what I had the honor to state on Saturday, a general view of this matter, you will be in a condition to pursue it when the several articles are presented. My lords, I have to state to-day the root of all these misde- meanors — namely, the pecuniary corruption and avarice which gave rise and primary motion to all the rest of the delinquen- cies, charged to be committed by the governor-general. My lords, pecuniary corruption forms not only, as your lord- ships will observe in the charges before you, an article of charge by itself, but likewise so intermixes with the whole, that it is necessary to give, in the best manner I am able, a history of that corrupt system, which brought on all the subsequent acts of corruption. I will venture to say, there is no one act, in which tyranny, malice, cruelty, and oppression can be charged, that does not at the same time carry evident marks of pecuniary corruption. I stated to your lordships on Saturday last, the principles upon which Mr. Hastings governed his conduct in India, and upon which he grounds his defence. These may all be re- duced to one short word, arbitrary 'power. My lords, if Mr. Hastings had contended, as other men have often done, that ihe system of government, which he patronizes, and on which he acted, was a system tending on the whole to the blessing and benefit of mankind, possibly something might be said for him for setting up so wild, absurd, irrational, and wicked a system. Something might be said to qualify the act from the intention ; but it is singular in this man, that, at the time he tells you he acted on the principles of arbitrary power, he takes care to inform you, that he was not blind to the consequences. Mr. Hastings foresaw that the consequence of this system was corruption. An arbitrary system indeed must always be a cor- rupt one. My lords, there never was a man who thought he had no law but his own will, who did not soon find that he had no end but his own profit. Corruption and arbitrary power are of natural unequivocal generation, necessarily producing one another. Mr. Hastings foresees the abusive and corrupt con- 272 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE sequences, and then he justifies his conduct upon the necessities of that system. These are things which are new in the world ; for there never was a man, I beheve, who contended for arbi- trary power (and there have been persons wicked and foohsh enough to contend for it) that did not pretend, either that the system was good in itself, or that by their conduct they had mitigated or had purified it ; and that the poison by passing through their constitution had acquired salutary properties. But if you look at his defence before the House of Commons, you will see, that that very system, upon which he governed, and under which he now justifies his actions, did appear to himself a system pregnant with a thousand evils and a thou- sand mischiefs. The next thing, that is remarkable and singular in the prin- ciples, upon which the governor-general acted, is, that when he is engaged in a vicious system, which clearly leads to evil con- sequences, he thinks himself bound to reahze all the evil conse- quences involved in that system. All other men have taken a directly contrary course ; they have said, I have been engaged in an evil system, that led indeed to mischievous consequences, but I have taken care by my own virtues to prevent the evils of the system, under which I acted. We say then, not only that he governed arbitrarily, but cor- ruptly, that is to say, that he was a giver and receiver of bribes, and formed a system for the purpose of giving and receiving them. We wish your lordships distinctly to consider, that he did not only give and receive bribes accidentally, as it happened without any system and design, merely as the opportunity or momentary temptation of profit urged him to it, but that he has formed plans and systems of government for the very purpose of accumulating bribes and presents to himself. This system of Mr. Hastings's government is such a one, I believe, as the British nation "in particular will disown ; for I will venture to say, that, if there is any one thing, which distinguishes this nation eminently above another, it is, that in its offices at home, both judicial and in the state, there is less suspicion of pecuniary corruption attaching to them, than to any similar offices in any part of the globe, or that have existed at any time ; so that he, who would set up a system of corruption, and attempt to justify it upon the principle of utility, that man is staining not only the nature and character of office, but that, which is the peculiar glory of the official and judicial character of this country ; and therefore in this house, which is eminently the guardian of the purity of all the offices of this kingdom, he ought to be called eminently and peculiarly to account. There are many things undoubtedly in crimes, which make them frightful and odious ; IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 273 but bribery, filthy hands, a chief governor of a great empire receiving bribes from poor miserable indigent people, this is what makes government itself base, contemptible and odious in the eyes of mankind. My lords, it is certain, that even tyranny itself may find some specious color, and appear as more severe and rigid exe- cution of justice. Religious persecution may shield itself under the guise of a mistaken and over-zealous piety. Conquest may cover its baldness with its own laurels, and the ambition of the conqueror may be hid in the secrets of his own heart under a veil of benevolence, and make him imagine he is bringing temporary desolation upon a country, only to promote its ulti- mate advantage and his own glory. But in the principles of that governor, who makes nothing but money his object, there can be nothing of this. There are here none of those specious delusions, that look like virtues, to veil either the governed or the governor. If you look at Mr. Hastings's merits, as he calls them, what are they ? Did he improve the internal state of the government by great reforms ? No such thing : or by a wise and incorrupt administration of justice ? No. — Has he enlarged the boundary of our government ? No ; there are but too strong proofs of his lessening it. But his pretensions to merit are, that he squeezed more money out of the inhabit- ants of the country than other persons could have done — money got by oppression, violence, extortion from the poor, or the heavy hand of power upon the rich and great. These are his merits. What we charge as his demerits are all of the same nature; for though there is undoubtedly oppres- sion, breach of faith, cruelty, perfidy, charged upon' him, yet the great ruling principle of the whole, and that, from which you can never have an act free, is money — it is the vice of base avarice, which never is, nor ever appears even to the prejudices of mankind to be, anything like a virtue. Our desire of acquiring sovereignty in India undoubtedly originated first in ideas of safety and necessity ; its next step was a step of ambition. That ambition, as generally happens in conquest, was followed by gains of money; but afterwards there was no mixture at all ; it was, during Mr. Hastings's time, altogether a business of money. If he has extirpated a nation, I will not say whether properly or improperly, it is because (says he) you have all the benefit of conquest without expense, you have got a large sum of money from the people, and you may leave them to be governed by whom, and as they will. This is di- rectly contrary to the principles of conquerors. If he has at any time taken any money from the dependencies of the com- pany, he does not pretend, that it was obtained from their zeal 2K 274 MR. BURKE'S SFEECH ON THE and affection to our cause, or that it made their submission more complete; very far from it. He says, they ought to be independent, and all, that you have to do, is to squeeze money from them. In short, money is the beginning, the middle, and the end of every kind of act done by Mr. Hastings — pretend- edly for the company, but really for himself. Having said so much about the origin, the first principle both of that, which he makes his merit, and which we charge as his demerit ; the next step is, that I should lay open to your lordships, as clearly as I can, what the sense of his employers, the East India company, and what the sense of the legislature itself has been upon those merits and demerits of money. My lords, the company, knowing that these money transac- tions were likely to subvert that empire, which was first estab- lished upon them, did, in the year 1765, send out a body of the strongest and most solemn covenants to their servants, that they should take no presents from the country powers under any name or description, except those things, which were pub licly and openly taken for the use of the company, namely, ier ritories or su77is of money, which might be obtained by treaty They distinguished such presents, as were taken from any per sons privately and unknown to them, and without their authori ty, from subsidies ; and that this is the true nature and con struction of their order, I shall contend, and explain afterwards to your lordships. They have said, nothing shall be taken for their private use ; for though in that and in every state there may be subsidiary treaties, by which sums of money may be received, yet they forbid their servants, their governors, what- ever application they might pretend to make of them, to receive, under any other name or pretence, more than a certain marked simple sum of money, and this not without the consent and permission of the presidency, to which they belong. This is the substance, the principle, and the spirit of the covenants, and will show your lordships how radicated an evil this of bribery and presents was judged to be. When these covenants arrived in India, the servants refused at first to execute them ; and suspended the execution of them, till they had enriched themselves wath presents. Eleven months elapsed, and it was not till Lord Clive reached the place of his destination, that the covenants were executed ; and they were not executed then without some degree of force. Soon aftei wards the treaty was made with the country powers, by which Shuja ul Dowla was re-established in the province of Oude, and paid a sum of 500,000/. to the company for it. It was a public payment, and there was not a suspicion, that a single shilling of private emolument attended it. But whether Mr. Hastings IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 275 had the example of others or not, their example could not jus- tify his briberies. He was sent there to put an end to all those examples. The company did expressly vest him with that power. They declared at that time, that the whole of their service was totally corrupted by bribes and presents, and by extravagance and luxury, which partly gave rise to them ; and these in their turn enabled them to pursue those excesses. They not only reposed trust in the integrity of Mr, Hastings, but reposed trust in his remarkable frugality and order in his affairs, which they considered as things that distinguished his character. But- in his defence we have him quite in another character, no longer the frugal attentive servant bred to busi- ness, bred to book-keeping, as all the company's servants are ; he now knows nothing of his own affairs, knows not whether he is rich or poor, knows not what he has in the world. Nay, people are brought forv/ard to say, that they know better than he does what his affairs are. He is not like a careful man bred in a counting-house, and by the directors put into an office of the highest trust on account of the regularity of his affairs ; he is like one buried in the contemplation of the stars, and knows nothing of the things in this world. It was then on account of an idea of his great integrity, that the company put him into this situation. Since that he has thought proper to justify him- self, not by clearing himself of receiving bribes, but by saying, that no bad consequences resulted from it, and that, if any such ev'il consequences did arise from it, they arose rather from his inattention to money than from his desire of ac- quiring it. I have stated to your lordships the nature of the covenants, which the East India company sent out. Afterwards, when they found their servants had refused to execute these cove- nants, they not only very severely reprehended even a mo- ment's delay in their execution, and threatened the exacting the, most strict and rigorous performance of them, but they sent a commission to enforce the observance of them more strongly; and that commission had it specially in charge never to receive presents. They never sent out a person to India without recognizing the grievance, and without ordering, that presents should not be received, as the main fundamental part of their duty, and upon which all the rest depended, as it cer- tainly must : for persons at the head of government should not encourage that by exafnple, which they ought by precept, au- thority and force, to restrain in all below them. That com- mission failing, another commission was preparing to be sent out with the same instructions, when an act of parliament took it up: and that act, which gave Mr. Hastings power, did 27G MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE mould in the very first stamina of his power this principle, in words the most clear and forcible, that an act of parliament could possibly devise upon the subject. And that act was made not only upon a general knowledge of the grievance, but your lordships will see in the reports of that time, that parlia- ment had directly in view before them the whole of that mon- strous head of corruption under the name of presents, and all the monstrous consequences, that followed it. Now, my lords, every office of trust, in its very nature, for- bids the receipt of bribes. But Mr. Hastings was forbidden it, first, by his official situation; next by covenant; and lastly by act of parliament — that is to say, by all the things, that bind mankind, or that can bind them, — first, moral obligation in- herent in ilvj duty of their office ; next, the positive injunctions of the legislature of the country ; and lastly, a man's own pri- vate, particular, voluntary act and covenant. These three, the great and only obligations that bind mankind, all united in the focus of this single point — that they should take no presents. I am to mark to your lordships, that this law and this cove- nant did consider indirect ways of taking presents — taking them by others, and such like, — directly in the very same light as they considered taking them by themselves. It is perhaps a much more dangerous way, because it adds to the crime a false prevaricating mode of concealing it, and makes it much more mischievous by admitting others into the participation of it. Mr. Hastings has said, and it is one of the general com- plaints of Mr. Hastings, that he is made answerable for the acts of other men. It is a thing inherent in the nature of his situation. All those, who enjoy a great superintending trust, which is to regulate the whole afiairs of an empire, are respon- sible for the acts and conduct of other men, so far as they had anything to do with appointing them, or holding them in their places, or having any sort of inspection into their conduct. But when a governor presumes to remove from their situa- tions those persons, whom the public authority and sanction of the company have appointed, and obtrudes upon them by vio- lence other persons, superseding the orders of his masters, he becomes doubly responsible for their conduct. If the persons he names should be of notorious evil character and evil princi- ples, and if this should be perfectly known to himself, and of public notoriety to the rest of the world, then another strong responsibility attaches on him for the acts of those persons. Governors, we know very well, cannot with their own hands be continually receiving bribes ; for then they must have as many hands, as one of the idols in an Indian temple, in order to receive all the bribes, which a governor-general may re- IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 277 ceive; but they have them vicariously. As there are many offices, so he has had various officers, for receiving and dis- tributing his bribes ; he has had a great many, some w^hite and some black, agents. The white men are loose and licentious ; they are apt to have resentments, and to be bold in revenging them. The black men are very secret and mysterious; they are not apt to have very quick resentments, they have not the same liberty and boldness of language, which characterize Eu- ropeans ; and they have fears too for themselves, which makes it more likely, that they will conceal anything committed to them by Europeans. Therefore Mr. Hastings had his black agents, not one, two, three, but many, disseminated through the country ; no two of them hardly appear to be in the secret of any one bribe. He has had likewise his white agents — they were necessary — a Mr. Larkins and a Mr. Crofts, Mr. Crofts was sub-treasurer, and Mr. Larkins accountant-general. These ■Cvere the last persons of all others, that should have had any thing to do with bribes ; yet these were some of his agents in bribery. There are few instances in comparison of the whole number of bribes, but there are some, where two men are in the secret of the same bribe. Nay, it appears, that there was one bribe divided into different payments at different times — that one part was committed to one black secretary — another part to another black secretary. So that it is almost impossible to make up a complete body of all his brioery : you may find the scattered limbs, some here, and others there; and while you are employed in picking them up, he may escape entirely in a prosecution for the whole. The first act of his government in Bengal was the most bold and extraordinary, that I believe ever entered into the head of any man, I will say, of any tyrant. It was no more or less than a general (almost exceptless) confiscation, in time of pro- found peace, of all the landed property in Bengal, upon most extraordinary pretences. Strange as this may appear, he did so confiscate it ; he put it up to a pretended public, in reality to a private, corrupt auction ; and such favored landholders, as came to it, were obliged to consider themselves as not any longer proprietors of the estates, but to recognize themselves as farmers under government : and even those few, that were permitted to remain on their estates, had their payments raised at his arbitrary discretion; and the rest of the lands were given to farmers general, appointed by him and his committee, at a price fixed by the same arbitrary discretion. It is necessary to inform your lordships, that the revenues of Bengal are for the most part territorial revenues, great quit- rents issuing out of lands. I shall say nothing either of the 24 278 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE nature of this property, of the rights of jhe people to it, or of the mode of exacting the rents, till that great question of reve- nues, one of the greatest which we shall have to lay before you, shall be brought before your lordships particularly and specially as an article of charge. I only mention it now as an exemplification of the great principle of corruption, which guided Mr. Hastings's conduct. When the ancient nobijhy, the great princes (for such I may call them) a nobility, perhaps, as ancient as that of your lord- ships (and a more truly noble body never existed in that char- acter ;) my lords, when all the nobility, some of whom have borne the rank and port of princes, all the gentry, all the free- holders of the country, had their estates in that manner confis- cated, that is, either given to themselves to hold on the footing of farmers, or totally confiscated ; when such an act of tyranny was done, no doubt, some good was pretended. This confis- cation was made by Mr. Hastings, and the lands let to these farmers for five years, upon an idea, which always accompanies his acts of oppression, the idea of moneyed merit. He adopted this mode of confiscating the estates, and letting them to farmers, for the avowed purpose of seeing how much it was possible to take out of them. Accordingly he set them up to this wild and wicked auction, as it would have been, if it had been a real one — corrupt and treacherous, as it was. He set these lands up for the purpose of making that discovery, and pretended, that the discovery would yield a most amazing increase of rent. And for some time it appeared so to do, till it came to the touchstone of experience ; and then it was found, that there was a defalcation from these monstrous raised reve- nues, which were to cancel in the minds of the directors the wickedness of so atrocious, flagitious, and horrid an act of treachery. At the end of five years, what do you think was the failure ? — No less than 2,050,000Z. Then a new source of corruption was opened, that is, how to deal with the balances : for every man, who had engaged in these transactions, was a debtor to government, and the remission of that debt depended upon the discretion of the governor general. Then the persons, who were to settle the composition of that immense debt, who were to see how much was recoverable, and how much not, were able to favor, or to exact to the last shilling; and there never existed a doubt, but that, not only upon the original cruel exaction, but upon the remission afterwards, immense gains were derived. This will account for the manner, in which those stupendous fortunes, which astonish the world, have been made. They have been made — first, by a tyrannous exaction from the people, who were suffered to remain in possession of IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 279 their own land as farmers, then by selHng the rest to farmers at rents and under hopes, which could never be realized, and then getting money for the relaxation of their debts. But whatever excuse, and however wicked, there might have been for this wicked act, namely, that it carried upon the face of it some sort of appearance of public good, that is to say, that sort of public good, wdiich Mr. Hastings so often professed, of ruining the country for the benefit of the company; yet, in fact, this business of balances is that nidus, in which have been nestled and bred and born all the corruptions of India ; — jfirst. by making extravagant demands, and afterwards by making corrupt relaxations of them. ■ Besides this monstrous failure in consequence of a miserable exaction, by which more was attempted to be forced from the country than it was capable of yielding, and this by way of experiment, when your lordships come to inquire who the far- mers-general of the revenue were, you w^ould naturally expect to find them to be the men in the several countries, who had the most interest, the greatest wealth, the best knowledge of the revenue and resources of the country, in which they lived. These would be thought the natural proper farmers-general of each district. No such thing, my lords. They are found in the body of people, whom I have mentioned to your lordships. They were almost all let to Calcutta banyans. Calcutta ban- yans were the farmers of almost the whole. They sub- delegated to others, who sometimes had sub-delegates under them ad infimtu?n. The whole formed a system together through the succession of black tyrants scattered through the country, in which you at last find the European at the end, sometimes indeed not hid very deep, not above one between him and the farmer, namely, his banyan directly, or some other black per- son to represent him. But some have so managed the affair, that when you inquire who the farmer is — Was such a one farmer ? — No. Cantoo Baboo 1 — No. Another 1 — No : at last you find three deep of fictitious farmers, and you find the European gentlemen, high in place and authority, the real farm- ers of the settlement. So that the zemindars were dispossessed, the country racked and ruined for the benefit of an European, under the name of a farmer: for you will easily judge whether these gentlemen had fallen so deeply in love with the banyans, and thought so highly of their merits and services, as to reward them with all the possessions of the great landed interest of the country. Your lordships are too grave, wise and discerning, to make it necessary for me to say more upon that subject. Tell me, that the banyans of English gentlemen, dependants on them at Calcutta, were the farmers throughout, and I believe 280 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE I need not tell your lordships, for whose benefit they were farmers. But there is one of these, who comes so nearly, indeed so precisely within this observation, that it is impossible for me to pass him by. Whoever has heard of Mr. Hastings's name, with any knowledge of Indian connexions, has heard of his banyan Cantoo Baboo. This man is well known in the records of the company, as his agent for receiving secret gifts, confis- cations, and presents. You would have imagined, that he would at least have kept him out of these farms, in order to give the measure a color at least of disinterestedness, and to show that this whole system of corruption and pecuniary oppression was carried on for the benefit of the company. The governor-gene- ral and council made an ostensible order, by which no collector, or person concerned in the revenue, should have any connex- ion with these farms. This order did not include the governor- general in the words of it, but more than included him in the spirit of it : because his power to protect a farmer-general in the person of his own servant was infinitely greater than tha of any subordinate person. Mr. Hastings, in breach of this order, gave farms to his own banyan. You find him the farmer of great, of vast, and extensive farms. Another regulation that was made on that occasion, was, that no farmer should have, except in particular cases, which were marked, described, and accurately distinguished, a greater farm than what paid 10,000/. a year to government. Mr. Hast- ings, who had broken the first regulation by giving any farm at all to his banyan, finding himself bolder, broke the second too, and, instead of 10,000/. gave him farms paying a revenue of 130,000/. a year to government. Men undoubtedly have been known to be under the dominion of their domestics : such things have happened to great men ; they never have happened justifiably, in my opinion. They have never happened excusa- bly; but we are acquainted sufficiently with the weakness of human nature to know that a domestic, who has served you in a near office long, and in your opinion faithfully, does become a kind of relation : it brings on a great afl^ection and regard for his interest. Now was this the case with Mr. Hastings and Cantoo Baboo 1 Mr. Hastings was just arrived at his govern- ment, and Cantoo Baboo had been but a year in his service ; so that he could not in that time have contracted any great de- gree of friendship for him. These people do not live in your house ; the Hindoo servants never sleep in it ; they cannot eat with your servants ; they have no second table, in which they can be continually about you, to be domesticated with yourself, a part of your being, as people's servants are to a certain de- IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 281 gree. These persons live all abroad ; they come at stated hours upon matters of business, and nothing more. But if it had been otherwise, Mr. Hastings's connexion with Cantoo Baboo had been but of a year's standing : he had before served in that ca- pacity Mr. Sykes, who recommended him to Mr. Hastings. Your lordships then are to judge, whether such outrageous vio- lations of all the principles, by which Mr. Hastings pretended to be guided in the settlement of these farms, were for the benefit of this old, decayed, aflectionate servant of one year's standing — your lordships will judge of that. I have here spoken only of the beginning of a great noto- rious system of corruption ; which branched out ,so many ways, and into such a variety of abuses, and has afflicted that kingdom with such horrible evils from that day to this, that I will venture to say it will make one of the greatest, weightiest, and most material parts of the charge, that is now before you ; as I beheve I need not tell your lordships, that an attempt to set up the whole landed interest of a kingdom to auction must be attended, not only in that act, but every consequential act, with most grievous and terrible consequences. My lords, I will now come to a scene of peculation of an- other kind ; namely, a peculation by the direct sale of offices of justice ; by the direct sale of the successions of families ; by the sale of guardianships, and trusts, held most sacred among the people of India ; by the sale of them, not as before to farm- ers, not as you might imagine to near relations of the fami- lies, but a sale of them to the unfaithful servants of those fami- lies, their own perfidious servants, who had ruined their estates, who, if any balances had accrued to the government, had been the cause of those debts. Those very servants were put in power over their estates, their persons and their families by Mr. Hastings for a shameful price. It will be proved to your lord- ships in the course of this business, that Mr. Hastings has done this in another sacred trust, the most sacred trust a man can have ; that is, in the case of those vackiels (as they call them) agents, or attorneys, who had been sent to assert and support the rights of their miserable masters before the council-general. It will be proved, that these vackiels wei'e by Mr. Hastings, for a price to be paid for it, put in possession of the very power, situation, and estates of those masters, who sent them to Cal- cutta to defend them from wrong and violence. The selling offices of justice, the sale of succession in families, of guardian- ships and other sacred trusts, the selling masters to their ser- vants, and principals to the attorneys they employed to defend themselves, were all parts of the same system ; and these were 2 L 24* 282 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE the horrid ways, in which he received bribes beyond any com- mon rate. When Mr. Hastings was appointed in the year 1773 to be governor-general of Bengal, together with Mr. Barwell, Gene- ral Clavering, Colonel Monson, and Mr. Francis, the company, knowing the former corrupt state of their service (but the whole corrupt system of Mr. Hastings at that time not being known, or even suspected at home) did order them, in discharge of the spirit of the act of parliament, to make an inquiry into all manner of corruptions and malversations in office, without the exception of any persons whatever. Your lordships are to know, that the act did expressly authorize the court of direc- tors to frame a body of instructions, and to give orders to their new servants, appointed under the act of parliament, lest it should be supposed, that they, by their appointment under the act, could supersede the authority of the directors. The directors, sensible of the power left in them over their servants by the act of parliament, though their nomination was taken from them, did, agreeably to the spirit and power of that act, give this order. The council consisted of two parties ; Mr. Hastings and Mr. Barwell, who were chosen, and kept there, upon the idea of their local knowledge ; and the other three, who were appoint- ed on account of their great parts and known integrity. And I will venture to say, that those three gentlemen did so execute their duty in India in all the substantial parts of it, that they will serve as a shield to cover the honor of England, whenever this country is upbraided in India. They found a rumor running through the country of great peculations and oppressions. Soon after, when it was known, what their instructions were, and that the council was ready, as is the first duty of all governors, ev^en when there is no ex- press order, to receive complaints against the oppressions and corruptions of government in any part of it — they found such a body (and that body shall be produced to your lordships) of corruption and peculation in every walk, in every department, in every situation of life, in the sale of the most sacred trusts, and in the destruction of the most ancient families of the country, as I believe in so short a time never was unveiled since the world began. Your lordships would imagine, that Mr. Hastings would at least ostensibly have taken some part in endeavoring to bring these corruptions before the public, or that he would at least have acted with some little management in his opposition. But alas ! it was not in his power ; there was not one, I think, but I am sure very few, of these general articles of corruption, in IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 283 which the most eminent figure in the crowd, the principal figure as it were in the piece, was not Mr. Hastings himself. There were a great many others involved ; for all departments were corrupted and vitiated. But you could not open a page, in which you did not see Mr. Hastings, or in which you did not see Cantoo Baboo. Either the black or white side of Mr. Hastings constantly was visible to the world in every part of these transactions. Whh the other gentlemen, who were visible too, I have at present no dealing. Mr. Hastings, instead of using any man- agement on that occasion, instantly set up his power and authority, directly against the majority of the council, directly against his colleagues, directly against the authority of the East India company and the authority of the act of parliament, to put a dead stop to all these inquiries. He broke up the council the moment they attempted to perform this part of their duty. As the evidence multiplied upon him, the daring exer- tions of his power in stopping all inquiries increased continually. But he gave a credit and authority to the evidence by these attempts to suppress it. Your lordships have heard, that among the body of the ac- cusers of this corruption there was a principal man in the country, a man of the first rank and authority in it, called Nundcomar, who had the management of revenues amounting to 150,000/. a year, and who had, if really inclined to play the small game with which he has been charged by his accusers, abundant means to gratify himself in playing great ones ; but Mr. Hastings has himself given him, upon the records of the company, a character, which would at least justify the council in making some inquiry into charges made by him. First, he was perfectly competent to make them, because he was in the management of those aflairs, from which Mr. Hast- ings is supposed to have received corrupt emolument. He and his son were the chief managers in those transactions. He was, therefore, perfectly competent to it. — Mr. Hastings has cleared his character ; for, though it is true in the contradic- tions, in which Mr. Hastings has entangled himself, he has abused and insulted him, and particularly after his appearance, as an accuser, yet before this he has given this testimony of him, that the hatred, that had been drawn upon him, and the general obloquy of the English nation, was on account of his attachment to his own prince and the liberties of his country. Be he what he might, I am not disposed, nor have I the least occasion, to defend either his conduct or his memory. It is to no purpose for Mr. Hastings to spend time in idle objections to the character of Nundcomar. Let him be as bad 284 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE as Mr. Hastings represents him. I suppose he was a caballing, bribing, intriguing politician, like others in that country, both black and white. We know, associates in dark and evil actions are not generally the best of men; but be that as it will, it generally happens, that they are the best of all discoverers. If Mr. Hastings were the accuser of Nundcomar, I should think the presumptions equally strong against Nundcomar, if he had acted as Mr. Hastings has acted. He was not only competent, but the most competent of all men to be Mr. Hastings's ac- cuser. But Mr. Hastings has himself established both his character, and his competency, by employing him against Ma- homed Reza Khan. He shall not blow hot and cold. In what respect was Mr. Hastings better than Mahomed Reza Khan, that the whole rule, principle, and system of accusation and inquiry should be totally reversed in general, nay, reversed in the particular instance, the moment he became accuser against Mr. Hastings. Such was the accuser. He was the man, that gave the bribes, and, in addition to his own evidence, offers proof by other witnesses. What was the accusation? Was the accusation improbable, either on account of the subject-matter, or the actor in it? Does such an appointment as that of Munny Begum in the most barefaced evasion of his orders appear to your lordships a matter, that contains no just presumptions of guilt? so that when a charge of bribery comes upon it, you are prepared to reject it, as if the action were so clear and proper, that no man could attribute it to an improper motive ? And, as to the man, is Mr. Hastings a man, against whom a charge of bribery is improbable ? Why, he owns it. He is a professor of it. He reduces it into scheme and system. He glories in it. He turns it to merit, and declares it is the best way of supplying the exigencies of the company. Why therefore should it be held improbable? — But I cannot mention this proceeding without shame and horror. My lords, when this man appeared as an accuser of Mr. Hastings, if he was a man of bad character, it was a great advantage to Mr. Hastings to be accused by a man of that description. There was no likelihood of any great credit being given to him. This person, who, in one of those sales, of which I have al- ready given you some account in the history of the last period of the revolutions of Bengal, had been, or thought he had been, cheated of his money, had made some discoveries, and been guilty of that great irremissible sin in India, the disclosure of peculation. He afterwards came with a second disclosure, and was likely to have odium enough upon the occasion. He di- IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 285 rectly charged Mr. Hastings with the receipt of bribes amount- ing together to about 40,000/. sterhng, given by himself, on his own account, and that of Munny Begum. The charge was accompanied with every particular, which could facilitate proof or detection, time, place, persons, species, to whom paid, by whom received. Here was a fair opportunity for Mr. Hastings at once to defeat the malice of his enemies, and to clear his character to the world. His course was different. He railed much at the accuser, but did not attempt to refute the accusation. He refuses to permit the inquiry to go on, at- tempts to dissolve the council, commands his banyan not to at- tend. The council however goes on, examines to the bottom, and resolves, that the charge was proved, and that the money ought to go to the company. Mr. Hastings then broke up the council, I will not say whether legally or illegally. The com- pany's law counsel thought he might legally do it ; but he cor- ruptly did it, and left mankind no room to judge but that it was done for the screening of his own guilt ; for a man may use a legal power corruptly, and for the most shameful and detestable purposes. And thus matters continued, till he commenced a criminal prosecution against this man — this man, whom he dared not meet as a defendant. Mr. Hastings, instead of answering the charge, attacks the accuser. Instead of meeting the man in front, he endeavored to go round, to come upon his flanks and rear, but never to meet him in the face upon the ground of his accusation, as he was bound by the expi-ess authority of law, and the express injunctions of the directors, to do. If the bribery is not ad- mitted on the evidence of Nundcomar, yet his suppressing it is a crime — a violation of the orders of the court of directors. He disobeyed those instructions ; and if it be only for disobe- dience, for rebellion against his masters (putting the corrupt motive out of the question), I charge him for this disobedience, and especially on account of the principles, upon which he proceeded in it. Then he took another step; he accused Nundcomar of a conspiracy, which was a way he then 'and ever since has used, whenever means were taken to detect any of his own iniquities. And here it becomes necessary to mention another circum- stance of history, that the legislature, not trusting entirely to the governor-general and council^ had sent out a court of jus- tice to be a counter security against these corruptions, and to detect and punish any such misdemeanors as might appear. And this court I take for granted has done great services. Mr. Hastings flew to this court, which was meant to protect in their situations informers against bribery and corruption, 286 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE rather than to protect the accused from any of the preUminary methods, which must indispensably be used for the purpose of detecting their guilt ; he flew to this court, charging this Nund- comar and others with being conspirators. A man might be convicted as a conspirator, and yet after- wards live ; he might put the matter into other hands, and go on with his information ; nothing less than stone-dead would do the business. And here happened an odd concurrence of cir- cumstances. Long before Nundcomar preferred his chai'ge, he knew, that Mr. Hastings was plotting his ruin, and that for this purpose he had used a man, whom he, Nundcomar, had turned out of doors, called Mohun Persaud. Mr. Hastings had seen papers put upon the board, charging him with this previous plot for the destruction of Nundcomar; and this identical per- son, Mohun Persaud, whom Nundcomar had charged as Mr. Hastings's associate in plotting his ruin, was now again brought forward, as the principal evidence against him. I will not enter (God forbid I should) into the pai'ticulars of the subse- quent trial of Nundcomar ; but you will find the marks and characters of it to be these. You will find a close connexion between Mr. Hastings and the chief justice, which we shal. prove. We shall prove, that one of the witnesses, who ap- peared there, was a person, who had been before, or has since been, concerned with Mr. Hastings in his most iniquitous trans- actions. You will find what is very odd, that in this trial for forgery, with which this man stood charged, forgery in a pri- vate transaction, all the persons, who were witnesses, or parties to it, had been, before or since, the particular friends of Mr. Hastings — in short, persons from that rabble, with whom Mr. Hastings was concerned, both before and since, in various transactions and negotiations of the most criminal kind. But the law took its course. I have nothing more to say than that the man is gone — hanged justly if you please; and that it did so happen luckily for Mr. Hastings — it so happened, that the relief of Mr. Hastings and the justice of the court, and the re- solution never to relax its rigor, did all concur just at a happy nick of time and moment; and Mr. Hastings accordingly had the full benefit of them all. His accuser was supposed to be what men may be, and yet very competent for accusers — namely, bne of his accomplices in guilty actions ; one of those persons who may have a great deal to say of bribes. All that I contend for, is, that he was in the closest intimacy with Mr. Hastings, was in a situation for giving bribes; and that Mr. Hastings was proved afterwards to have received a sum of money from him, which may be well referred to bribes. IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 287 This example had its use in the way in which it was intended to operate, and in which alone it could operate. It did not dis- courage forgeries ; they went on at their usual rate, neither nnore nor less. But it put an end to all accusations against all persons in power for any corrupt practice. Mr. Hastings ob- serves, that no man in India complains of him. It is generally true. The voice of all India is stopped. All complaint was strangled with the same cord that strangled Nundcomar. This murdered not only that accuser, but all future accusation; and not only defeated, but totally vitiated and reversed, all the ends for which this country, to its eternal and indelible dishonor, had sent out a pompous embassy of justice to the remotest parts of the globe. But though Nundcomar was put out of the way by the means by which he was removed, a part of the charge was not stran- gled with him. Whilst the process against Nundcomar was carrying on before Sir Elijah Impey, the process was continu- ing against Mr. Hastings in other modes ; the receipt of a part of those bribes from Munny Begum to the amount of 15,000/. was proved against him ; and that a sum, to the same amount, was to be paid to his associate, Mr. Middleton, as it was proved at Calcutta, so it will be proved at your lordships' bar, to your entire satisfaction, by records and hving testimony now in Eng- land. It was indeed obliquely admitted by Mr. Hastings him- self. The excuse for this bribe, fabricated by Mr. Hastings, and taught to Munny Begum, when he found that she was obliged to prove it against him, was, that it was given to him for his entertainment, according to some pretended custom, at the rate of 200/. sterling a day, whilst he remained at Moorshedabad. My lords, this leads me to a few reflections on the apology or defence of this bribe. We shall certainly I hope render it clear to your lordships, that it was not paid in this manner, as a daily allowance, but given in a gross sum. But take it in his own w^ay, it was no less illegal, and no less contrary to his cove- nant ; but if true under the circumstances, it was a horrible aggravation of his crime. The first thing that strikes, is, that visits from Mr. Hastings are pretty severe things ; and hospi- tality at Moorshedabad is an expensive virtue, though for pro- vision it is one of the cheapest countries in the universe. No wonder that Mr. Hastings lengthened his visit, and made it ex- tend near three months. Such hosts and such guests cannot be soon parted. Two hundred pounds a day for a visit ! it is at the rate of 73,000/. a year for himself; and as ] find his companion was put on the same allowance, it will be 146,000/. a year for hospitality to two English gentlemen. 288 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE I believe that there is not a prince in Europe, who goes to such expensive hospitality of splendor. But that you may judge of the true nature of this hospitality of corruption, I must bring before you the business of the visiter, and the condition of the host, as stated by Mr. Hastings himself, who best knows what he was doing. He was then at the old capital of Bengal, at the time of this expensive entertainment, on a business of retrenchment, and for the establishment of a most harsh, rigorous, and oppressive economy. He wishes the task were assigned to spirits of a less gentle kind. By Mr. Hastings's account, he was giving daily and hourly wounds to his humanity, in depriving of their sus- tenance hundreds of persons of the ancient nobility of a great fallen kingdom. Yet it was in the midst of this galling duty, it was at that very moment of his tender sensibility, that from the collected morsels plucked from the famished mouths of hun- dreds of decayed, indigent, and starving nobility, he gorged his ravenous maw with 200/. a day for his entertainment. In the course of all this proceeding, your lordships will not fail to observe, he is never corrupt, but he is cruel ; he never dizies with comfort, but where he is sure to create a famine. He never robs from the loose superfluity of standing greatness ; he devours the fallen, the indigent, the necessitous. His extor- tion is not like the generous rapacity of the princely eagle, who snatches away the living, struggling prey : he is a vulture, who feeds upon the prostrate, the dying, and the dead. As his cru- elty is more shocking than his corruption, so his hypocrisy has something more frightful than his crueltyi For whilst his bloody and rapacious hand signs proscriptions, and now sweeps away the food of the widow and the orphan, his eyes overflow with tears, and he converts the healing balm, that bleeds from wounded humanity, into a rancorous and deadly poison to the race of man. Well, there was an end to this tragic entertainment, this feast of Tantalus. The few left on the pension-list, the poor rem,- nants, that had escaped, wei'e they paid by his administratrix and deputy, Munny Begum ? Not a shilling. No fewer than forty-nine petitions, mostly from the widows of the greatest and most splendid houses of Bengal, came before the council, praying in the most deplorable manner for some. sort of relief out of the pittance assigned them. His colleagues. General Clavering, Colonel Monson, and Mr. Francis, men, who, when England is reproached for the government of India, will, I re- peat it, as a shield be held up between this nation and infamy, did, in conformity to the strict orders of the directors, appoint Mahomed Reza Khan to his old offices — that is, to the general IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 289 superintendency of the household and the administration of justice, a person, who, by his authority, might keep some or- der in the ruling family and in the state. The court of directors authorized them to assure those offices to him, with a salary reduced indeed to 30,000/. a year, during his good behavior. But Mr. Hastings, as soon as he obtained a majority by the death of the two best men ever sent to India, notwithstanding the orders of the court of directors, in spite of the public faith solemnly pledged to Mahomed Reza Khan, without a shadow of complaint, had the audacity to dispossess him of all his of- fices, and appoint his bribing patroness, the old dancing-girl, Munny Begum, once more to the viceroyalty and all its attend- ant honors and functions. The pretence was more insolent and shameless than the act. Modesty does not long survive innocence. He brings forward the miserable pageant of the nabob, as he called him, to be the instrument of his own disgrace, and the scandal of his family and government. He makes him to pass by his mother, and to petition us to appoint Munny Begum once more to the ad- ministration of the viceroyalty. He distributed Mahomed Reza Khan's salary as a spoil. When the orders of the court to restore Mahomed Reza Khan, with their opinion on the corrupt cause of his removal, and a second time to pledge to him the public faith for his con- tinuance, were received, Mr. Hastings, who had been just be- fore a pattern of obedience, when the despoiling, oppressing, imprisoning, and persecuting this man was the object, yet when the order was of a beneficial nature, and pleasant to a well- formed mind, he at once loses all his old principles, he grows stubborn and refractory, and refuses obedience. And in this sullen, uncomplying mood he continues, until, to gratify Mr. Francis in an agreement on some ,of their difl^erences, he con- sented to his proposition of obedience to the appointment of the court of directors. He grants to his arrangement of conveni- ence what he had refused to his duty, and replaces that magis- trate. But mark the double character of the man, never true to anything but fraud and duplicity. At the same time that he publicly replaces this magistrate, pretending compliance with his colleague, and obedience to his masters, he did, in defiance of his own and the public faith, privately send an assurance to the nabob — that is, to Munny Begum; informs her, that he was compelled by necessity to the present arrangement in favor of Mahomed Reza Khan ; but that on the first opportunity he would certainly displace him again. And he kept faith with his corruption ; and to show how vainly any one sought pro- tection in the lawful authority of this kingdom, he displaced 2 M 25 290 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE Mahomed Reza Khan from the lieutenancy and controllership, leaving him only the judicial department miserably curtailed. But does he adhere to his old pretence of freedom to the nabob ? No such thing. He appoints an absolute master to him under the name of resident, a creature of his personal favor, Sir J. Doiley, from whom there is not one syllable of corre- spondence, and not one item of account. How grievous this yoke was to that miserable captive, appears by a paper of Mr. Hastings, in which he acknowledges, that the nabob had offer- ed, out of the 160,000/. payable to him yearly, to give up to the company no less than 40,000/. a year, in order to have the free disposal of the rest. On this all comment is superfluous. Your lordships are furnished with a standard, by which you may es- timate his real receipt from the revenue assigned to him, the nature of the pretended residency, and its predatory effects. It will give full credit to what was generally rumored and believed, that substantially and beneficially the nabob never received 50 out of the 160,000 pounds; which will account for his known poverty, and wretchedness, and that of all about him. Thus, by his corrupt traffic of bribes with one scandalous woman, he disgraced and enfeebled the native Mahomedan gov- ernment, captived the person of the sovereign, and ruined and subverted the justice of the country. What is w^orse, the steps taken for the murder of Nundcomar, his accuser, have con- firmed and given sanction not only to the corruptions then practised by the governor-general, but to all, of which he has since been guilty. This will furnish your lordships with some general idea, which will enable you to judge of the bribe, for which he sold the country government. Under this head you will have produced to you full proof of his sale of a judicial ofhce to a person called Khan Jehan Khan, and the modes he took to frustrate all inquiry on that subject upon a wicked and false pretence, that according to his religious scruples he could not be sworn. The great end and object I have in view is to show the criminal tendency, the mischievous nature, of these crimes, and the means taken to elude their discovery. I am now giving your lordships that general view, which may serve to charac- terize Mr. Hastings's administration in all the other parts of it. It was not true in fact (as Mr. Hastings gives out) that there was nothing now against him, and that when he had got rid of Nundcomar and his charge, he got rid of the whole. No such thing. An immense load of charges of bribery remained. They were coming afterwards from every part of the province ; IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 291 and there was no office in the execution of justice, which he was not accused of having sold in the most flagitious manner. After all this thundering, the sky grew calm and clear, and Mr. Hastings sat with recorded peculation, with peculation proved upon oath on the minutes of that very council — he sat at the head of that council and that board where his peculations were proved against him. These were afterwards transmitted, and recorded in the registers of his masters, as an eternal monument of his corruption, and of his high disobedience, and flagitious attempts to prevent a discovery of the various pecu- lations, of which he had been guilty, to the disgrace and ruin of the country committed to his care. Mr. Hastings, after the execution of Nundcomar, if he had mtended to make even a decent and commonly sensible use of It, would naturally have said, this man is justly taken away, who has accused me of these crimes; but as there are other witnesses, as there are other means of a further inquiry, as the man is gone, of whose perjuries I might have reason to be afraid," let us now go into the inquiry. I think he did very ill not to go into the inquiry, when the man was alive ; but be it so, that he was afraid of liim, and waited till he was removed, why not afterwards go into such an inquiry ? Why not go into an inquiry of all the other peculations and charges upon him, which were innumerable, one of which I have just men- tioned in particular, the charge of Munny Begum — of having received from her, or her adopted son, a bribe of 40,000/. ? Is it fit for a governor to say, — will Mr. Hastings say before this august assembly, I may be accused in a court of justice, I am upon my defence, let all charges remain against me, I will not give you an account ? Is it fit, that a governor should sit with recorded bribery upon him at the head of a public board, and the government of a great kingdom, when it is in his power by inquiry to do it away ? No — the chastity of char- acter of a man in that situation ought to be as dear to him as his innocence. Nay, more depended upon it. His innocence regarded himself, his character regarded the public justice, regarded his authority, and the respect due to the English in that country. I charge it upon him, that not only did he sup- press the inquiry to the best of his power (and it shall be proved) but he did not in any one instance endeavor to clear off that imputation and reproach from the English government. He went further, he never denied hardly any of those charges at the time. They are so numerous, that I cannot be positive ; some of them he might meet with some sort of denial, but the most part he did not. The first thins^ a man under such an accusation owes to the 292 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE world is to deny the charge; next to put it to the proof; and lastly to let inquiry freely go on. He did not permit this, but stopped it all in his power. I am to mention some exceptions perhaps hereafter, which will tend to fortify the principle tenfold. He promised indeed the court of directors (to whom he never denied the facts) a full and liberal explanation of these trans- actions ; which full and liberal explanation he never gave. Many years passed; ev^en parliament took notice of it; and he never gave them a liberal explanation, or any explanation at all, of them, A man may say, I am threatened with a suit in a court, and it may be very disadvantageous to me, if I disclose my defence. That is a proper answer for a man in common hfe, who has no particular character to sustain; but is that a proper answer for a governor accused of bribery ? that accu- sation transmitted to his masters, and his masters giving credit to it ? Good God ! is that a state, in which a man is to say, I am upon the defensive ? I am on my guard ? I will give you no satisfaction 1 I have promised it, but I have already de- ferred it for seven or eight years ? Is not this tantamount to a denial ? Mr. Hastings, with this great body of bribery against him was providentially freed from Nundcomar, one of his accusers ; and as good events do not come alone (I think there is some such proverb) it did so happen that all the rest, or a great many of them, ran away. But, however, the recorded evi- dence of the former charges continued ; no new evidence came in ; and Mr. Hastings enjoyed that happy repose, which branded peculation, fixed and eternized upon the records of the company, must leave upon a mind conscious of its own integrity. My lords, I will venture to say, there is no man but owes something to his character. It is the grace, undoubtedly, of a virtuous firm mind often to despise common vulgar calumny ; but if ever there is an occasion, in which it does become such a mind to disprove it, it is the case of being charged in high office with pecuniary malversation, pecuniary corruption. There is no case, in which it becomes an honest man — much less a great man — to leave upon record specific charges against him of corruption in his government, without taking any one step whatever to refute them. Though Mr. Hastings took no step to refute the charges, he took many steps to punish the authors of them ; and those miserable people, who had the folly to make complaints against Mr. Hastings, to make them under the authority of an act of parliament, under every sanction of public faith, yet in conse- quence of those charges every person concerned in them has IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 293 been, as your lordships will see, since his restoration to power, absolutely undone ; brought from the highest situation to the lowest misery ; so that they may have good reason to repent they ever trusted an English council, that they ever trusted a court of directors, that they ever trusted an English act of par- liament, that they ever dared to make their complaints. And here I charge upon Mr. Hastings, that by never taking a single step to defeat, or detect the falsehood of, any of those charges against him, and by punishing the authors of them, he has been guilty of such a subversion of all the principles of British government, as will deserve, and will I dare say meet, your lordships' most severe animadversion. In the course of this inquiry we find a sort of pause in his peculations, a sort of gap in the history, as if pages were torn out. No longer we meet with the same activity in taking money, that was before found ; not even a trace of compliment- ary presents is to be found in the records during the time, whilst General Clavei'ing, Colonel Monson, and Mr. Francis, forme«l the majority of the council. There seems to have been a kind of truce with that sort of conduct for a while, and Mr. Hast- ings rested upon his arms. However, the very moment Mr. Hastings returned to power, peculation began again just at the same instant ; the moment we find him free from the compul- sion and terror of a majority of persons otherwise disposed than himself, we find him at his peculation again. My lords, at this time very serious inquiries had begun in the House of Commons concerning peculation. They did not go directly to Bengal, but they began upon the coast of Coroman- del, and with the principal governors there. There was. however, an universal opinion (and justly founded) that these inquiries would go to far greater lengths. Mr. Hastings was resolved then to change the whole course and order of his pro- ceeding. Nothing could persuade him upon any account to lay aside his system of bribery ; that he was resolved to persevere in. The point was now to reconcile it with his safety. The first thing he did was to attempt to conceal it, and accord- ingly we find him depositing very great sums of money in the public treasury through the means of the tw^o persons I have already mentioned, namely, the deputy-treasurer and the ac- comptant, paying them in and taking bonds for them as money of his own, and bearing legal interest. This was his method of endeavoring to conceal some at least of his bribes (for I would not suggest, nor have your lord ships to think, that I believe, that these were his only bribes ; for there is reason to think there was an infinite number be- sides;) but it did so happen, that they were those bribes, which 25* 294 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE he thought might be discovered, some of which he knew were discovered, and all of which he knew might become the subject of a parUamentary inquiry. Mr. Hastings said, he might have concealed them for ever. Every one knows the facility of concealing corrupt transac- tions everywhere, in India particularly. But this is by himself proved not to be universally true, at least not to be true in his own opinion. For he tells you in his letter from Cheltenham, that he would have concealed the nabob's 100,000/. but that the magnitude rendered it easy of discovery. He, therefore, avows an intention of concealment. But it happens here very singularly, that this sum, which his fears of discovery by others obliged him to discover himself, happens to be one of those, of which no trace whatsoever ap- pears, except merely from the operation of his own apprehen- sions. There is no collateral testimony ; Middleton knew nothing of it; Anderson knew nothing of it. It was not directly communicated to the faithful Larkins, or the trusty Crofts — which proves indeed the facility of concealment. The fact is, you find the apphcation always upon the discovery. But concealment or discovery is a thing of accident. The bribes, which I have hitherto brought before your lord- ships, belong to the first period of his bribery, before he thought of the doctrine, on which he has since defended it. There are many other bribes, which we charge him with having received during this first period, before an improving conversation and close virtuous connexion with great lawyers had taught him how to practise bribes in such a manner as to defy detection, and instead of punishment to plead merit. I am not bound to find order and consistency in guilt ; it is the reign of disorder. The order of the proceeding, as far as I am able to trace such a scene of prevarication, direct fraud, falsehood, and falsification of the public accounts, was this. — From bribes he knew he could never abstain ; and his then precarious situation made him the more rapacious. He knew, that a few of his former bribes had been discovered, declared, recorded ; that for the moment indeed he was secure, because all informers had been punished, and all concealers rewarded. He expected hourly a total change in the council ; and that men like Clavering and Monson might be again joined to Francis; that some great avenger should arise from their ashes — " Exoriare ah'quis nostris ex ossibus ulior," — and that a more severe investigation, and an infinitely more full display would be made of his robbery, than hitherto had been done. He therefore began in the agony of his guilt to cast about for some device, by which he might con- tinue his offence, if possible, with impunity, — and possibly make IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 295 a merit of it. He therefore first carefully perused the act of parliament, forbidding bribery, and his old covenant engaging him not to receive presents. And here he was more successful than upon former occasions. If ever an act was studiously and carefully framed to prevent bribery, it is that law of the 13th of the king, which he well observes admits no latitudes of con- struction, no subterfuge, no escape, no evasion. Yet has he found a defence of his crimes even in the very provisions, which were made for their prevention and their punishment. Besides the penalty, which belongs to every informer, the East India company was invested with a fiction of property in all such bribes, in order to drag them with more facility out of the corrupt hands, which held them. The covenant with an ex- ception of 100 pounds, and the act of parliament without any exception, declared, that the governor-general and council should receive no presents /or their own use. He therefore con- cluded that the system of bribery and extortion might be clan- destinely and safely carried on, provided the party taking the bribes had an inward intention and mental reservation, that they should be privately applied to the company's service, in any way the briber should think fit ; and that on many occa- sions this would prove the best method of supply for the exigencies of their service. He accordingly formed, or pretended to form, a private bribe exchequer, collateral with, and independent of, the company's public exchequer ; though in some cases administered by those, whom for his purposes he had placed in the regular official department. It is no wonder, that he has taken to himself an extraordinary degree of merit. For surely such an invention of finance I believe never was heard of, — an exchequer, wherein extortion was the assessor, fraud the cashier, confusion the accomptant, concealment the reporter, and oblivion the remem- brancer : in short, such as I believe no man, but one driven by guilt into frenzy, could ever have dreamed of. He treats the official and regular directors with just con- tempt, as a parcel of mean, mechanical book-keepers. He is an eccentric book-keeper, a Pindaric accomptant. I have heard of " the poet's eye in a fine frenzy rolling." Here was a reve- nue, exacted from whom he pleased, at what times he pleased, in what proportions he pleased, through what persons he pleased, by what means he pleased, to be accounted for, or not, at his discretion, and to be applied to what service he thought proper. I do believe your lordships stand astonished at this scheme; and indeed I should be very loth to venture to state such a scheme at all, however I might have credited it myself, to any sober ears, if, in his defence before the House of Commons and 296 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE before the lords, he had not directly admitted the fact of taking the bribes or forbidden presents, and had not in those defences, and much more fullj in his correspondence with the directors, admitted the fact, and justified it upon these very principles. As this is a thing so unheard of and unexampled in the world, I shall first endeavor to account, as well as I can, for his mo- tives to it, which your lordships will receive or reject, just as you shall find them tally with the evidence before you. I say, his motives to it ; because I contend, that pubhc valid reasons for it he could have none : and the idea of making the corrup- tion of the governor-general a resource to the company never did or could for a moment enter into his thoughts. — I shall then take notice of the judicial constructions, upon which he justifies his acting in this extraordinary manner. — And lastly, show you the concealments, prevarications, and falsehoods, with which he endeavors to cover it. Because wherever you find a con- cealment you make a discovery. Accounts of money received and paid ought to be regular and official. He wrote over to the court of directors, that there were certain sums of money he had received, and which were not his own, but that he had received them for their use. By this time, his intercourse with gentlemen of the law became more considerable than it had been before. When first attacked for presents, he never denied the receipt of them, or pretended to say they were for public purposes ; but upon looking more into the covenants, and probably whh better legal advice, he found, that no money could be legally received for his own use ; but as these bribes were directly given and received, as for his own use, yet (says he) there was an inward destination of them in my own mind to your benefit, and to your benefit have I ap- plied them. Now here is a new system of bribery, contrary to law, very ingenious in the contrivance, but, I believe, as unlikely to pro- duce its intended efl^ect upon the mind of man, as any pretence, that was ever used. Here Mr. Hastings changes his ground. Before, he was accused as a peculator; he did not deny the fact ; he did not refund the money ; he fought it ofl^, he stood upon the defensive, and used all the means in his power to pre- vent the inquiry. That was the first era of his corruption, a bold, ferocious, plain, downright use of power. In the second, he is grown a little more careful and guarded, the eflbct of subtility. He appears no longer as a defendant, he holds him- self up with a firm, dignified, and erect countenance, and says, I am not here any longer as a delinquent, a receiver of bribes, to he punished for what I have done wrong, or at least to suffer ui my character for it. No, I am a great inventive genius. IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 297 who have gone out of all the ordinary roads of finance, have made great discoveries in the unknown regions of that science, and have for the first time established the corruption of the supreme magistrate as a principle of resource for government. There are crimes, undoubtedly, of great magnitude, naturally fitted to create horror, and that loudly call for punishment, that have yet no idea of turpitude annexed to them ; but unclean hands, bribery, venality and peculation are offences of turpi- tude, such as, in a governor, at once debase the person, and degrade the government itself, making it not only hoiTible, but vile and contemptible in the eyes of all mankind. In this hu- miliation and abjectness of guilt, he comes here not as a criminal on his defence, but as a vast fertile genius, w^ho has made astonishing discoveries in the art of government ; — "D/- cam insigne, recens, alio indictum ore" — who by his flaming zeal and the prolific ardor and energy of his mind has boldly dashed out of the common path, and served his country by new and untrodden ways ; and now he generously communicates for the benefit of all future governors, and all future governments, the grand arcanum of his long and toilsome researches. He is the first, but if we do not take good care, he will not be the last, that has established the corruption of the supreme magistrate among the settled resources of the state ; and he leaves this principle as a bountiful donation, as the richest deposit, that ever was made in the treasury of Bengal. He claims glory and renown from that, by which every other person since the beginning of time has been dishonored and disgraced. It has been said of an ambassador, that he is a person employed to tell lies for the advantage of the court, that sends him. His is patriotic bribery, and public-spirited corruption. He is a pecu- lator for the good of his country. It has been said, that pri- vate vices are public benefits. He goes the full length of that position, and turns his private peculation into a public good. This is what you are to thank him for. You are to consider him as a great inventor upon this occasion. Mr. Hastings im- proves on this principle. He is a robber in gross, and a thief in detail; he steals, he filches, he plunders, he oppresses, he extorts — all for the good of the dear East India company, — all for the advantage of his honored masters the proprietors — all in gratitude to the dear perfidious court of directors, who have been in a practice to heap " insults on his person, slanders on his character, and indignities on his station; who never had the confidence in him, that they had in the meanest of his predecessors." If you sanction this practice, if, after all you have exacted from the people by your taxes and public imposts, you are to 2N 298 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE let loose your servants upon them to extort by bribery and peculation what they can from them, for the purpose of apply- ing it to the public service only whenever they please, — this shocking consequence will follow from it. If your governor is discovered in taking a bribe, he will say, What is that to you? mind your business, I intend it for the public service. The man, who dares to accuse him, loses the favor of the governor- general, and the India company. They will say, the governor has been doing a meritorious action, extorting bribes for our benefit, and you have the impudence to think of prosecuting him. So that the moment the bribe is detected, it is instantly turned into a merit ; and we shall prove, that this is the case with Mr. Hastings, whenever a bribe has been discovered. I am now to inform your lordships, that, when he made these great discoveries to the court of directors, he never tells them who gave him the money; upon what occasion he received it; by what hands ; or to what purposes he applied it. When he can himself give no account of his motives, and even declares, that he cannot assign any cause, I am author- ized and required to find motives for him — corrupt motives for a corrupt act. There is no one capital act of his administra- tion, that did not strongly imply corruption. When a man is known to be free from all imputation of taking money, and it becomes an established part of his character, the errors, or even crimes, of his administration ought to be, and are in gen eral, traced to other sources. You know it is a maxim. But once convict a man of bribery in any instance, and once by direct evidence, and you are furnished with a rule of irresist- ible presumption, that every other irregular act, by which un- lawful gain may arise, is done upon the same corrupt motive. Semel malus prcssumitw se?nper ?nalus. As, for good acts, can- dor, charity, justice, oblige me not to assign evil motives, un- less they serve some scandalous purpose, or terminate in some manifest evil end, so justice, reason and common sense compel me to suppose, that wicked acts have been done upon motives correspondent to their nature. Otherwise I reverse all the principles of judgment, which can guide the human mind, and accept even the symptoms, the marks and criteria, of guilt, as presumptions of innocence. One that confounds good and evil, is an enemy to the good ! His conduct upon these occasions may be thought irrational. But, thank God, guilt was never a rational thing, it distorts all the faculties of the mind, it perverts them, it leaves a man no longer in the free use of his reason ; it puts him into confusion. He has recourse to such miserable and absurd expedients for covering his guilt, as all those, who are used to sit in the seat IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 299 of judgment, know have been the cause of detection of half the villanies in the world. To argue, that these could not be his reasons, because they were not wise, sound and substantial, would be to suppose what is not true, that bad men were al- ways discreet and able. But I can very well from the circum- stances discover motives, which may affect a giddy, superficial, shattered, guilty, anxious, restless mind, full of the weak re- sources of fraud, craft and intrigue, that might induce him to make these discoveries, and to make them in the manner he has done. Not rational, and well-fitted for their purposes, I am very ready to admit. For God forbid, that guilt should ever leave a man the free undisturbed use of his faculties. For as guilt never rose from a true use of our rational faculties, so it is very frequently subversive of them. God forbid, that pru- dence, the first of all the virtues, as well as the supreme direc- tor of them all, should ever be employed in the service of any of the vices. — No, it takes the lead, and is never found where justice does not accompany it; and, if ever it is attempted to bring it into the service of the vices, it immediately .subverts their cause. It tends to their discovery, and, I hope and trust, finally to their utter ruin and destruction. In the first place I am to remark to your lordships, that the accounts he has given of one of these sums of n)oney are to- tally false and contradictory. Now there is not a stronger presumption, nor can one want more reason, to judge a trans- action fraudulent, than that the accounts given of it are con- tradictory ; and he has given three accounts utterly irrecon- cilable with each other. He is asked. How came you to take bonds for this money, if it was not your own ? How came you to vitiate and corrupt the state of the company's records, and to state yourself a lender to the company, when in reality you were their debtor ? His answer was, I really cannot tell ; I have forgot my reasons ; the distance of time is so great (namely, a time of about two years or not so long) I cannot give an ac- count of the matter ; perhaps I had this motive, perhaps I had another ; (but what is the most curious,) perhaps I had none at all, which I can now recollect. You shall hear the account, which Mr. Hastings himself gives, his own fraudulent repre- sentation of these corrupt transactions. " For my motives for withholding the several receipts from the knowledge of the council, or of the court of directors, and for taking bonds for part of these sums, and paying others into the treasury as de- posits on my own account, I have generally accounted in my letter to the honorable the court of directors of the 22d of May, 1782, namely, that I either chose to conceal the first receipts from pubhc curiosity by receiving bonds for the 300 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE amount, or possibly acted without any studied design, which my memory, at that distance of time, could verify ; and that I did not think it worth my care to observe the same means with the rest. It will not be expected, that I should be able to give a more correct explanation of my intentions after a lapse of three years, having declared at the time, that many particulars had escaped my remembrance; neither shall I attempt to add more than the clearer affirmation of the facts implied in that report of them, and such inferences, as necessarily, or with a strong probability, follow them." My lords, you see, as to any direct explanation, that he fairly gives it up: he has used artifice and stratagem, which he knows will not do ; and at last attempts to cover the treachery of his conduct by the treachery of his memory. Frequent applica- tions were made to Mr. Hastings upon this article from the company — gentle hints, gemitus columbce — rather little amorous complaints, that he was not more open and communicative ; but all these gentle insinuations were never able to draw from him any further account till he came to England. When he came here, he left not only his memory, but all his notes and refer- ences, behind in India. When in India, the company could get no account of them, because he himself was not in England; and when he was in England, they could get no account, be- cause his papers were in India. He then sends over to Mr. Larkins to give that account of his affairs, which he was not able to give himself Observe, here is a man taking money privately, corruptly, and which was to be sanctified by the future application of it, taking false securities to cover it; and who, when called upon to tell whom he got the money from, for what ends, and on what occasion, neither will tell in India, nor can tell in England, but sends for such an account as he has thought proper to furnish. I am now to bring before you an account of what I think much the most serious part of the effects of his system of bribery, corruption and peculation. My lords, I am to state to you the astonishing and almost incredible means he made use of to lay all the country under contribution, to bring the whole into such dejection as should put his bribes out of the way of discovery. Such another example of boldness and contrivance I believe the world cannot furnish. I have already shown amongst the mass of his corruptions, that he let the whole of the lands to farm to the banyans. Next, that he sold the whole Mahomedan government of that country to a woman. This was bold enough, one should think; but without entering into the circumstances of the revenue change in 1772, 1 am to tell your lordships, that he had appointed six pro- IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 301 vincial councils, each consisting of many members, who had the ordinary administration of civil justice in that country, and the whole business of the collection of the revenues. These provincial councils accounted to the governor-general and council, who, in the revenue department, had the whole management, control, and regulation of the revenue. Mr. Hastings did, in several papers to the court of directors, de- clare, that the establishment of these provincial councils, which at first he stated only as experimental, had proved useful in the experiment. And on that use, and upon that experiment, he had sent even the plan of an act of parliament to have it con- firmed with the last and most sacred authority of this country. The court of directors desired, that, if he thought any other method more proper, he would send it to ihem for their appro- bation. Thus the whole face of the British gov^ernment, the whole of its order and constitution, remained from 1772 to 1781. — He had got rid some time before this period, by death, of General Clavering ; by death, of Colonel Monson ; and by vexation and persecution, and his consequent dereliction of authority, he had shaken off Mr. Francis. The whole council consisting only of himself and Mr. Wheler, he, having the casting vote, was in effect the whole council ; and if ever there was a time when principle, decency, and decorum rendered it improper for him to do any extraordinary acts without the sanction of the court of directors, that was the time. Mr. Wheler was taken off, despair perhaps rendering the man, who had been in opposition futilely before, compilable. The man is dead. He certainly did not oppose him ; if he had, it would have been in vain. But those very circumstances, which rendered it atrocious in Mr. Hastings to make any change, induced him to make this. — He thought that a moment's time was not to be lost, that other col- leagues might come, when he might be overpowered by a ma- jority again, and not able to pursue his corrupt plans. There- fore he was resolved — your lordships will remark the whole of this most daring and systematic plan of bribery and peculation, — he resolved to put it out of the power of his council in future to check or control him in any of his evil practices. The first thing he did was to form an ostensible council at Calcutta, for the management of the revenues, which w^as not effectually bound, except it thought fit, to make any reference to the supreme council. He delegated to them — that is, to four covenanted servants — those functions, which, by act of parlia- ment and the company's orders, were to be exercised by the council-general; he delegated to four gentlemen, creatures of his own, his own powers, but he laid them out to good interest. 26 302 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE It appears odd, that one of the first acts of a governor-general so jealous of his power as he is known to be, as soon as he had all the power in his own hands, should be to put all the revenues out of his own control. This, upon the first view, is an extra- ordinary proceeding. His next step was, without apprizing the court of directors of his intention, or without having given an idea of any such intention lo his colleagues while alive, either those who died in India, or those who afterwards returned to Europe, in one day, in a moment, to annihilate the whole au- thority of the provincial councils, and delegate the whole power to these four gentlemen. These four gentlemen had for their secretary an agent given them by Mr. Hastings ; a name that you will often hear of — a name, at the sound of which all India turns pale — the most wicked — the most atrocious — the boldest — the most dexterous villain, that ever the rank servitude of that country has produced. My lords, I am speaking with the most assured freedom, because there never was a friend of Mr. Hastings, there never was a foe of Mr. Hastings, there never was any human person, that ever diflered on this occasion, or expressed any other idea of Gunga Govin Sing, the friend of Mr. Hastings, whom he intrusted wath this important post. But you shall hear, from the account given by themselves, what the council thought of their functions, of their efficiency for the charge, and in whose hands that efficiency really was. I beg, hope, and trust, that your lordships will learn from the persons themselves, who were appointed to execute the office, their opinion of the real execution of it, in order that you may judge of the plan, for which he destroyed the whole English adminis- tration in India. "■ The committee must have a dewan, or ex- ecutive officer, call him by what name you please. This man in fact has all the revenue, paid at the presidency, at his dispo- sal, and can, if he has any abilities, bring all the renters under contribution. It is little advantage to restrain the committee themselves from bribery or corruption, when their executive officer has the power of practising both undetected. " To display the arts employed by a native on such occasions would fill a volume. He discovers the secret resources of the zemindars and renters, their enemies and competitors ; and by the engines of hope and fear, raised upon these foundations, he can work them to his purpose. The committee, with the best intentions, best abilities, and steadiest application, must after all be a tool in the hands of their dewan." Your lordships see what the opinion of the council was of their own constitution. You see for what it was made. You see for what purpose the great revenue trust was taken from the council-general, from the supreme government. You see for IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 303 what purposes the executive power was destroyed. You have it from one of the gentlemen of this commission, at first four in number, and afterwards five, who was the most active efficient member of it. You see it was made for the purpose of being a tool in the hands of Gunga Govin Sing ; that integrity, ability, and vigilance, could avail nothing; that the whole country might be laid under contribution by this man, and that he could thus practise bribery with impunity. Thus, your lordships see, the delegation of all the authority of the country, above and below, is given by Mr. Hastings to this Gunga Govin Sing. The screen, the veil spread before this transaction, is torn open by the very people themselves, who are the tools in it. They confess they can do nothing ; they know they are instruments in the hands of Gunga Govin Sing; and Mr. Hastings uses his name and authority to make them such in the hands of the basest, the wickedest, the corruptest, the most audacious and atrocious villain ever heard of It is to him all the English authority is sacrificed, and four gentlemen are appointed to be his tools and instruments. — Tools and instruments for what? They themselves state, that, if he has the inclination, he has the power and ability to lay the whole country under contribution, that he enters into the most minute secrets of every individual in it, gets into the bottom of their family affairs, and has a power totally to subvert and destroy them; and we shall show upon that head, that he well fulfilled the purposes, for which he was appointed. Did Mr. Hastings pretend to say, that he destroyed the provincial councils for their corruptness or insuf- ficiency, when he dissolved them? No — he says he has no objection to their competency, no charge to make against their conduct, but that he has destroyed them for his new arrange- ment. And what is his new arrangement ? Gunga Govin Sing. Forty English gentlemen were removed from their offices by that change. Mr. Hastings did it, however, very economically; for all these gentlemen were instantly put upon pensions, and consequently burdened the establishment with a new charge. Well, but the new council was formed and constituted upon a very economical principle also. These five gentlemen, you will have it in proof, with the necessary expenses of their office, were a charge of 62,000/. a year upon the establishment. But for great, eminent, capital services, 62,000/. though a much larger sum than what was thought fit to be allowed for the members of the supreme council itself, may be admitted. I will pass it. It shall be granted to Mr. Hastings, that these pen- sions, though they created a new burden on the establishment, were all well disposed, provided the council did their duty. But you have heard what they say themselves — they are not there 304 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE put to do any duty, they can do no duty ; their abilities, their integrity availed them nothing, they are tools in the hands of Gunga Govin Sing. Mr. Hastings then has loaded the revenue with 62,000/. a year to make Gunga Govin Sing master of the kingdom of Bengal, Bahar and Orissa, What must the thing to be moved be, when the machinery, when the necessary tools for Gunga Govin Sing, have cost 62,000/, a year to the com- pany ? There it is — it is not my representation — not the repre- sentation of observant strangers, of good and decent people, that understand the nature of that service, but the opinion of the tools themselves. Now, did Mr. Hastings employ Gunga Govin Sing without a knowledge of his character ? His character was known to Mr. Hastings ; it was recorded long before, when he was turn- ed out of another office. During my long residence, says he, in this country, this is the first time I heard of the character of Gunf^a Govin Sini^ beino; infamous. No information I have re- O CO ceived, though I have heard many people speak ill of him, ever pointed to any particular act of infamy committed by Gunga Govin Sing. I have no intimate knowledge of Gunga Govin Sing. What I understand of his character has been from Eu- ropeans as well as natives. After — " He had many enemies at the time he was proposed to be employed in the company's service, and not one admcata among the natives who had im- mediate access to myself. I think, therefore, if his character had been such as has been described, the knowledge of it could nardly have failed to have been ascertained to me by the spe- cific facts. I have heard him loaded, as I have many others, with general reproaches, but have never heard any one express u doubt of his abilities." Now, if anything in the world should induce you to put the whole trust of the revenues of Bengal, both above and below, into the hands of a single man, and to delegate to him the whole jurisdiction of the country, it must be, that he either was, or at least was reputed to be, a man of integrity. Mr. Hastings does not pretend, that he is reputed to be a man of integrity. He knew that he was not able to contradict the charge brought against him ; and that he had been turned out of office by his colleagues, for reasons assign ed upon record, and approved by the directors, for malversa lion in office. He had, indeed, crept again into the Calcutta committee ; and they were upon the point of turning him out for malversation, when Mr. Hastings saved them the trouble by turning out the whole conmnttee, consisting of a president and five members. So that in all times, in all characters, in all places, he stood as a man of a bad character and evil repute, though supposed to be a man of great abilities. IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 305 My lords, permit me for one moment to drop my represent- ative character here, and to speak to your lordships only as a man of some experience in the world, and conversant with the affairs of men, and with the characters of men. I do then declare my conviction, and wish it may stand re- corded to posterity, that there never was a bad ma7i, that had ability (or good service. It is not in the nature of such men; their minds are so distorted to selfish purposes, to knavish, ar- tificial, and crafty means of accomplishing those selfish ends, that, if put to any good service, they are poor, dull, helpless. Their natural faculties never have that direction, — they are paralytic on that side ; — the muscles, if I may use the expres- sion, that ought to move it, are all dead. They know nothing, but how to pursue selfish ends by wicked and indirect means. No man ever knowingly employed a bad man on account of his abilities, but for evil ends. Mr. Hastings knew this man to be bad ; all the world knew him to be bad ; and how did he employ him 1 in such a manner as that he might be controlled by others ? A great deal might be said for him, if this had been the case. There might be circumstances, in which such a man might be used in a subordinate capacity. But who ever thought of putting such a man virtually in possession of the whole au- thority both of the committee and the council-general, and of the revenues of the whole country? I will do Mr. Hastings the justice to say, that if he had known there was another man more accomplished in all ini- quity than Gunga Govin Sing, he would not have given him the first place in his confidence. But there is another next to him in the country, whom you are to hear of by and by, called Debi Sing. This person in the universal opinion of all Bengal is ranked next to Gunga Govin Sirg ; and, what is very curi- ous, they have been recorded by Mr. Hastings as rivals in the same virtues. Arcades ambo, Et cantare pares, et respondere parati. But Mr. Hastings has the happiest modes in the world ; these rivals were reconciled on this occasion, and Gunga Govin Sing appoints Debi Sing, superseding all the other officers for no reason whatever upon record. And because like champions they ought to go in pairs, there is an English gentleman, one Mr. Goodlad, whom you will hear of presently, appointed along with him. Absolute strangers to the rajah's family, the first act they do is — to cut off" 1,000 out of 1,600 a month from his allowance. They state (though there was a great number of dependants to maintain) that 600 would be enough to maintain him. There appears in the account of these proceed- 2 O 26* 306 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE ings to be such a flutter about the care of the rajah, and the management of his household ; in short, that there never was such a tender guardianship as, always with the knowledge of Mr. Hastings, is exercised over this poor rajah, who had just given, if he did give, 40,000/. for his own inheritance, if it was liis due — for the inheritance of others, if it was not his due. One would think he was entitled to some mercy ; but probably, because the money could not otherwise be supplied, his estab- lishment was cut down by Debi Sing and Mr. Goodlad a thousand a month, which is just twelve thousand a year. When Mr. Hastings had appointed those persons to the guar- dianship, who had an interest in the management of the rajah's education and fortune, one should have thought, before they were turned out, he would at least have examined whether such a step was proper or not. No, they were turned out, without any such examination ; and when I come to inquire into the proceedings of Gunga Govin Sing's committee, I do not find, that the new guardians have brought to account one single shilling they received, appointed as they were by that council newly made to superintend all the affairs of the rajah. There is not one word to be found of an account : Debi Sing's honor, fidelity and disinterestedness, and that of Mr. Goodlad, is sufficient ; and that is the way, in which the management and superintendence of one of the greatest houses in that country is given to the guardianship of strangers. And how is it managed '\ we find Debi Sing in possession of the rajah's family, in possession of his affairs, in the management of his whole zemidary ; and in the course of the next year he is to give him in farm the whole of the revenues of these three provinces. Now whether the peshcush was received for the nomination of the rajah, as a bribe in judgment, or whether Mr. Hastings got it from Debi Sing, as a bribe in office, for appointing him to the guardianship of a family that did not belong to him, and for the dominion of three great, and once wealthy, provinces — which is best or worst I shall not pretend to determine. You find the rajah in his possession, you find his education, his household in his possession. The public revenues are in his possession ; they are given over to him. If we look at the records, the letting of these provinces ap- pears to have been carried on by the new committee of revenue, as the course and order of business required it should. But by the investigation into Mr. Hastings's money transactions, the insufficiency and fallacy of these records is manifest beyond a doubt. From this investigation it is discovered, that it was m reality a bargain secretly struck between the governor-general and Debi Sing ; and that the committee were only employed in IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 307 the mere official forms. From the time, that Mr. Hastings new modelled the revenue system, nothing is seen in its true shape. We now know, in spite of the fallacy of these records, who the true grantor was ; it will not be amiss to go a little further in supplying their defects, and to inquire a little con- cerning the grantee. This makes it necessary for me to in- form your lordships who Debi Sing is. [JWr. Burke read the committee's recommendation of Debi Sing to the governor-general and council : but the copy of the paper alluded to is wanting,'] Here is a choice, here is Debi Sing presented for his know- ledge in business, his trust and fidelity ; and that he is a person, against whom no objection can be made. This is presented to Mr. Hastings, by him recorded in the council books, and by him transmitted to the court of directors. Mr. Hastings has since recorded, that he knew this X)ebi Sing, (though he here publicly authorizes the nomination of him to all that great body of trusts,) that he knew him to be a man completely capable of the most atrocious iniquities, that were ever charged upon man. Debi Sing is appointed to all those great trusts through the means of Gunga Covin Sing, from whom he (Mr. Hastings) had received 30,000/. as a part of a bribe. Now, though it is a large field, though it is a thing, that, I must confess, I feel a reluctance almost in venturing to under- take, exhausted as I am, yet such is the magnitude of the affair, such the evil consequences that followed from a system of bribery, such the horrible consequences of superseding all the persons in office in the country to give it into the hands of Debi Sing, that though it is the public opinion, and though no man, that has ever heard the name of Debi Sing, does not know, that he was only second to Gunga Govin Sing, yet it is not to my purpose, unless I prove, that Mr. Hastings knew his character at the very time he accepts him as a person against whom no exception could be made. It is necessary to inform your lordships who this Debi Sing was, to whom these great trusts were committed, and those great provinces given. It may be thought, and not unnaturally, that in this sort of corrupt and venal appointment to high trust and office, Mr. Hastings has no other consideration than the money he received. But whoever thinks so will be deceived. Mr. Hastings was very far from indifferent to the character of the persons he 308 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE dealt with. On the contrary, he made a most careful selection , he had a very scrupulous regard to the aptitude of the men foi the purposes for which he employed them ; and was much guided by his experience of their conduct in those offices, which had been sold to them upon former occasions. Except Gunga Govin Sing (whom, as justice required, Mr. Hastings distinguished by the highest marks of his confidence,) there was not a man in Bengal, perhaps not upon earth, a match for this Debi Sing. He was not an unknown subject; not one rashly taken up as an experiment. He was a tried man ; and if there had been one more desperately and aban- donedly corrupt, more wildly and flagitiously oppressive, to be found unemployed in India, large as his offers were, Mr. Hast- ings w'ould not have taken this money from Debi Sing. Debi Sing was one of those who, in the early stages of the English power in Bengal, attached himself to those natives, who then stood high in office. He courted Mahomed Reza Khan, a Mussulman of the highest rank, of the tribe of Koreish, whom I have already mentioned, then at the head of the revenue, and now at the head of the criminal justice of Bengal, with all the supple assiduity, of which those, who possess no valuable art or useful talent, are commonly complete masters. Possessing large funds acquired by his apprenticeship and novitiate in the lowest frauds, he was enabled to lend to this then powerful man, in the several emergencies of his variable fortune, very large sums of money. This great man had been brought down by Mr. Hastings, under the orders of the court of directors, upon a cruel charge, to Calcutta. He was accused of many crimes, and acquitted, 220,000/. in debt. That is to say, as soon as he was a great debtor, he ceased to be a great criminal. Debi Sing obtained by his services no slight influence over Mahomed Reza Khan, a person of a character very different from his. From that connexion he was appointed to the farm of the revenue, and inclusively of the government of Pui'nea, a prov- ince of very great extent, and then in a state of no inconsider- able opulence. In this office he exerted his talents with so much vigor and industry, that in a very short time the province was half depopulated, and totally ruined. The farm, on the expiration of his lease, was taken by a set of adventurers in this kind of traffic from Calcutta. But when the new undertakers came to survey the object of their future operations, and future profits, they were so shocked at the hideous and squalid scenes of misery and desolation, that glared upon them in every quarter, that they instantly fled out of the IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 309 country, and thought themselves but too happy to be permitted, on the payment of a penalty of twelve thousand pounds, to be released from their engagements. To give in a few words as clear an idea, as I am able to give, of the immense volume, which might be composed of the vexa- tions, violence, and rapine of that tyrannical administration, the territorial revenue of Purnea, which had been let to Debi vSing at the rate of 160,000/. sterling a year, was with difficulty leased for a yearly sum under 90,000/. and with all rigor of exaction produced in effect little more than 60,000/. falling greatly below one half of its original estimate. — So entirely did the administration of Debi Sing exhaust all the resources of the province ; so totally did his baleful influence blast the very hope and spring of all future revenue. The administration of Debi Sing was too notoriously destruc- tive not to cause a general clamor. It was impossible, that it should be passed over without animadversion. Accordingly, in the month of September 1772, Mr. Hastings, then at the head of the committee of circuit, removed him for maladministra- tion; and he has since publicly declared on record, that he knew him to be capable of all the most horrid and atrocious crimes, that can be imputed to man. This brand, however, was only a mark for Mr. Hastings to find him out hereafter in the crowd ; to identify him for his own ; and to call him forth into action, when his virtues should be sufficiently matured for the services, in which he afterwards employed him through his instruments Mr. Anderson and Gunga Govin Sing. In the mean time he left Debi Sing to the direc- tion of his own good genius. Debi Sing was stigmatized in the company's records, his reputation was gone, but his funds were safe. In the arrange- ment made by Mr, Hastings in the year 1773, by which provincial councils were formed, Debi Sing became deputy steward, or secretary, (soon in effect and influence principal steward) to the provincial council of Moorshedabad, the seat of the old government, and the first province of the kingdom ; and to his charge were committed various extensive and popu- lous provinces, yielding an annual revenue of 120 lacs of rupees, or 1,500,000/. This division of provincial council in- cluded Rungpore, Edrackpore, and others, where he obtained such a knowledge of their resources, as subsequently to get possession of them. Debi Sing found this administration composed mostly of young men, dissipated and fond of pleasure, as is usual at that time of life ; but desirous of reconciling those pleasures, w^hich usually consume wealth, with the means of making a great and 310 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE speedy fortune ; at once eager candidates for opulence, and perfect novices in all the roads that lead to it. Debi Sing cwnmiserated their youth and inexperience, and took upon him to be their guide. There is a revenue in that country, raised by a tax more productive than laudable. It is an imposition on public prosti- tutes, a duty upon the societies of dancing girls ; those semina- ries, from which Mr. Hastings has selected an administrator of justice and governor of kingdoms. Debi Sing thought it expedient to farm this tax ; not only because he neglected no sort of gain, but because he regarded it as no contemptible means of power and influence. Accordingly, in plain terms, he opened a legal brothel, out of which he carefully reserved (you may be sure) the very flower of his collection for the en- tertainment of his young superiors ; ladies recommended not only by personal merit, but, according to the eastern custom, by sweet and enticing names, which he had given them. For, if they were to be translated they would sound, — Riches of my Life; Wealth of my Soul; Treasure of Perfection; Diamond of Splendor; Pearl of Price; Ruby of Pure Blood ; and other metaphorical descriptions, that, calling up dissonant passions to enhance the value of the general harmony, heightened the attractions of love with the allurements of avarice. A moving seraglio of these ladies always attended his progress, and were always brought to the splendid and multiplied entertainments, with which he regaled his council. In these festivities, whilst his guests were engaged with the seductions of beauty, the intoxications of the most delicious wines of France, and the voluptuous vapor of perfumed India smoke, uniting the vivid satisfactions of Europe with the torpid blandishments of Asia, the great magician himself, chaste in the midst of dissoluteness, sober in the centre of debauch, vigilant in the lap of negligence and oblivion, attended with an eagle's eye the moment for thrusting in business, and at such times was able to carry with- out difficulty points of shameful enormity, which at other hours he would not so much as have dared to mention to his em- ployers, young men rather careless and inexperienced than intentionally corrupt. Not satisfied with being pander to their pleasures, he anticipated, and was purveyor to, their wants, and supplied them with a constant command of money ; and by these means he reigned with an uncontrolled dominion over the province and over its governors. For you are to understand, that in many things we are very much misinformed with regard to the true seat of power in India. Whilst we were proudly calling India a British govern- ment, it was in substance a government of the lowest, basest. IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 311 and most flagitious of the native rabble; to whom the far greater part of the EngUsh, who figured in employment and station, had from their earliest youth been slaves and instruments. Banyans had anticipated the period of their power in prema- ture advances of money ; and have ever after obtained the entire dominion over their nomina masters. By those various ways and means, Debi Sing contrived to add job to job, employment to employment, and to hold, besides the farms of two very considerable districts, various trusts in the revenue ; sometimes openly appearing ; sometimes hid two or three deep in false names ; emerging into light, or shroud- ing himself in darkness, as successful, or defeated crimes ren- dered him bold or cautious. Every one of these trusts was marked with its own fraud; and for one of those frauds com- mitted by him in another name, by which he became deeply in balance to the revenue, he was publicly whipped hy proxy. All this while Mr. Hastings kept his eye upon him, and at- tended to his progress. But, as he rose in Mr. Hastings's opin- ion, he fell in that of his immediate employers. By degrees, as reason prevailed, and the fumes of pleasure evaporated, the provincial council emerged from their first dependence; and, finding nothing but infamy attending the councils and services of such a man, resolved to dismiss him. In this strait, and crisis of his power, the artist turned himself into all shapes. He of- fered great sums individually; he offered them collectively; and at last put a carte blanche on the table — all to no purpose ! What! are you stones? — Have I not men to deal with? — Will flesh and blood refuse me ? When Debi Sing found, that the council had entirely escaped, and were proof against his offers, he left them with a sullen and menacing silence. He applied where he had good intelli- gence, that these offers would be well received ; and that he should at once be revenged of the council, and obtain all the ends which through them he had sought in vain. Without hesitation or scruple, Mr. Hastings sold a set of in- nocent officers; sold his fellow-servants of the company, enti- tled by every duty to his protection ; sold English subjects, re- commended by every tie of national sympathy; sold the honor of the British government itself; without charge, without com- plaint, without allegation of crime in conduct, or of insufficiency in talents ; he sold them to the most known and abandoned character, which the rank servitude of that clime produces. For him, he entirely broke and quashed the council of Moors- hedabad, which had been the settled government for twelve years, (a long period in the changeful history of India.) at a time too \vhen it had acquired a great degree of consistency, 312 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE an official experience, a knowledge and habit of business, and was making full amends for early errors. For now Mr. Hastings, having buried Colonel Monson and General Clavering, and having shaken off Mr. Francis, who retired half dead from office, began at length to respire ; he found elbow-room once more to display his genuine nature and disposition, and to make amends in a riot and debauch of peculation for the forced abstinence, to which he was reduced during the usurped dominion of honor and integrity. It was not enough, that the English were thus sacrificed to the revenge of Debi Sing. It was necessary to deliver over the natives to his avarice. By the intervention of bribe broker- age, he united the two great rivals in iniquity, who before from an emulation of crimes w^ere enemies to each other, Gunga Govin Sing, and Debi Sing. He negotiated the bribe and the farm of the latter through the former; and Debi Sing was invested in farm for two years with the three provinces of Dinagepore, Edrackpore, and Rungpore ; territories, making together a tract of land superior in dimensions to the northern counties of England, Yorkshire included. To prevent anything, which might prove an obstacle on the full swing of his genius, he removed all the restraints, which had been framed to giv^e an ostensible credit, to give some show of official order, to the plans of revenue administration framed from time to time in Bengal. An officer, called a dewan, had been established in the provinces, expressly as a check on the person who should act as farmer-general. This office he conferred along with that of farmer-general on Debi Sing, in order that Debi might become an effectual check upon Sing ; and thus these provinces, without inspection, without control, without law, and without magistrates, w'ere delivered over by Mr. Hastings, bound hand and foot, to the discretion of the man, whom he had before recorded as the destroyer of Purnea ; and capable of every the miost atrocious wickedness, that could be imputed to man. Fatally for the natives of India, every wild project and every corrupt sale of Mr. Hastings, and those whose example he followed, is covered with a pretended increase of revenue to the company. Mr. Hastings would not pocket his bribe of 40,000/. for himself without letting the company in as a sharer and accomplice. For the province of Rungpore, the object, to which I mean in this instance to confine your attention, 7,000/. a year was added. But lest this avowed increase of rent should seem to lead to oppression, great and religious care was taken in the covenant, so stipulated with Debi Sing, that this increase should not arise from any additional assessment what- IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 313 soever on the country, but solely from improvements in the cultivation, and the encouragement to be given to the land- holder and husbandman. But as Mr. Hastings's bribe, of a far greater sum, was not guarded by any such provision, it was left to the discretion of the donor in what manner he was to indemnify himself for it. Debi Sing fixed the seat of his authority at Dinagepore, where as soon as he arrived, he did not lose a moment in doing his duty. If Mr. Hastings can forget his covenant, you may easily believe, that Debi Sing had not a more correct memory ; and, accordingly, as soon as he came into the province, he in- stantly broke every covenant, which he had entered into, as a restraint on his avarice, rapacity and tyranny; which, from the highest of the nobility and gentry to the lowest husband- man, were afterwards exercised, with a stern and unrelenting impartiality, upon the whole people. For notwithstanding the province before Debi Sing's lease was, from various causes, in a state of declension, and in balance for the revenue of the preceding year, at his very first entrance into office he forced from the zemindars or landed gentry an enormous increase of their tribute. They refused compliance. On this refusal he threw the whole body of zemindars into prison ; and thus in bonds and fetters compelled them to sign their own ruin by an increase of rent, which they knew they could never realize. Having thus gotten them under, he added exaction to exac- tion, so that every day announced some new and varied de- mand ; until exhausted by these oppressions they were brought to the extremity, to which he meant to drive them, the sale of their lands. The lands held by the zemindars of that country are of many descriptions. The first and most general are those, that pay revenue. The others are of the nature of demesne lands, which are free and pay no rent to government. The latter are for the immediate support of the zemindars and their families, as from the former they derive their influence, authority, and the means of upholding their dignity. The lands of the former description were immediately attached, sequestered and sold for the most trifling consideration. The rent-free lands, the best and richest lands of the whole province, were sold — sold for — what do your lordships think? — They were sold for less than one year's purchase, — at less than one year's purchase, at the most underrated value ; so that the fee simple of an Eng- lish acre of rent-free land sold at the rate of seven or eight shillings. Such a sale on such terms strongly indicated the purchaser. And how did it turn out in fact 1 The purchaser was the very agent and instrument of Mr. Hastings, Debi Sing 2 P 27 314 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE himself. He made the exaction ; he forced the sale ; he re- duced the rate ; and he became the purchaser at less than one year's purchase, and paid with the very money which he had extorted from the miserable vendors. When he had thus sold and separated these lands, he united the whole body of them, amounting to about 7,000/. sterling a year (but according to the rate of money and living in that country equivalent to a rental in England of 30,000/. a year) ; and then having raised in the new letting, as on the sale he had fraudulently reduced, those lands, he reserved them as an estate for himself, or to whomsoever resembling himself Mr. Hastings sliould order them to be disposed. The lands, thus sold for next to nothing, left of course the late landholder still in debt. The failure of fund, the rigorous exaction of debt, and the multiplication of new arbitrary taxes next carried off the goods. There is a circumstance attending this business, which will call for your lordships' pity. Most of the landholders or zemindars in that country happened at that time to be women. The sex there is in a state certainly re- sembling imprisonment, but guarded as a sacred treasure with all possible attention and respect. None of the coarse male hands of the law can reach them ; but they have a custom, very cautiously used in all good governments there, of employ- ing female bailifls, or sergeants, in the execution of the law, where that sex is concerned. Guards, therefore, surrounded the houses ; and then female sergeants and bailiffs entered into the habitations of these female zemindars, and held their goods and persons in execution, nothing being left but, what was daily threatened, their life, and honor. The landholders, even women of eminent rank and condition, for such the greatest part of the zemindars then were, fled from the ancient seats of their ancestors, and left their miserable followers and servants, who in that country are infinitely numerous, without protection, and without bread. The monthly instalment of Mr. Hastings's bribe was become due, and his rapacity must be fed from the vitals of the people. The zemindars, before their own flight, had the mortification to see all the lands assigned to charitable and to religious uses, the humane and pious foundations of themselves and their an- cestors, made to support infirmity and decrepitude, to give feet to the lame, and eyes to the blind, and to effect which they had deprived themselves of many of the enjoyments of hfe, cruelly sequestered and sold at the same market of violence and fraud, where their demesne possessions and their goods had been be- fore made away with. Even the lands and funds set aside for their funeral ceremonies, in which they hoped to find an end to IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 315 their miseries, and some indemnity of imagination for all the substantial sufterings of their lives : even the very feeble con- solations of death were by the same rigid hand of tyranny, a tyranny more consuming than the funeral pile, more greedy than the grave, and more inexorable than death itself, seized and taken to make good the honor of corruption, and the faith of bribery pledged to Mr. Hastings or his instruments. Thus it fared with the better and middling orders of the people. Were the lower, the more industrious spared ? — Alas ! as their situation was far more helpless, their oppression was infinitely more sore and grievous; the exactions yet more ex- cessive, the demand yet more vexatious, more capricious, more arbitrary. To afford your lordships some idea of the condition of those, who were served up to satisfy Mr. Hastings's hunger and thirst for bribes, I shall read it to you in the very words of the representative tyrant himself, Rajah Debi Sing. Debi Sing, when he was charged with a fraudulent sale of the orna- ments of gold and silver of women, who according to the modes of that country had starved themselves to decorate their unhappy persons, argued on the improbability of this part of the charge, in these very words : " It is notorious," says he, " that poverty generally prevails amongst the husbandmen of Rungpore, more perhaps than in any other parts of the country. They are seldom possessed of any property except at the time they reap their harvest ; and at others, barely procure their subsistence. And this is the cause that such numbers of them were swept away by the famine. Their effects are only a little earthenware, and their houses only a handful of straw ; the sale of a thousand of which would not perhaps produce twenty shillings." These were the opulent people, from whose superfluities Mr. Hastings was to obtain a gift of 40,000Z. over and above a large increase of rent, over and above the exactions, by which the farmer must reimburse himself for the advance of the money, by which he must obtain the natural profit of the farm, as well as supply the peculium of his own avarice. Therefore your lordships will not be surprised at the conse- quences. All this unhappy race of little farmers, and tillers of the soil, were driven like a herd of cattle by his extortioners, and compelled by imprisonments, by fetters, and by cruel whippings, to engage for more than the whole of their substance or possible acquisition. Over and above this, there was no mode of extortion which the inventive imagination of rapacity could contrive, that was not contrived and was not put in practice. On its own day your lordships will hear with astonishment, detestation and 216 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE horror, the detail of these tyrannous inventions ; and it will appear, that the aggregate of these superadded demands amounted to as great a sum as the whole of the compulsory rent, on which they were piled. The country being in many parts left wholly waste, and in all parts considerably depopulated by the first rigors, the full rate of the district was exacted from the miserable survivors. Their burdens were increased, as their fellow laborers, to whose joint efforts they were to owe the means of payment, diminished. Driven to make payments, beyond all possible calculation, previous to receipts and above their means, in a very short time they fell into the hands of usurers. The usurers, who under such a government held their own funds by a precarious tenure, and were to lend to those whose substance was still more precarious, (to the natural hardness and austerity of that race of men,) had additional motives to extortion, and made their terms accordingly. And what were the terms these poor people were obliged to consent to, to answer the bribes and peshcush paid to Mr. Hastings ? five, ten twenty, forty per cent. 1 No ! at an interest of six hundred per cent, per annum, payable by the day ! A tiller of land to pay six hundred per cent., to discharge the demands of government ! What exhaustless fund of opulence could supply this destructive resource of wretchedness and misery ? Accordingly, the hus- bandman ground to powder between the usurer below and the oppressor above, the whole crop of the country was forced at once to market; and the market glutted, overcharged and suffocated, the price of grain fell to the fifth part of its usual value. The crop was then gone, but the debt remained. An universal treasury extent, and process of execution, followed on the cattle and stock, and was enforced, with more or less rigor, in every quarter. We have it in evidence, that in those sales five cows were sold for not more than seven or eight shillings. All other things were depreciated in the same proportion. The sale of the instruments of husbandry suc- ceeded to that of the corn and stock. Instances there are, where, all other things failing, the farmers were dragged from the court to their houses, in order to see them first plundered, and then burnt down before their faces. It was not a rigorous collection of revenue, it was a savage war made upon the country. The peasants were left little else than their families and their bodies. The families were disposed of. It is a known observation, that those, who have the fewest of all other worldly enjoyments, are the most tenderly attached to their children and wives. The most tender of parents sold their children at IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 317 market. The most fondly jealous of husbands sold their wives. The tyranny of Mr. Hastings extinguished every sentiment of father, son, brother, and husband ! I come now to the last stage of their miseries: everything visible and vendible was seized and sold. Nothing but the bodies remained. It is the nature of tyranny and rapacity never to learn moderation from the ill success of first oppressions; on the contrary, all oppressors, all men thinking highly of the methods dictated by their nature, attribute the frustration of their desires to the want of sufficient rigor. Then they redouble the efforts of their impotent cruelty ; which producing, as they must ever produce, new disappointments, they grow irritated against the objects of their rapacity ; and then, rage, fury and malice (im- placable because unprovoked) recruiting and reinforcing their avarice, their vices are no longer human. From cruel men they are transformed into savage beasts, with no other vestiges of reason left but what serves to furnish the inventions and refinements of ferocious subtlety, for purposes of which beasts are incapable, and at which fiends would blush. Debi Sing and his instruments suspected, and in a few cases they suspected justly, that the country people had purloined from their own estates, and had hidden in secret places in the circumjacent deserts, some small reserve of their own grain to maintain themselves during the unproductive months of the year, and to leave some hope for a future season. But the under tyrants knew, that the demands of Mr. Hastings would admit no plea for delay, much less for subtraction of his bribe, and that he would not abate a shilling of it to the wants of the whole human race. These hoards, real or supposed, not being discovered by menaces and imprisonment, they fell upon the last resource, the naked bodies of the people. And here, my lords, began such a scene of cruelties and tortures, as I believe no history has ever presented to the indignation of the world ; such as I am sure, in the most barbarous ages, no politic tyran- ny, no fanatic persecution has ever yet exceeded. Mr. Pater- son, the commissioner appointed to inquire into the state of the country, makes his own apology and mine for opening this scene of horrors to you in the following words : " That the punishments, inflicted upon the ryotts both of Runc;pore and Dinagepore for non-payment, were in many instances of such a nature, that I would rather wish to draw a veil over them, than shock your feelings by the detail. But that however disagreeable the task may be to myself, it is absolutely neces- sary for the sake of justice, humanity, and the honor of gov- ernment, that they should be exposed, to be prevented in future." 27* 318 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE My lords, they began by winding cords round the fingers of the unhappy freeholders of those provinces, until they clung to and were almost incorporated with one another ; and then they hammered wedges of iron between them, until, regardless of the cries of the suflerers, they had bruised to pieces and for ever crippled those poor, honest, innocent, laborious hands, which had never been raised to their mouths, but with a penuri- ous and scanty proportion of the fruits of their own soil ; but those fruits (denied to the wants of their own children) have for more than fifteen years past furnished the investment for our trade with China, and been sent annually out, and without recompense, to purchase for us that delicate meal, Math which your lordships, and all this auditory, and all this country, have begun every day for these fifteen years at their expense. To those beneficent hands, that labor for our benefit, the return of the British government has been cords, and hammers, and wedges. But there is a place where these crippled and disabled hands will act with resistless power. What is it, that they will not pull down, when they are lifted to heaven against their oppressors 1 Then what can withstand such hands 1 Can the power, that crushed and destroyed them 1 Powerful in prayer, let us at least deprecate, and thus endeavor to secure ourselves from, the vengeance, which these mashed and disabled hands may pull down upon us. My lords, it is an awful consideration. Let us think of it. But to pursue this melancholy but necessary detail. I am next to open to your lordships, what I am hereafter to prove, that the most substantial and leading yeomen, the responsible farmers, the parochial magistrates, and chiefs of villages, were tied two and two by the legs together ; and their tormentors, throwing them with their heads downwards over a bar, beat them on the soles of the feet with ratans, until the nails fell from the toes ; and then attacking them at their heads, as they hung downward, as before at their feet, they beat them with sticks and other instruments of blind fury, until the blood gushed out at their eyes, mouths, and noses. Not thinking that the ordinary whips and cudgels, even so administered, were sulficient, to others (and often also to the same, who had suflered as I have stated) they applied, instead of ratan and bamboo, whips made of the branches of the bale tree ; a tree full of sharp and strong thorns, which tear the skin and lacerate the flesh far worse than ordinary scourges. For others, exploring with a searching and inquisitive malice, stimulated by an insatiate rapacity, all the devious paths of na- ture for whatever is most unfriendly to man, they made rods of a plant highly caustic and poisonous, called bechetiea, every IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 319 wound of which festers and gangrenes, adds double and treble to the present torture, leaves a crust of leprous sores upon the body, and often ends in the destruction of life itself. At night, these poor innocent sufferers, these martyrs of ava- rice and extortion, were brought into dungeons; and in the season when nature takes refuge in insensibility from all the miseries and cares which wait on life, they were three times scourged, and made to reckon the watches of the night by pe- riods and intervals of torment. They were then led out in the severe depth of winter, which there at certain seasons would be severe to any, to the Indians is most severe and almost in- tolerable, — they were led out before break of day, and, stiff and sore as they were with the bruises and w^ounds of the night, were plunged into water ; and whilst their jaws clung together with the cold, and their bodies were rendered infinitely more sensible, the blows and stripes were renewed upon their backs; and then, delivering them over to soldiers, they were sent into their farms and villages to discover where a few handfuls of grain might be found concealed, or to extract some loan from the remnants of compassion and courage not subdued in those, who had reason to fear, that their own turn of torment would be next, that they should succeed them in the same punishment, and that their very humanity, being taken as a proof of their wealth, would subject them (as it did in many cases subject them) to the same inhuman tortures. After this circuit of the day through their plundered and ruined villages, they were re- manded at night to the same prison ; whipped, as before, at their return to the dungeon ; and at morning whipped at their leav- ing it ; and then sent as before to purchase, by begging in the day, the reiteration of the torture in the night. Days of menace, insult, and extortion ; — nights of bolts, fetters, and flagellation succeeded to each other in the same round, and for a long time made up all the vicissitude of life to these miserable people. But there are persons, whose fortitude could bear their own suffering ; there are men, who are hardened by their very pains; and the mind, strengthened even by the torments of the body, rises with a strong defiance against its oppressor. They were assaulted on the side of their sympathy. Children were scourged almost to death in the presence of their parents. This was not enough. The son and father were bound close together, face to face, and body to body, and in that situation cruelly lashed together, so that the blow, which escaped the father, fell upon the son, and the blow, which missed the son, wound over the back of the parent. The circumstances were combined by so subtle a cruelty, that every stroke, which did not excruciate the 320 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE sense, should wound and lacerate the sentiments and affections of nature. On the same principle, and for the same ends, virgins, who had never seen the sun, were dragged from the inmost sanctua- ries of their houses ; and in the open court of justice, in the very place where security was to be sought against all wrong and all violence, (but where no judge or lawful magistrate had long sat, but in their place the ruffians and hangmen of Warren Hastings occupied the bench,) these virgins, vainly invoking heaven and earth, in the presence of their parents, and whilst their shrieks were mingled with the indignant cries and groans of all the people, publicly were violated by the lowest and wickedest of the human race. Wives were torn from the arms of their husbands, and suffered the same flagitious wrongs, which were indeed hid in the bottoms of the dungeons, in which their honor and their liberty were buried together. Often they were taken out of the refuge of this consoling gloom, stripped naked, and thus exposed to the world, and then cruelly scourged; and in order that cruelty might riot in all the circumstances, that melt into tenderness the fiercest natures, the nipples of their breasts were put between the sharp and elastic sides of cleft bamboos. Here, in my hand, is my authority ; for otherwise one would think it incredible. But it did not end there. Grow- ing from crime to crime, ripened by cruelty for cruelty, these fiends, at length outraging sex, decency, nature, applied lighted torches and slow fire — (I cannot proceed for shame and hor- ror !) these infernal furies planted death in the source of life, and where that modesty, which, more than reason, distinguishes men from beasts, retires from the view, and even shrinks from the expression, there they exercised and glutted their unnatural, monstrous, and nefarious cruelty, — there, where the reverence of nature, and the sanctity of justice, dares not to pursue, nor venture to describe their practices. These, my lords, were sufferings, which we feel all in com- mon, in India and in England, by the general sympathy of our common nature. But there were in that province (sold to the tormentors by Mr. Hastings,) things done, which, from the pe- culiar manners of India, were even worse than all I have laid before you ; as the dominion of manners, and the law of opin- ion, contribute more to their happiness and misery than any- thing in mere sensitive nature can do. The women thus treated lost their caste. My lords, we are not here to commend or blame the institutions and prejudices of a whole race of people, radicated in them by a long succes- sion of ages, on which no reason or argument, on which no vi- cissitudes of things, no mixtures of men, or foreign conquest, IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 321 have been able to make the smallest impression. The aborigi- nal Gentu inhabitants are all dispersed into tribes or castes ; each caste born to an invariable rank, rights, and descriptions of em- ployment ; so that one caste cannot by any means pass into an- other. With the Gentus certain impurities or disgraces, though without any guilt of the party, infer loss of caste ; and when the highest caste, that of Brahmin, which is not only noble but sacred, is lost, the person, who loses it, does not slide down into one lower but reputable — ;he is wholly driven from all honest society. All the relations of life are at once dissolved. His parents are no longer his parents ; his wife is no longer his wife ; his children, no longer his, are no longer to regard him as their father. It is something far worse than complete out- lawry, complete attainder, and universal excommunication. It is a pollution even to touch him ; and if he touches any of his old caste, they are justified in putting him to death. Contagion, leprosy, plague, are not so much shunned. No honest occupa- tion can be followed. He becomes an Halichore, if (which is rare) he survives that miserable degradation. Upon those, whom all the shocking catalogue of tortures I have mentioned could not make to flinch, one of the modes of losing caste for Brahmins, and other principal tribes, was prac- tised. It was, to harness a bullock at the court door, and to put the Brahmin on his back, and to lead him through the towns, with drums beating before him. To intimidate others, this bullock, with drums, the instrument according to their ideas of outrage, disgrace, and utter loss of caste, was led through the country ; and, as it advanced, the country fled before it. When any Brahmin was seized he was threatened with this pillory, and for the most part he submitted in a moment to whatever was ordered. What it was may be thence judged. But when no possibility existed of complying with the demand, the people by their cries sometimes prevailed on the tyrants to have it commuted for cruel scourging, which was accepted as mercy. To some Brahmins this mercy was denied, and the act of indelible infamy executed. Of these men one came to the company's commissioner with the tale, and ended with these melancholy words, — " I have suffered this indignity; my caste is lost ; my life is a burden to me ; I call for justice." He called in vain. Your lordships will not wonder, that these monstrous and oppressive demands, exacted with such tortures, threw the whole province into despair. They abandoned their crops on the ground. The people, in a body, would have fled out of its confines ; but bands of soldiers invested the avenues of the province, and, making a line of circumvallation, drove back 2Q 322 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE tliose wretches, who sought exile as a relief, into the prison of their native soil. Not suffered to quit the district, they fled to the many wild thickets, which oppression had scattered through it, and sought amongst the jungles, and dens of tygers, a refuge from the tyranny of Warren Hastings. Not able long to exist here, pressed at once by wild beasts and famine, the same despair drove them back; and seeking their last resource in arms, the most quiet, the most passive, the most timid of the human race, rose up in an universal insurrection ; and, what will always happen in popular tumults, the effects of the fury of the people fell on the meaner and sometimes the reluctant mstruments of the tyranny, who in several places were mas- sacred. The insurrection began in Rungpore, and soon spread its fire to the neighboring provinces, which had been harassed by the same person with the same oppressions. The English chief in that province had been the silent witness, most proba- bly the abettor and accomplice, of all these horrors. He called in first irregular, and then regular, troops, who by dreadful and universal military execution got the better of the impotent re- sistance of unarmed and undisciplined despair. I am tired with the detail of the cruelties of peace. I spare you those of a cruel and inhuman war, and of the executions, which, without law or process, or even the shadow of authority, were ordered by the English revenue chief in that province. It has been necessary to lay these facts before you (and I have stated them to your lordships far short of their reality, partly through my infirmity, and partly on account of the odious- ness of the task of going through things, that disgrace human nature) that you may be enabled fully to enter into the dreadful consequences, which attend a system of bribery and corrup- tion in a governor-general. On a transient view, bribery is rather a subject of disgust than horror ; the sordid practice of a venal, mean, and abject mind ; and the effect of the crime seems to end with the act. It looks to be no more than the corrupt transfer of property from one person to another ; at worst a theft. But it will appear in a very different light, when you regard the consideration, for which the bribe is given ; namely, that a governor-general, claiming an arbitrary power in himself, for that consideration delivers up the properties, the liberties, and the lives of a whole people to the arbitrary dis- cretion of any wicked and rapacious person, who will be sure to make good from their blood the purchase he has paid for his power over them. It is possible, that a man may pay a bribe merely to redeem himself from some evil. It is bad however to live under a power, whose violence has no restraint except in its avarice. But no man ever paid a bribe for a power to IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 323 charge and tax others, but with a view to oppress them. No man ever paid a bribe for the handhng of the pubhc money, but to peculate from it. When once such otiices become thus privately and corruptly venal, the very worst men will be cho- sen (as Mr. Hastings has in fact constantly chosen the very worst,) because none but those, who do not scruple the use of any means, are capable, consistently with profit, to discharge at once the rigid demands of a severe public revenue, and the private bribes of a rapacious chief magistrate. Not only the worst men will be thus chosen, but they will be restrained by no dread whatsoever in the execution of their worst oppres- sions. Their protection is sure. The authority that is to re- strain, to control, to punish them, is previously engaged ; he has his retaining fee for the support of their crimes. Mr. Hast- ings never dared, because he could not, arrest oppression in its course, without drying up the source of his own corrupt emolu- ment. Mr. Hastings never dared, after the fact, to punish ex- tortion in others, because he could not, without risking the dis- covery of bribery in himself. The same corruption, the same oppression, and the same impunhy, will reign through all the subordinate gradations. A fair revenue may be collected without the aid of wicked, violent, and unjust instruments. But, when once the line of just and legal demand is transgressed, such instruments arc of ab- solute necessity ; and they comport themselves accordingly. When we know, that men must be well paid (and they ought to be well paid) for the performance of honorable duty, can we think, that men will be found to commit wicked, rapacious, and oppressive acts with fidelity and disinterestedness, for the sole emolument of dishonest employers? No; they must have their full share of the prey, and the greater share as they are the nearer and more necessary instruments of the general extortion. We must not therefore flatter ourselves, when Mr. Hastings takes 40,000/. in bribes for Dinagcpore and its annexed prov- inces, that from the people nothing more than 40,000/. is extorted. I speak within compass, four times forty must be levied on the people; and these violent sales, fraudulent pur- chases, confiscations, inhuman and unutterable tortures, impris- onment, irons, whips, fines, general despair, general insurrection, the massacre of the officers of revenue by the people, the mas- sacre of the people by the soldiery, and the total waste and destruction of the finest provinces in India, are things of course; and all a necessary consequence involved in the very substance of Mr. Hastings's bribery. I, therefore, charge Mr. Hastings with having destroyed, for 324 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH ON THE private purposes, the whole system of government by the six provincial councils, which he had no right to destroy. I charge him with iiaving delegated to others that power, which the act of parliament had directed him to preserve un- alienably in himself. I charge him with having formed a committee to be mere instruments and tools, at the enormous expense of 62,000/. per annum. I charge him with having app-^inted a person their dewan, to whom these Englishmen were to be subservient tools ; whose name, to his own knowledge, was by the general voice of India, by the general recorded voice of the company, by recorded otficial transactions, by everything, that can make a man known, abhorred, and detested, stamped with infamy; and with giving him the whole power, which he had thus separated from the council-general, and from the provincial councils. I charge him with taking bribes of Gunga Covin Sing. I charge him with not having done that bribe-service, which fidelity even in iniquity requires at the hands of the worst of men. I charge him with having robbed those people, of whom he took the bribes. I charge him with having fraudulently alienated the fortunes of widows. I charge him with having, without rignt, titie, or purcnase, taken the lands of orphans, and given them to wicked persons, under him. I char<];e him with havinix removed the natural guardians of a mmor rajah, and with having given that trust to a stranger, Debi Sing, whose wickedness was known to himself and all the world ; and by w'hom the rajah, his family, and dependants, were cruelly oppressed. I charge him with having committed to the management of Debi Sing three great provinces; and thereby, with having wasted the country, ruined the landed interest, cruelly harassed the peasants, burnt their houses, seized their crops, tortured and degraded their persons, and destroyed the honor of the whole female race of that country. In the name of the Commons of England, I charge all this villany upon Warren Hastings, in this last moment of my ap- plication to you. My lords, what is it, that we want here to a great act of na- tional justice ? Do we want a cause, my lords? You have the cause of oppressed princes, of undone women of the first rank, of desolated provinces, and of wasted kingdoms. Do you want a criminal, my lords ? When was there so IMPEACHMENT OF WARREN HASTINGS, ESQ. 325 much iniquity ever laid to the charge of any one ? — No, my lords, you must not look to punish any other such delinquent from India. — Warren Hastings has not left substance enough in India to nourish such another delinquent. My lords, is it a prosecutor you want? — You have before you the Commons of Great Britain as prosecutors; and, I be- lieve, my lords, that the sun, in his beneficent progress round the world, does not behold a more glorious sight than that of men, separated from a remote people by the material bounds and barriers of nature, united by the bond of a social and moral community ; — all the Commons of England resenting, as their own, the indignities and cruelties, that are offered to all the people of India. Do w^e want a tribunal ? My lords, no example of antiqui- ty, nothing in the modern world, nothing in the range of human imagination, can supply us with a tribunal like this. My lords, here we see virtually in the mind's eye that sacred majesty of the crown, under whose authority you sit, and whose power you exercise. We see in that invisible authority, what we all feel in reality and Yik, the beneficent powers and protecting justice of his majesty. We have here the heir apparent to the crown, such as the fond washes of the people of England wish an heir apparent of the crown to be. We have here all the branches of the royal family in a situation between majesty and subjection, between the sovereign and the subject, — offering a pledge in that situation for the support of the rights of the crown, and the liberties of the people, both which extremities they touch. My lords, we have a great hereditary peerage here; those, who have their own honor, the honor of their ancestors, and of their posterity, to guard ; and who will justify, as they have always justified, that provision in the con- stitution, by which justice is made an hereditary ollice. My lords, we have here a new nobility, who have risen, and ex- alted themselves by various merits, by great military services, which have extended the fame of this country from the rising to the setting sun : we have those, Avho by various civil merits and various civil talents have been exalted to a situation, which they well deserve, and in which they will justify the favor of their sovereign, and the good opinion of their fellow subjects ; and make them rejoice to see those virtuous characters, that were the other day upon a level with them, now exalted above them in rank, but feeling with them in sympathy what they felt in common with them before. We have persons exalted from the practice of the law, from the place in which they administered high, though subordinate, justice, to a seat here, to enlifrhten whh their knowledcje, and to strengthen w'ith their 28 326 MR. BURKE'S SPEECH, &c. votes those principles, which have distinguished the courts, in which they have presided. My lords, you have here also the lights of our religion ; you have the bishops of England. My lords, you have that true image of the primitive church in its ancient form, in its ancient ordinances, purified from the superstitions and the vices which a long succession of ages will bring upon the best institutions. You have the representatives of that religion, which says, that their God is love, that the very vital spirit of their institution is charity ; a religion, which so much hates oppression, that, when the God, whom we adore, appeared in human form, he did not appear in a form of greatness and majesty, but in sympa- thy with the lowest of the people, — and thereby made it a firm and ruling principle, that their welfare was the object of all government ; since the person, who was the Master of Nature, chose to appear himself in a subordinate situation. These are the considerations, which influence them, which animate them, and will animate them, against all oppression ; knowing, that He, who is called first among them, and first among us all, both of the flock that is fed, and of those who feed it, made Him- self " the servant of all." My lords, these are the securities, which we have in all the constituent parts of the body of this house. We know them, we reckon, we rest upon them, and commit safely the interests of India and of humanity into your hands. Therefore, it is with confidence, that, ordered by the Commons, I impeach Warren Hastings, Esquire, of high crimes and misdemeanors. I impeach him in the name of the Commons of Great Britain in parliament assembled, whose parliamentary trust he has be- trayed. I impeach him in the name of all the Commons of Great Britain, whose national character he has dishonored. I impeach him in the name of the people of India, whose laws, rights, and liberties he has subverted ; whose properties he has destroyed, whose country he has laid waste and desolate. I impeach him in the name, and by virtue, of those eternal laws of justice, which he has violated. I impeach him in the name of human nature itself, which he has cruelly outraged, injured, and oppressed in both sexes, in every age, rank, situation, and condition of life. MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH, DEFENCE OF THE LIBERTY OF THE PRESS, DELIVERED ON THE TRIAL OF THOMAS PAINE FOR A LIBEL. Gentlemen of the Jury, The Attorney General, in that part of his address which re- ferred to a letter, supposed to have been written to him from France, exhibited signs of strong sensibility and emotion. — I do not, I am sure, charge him with acting a part to seduce you; — on the contrary, I am persuaded, from my own feelings, and from my acquaintance with my friend from our childhood upwards, that he expressed himself as he felt. But, gentlemen, if he felt those painful embarrassments, you may imagine what MINE must be : — he can only feel for the august character whom he represents in this place, as a subject for his Sovereign, too far removed by custom from the intercourses which generate affections, to produce any other sentiments than those that flow from a relation common to us all; but it will be remembered, that I stand in the same relation towards another great person more deeply implicated by this supposed letter ; who, not re- strained from the cultivation of personal attachments by those qualifications which must always secure them, has exalted my duty to a Prince, into a warm and honest affection between man and man. Thus circumstanced, I certainly should have been glad to have had an earlier opportunity of knowing cor- rectly the contents of this letter, and whether (which I positively deny) it proceeded from the defendant. Coming thus suddenly upon us, I see but too plainly the impression it has made upon you who are to try the caUse, and I feel its weight upon myself, who am to conduct it ; but this shall neither detach me from my duty, nor enervate me (if I can help it) in the discharge of it. 1 If the Attorney General be well founded in the commentaries he has made to you upon the book which he prosecutes; — if he be warranted by the law of England, in repressing its circula- tion, from the illegal and dangerous matters contained in it ; — if that suppression be, as he avows it, and as in common sense it must be, the sole object of the prosecution, the public has 328 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH ON THE great reason to lament that this letter should have been at alf brought into the service of the cause : — It is no part of the charge upon the record ; — it had no existence for months after the work was composed and published; — it was not written by the defendant, if written by him at all, till after he had been in a manner insultingly expelled from the country by the influence of government; it was not even written till he had become the subject of another country. It cannot, therefore, by any fair inference decipher the mind of the author when he composed his work: still less can it affect the construction of the language in which it is written. The introduction of this letter at all is, therefore, not only a departure from the charge, but a derelic- tion of the object of the prosecution, which is to condemn Vie liook: — since, if the condemnation of the author is to be ob- tained, not by the icorh itself, but by collateral matter not even existing when it was written, nor known to its various publish- ers throughout the kingdom, how can a verdict upon such grounds condemn the work, or criminate other publishers, strangers to the collateral matter on which the conviction may be obtained to-day? I maintain, therefore, upon every principle of sound pohcy, as it affects the interests of the Crown, and upon everv rule of justice, as it affects the author of The Rights of Man, that the letter should be wholly dismissed from your consideration. Gentlemen, the Attorney General has thought it necessary to inform you, that a rumor had been spread, and had reached his ears, that he only carried on the prosecution as a public prosecutor, but without the concurrence of his own judgment ; and therefore to add the just weight of his private character to his public duty, and to repel what he thinks a calumny, he tells you that he should have deserved to have been driven from society, if he had not arraigned the work and the author before vou. Here too we stand in situations very different: — I have no doubt of the existence of such a rumor, and of its having reached his ears, because he says so; but for the narrow circle in which any rumor, personally implicating my learned friend's character, has extended, I might appeal to the multitudes who surround us, and ask, which of them all, except the few con- nected in office with the crown, ever heard of its existence. But with regard to myself, every man within hearing at this moment, nay, the whole people of England, have been witnesses to the calumnious clamor that, by every art, has been raised and kept up against me: in every place, where business or pleasure collects the public together, day after day my name and character have been the topics of injurious reflection. And for what"? — onlv for not having shrunk from the discharge of a TRIAL OF THOMAS PAINE. 329 duty, which no personal advantage recommended, and which a thousand difficulties repelled. But, Gentlemen, I have no complaint to make, either against the printers of these libels, nor even against their authors : — the greater part of them, hur- ried perhaps away by honest prejudices, may have believed they were serving their country by rendering vie the object of its suspicion and contempt; and if there have been amongst them others who have mixed in it from personal malice and unkindness, I thank God 1 can forgive them also. — Little indeed did they know me, who thought that such calumnies would in- fluei>ce my conduct : I will for ever, at all hazards, assert the dignity, independence, and integrity of the E\glish Bar ; with- out which, impartial justice, the most valuable part of the Eng- lish constitution, can have no existence. From the moment that any advocate can be permitted to say, that he will or will not stand between the crown and the subject arraigned in the court where he daily sits to practise, from that moment the liberties of England are at an end. If the advocate refuses to defend, from what he may think of the charge or of the defence, he assumes the character of the Judge ; nay, he assumes it be- fore the hour of judgment; and in proportion to his rank and reputation, puts the heavy influence of, perhaps, a mistaken opinion into the scale against the accused, in whose favor the benevolent principle of English law makes all presumptions, and which commands the very judge to be his counsel. Gentlemen, it is now my duty to address myself without digression to the defence. The first thing which presents itself in the discussion of any subject, is to state distinctly, and with precision, what the ques- tion is, and, where prejudice and misrepresentation have been exerted, to distinguish it accurately from what it is not. The question then is not, whether the constitution of our fathers, under which we live — under which I present myself before you, and under which alone you have any jurisdiction to hear me — be or be not preferable to the constitution of America or France, or any other human constitution. For upon what principle can a court, constituted by the authority of any government, and administering a positive system of law, under it, pronounce a decision against the constitution which creates its authority; or the rule of action which its jurisdiction is to enforce ? — The common sense of the most uninformed person must revolt at such an absurd supposition. I have no difficulty, therefore, in admitting, that if by acci- dent some or all of you were alienated in opinion and affection from the forms and principles of the English government, and were impressed with the value of that unmixed representative 2 R 28* 330 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH ON THE constitution which this work recommends and inculcates, you could not, on that account, acquit the defendant. Nay, to speak out plainly, I freely admit that even if you were avowed ene- mies to monarchy, and devoted to republicanism, you would be nevertheless bound by your oaths, as a jury sworn to ad- minister justice according to the Enghsh law, to convict the author of The Rights of Man, if it were brought home to your consciences, that he had exceeded those widely extended bounds which the ancient wisdom and liberal policy of the English constitution have allotted to the range of a free press. I freely concede this, because you have no jurisdiction to judge either the author or the work, by any rule but that of English law, which is the source of your authority. But having made this large concession, it follows, by a consequence so inevitable as to be invulnerable to all argument or artifice, that if, on the other hand, you should be impressed (which I know you to be) not only with a dutiful regard, but with an enthusiasm, for the whole form and substance of your own government; and though you should think that this work, in its circulation amongst classes of men unequal to political researches, may tend to alienate opinion ; still you cannot, upoji such grounds, without a similar breach of duty, convict the defendant of a libel, — unless he has clearly stepped beyond that extended range of communication which the same ancient wisdom and liberal policy of the British constitution has allotted for the liberty of the press. Gentlemen, I admit, with the Attorney General, that in every case where a court has to estimate the quality of a writing, the ?nind and intention of the writer must be taken into the ac- count ; — the bona or mala fides, as lawyers express it, must be examined : for a writing may undoubtedly proceed from a mo- tive, and be directed to a purpose, not to be deciphered by the mere construction of the thing written. But wherever a wri- ting is arraigned as seditious or slanderous, not upon its ordi- nary construction in language, nor from the necessary conse- quences of its publication, under aiiy circumstances and at all times, but that the criminality springs from some extrinsic mat- ter, not visible upon the page itself, nor universally operative, but capable only of being connected with it by evidence, so as to demonstrate the effect of the publication, and the design of the publisher; such a writing, not libellous per se, cannot be arraigned as the author's work is arraigned upon the record before the court. I maintain, without the hazard of contradic- tion, that the law of England positively requires, for the secu- rity of the subject, that every charge of a libel complicated with extrinsic facts and circumstances, dehors Vie writing, must TRIAL OF THOMAS PAINE. 331 appear literally upon the record by an averment of such ex- trinsic facts and circumstances, that the defendant may know what crime he is called upon to answer, and how to stand upon his defence. What crime is it that the defendant comes to an- swer for to-day? — what is the notice that I, who am his coun- sel, have from this parchment of the crime alleged against him 1 — I come to defend his having written this book. The record states nothing else : — the general charge of sedition in the introduction is notoriously paper and packthread ; because the innuendoes cannot enlarge the sense or natural construction of the text. The record does not state any one extrinsic fact or circumstance, to render the work criminal, at one time more than another; it states no peculiarity of time or season, or in- tention, not proveable from the writing itself, which is the naked charge upon record. There is nothing therefore which gives you any jurisdiction beyond the construction of the work itself; and you cannot be justified in finding it criminal because pub- lished at this time, unless it would have been a criminal publi- cation under any circumstances, or at any other time. The law of England then, both in its forms and substance, being the only rule by which the author or the work can be justified or condemned, and the charge upon the record being the naked charge of a libel, the cause resolves itself into a ques- tion of the deepest importance to us all, the nature and ex- tent OF THE LIBERTY OF THE EnGLISH PRESS. But before I enter upon it, I wish to fulfil a duty to the de- fendant, which, if I do not deceive myself, is at this moment peculiarly necessary to his impartial trial. — If an advocate en- tertains sentiments injurious to the defence he is engaged in, he is not only justified, but bound in duty, to conceal them ; so, on the other hand, if his own genuine sentiments, or anything connected with his character or situation, can add strength to his professional assistance, he is bound to throw them into the scale. In addressing myself, therefore, to gentlemen not only zealous for the honor of English government, but visibly indig- nant at any attack upon its principles, and who would, perhaps, be impatient of arguments from a suspected quarter, I give my client the benefit of declaring, that I am, and ever have been, attached to the genuine principles of the British government ; and that, however the court or you may reject the application, I defend him upon principles not only consistent with its per- manence and security, but without the establishment of which, it never could have had an existence. The proposition which I mean to maintain as the basis of the liberty of the press, and without which it is an empty sound, is this ; — that every man, not intending to mislead, but 332 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH ON THE seeking to enlighten»others with what his own reason and con- science, however erroneously, have dictated to him as truth, may address himself to the universal reason of a whole nation, either upon the subject of governments in general, or upon that of our own particular country : — that he may analyze the prin- ciples of its constitution, — point out its errors and defects, — examine and publish its corruptions, — warn his fellow-citizens against their ruinous consequences, and exert his whole facul- ties in pointing out the most advantageous changes in establish- ments which he considers to be radically defective, or sliding from their object by abuse. — All this every subject of this country has a right to do, if he contemplates only what he thinks would be for its advantage, and but seeks to change the public mind by the conviction which flows from reasonings dic- tated by conscience. If, indeed, he writes what he does not think ; — if, contemplating the misery of others, he wickedly condemns what his own un- derstanding approves ; — or, even admitting his real disgust against the government or its corruptions, if he calumniates living magistrates, — or holds out to individuals, that they have a right to run before the public mind in their conduct, — that they may oppose by contumacy or force what private reason only disapproves ; — that they may disobey the law, because their judgment condemns it ; — or resist the public will, because they honestly wish to change it — he is then a criminal upon every principle of rational policy, as well as upon the imme- morial precedents of English justice ; because such a person seeks to disunite individuals from their duty to the whole, and excites to overt acts of misconduct in a part of the community, instead of endeavoring to change, by the impulse of reason, that universal assent which, in this and in every country, con- stitutes the law for all. I have therefore no difficulty in admitting, that, if, upon an attentive perusal of this work, it shall be found that the Defend- ant has promulgated any doctrines which excite individuaJs to withdraw from their subjection to the law by which the whole nation consents to be governed; — if his book shall be found to have warranted or excited that unfortunate criminal who appeared here yesterday to endeavor to relieve himself from imprisonment, by the destruction of a prison, or dictated to him the language of defiance which ran through the whole of his defence ; — if throughout the work there shall be found any syllable or letter, which strikes at the security of property, or which hints that anything less than the whole nation can con- stitute the law, or that the law, be it what it ma}^ is not the TRIAL OF THOMAS PAINE. 333 inexorable rule of action for every individual, I w^illingly yield him up to the justice of the Court. Gentlemen, I say, in the name of Thomas Paine, and in his words as author of the Rights of Man, as written in the very volume that is charged with seeking the destruction of property, " The end of all political associations is, the preservation of the rights of man, which rights are liberty, property, and secu- rity ; that the nation is the source of all sovereignty derived from it : the right of property being secured and inviolable, no one ought to be deprived of it, except in cases of evident pub- lic necessity, legally ascertained, and on condition of a previous just indemnity." These are undoubtedly the rights of man — the rights for which all governments are established — and the only rights Mr. Paine contends for; but which he thinks (no matter whether right or wrong) are better to be secured by a republican con- stitution than by the forms of the English government. He instructs me to admit, that, when government is once consti- tuted, no individuals, without rebellion, can withdraw their obedience from it, — that all attempts to excite them to it are highly criminal, for the most obvious reasons of policy and justice, — that nothing short of the will of a whole people can change or affect the rule by which a nation is to be governed — and that no private opinion, however honestly inimical to the forms or substance of the law, can justify resistance to its au- thority, while it remains in force. The author of the Rights of Man not only admits the truth of all this doctrine, but he con- sents to be convicted, and I also consent for him, unless his work shall be found studiously and painfully to inculcate these great principles of government which it is charged to have been written to destroy. Let me not, therefore, be suspected to be contending, that it is lawful to write a book pointing out defects in the English government, and exciting individuals to destroy its sanctions, and to refuse obedience. But, on the other hand, I do contend, that it is lawful to address the English nation on these moment- ous subjects; for had it not been for this unalienable right (thanks be to God and our fathers for establishing it,) how should we have had this constitution which we so loudly boast of? — If, in the march of the human mind, no man could have gone before the establishments of the time he lived in, how could our establishment, by reiterated changes, have become what it is ? — If no man could have awakened the public mind to errors and abuses in our government, how could it have passed on from stage to stage, through reformation and revolution, so as 334 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH ON THE to have arrived from barbarism to such a pitch of happiness and perfection, that the Attorney-General considers it as pro- fanation to touch it farther, or to look for any future amend- ment ? In this manner power has reasoned in every age : — govern- ment, in its oicn estimation, has been at all times a system of perfection ; but a free press has examined and detected its er- rors, and the people have from time to time reformed them. This freedom has alone made our government what it is ; this freedom alone can preserve it ; and therefore, under the banners of that freedom, to-day 1 stand up to defend Thomas Paine. — But how, alas! shall this task be accomplished? — How may I expect from you what human nature has not made man for the performance of? — How am I to address your reasons, or ask them to pause, amidst the torrent of prejudice which has hur- ried away the public mind on the subject you are to judge? Was any Englishman ever so brought as a criminal before an English court of justice ? — If I were to ask you, gentlemen of the jury, what is the choicest fruit that grows upon the tree of English liberty, you would answer, security u\der the law If I were to ask the whole people of England, the return they looked for at the hands of government, for the burdens under which they bend to support it, I should still be answered, secu- rity UNDER the law ; or, in other words, an impartial admin- istration of justice. So sacred, therefore, has the freedom of trial been ever held in England ; — so anxiously does Justice guard against every possible bias in her path, that if the public mind has been locally agitated upon any subject in judgment, the forum has either been changed, or the trial postponed. The circulation of any paper that brings, or can be supposed to bring, prejudice, or even well-founded knowledge, within the reach of a British tribunal, on the spur of an occasion, is not only highly criminal, but defeats itself, by leading to put off the trial which its object was to pervert. On this principle, the noble and learned judge will permit me to remind him, that on the trial of the Dean of St. Asaph for a libel, or rather when he was brought to trial, the circulation of books by a society favorable to his defence, was held by his lordship, as chief jus- tice of Chester, to be a reason for not trying the cause; although they contained no matter relative to the dean, nor to the object of his trial ; being only extracts from ancient authors of high reputation, on the general rights of juries to consider the innocence as well as the guilt of the accused ; yet still, as the recollection of these rights was pressed forward with a view to affect the proceedings, the proceedings were post- poned. TRIAL OF THOMAS PAINE. 335 Is the defendant then to be the only exception to these admi- rable provisions? — Is the English law to judge him, stript of the armor with which its universal justice encircles all others? — Shall we, in the very act of judging him for detracting from the English govei'nment, furnish him with ample matter for just reprobation, instead of detraction ? — Has not his cause been prejudged through a thousand channels 1 — Has not the work before you been daily and publicly reviled, and his person held up to derision and reproach ? — Has not the public mind been excited, by crying down the very phrase and idea of the Rights of Man ? Nay, have not associations of gentlemen, I speak it with regret, because I am persuaded, from what I know of some of them, that they, amongst them at least, thought they were serving the public ; — yet have they not, in utter contempt and ignorance of that constitution of which they declare them- selves to be the guardians, published the grossest attacks upon the defendant ? — Have they not, even while the cause has been standing here for immediate trial, published a direct protest against the very work now before you ; advertising in the same paper, though under the general description of seditious libels, a reward on the conviction of any person who should dare to sell the book itself, to which their own publication was an an- swer ? — The Attorney General has spoken of a forced circu- lation of this work ; — but how have these prejudging papers been circulated ? — we all know how. They have been thrown into our carriages in every street ; — they have met us at every turnpike ; — and they lie in the areas of all our houses. To com- plete the triuQiph of prejudice, that high tribunal, of which I have the honor to be a member (my learned friends know what I say to be true,) has been drawn into this vortex of slander ; and some of its members, I must not speak of the House itself, have thrown the weight of their stations into the same scale. By all these means, I maintain that this cause has been pre- judged. It may be said, that I have made no motion to put off the trial for these causes, and that courts of themselves take no cognizance of what passes elsewhere, without facts laid before them. Gentlemen, I know that I should have had equal justice from the Court, if I had brought myself within the rule. But when should I have been better in the present aspect of things ? and I only remind you therefore of all these hardships, that you may recollect, that your judgment is to proceed upon that alone which meets you here, upon the evidence in the cause, and not upon suggestions destructive of every principle of justice. Having disposed of these foreign prejudices, I hope you will as little regard some arguments that have been offered to 336 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH ON THE you in court. The letter which has been so repeatedly pressed upon you, ought to be dismissed even from your recollection. — I have already put it out of the question, as having been written long subsequent to the book, and as being a libel on the king, which no part of the information charges, and which may hereafter be pi'osecuted as a distinct offence. I consider that letter besides, and indeed have always heard it treated, as a forgery, contrived to injure tiie merits of the cause, and to embarrass me personally in its defence. I have a right so to consider it, because it is unsupported by anything similar at an earlier period. The defendant's whole deportment, previous to the publication, has been wholly unexceptionable : — he prop- erly desired to be given up as the author of the book, if any inquiry should take place concerning it ; and he is not affected in evidence, directly or indirectly, with any illegal or suspicious conduct; not even with having uttered an indiscreet or taunt- ing expression, nor with any one matter or thing, inconsistent with the duty of the best subject in England. His opinio-ns indeed were adverse to our system ; — but 1 maintain that opin- ion is free, and that conduct alone is amenable to the law. You are next desired to judge of the author's mind and inten- tion, by the modes and extent of the circulation of his work. The FIRST Part of the Rights of Man, Mr. Attorney General tells you, he did not prosecute, although it was in circulation through the country for a year and a half together, because it seems it circulated only amongst what he styles the judicious part of the public, who possessed in their capacities and expe- rience an antidote to the poison ; but that with regard to the SECOND Part now before you, its circulation had been forced into every corner of society; had been printed and reprinted for cheapness even upon whited brown paper, and had crept into the very nurseries of children, as a wrapper for their sweet- meats. In answer to this statement, which after all stands only upon Mr. Attorney General's own assertion, unsupported by any kind of proof (no witness having proved the author's personal interference with the sale,) I still maintain, that, if he had the most anxiously promoted it, the question would remain exactly THE SAME : the question would still be, whether at the time when Paine" composed his work, and promoted the most extensive purchase of it, he believed or disbelieved what he had written, — and whether he contemplated the happiness or the misery of the English nation, to which it is addressed ; and whichever of these intentions may be evidenced to your judgments upon reading the book itself, I confess I am utterly at a loss to com- prehend how a writer can be supposed to mean something TRIAL OF THOMAS PAINE. 337 different from what he has written, by proof of an anxiety (common I believe to all authors) that his work should be gen- erally read. Remember, I am not asking your opinions of the doctrines themselves ; — you have given them already pretty visi- bly since I began to address you ; — but I shall appeal not only to you, but to those who, without our leave, will hereafter judge, and without appeal, of all that we are doing to-day, — whether upon the matter which I hasten to lay before you, you can refuse to pronounce, that from his education — from the accidents and habits of his life — from the time and occasion of the publication — from the circumstances attending it — and from every line and letter of the work itself, and from all his other writings, his conscience, and understanding {no matter whether erroneously or not) were deeply and solemnly impressed with the matters contained in his book, — that he addressed it to the reason of the nation at large, and not to the passions of individ- uals, — and that, in the issue of its influence, he contemplated only what appeared to Jiim {though it may not to us) to be the interest and happiness of England, and of the whole human race. In drawing the one or the other of these conclusions, the book stands first in order, and it shall now speak for itself. The Attorney General throughout the whole course of his address to you (I knew it would be so,) has avoided the most distant notice or hint of any circumstance having led to the appearance of the author in the political world, after a silence of so many years: — he has not even pronounced, or even glanced at the name of Mr. Burke, — but has left you to take it for granted that the defendant volunteered this delicate and momentous subject, and, without being led to it by the provo- cation of political controversy, had seized a favorable moment to stigmatize, from mere malice, and against his own confirmed opinions, the constitution of this country. Gentlemen, my learned friend knows too well my respect and value for him to suppose that I am charging him with a wilful suppression; I know him to be incapable of it; he knew it would come from me ; he will permit me, however, to lament that it should have been left for me to inform you, at this late period of the cause, that not only the work before you, but the First Part, of which it is a natural continuation, were written awrvedly and upon the face of them, ipf answer to Mr. Burke. They were written besides under circumstances to be explained hereafter, in the course of which explanation I may have oc- casion to cite a few passages from the works of that celebrated person. And I shall speak of him with the highest respect : — for, with whatever contempt he may delight to look down upon my humble talents, — however he may disparage the principles 2 S 29 338 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH ON THE which direct my public conduct, he shall never force me to for- get the regard which this country owes to him, for the writings which he has left upon record as an inheritance to our most distant posterity. After the gratitude which we owe to God for the divine gifts of reason and understanding, our next thanks are due to those from the fountains of whose enlightened minds they are fed and fructified: but pleading, as I do, the cause of freedom' of opinions, I shall not give offence by re- marking that this great author has been thought to have changed some of his: and, if Thomas Paine had not thought so, I should not now be addressing you, because the book which is my sub- ject would never have been written. Who may be right and who in the wrong, in the contention of doctrines, I have re- peatedly disclaimed to be the question; I can only say that Mr. Paine may be right throughout, but that Mr. Burke cannot ; — Mr. Paine has been uniform in his opinions, but Mr. Burke HAS not; Mr. Burke can only be right in part; but, should Mr. Paine be even mistaken in the whole, still I am not removed from the principle of his defence. My defence has nothing to do with the rectitude of his doctrines. I admit Mr. Paine to be a republican ; — you shall soon see what made him one : — I do not seek to shade or qualify his attack upon our constitution ; I put my defence on no such matter, — he undoubtedly means to declare it to be defective in its forms, and contaminated with abuses, which, in his judgment, will one day or other bring on the ruin of us all : — ^it is in vain to mince the matter ; — this is the scope of his work. But still, if it contain no attack upon the King's Majesty, nor upon any other living magistrate ; — if it excite to no resistance to magistracy, but, on the contrary, if it even studiously inculcate obedience, then, whatever may be its defects, the question continues as before, and ever must remain an unmixed question of the liberty of the press. I have therefore considered it as no breach of professional duty, nor injurious to the cause I am defending, to express my own ad- miration of the real principles of our constitution ; — a constitu- tion which I hope may never give way to any other, — a con- stitution which has been productive of many benefits, and which will produce many more hereafter, if we have wisdom enough to pluck up the weeds that grow in the richest soils and amongst the brightest flowers. I agree with the merchants of London, in a late declaration, that the EngHsh government is equal to the reformation of its own abuses ; and, as an inhabit- ant of the city, I would have signed it, if I had known, of my own knowledge, the facts recited in its preamble ; but abuses the English constitution unquestionably has, which call loudly for reformation, the existence of which has been the theme of our TRIAL OF THOMAS PAINE. 339 greatest statesmen, which have too plainly formed the principles of the defendant, and may have led to the very conjuncture whiclj produced his book. Gentlemen, we all but too well remember the calamitous situation in which our country stood but a few years ago, — a situation which no man can look back upon without horror, nor feel himself safe from relapsing into again, while the causes remain which produced it. The event I allude to you must know to be the American war, and the still existing causes of it, the corruptions of this government. — In those days, it was not thought virtue by the patriots of England to conceal the existence of them from the people ; — but then, as now, authority condemned them as disaflected subjects, and defeated the ends they sought by their promulgation. Gentlemen, in that great and calamitous conflict Edmund Burke and Thomas Paine fought in the same field of reason together ; but with very different successes. Mr. Burke spoke to a Parliament in England, such as Sir George Saville de- scribes it, having no ears but for sounds that flattered its cor- ruptions. Mr. Paine, on the other hand, spoke to a people ; — reasoned with them, — told them that they were bound by no subjection to any sovereignty, farther than their own benefit connected them ; and by these powerful arguments prepared the minds of the American people for that glorious, just, and HAPPY revolution. Gentlemen, I have a right to distinguish it by these epithets, because I aver that at this moment there is as sacred a regard to property; — as inviolable a security to all the rights of individu- als ; — lower taxes ; — fewer grievances : — less to deplore, and more to admire, in the constitution of America, than that of any other country under heaven. I wish indeed to except our own, but I cannot even do that, till it shall be purged of those abuses which, though they obscure and deform the surface, have not as yet, thank God, destroyed the vital parts. Why then is Mr. Paine to be calumniated, and reviled, be- cause, out of a people consisting of near three millions, he alone did not remain attached in opinion to a monarchy? Re- member, that all the blood which was shed in America, and to which he was for years a melancholy and indignant witness, was shed by the authority of the crown of Great Britain, under the influence of a Parliament, such as Sir George Saville has described it ; and such as Mr. Burke himself will be called upon by and by in more glowing colors to paint it. How then can it be wondered at, that Mr. Paine should return to this country in his heart a republican ? — Was he not equally a republican when he wrote Common Sense ? — Yet that volume has been 340 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH ON THE sold without restraint or prosecution in every shop in England ever since, and which nevertheless (/ appeal to the booh, ivhicli I have in Court, and v.hich is in everybody's hands) contains .every one principle of government, and every abuse in the British con- stitution, which is to be found in the Rights of Man. Yet Mr. Burke himself saw no reason to be alarmed at that publication, nor to cry down its contents ; even when America, which was swayed by it, was in arms against the crown of Great Britain. Gentlemen, the consequences of this mighty revolution are too notorious to require illustration. No audience would sit to hear (what everybody has seen and felt,) how the independence of America notoriously produced, not by remote and circuitous effect, but directly and palpably, the revolutions which now agitate Europe, and which portend such mighty changes over the face of the earth. — Let governments take warning. — The revolution in France was the consequence of her incurably corrupt and profligate government. God forbid that I should be thought to lean, by this declaration, upon her unfortunate monarch, — bending, perhaps at this moment, under afflictions which my heart sinks within me to think of: — when I speak with detestation of the former politics of the French court, I fasten as little of them upon that fallen and unhappy prince, as I impute to our gracious Sovereign the corruptions of our own. I desire, indeed, in the distinctest manner, to be understood that I mean to speak of his Majesty, not only with that obedience and duty which I owe to him as a subject, but with that justice which I think is due to him from all men who examine his con- duct either in pubUc or private life. Gentlemen, Mr. Paine happened to be in England when the French revolution took place, and, notwithstanding what he must be supposed and allowed from his own history to have felt upon such a subject, he remained wholly silent and inactive. The people of this country, too, appeared to be indifferent spec- tators of the animating scene. They saw, without visible emo- tion, — despotism destroyed, and the King of France, by his own consent, become the first magistrate of a free people. Certainly, at least, it produced none of those effects which are so deprecated by government at present ; nor, most probably, ever would, if it had not occurred to the celebrated person whose name I must so often mention, voluntarily to provoke ihe subject: — a subject which, if dangerous to be discussed, HE should not have led to the discussion of: for, surely, it is not to be endured, that any private man shall pubhsh a creed for a whole nation ; — shall tell us that we are not to think for ourselves — shall impose his own fetters upon the human mind — shall dogmatize at discretion — and yet that no man shall sit TRIAL OF THOMAS PAINE. 341 down to answer him without being guilty of a Hbel. I assert, that if it be a libel to mistake our constitution — to attempt the support of it by means that tend to destroy it — and to choose the most dangerous season for doing so, Mr. Burke is that Ubeller ; but not therefore the object of a criminal prosecution : — whilst I am defending the motives of one man, I have neither right nor disposition to criminate the motives of another. All I contend for, is a fact that cannot be controverted, viz. that this officious interference ivas the origin of Mr. Paine' s book. I put my cause upon its being the origin of it — the avowed origin — as will abundantly appear from the introduction and preface to both Parts, and from the whole body of the work ; nay, from the very work of Mr. Burke himself, to which both of them are answers. For the history of that celebrated work, I appeal to itself. When the French revolution had arrived at some of its early stages, a few, and but a few persons, (not to be named when compared with the nation) took a visible interest in these mighty events ; — an interest well worthy of Englishmen. They saw a pernicious system of government which had led to desolating wars, and had been for ages the scourge of Great Britain, giv- ing way to a system which seemed to promise harmony and peace amongst nations. They saw this with virtuous and peaceable satisfaction ; and a reverend divine, eminent for his eloquence, recollecting that the issues of Hfe are in the hands of God, saw no profaneness in mixing the subject with public thanksgiving ; — by reminding the people of this country of their own glorious deliverance in former ages. It happened also, that a society of gentlemen, France being then a neutral na- tion, and her own monarch swearing almost daily upon her altars to maintain the new constitution, thought they infringed no law by sending a general congratulation. Their numbers, indeed, were very inconsiderable ; so much so, that Mr. Burke, with more truth than wisdom, begins his volume with a sarcasm upon their insignificance : " Until very lately he had never heard of such a club. It certainly never occupied a moment of his thoughts : nor, he believed, those of any person out of their own set." Why then make their proceedings the subject of alarm throughout England ? — There had been no prosecution against them, nor any charge founded even upon suspicion of disaffec- tion against any of their body. But Mr. Burke thought it was reserved for his eloquence to whip these curs of faction to their kennels. How he has succeeded, I appeal to all that has happened since the introduction of his schism in the British Empire, by giving to the King, whose title was questioned by no 29* 342 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH ON THE man, a title which it is his Majesty's most solemn interest to disclaim. After having, in his first work, lashed Dr. Price in a strain of eloquent irony for considering the monarchy to be elective, which he could not but know Dr. Price, in the literal sense of election, neither did nor could possibly consider it, Mr. Burke published a second treatise ; in which, after reprinting many passages from Mr. Paine's former work, he ridicules and denies the supposed right of the people to change their governments; in the following words : " The French revolution, say they" (speaking of the English societies,) " was the act of the majority of the people ; and if the majority of any other people, the feofle of England for in- stance, wish to make the same change, they have the same right; just the same, undoubtedly; that is, None at all." And then, after speaking of the subserviency of will to duty, (in which I agree with him,) he, in a substantive sentence, maintains the same doctrine ; thus : " The constitution of a country being once settled upon some compact, tacit or expressed, there is no power existing of force to alter it, without the breach of the covenant, or the consent of all the parties. Such is the nature of the contract." So that if reason, or even revelation itself, were now to de- monstrate to us, that our constitution was mischievous in its effects, — if, to use Mr. Attorney General's expression, we had been insane for the many centuries we have supported it ; yet that still, if the King had not forfeited his title to the crown, nor the Lords their privileges, the universal voice of the people of England could not build up a new government upon a legiti- mate basis. Passing by, for the present, the absurdity of such a proposi- tion, and supposing it could, beyond all controversy, be main- tained ; for Heaven's sake, let wisdom never utter it ! Let policy and prudence for ever conceal it ! If you seek the sta- bility of the English government, rather put the book of Mr. Paine, which calls it bad, into every hand of the kingdom, than doctrines which bid human nature rebel even against that which is the best. — Say to the people of England, look at your constitution, there it lies before you — the work of your pious fathers, — handed down as a sacred deposit from generation to generation, — the result of wisdom and virtue, — and its parts cemented together with kindred blood ; there are, indeed, a few spots upon its surface ; but the same principle which reared the structure will brush them all away: — You may preserve your government — you may destroy it. — To such an address, what would be the answer ? A chorus of tlie nation — Yes, we will TRIAL OF THOMAS PAINE. 343 PRESERVE IT. But say to the same nation, even of the very same constitution, it is yours, such as it is, for better or for worse ; — it is strapped upon your backs, to carry it as beasts of burden, — you have no jurisdiction to cast it off. Let iJds be your position, and you instantly raise up (I appeal to every man's consciousness of his own nature) a spirit of uneasiness and discontent. It is this spirit alone, that has pointed most of the passages arraigned before you. But let the prudence of Mr. Burke's argument be what it may, the argument itself is untenable. His Majesty undoubt- edly was not elected to the throne. No man can be supposed, in the teeth of fact, to have contended for it; — but did not the people of England elect King William, and break the hereditary succession ? — and does not his Majesty's title grow out of that election? — It is one of the charges against the defendant, his having denied the parliament which called the Prince of Orange to the throne to have been a legal convention of the whole people ; and is not the very foundation of that charge, that it 7/;as such a legal convention, and that it was intended to be so? And if it was so, did not the people then confer the crown upon King William without any regard to herediljary right ? — Did they not cut off the Prince of Wales, who stood directly in the line of succession, and who had incurred no personal forfeiture? — Did they not give their deliverer an estate in the crown to- tally new and unprecedented in the law or history of the coun- try ? — And, lastly, might they not, by the same authority, have given the royal inheritance to the family of a stranger ? — Mr. Justice Blackstone, in his Commentaries, asserts in terms that they might; and ascribes their choice of King William, and the subsequent limitations of the crown, not to want of jurisdic- tion, but to their true origin, to prudence and discretion in not disturbing a valuable institution farther than public safety and necessity dictated. Gentlemen, all that I have been stating hitherto, has been onlv to show, that there is not that novelty in the opinions of the defendant, as to lead you to think he does not bona fide en- tertain them, much less when connected with the history of his life, which I therefore brought in review before you. — But still the great question remains unargued — Had he a right to pro- mulgate these opinions? If he entertained them, I shall argue that he had — And although my arguments upon the liberty of the press, may not to-day be honored with your, or the court's approbation, I shall retire not at all disheartened, consoling myself with the reflection, that a season may arrive for their reception. — The most essential liberties of mankind have been but slowly and gradually received, and so very late, indeed, do 344 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH ON THE some of them come to maturity, that, notwithstanding the At- torney General tells you that the very question I am now agi- tating is most pecuharly for your consideration, as a jury, under our ANCIENT constitution, yet I must remind both you and him that your jurisdiction to consider and deal with it at all in judg- ment, is but A YEAR OLD. — Boforc that late period, I ventured to maintain this very right or a jury over the question of Libel under the same ancient constitution (I do not mean before the noble judge now present, for the matter was gone to rest in the courts, long before he came to sit where he does, but) before a noble and reverend magistrate of the most exalted understand- ing, and of the most uncorrupted integrity; he treated me, not with contempt indeed, for of that his nature was incapable ; but he put me aside with indulgence, as you do a child while it is lisping its prattle out of season ; and if this cause had been tried then, instead of now, the defendant must have been in- stantly convicted on the proof of the publication, whatever you might have thought of his case. — Yet, I have lived to see it re- solved, by an almost unanimous vote of the whole parliament of England, that I had all along been in the right. — If this be not an awful lesson of caution concerning opinions, where are such lessons to be read ? Gentlemen, I have insisted, at great length, upon the origin of governments, and detailed the authorities which you have heard upon the subject, because I consider it to be not only an essential support, but the very foundation of the liberty of the press. If Mr. Burke be right in his principles of government, I admit that the press, in my sense of its freedom, ought not to be free, nor free in any sense at all; and that all addresses to the people upon the subject of government, — and all specula- tions of amendment, of what kind or nature soever, are illegal and criminal ; — since, if the people have, without possible re- call, delegated all their authorities, they have no jurisdiction to act, and therefore none to think or write upon such subjects ; — and it would be a libel to arraign government or any of its acts, before those that have no jurisdiction to correct them. But on the other hand, as it is a settled rule in the law of England, that the subject may always address a competent jurisdiction; no legal argument can shake the freedom of the press in my sense of it, if I am supported in my doctrines concerning the great unalienable right of the people, to reform or to change their governments. It is because the liberty of the press resolves itself into this great issue, that it has been, in every country, the last liberty which subjects have been able to wrest from power. — Other liberties are held under governments, but the liberty of opinion TRIAL OF THOMAS PAINE. 345 keeps GOVERNMENTS THEMSELVES ill duc subjectioti to their du- ties. Tiiis has produced the martyrdom of truth in every age, and the world has been only purged from ignorance vi^ith the innocent blood of those who have enlightened it. Gentlemen, my strength and time are wasted, — and I can only make this melancholy history pass like a shadow before you. 1 shall begin with the grand type and example. The universal God of Nature, — the Savior of mankind, — the Fountain of all light, who came to pluck the world from eternal darkness, expired upon a cross, — the scoff of infidel scorn ; and his blessed Apostles followed him in the train of martyrs. When he came in the flesh, he might have come like the Mahometan Prophet, as a powerful sovereign, and propa- gated his religion with an unconquerable sword, which even now, after the lapse of ages, is but slowly advancing under the influence of reason, over the face of the earth : — but such a process would have been inconsistent with his mission, which was to confound the pride, and to establish the universal rights of men ; — he came therefore in that lowly state w'hich is repre- sented in the Gospel, and preached his consolations to the poor. When the foundation of this religion was discovered to be invulnerable and immortal, we find political power taking the church into partnership ; — thus began the corruptions both of religious and civil power, and, hand in hand together, what havoc have they not made in the world ! — ruling by ignorance and the persecution of truth : but this very persecution only hastened the revival of letters and liberty. Nay, you will find, that in the exact proportion that knowledge and learning have been beat down and fettered, they have destroyed the govern- ments which bound them. — The Court of Star Chamber, the first restriction of the press of England, was erected, previous to all the great changes in the constitution. From that moment no man could legally write without an imprimatur from the state ; — but truth and freedom found their way with greater force through secret channels ; and the unhappy Charles, un- jrarned by a free press, was brought to an ignominious death. When men can freely communicate their thoughts and their sufferings, real or imaginary, their passions spend themselves in air, like gunpowder scattered upon the surface ; — but pent up by terrors, they work unseen, burst forth in a moment, and destroy everything in their course. Let reason be opposed to reason, and argument to argument, and every good govern- ment will be safe. The usurper Cromwell pursued the same system of restraint 2 T 346 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH ON THE in support of his government, and the end of it speedily fol- lowed. At the restoration of Charles the Second, the Star Chamber Ordinance of 1637, was worked up into an act of parliament, and was followed up during that reign, and the short one that followed it, by the most sanguinary prosecutions : — but what fact in history is more notorious, than that this blind and con- temptible policy prepared and hastened the revolution ? At that great era these cobwebs were all brushed away : — the freedom of the press was regenerated, — and the country, ruled by its affections, has since enjoyed a century of tranquillity and glory. Thus I have maintained, by English history, that, in proportion as the press has been free, English government has been secure. Gentlemen, the same important truth may be illustrated by great authorities. Upon a subject of this kind, resort cannot be had to law cases. The ancient law of England knew no- thing of such libels ; — they began, and should have ended, with the Star Chamber. What writings are slanderous of individuals, must be looked for where these prosecutions are recorded ; but upon general subjects we must go io general writers. If, indeed, I were to refer to obscure authors, I might be answered, that my very authorities were libels, instead of justifications or ex- amples ; but this cannot be said with effect of great men, whose works are classics in our language, — taught in our schools, — and repeatedly printed under the eye of government. I shall begin with the poet Milton, a great authority in all learning. It may be said, indeed, he wa:s a republican, but that would only prove that republicanism is not incompatible with virtue ; — it may be said, too, that the work which I cite was written against previous licensing, which is not contended for to-day. But, if every work were to be adjudged a libel, which was adverse to the wishes of government, or to the opinions of those who may com.pose it, the revival of a licenser would be a security to the pubhc. — If I present my book to a magis- trate appointed by law, and he rejects it, I have only to forbear from the publication ; — in the forbearance I am safe ; — and he too is answerable to law for the abuse of his authority. But, upon the argument of to-day, a man must print at his peril, without any guide to the principles of judgment, upon which his work may be afterwards prosecuted and condemned. Mil- ton's argument therefore applies, and was meant to apply, to every interruption to writing, which, while they oppress the individual, endanger the state. " We have them not," says Milton, " that can be heard of, from any ancient state, or polity, or church, nor by any statute left us by our ancestors, elder or later, nor from the modern TRIAL OF THOMAS PAINE. 347 custom of any reformed city or church abroad ; but from the most antichristian council, and the most tyrannous inquisition that ever existed. Till then, books were ever as freely admit- ted into the world as any other birth; the issue of the brain was no more stijled than the issue of the womb. " To the pure all things are pure ; not only meats and drinks, but all kinds of knowledge whether good or evil; the know- ledge cannot defile, nor consequently the books, if the will and conscience be not defiled. " Bad books serve in many respects to discover, to confute, to forewarn and to illustrate. Whereof, what better witness can we expect I should produce, than one of your own, now sitting in parliament, the chief of learned men reputed in this land, Mr. Selden, whose volume of natural and national laws, proves, not only by great authorities brought together, but by exquisite reasons and theorems almost mathematically demon- strative, that all opinions, yea krrors known, read and collated, are of main service and assistance toward the speedy attain- ment of what is truest. , " Opinions and understanding are not such wares as to be monopolized and traded in by tickets and statutes and standards. We must not think to make a staple commodity of all the know- ledge in the land, to mark and license it like our broadcloth and our wool-packs. " Nor is it to the common people less than a reproach ; for if we be so jealous over them that we cannot trust them with an English pamphlet, what do we but censure them, for a giddy, vicious, and ungrounded people; in such a sick and weak state of faith and discretion, as to be able to take nothing down but through the pipe of a licenser? That this is care or love of them, we cannot pretend. " Those corruptions which it seeks to prevent, break in faster at doors which cannot be shut. To prevent men thinking and acting for themselves, by restraints on the press, is like to the exploits of that gallant man who thought to pound up the crows by shutting his park-gate. "This obstructing violence meets for the most part with an event, utterly opposite to the end which it drives at ; instead of suppressing books, it raises them, and invests them with a repu- tation : the punishment of wits enhances their authority, saith the Viscount St. Albans ; and a forbidden writing is thought to be a certain spark of truth, that flies up in the face of them who seek to tread it out." He then adverts to his visit to the famous Galileo, whom he found and visited in the Inquisition, " for not thinking in as- tronomy with the Franciscan and Dominican monks." And 348 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH ON THE what event ought more deeply to interest and affect us? The VERY LAWS OF NATURE wero to bend under the rod of a licen- ser; — this illustrious astronomer ended his life within the bars of a prison, because, in seeing the phases of Venus through his newly invented telescope, he pronounced that she shone with borrowed light, and from the sun as the centre of the universe. This was the migldij crime, the placing the sun in the centre: — that sun which now inhabits it upon the foundation of mathema- tical truth, which enables us to traverse the pathless ocean, and to carry our line and rule amongst other worlds, which but for Galileo we had never known, perhaps even to the recesses of an infinite and eternal God. Milton, then, in his most eloquent address to the Parliament, puts the liberty of the press on its true and most honorable foundation : " Believe it, lords and commons, they who counsel ye to such a suppression of books, do as good as bid you suppress your- selves ; and I will soon show how. " If it be desired to know the immediate cause of all this free writing and free speaking, there cannot be assigned a truer than your own mild, and free, and humane government. It is the liberty, lords and commons, which your own valorous and happy counsels have purchased us ; liberty, which is the nurse of all great wits : this is that which hath rarefied and enlight- ened our spirits like the influence of heaven ; this is that which hath enfranchised, enlarged, and lifted up our apprehensions, degrees above themselves. Ye cannot make us now less capa- ble, less knowing, less eagerly pursuing the truth, unless ye first make yourselves, that made us so, less the lovers, less the founders of our true liberty. We can grow ignorant again, brutish, formal, and slavish, as ye found us ; but you then must first become that which ye cannot be, oppressive, arbitrary, and tyrannous, as they were from whom ye have freed us. That our hearts are now more capacious, our thoughts now more erected to the search and expectation of greatest and exactest things, is the issue of our own virtue propagated in us. Give me the liberty to know, to utter, and to argue freely ac- cording to conscience, above all liberties." But now every man is to be cried down for such opinions. I observed that my learned friend significantly raised his voice in naming Mr. Home Tooke, as if to connect him with Paine, or Paine with him. This is exactly the same course of justice; — for after all, he said nothing of Mr. Tooke. What could he have said, but that he was a man of great talents, and a sub- scriber with the great names I have read in proceedings which thev have thought fit to desert ? TRIAL OF THOMAS PAINE. 349 Gentlemen, let others hold their opinions, and change them at their pleasure ; I shall ever maintain it to be the dearest privilege of the people of Great Britain to watch over every- thing that affects their happiness, either in the system of gov- ernment, or in the practice ; and that for this purpose the press MUST BE FREE. It has always been so, and much evil has been corrected by it. — If government finds itself annoyed by it, let it examine its own conduct, and it will find the cause, — let it amend it, and it will find the remedy. Gentlemen, I am no friend to sarcasms in the discussion of grave subjects, but you must take writers according to the view of the mind at the moment; Mr. Burke as often as any- body indulges in it : — hear his reason in his speech on reform, for not taking away the salaries from lords who attend upon the British court. " You would," said he, " have the court de- serted by all the nobility of the kingdom. " Sir, the most serious mischiefs would follow from such a desertion. Kings are naturally lovers of low company ; they are so elevated above all the rest of mankind, that they must look upon all their subjects as on a level : they are rather apt to hate than to love their nobility on account of the occasional resistance to their will, which will be made by their virtue, their petulance, or their pride. It must indeed be admitted, that many of the nobility are as perfectly willing to act the part of flatter- ers, tale-bearers, parasites, pimps, and buffoons, as any of the lowest and vilest of mankind can possibly be. But they are not properly qualified for this oljject of their ambition. The want of a regular education, and early habits, with some lurk- ing remains of their dignity, w-ill never permit them to become a match for an Italian eunuch, a mountebank, a fiddler, a player, or any regular practitioner of that tribe. The Roman Empe- rors, almost from the beginning, threw themselves into such hands ; and the mischief increased every day, till its decline, and its final ruin. It is, therefore, of very great importance (provided the thing is not overdone,) to contrive such an estab- lishment as must, almost whether a prince will or not, bring into daily and hourly offices about his person, a great number of his first nobility; and it is rather a useful prejudice that gives them a pride in such a servitude ; though they are not much the better for a court, a court will be much the better for them. I have, therefore, not attempted to reform any of the offices of honor about the king's person." What is all this but saying, that a king is an animal so incu- rably addicted to low company, as generally to bring on by it the ruin of nations ; but nevertheless, he is to be kept as a necessary evil, and his propensities bridled by surrounding him - 30 350 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH ON THE with a parcel of miscreants still worse if possible, but better than those he would choose for himself This, therefore, if taken by itself, would be a most abominable and libellous sar- casm on kings and nobility ; but look at the whole speech, and you observe a great system of regulation ; and no man, I be- lieve, ever doubted Mr. Burke's attachment to monarchy. To judge, therefore, of any part of a writing, the whole must be READ. With the same view I will read to you the beginning of Har- rington's Oceana : but it is impossible to name this well-known author without exposing to just contempt and ridicule the igno- rant or profligate misrepresentations which are vomited forth upon the public, to bear down every man as desperately wicked, who, in any age or country, has countenanced a republic, for the mean purpose of prejudging this trial. Is this the way to support the English constitution ? — Are these the means by which Englishmen are to be taught to cherish it ? — I say, if the man upon trial were stained with blood instead of ink, — if he were covered over with crimes which human nature would start at the naming of, the means employed against him would not be the less disgraceful. For this notable purpose, then, Harrington, not above a week ago, was handed out to us as a low, obscure wretch, involved in the murder of the monarch, and the destruction of the mon- archy, and as addressing his despicable works at the shrine of an usurper. Yet this very Harrington, this low blackguard was descended (you may see his pedigree at the Herald's ofl^ce for sixpence) from eight dukes, three marquisses, seventy earls, twenty-seven viscounts, and thirty-six barons, sixteen of whom were knights of the garter; a descent which I think would save a man from disgrace in any of the circles of Germany. But what was he besides 1 — a blood-stained ruffian ? — Oh brutal ignorance of the history of the country ! He was the most af- fectionate servant of Charles the First, from whom he never concealed his opinions ; for it is observed by Wood, that the king greatly aflected his company ; but when they happened to talk of a commonwealth, he would scarcely endure it. — *' I know not," says Toland, " w hich most to commend ; the king for trusting an honest man, though a republican ; or Harring- ton for owning his principles while he served a king." But did his opinions affect his conduct ? — Let history again answer. — He preserved his fidelity to his unhappy prince to the very last, after all his fawning courtiers had left him to his en- raged subjects. He staid with him while a prisoner in the Isle of Wight ; — came up by stealth to follow the fortunes of his monarch and master ; — even hid himself in the boot of the TRIAL OF THOMAS PAINE. 351 coach when he was conveyed to Windsor ; — and ending as he began, fell into his arms and fainted on the scaffold. After Charles's death, the Oceana was written, and, as if it were written from justice and affection to his memory; for it breathes the same noble and spirited regard, and asserts that it was not Charles that brought on the destruction of the mon- archy, but the feeble and ill-constituted nature of monarchy itself. But the book was a flattery to Cromwell. — 'Once more and finally let history decide. — The Oceana was seized by the Usurper as a libel, and the way it was recovered is remarka- ble. I mention it to show that Cromwell was a wise man in himself, and knew on what governments must stand for their support. Harrington waited on the Protector's daughter to beg for his book, which her father had taken, and on entering her apart- ment, snatched up her child and ran away. — On her following him with surprise and terror, he turned to her and said, " I know what you feel as a mother, feel then for me : your father has got MY child :" meaning the Oceana. The Oceana was afterwards restored on her petition : Cromwell answering with the sagacity of a sound politician, '-Let him have his book; if my government is made to stand, it has nothing to fear from PAPER SHOT." — He said true. No good government will ever be battered by paper shot. Montesquieu says, " that in a free nation, it matters not whether individuals reason well or ill ; it is sufficient that they do reason. Truth arises from the collision, and from hence springs liberty, which is a security from the effect of reasoning." The Attorney General has read extracts from Mr. Adams's answer to this book. Let others write an- swers to it, like Mr. Adams ; I am not insisting upon the infal- libility of Mr. Paine's doctrines ; if they are erroneous, let them be answered, and truth will spring from the collision. Milton wisely says, that a disposition in a nation to this spe- cies of controversy, is no proof of sedition or degeneracy, but quite the reverse [I omitted to cite the passage with the others.] In speaking of this subject, he rises into that inexpressibly sub- lime style of writing, wholly peculiar to himself. He was in- deed no plagiary from anything human : he looked up for light and expression, as he himself wonderfully describes it, by de- vout prayer to that great Being, who is the source of all utter- ance and knowledge ; and who sendeth out his seraphim with the hallowed fire of his altar to touch and purify the lips of whom he pleases. " When the cheerfulness of the people," says this mighty poet, " is so sprightly up, as that it hath not only wherewith to guard well its own freedom and safety, but to 352 MR- ERSKINE'S SPEECH ON THE spare, and to bestow upon the solidest and sublimest points of controversy and new invention, it betokens us not degenerated nor drooping to a fatal decay, but casting off the old and wrinkled skin of corruption, to outlive these pangs and wax young again, entering the glorious ways of truth and prosperoui^ virtue, destined to become great and honorable in these latter ages. Methinks I see, in my mind, a noble and puissant nation rousing herself, like a strong man after sleep, and shaking her invincible locks : methinks I see her as an eagle muing her mighty youth, and kindling her undazzled eyes at the full mid- day beam ; purging and unsealing her long-abused sight at the fountain, itself of heavenly radiance ; while the whole noise of timorous and flocking birds, with those also that love the twi- light, flutter about, amazed at what she means, and in their en- vious gabble would prognosticate a year of sects and schisms." Gentlemen, what Milton only saw in his mighty imagination, I see in fact ; what he expected, but which never came to pass, I see now fulfilling: methinks I see this noble and puissant na- tion, not degenerated and drooping to a fatal decay, but cast- ing oflf the wrinkled skin of corruption to put on again the vigor of her youth. And it is, because others as well as my- self see this, that we have all this uproar. — France and its con- stitution are the mere pretences. It is, because Britons begin to recollect the inheritance of their own constitution, left them by their ancestors : — it is, because they are awakened to the corruptions which have fallen upon its most valuable parts, that forsooth the nation is in danger of being destroyed by a single pamphlet. — I have marked the course of this alarm : it began with the renovation of those exertions for the public, which the alarmists themselves had originated and deserted ; and they became louder and louder when they saw them avowed and supported by my admirable friend Mr. Fox; the most emi- nently honest and enlightened statesman, that history brings us acquainted with : a man whom to name is to honor, but whom in attempting adequately to describe, I must fly to Mr. Burke, my constant refuge when eloquence is necessary : — a man, who to relieve the suflferings of the most distant nation, " put to the hazard his ease, his security, his interest, his power, even his darling popularity, for the benefit of a people whom he had never seen." How much more then for the inhabitants of his native country ! — yet this is the man who has been censured and disavowed in the manner we have lately seen. Gentlemen, I have but a few more words to trouble you with : I take my leave of you with declaring, that all this freedom which I have been endeavoring to assert, is no more than the ancient freedom which belongs to our own inbred constitution : TRIAL OF THOMAS PAINE. 353 I have not asked you to acquit Thomas Paine upon any new lights, or upon any principle but that of the law, which you are sworn to administer ; — my great object has been to inculcate, that wisdom and policy, which are the parents of the govern- ment of Great Britain, forbid this jealous eye over her subjects; and that, on the contrary, they cry aloud in the language of the poet, adverted to by lord Chatham on the memorable subject of America, unfortunately ivithout effect. " Be to their faults a little blind, Be to their virtues very kind ; Let all their thoughts be unconfin'd. Nor clap your padlock on the mind." Engage the people by their affections, convince their reason, — and they will be loyal from the only principle that can make lOyalty sincere, vigorous, or rational, — a conviction that it is their truest interest, and that their government is for their good. Constraint is the natural parent of resistance, and a pregnant proof, that reason is not on the side of those who use it. You must all remember Lucian's pleasant story; Jupiter and a countryman were walking together, conversing with great free- dom and familiarity upon the subject of heaven and earth. The countryman listened with attention and acquiescence, while Jupiter strove only to convince him : — but happening to hint a doubt, Jupiter turned hastily round and threatened him with his thunder. — " Ah ! ah !" says the countryman, " now, Jupiter, I know that you are wrong ; you are always wrong when you appeal to your thunder." This is the case with me — I can reason with the people of England, but I cannot fight against the thunder of authority. Gentlemen, this is my defence of free opinions. With regard to myself, I am, and always have been, obedient and affection- ate to the law; — to that rule of action, as long as I exist, I shall ever do as I have done to-day, maintain the dignity of my high profession, and perform, as I understand them, all its important duties. 2U 30* SPEECH OF THE HON. T. ERSKINE ON THE PROSECUTION OF THE PUBLISHER OF THE AGE OF REASON. Gentlemen of the Jury, The charge of blasphemy, which is put upon the record against the pubhsher of this pubhcation is not an accusation of the servants of the crown, but comes before you sanctioned by the oaths of a grand jury of the country. It stood for trial upon a former day; but it happening, as it frequently does, without any imputation upon the gentlemen named in the pannel, that a sufficient number did not appear to constitute a full special jury, I thought it my duty to withdraw the cause from trial, till I could have the opportunity of addressing myself to you, who were originally appointed to try it. 1 pursued this course, from no jealousy of the common juries appointed by the laws for the ordinary service of the court, since my whole life has been one continued experience of their virtues; but because I thought it of great importance, that those who were to decide upon a cause so very momentous to the public, should have the highest possible qualifications for the decision ; that they should not only be men capable from their educations of forming an enlightened judgment, but that their situations should be such as to bring them within the full view of their country, to which, in character and in estimation, they were in their own turns to be responsible. Not having the honor, gentlemen, to be sworn for the king as one of his counsel, it has fallen much oftener to my lot to de- fend indictments for libels, than to assist in the prosecution of them ; but I feel no embarrassment from that recollection. — I shall not be found to-day to express a sentiment, or to utter an expression, inconsistent with those invaluable principles for which I have uniformly contended in the defence of others. Nothing that I have ever said, either professionally or person- ally, for the liberty of the press, do I mean to-day to contradict or counteract. On the contrary, I desire to preface the very short discourse I have to make to you, with reminding you, that it is your most solemn duty to take care that it sufl!ers no injury in your hands. A free and unlicensed press, in the just and legal sense of the expression, has led to all the blessings both of religion SPEECH ON THE AGE OF REASON. 355 and government, which Great Britain or any part of the world at this moment enjoys, and it is calculated to advance mankind to still higher degrees of civilization and happiness. — But this freedom, hke every other, must be limited to be enjoyed, and like every human advantage, may be defeated by its abuse. Gentlemen, the defendant stands indicted for having published this book, which I have only read from the obligations of pro- fessional duty, and which I rose from the reading of with aston- ishment and disgust. Standing here with all the privileges belonging to the highest counsel for the crown, I shall be enti- tled to reply to any defence that shall be made for the publica- tion. I shall wait with patience till I hear it. Indeed, if I were to anticipate the defence which I hear and read of, it would be defaming by anticipation the learned coun- sel who is to make it ; — since if I am to collect it, from a formal notice given to the prosecutors in the course of the proceedings, I have to expect, that, instead of a defence conducted accord- ing to the rules and principles of English law, the foundation of all our laws, and the sanctions of all justice, are to be struck at and insulted. What gives the court its jurisdiction? — What but the oath which his lordship, as well as yourselves, have sworn upon the Gospel to fulfil? Yet in the king's court, where his majesty is himself also sworn to administer the justice of England — in the king's court — who receives his high authorit\^ under a solemn oath to maintain the Christian religion, as it is promulgated by God in the Holy Scriptures, I am nevertheless called upon as counsel for the prosecution to "produce a certain hook described in the Indictment to be the holy bible." No man deserves to be upon the rolls, who has dared, as an attorney, to put his name to such a notice. It is an insult to the authoritv and dignity of the court of which he is an officer; since it calls in question the very foundations of its jurisdiction. If this is to be the spirit and temper of the defence; — if, as I collect from that array of books which are spread upon the benches behind me, this publication is to be vindicated by an attack of all the truths which the Christian religion promulgates to mankind, let it be remembered that such an argument was neither suggested nor justified by anything said by me on the part of the prose- cution. In this stage of the proceedings, I shall call for reference to the sacred Scriptures, not from their merits, unbounded as thev are, but from their authority in a Christian country — not from the obligations of conscience, but from the rules of law. For my own part, gentlemen, I have been ever deeply devoted to the truths of Christianity ; and my firm belief in the Holy Gos- pel is by no means owing to the prejudices of education 356 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH (though I was religiously educated by the best of parents,) but has arisen from the fullest and most continued reflections of my riper years and understanding. It forms at this moment the great consolation of a life, which, as a shadow, passes away ; and without it, I should consider my long course of health and prosperity (too long perhaps, and too uninterrupted, to be good for any man) only as the dust which the wind scatters, and rather as a snare than as a blessing. Much, however, as I wish to support the authority of Scrip- ture from a reasoned consideration of it, I shall repress that subject for the present. But if the defence, as I have suspected, shall bring them at all into argument or question, I must then fulfil a duty which I owe not only to the Court, as counsel for the prosecution, but to the public, and to the world, — to state what I feel and know concerning the evidences of that religion, which is denied without being examined, and reviled without being understood. I am well aware that by the communications of a free press, all the errors of mankind, from age to age, have been dissi- pated and dispelled ; and I recollect that the world, under the banners of reformed Christianity, has struggled through perse- cution to the noble eminence on which it stands at this moment — shedding the blessings of humanity and science upon the nations of the earth. It may be asked then by what means the Reformation would have been effected, if the books of the Reformers had been suppressed, and the errors of now exploded superstitions had been supported by the terrors of an unreformed state ? or how, upon such principles, any reformation, civil or religious, can in future be effected ? The solution is easy : — Let us examine what are the genuine principles of the liberty of the press, as they regard writings upon general subjects, unconnected with the personal reputations of private men, which are wholly for- eign to the present inquiry. They are full of simplicity, and are brought as near perfection, by the law of England, as, per- haps, is attainable by and of the frail institutions of mankind. Although every community must establish supreme authori- ties, founded upon fixed principles, and must give high powers to magistrates to administer laws for the preservation of gov- ernment, and for the security of those who are to be protected by it: — yet, as infallibility and perfection belong neither to human individuals nor to human establishments, it ought to be the policy of all free nations, as it is most peculiarly the prin- ciple of our own, to permit the most unbounded freedom of discussion, even to the detection of errors in the constitution of the very government itself; so as that common decorum is ON THE AGE OF REASON. 357 observed, which every state must exact from its subjects, and which imposes no restraint upon any intellectual composition, fairly, honestly, and decently addressed to the consciences and understandings of men. Upon this principle, I have an unques- tionable right — a right which the best subjects have exercised — to examine the principles and structure of the constitution, and by fair, manly reasoning, to question the practice of its administrators. I have a right to consider and to point out errors in the one or in the other ; and not merely to reason upon their existence, but to consider the means of their reform- ation. By such free, well-intentioned, modest, and dignified commu- nication of sentiments and opinions, all nations have been grad- ually improved, and milder laws and purer religions have been established. The same principles, which vindicate civil con- troversies, honestly directed, extend their protection to the sharpest contentions on the subject of religious faiths. This rational and legal course of improvement was recognized and ratified by Lord Kenyon as the law of England, in a late trial at Guildhall, where he looked back with gratitude to the labors of the Reformers, as the fountains of our religious emancipa- tion, and of the civil blessings that followed in their train. The English constitution, indeed, does not stop short in the tolera- tion of religious opinions, but liberally extends it to practice. It permits every man, even publicly, to worship God accord- ing to his own conscience, though in marked dissent from the national establishment, — so as he pi-ofesses the general faith, which is the sanction of all our moral duties, and the only pledge of our submission to the system which constitutes the state. Is not this freedom of controversy and freedom of worship, sufficient for all the purposes of human happiness and improve- ment? — Can it be necessary for either, that the law should hold out indemnity to those, w^ho wholly abjure and revile the gov- ernment of their country, or the religion on which it rests for its foundation? I expect to hear, in answer to what I am now saying, much that will offend me. My learned friend, from the difficulties of his situation, which I know, from experience, how to feel for very sincerely, may be driven to advance proposi- tions which it maybe my duty, with much freedom, to reply to ; — and the law will sanction that freedom. — But will not the ends of justice be completely answered by my exercise of that right, in terms that are decent, and calculated to expose its defects ? — Or will my argument suffer, or will public justice be impeded, because neither private honor and justice, nor pubhc decorum, would endure my telhng my very learned friend, be- 358 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH cause I differ from him in opinion, that he is a fool, — a har, — and a scoundrel, in the face of the Court t This is just the distinction between a book of free legal controversy, and the book which I am arraigning before you. Every man has a rio-ht to investigate, with decency, controversial points of the Christian religion ; — but no man, consistently with a law which only exists under its sanctions, has a right to deny its very existence, and to pour forth such shocking and insulting invec- tives, as the lowest establishments in the gradations of civil authority ought not to be subjected to, and which soon would be borne down by insolence and disobedience, if they were. The same principle pervades the whole system of the law, not merely in its abstract theory, but in its daily and most ap- plauded practice. — The intercourse between the sexes, which, properly regulated, not only continues, but humanizes and adorns our natures, is the foundation of all the thousand romances, plays, and novels, which are in the hands of everybody. Some of them lead to the confirmation of every virtuous prin- ciple ; — others, though with the same profession, address the imao-ination in a manner to lead the passions into dangerous excesses : — but though the law does not nicely discriminate the various shades which distinguish these works from one another, so as to suffer many to pass, through its liberal spirit, that upon principle ought to be suppressed, w^ould it, or does it tolerate, or does any decent man contend that it ought to pass by un- punished, libels of the most shameless obscenity, manifestly pointed to debauch innocence, and to blast and poison the morals of the rising generation ? This is only another illus- tration to demonstrate the obvious distinction between the work of an author, who fairly exercises the powers of his mind, in investigating the religion or government of any country, and him who attacks the rational existence of every religion or government, and brands with absurdity and folly the state which sanctions, and the obedient tools who cherish the delu- sion. But this publication appears to me to be as cruel and mischievous in its effects, as it is manifestly illegal in its princi- ples ; because it strikes at the best— sometimes, alas ! the only refuge and consolation amidst the distresses and afflictions of the world. The poor and humble, whom it affects to pity, may be stabbed to the heart by it. — They have more occasion for firm hopes beyond the grave, than the rich and prosperous, who have other comforts to render life delightful. I can con- ceive a distressed but virtuous man, surrounded by his children, looking up to him for bread when he has none to give them ; — sinking under the last day's labor, and unequal to the next, — vet, still supported by confidence in the hour when all tears ON THE AGE OF REASON. 359 shall be wiped from the eyes of affliction, bearing the burden laid upon him by a mysterious Providence which he adores, and anticipating with exultation the revealed promises of his Creator, when he shall be greater than the greatest, and hap- pier than the happiest of mankind. What a change in such a mind might be wrought by such a merciless publication ! — Gen- tlemen ! whether these remarks are the overcharged declama- tion of an accusing counsel, or the just reflections of a man anxious for the public happiness, which is best secured by the morals of a nation, will be soon settled by an appeal to the passages in the work, that are selected by the Indicment for your consideration and judgment. You are at liberty to con- nect them with every context and sequel, and to bestow upon them the mildest interpretation. [Hei'e Mr. Erskine read and commented upon severalofthe selected passages, and then proceeded as follows :'] Gentlemen, it would be useless and disgusting to enumerate the other passages within the scope of the Indictment. How any man can rationally vindicate the publication of such a book, in a country where the Christian religion is the very foundation of the law of the land, I am totally at a loss to con- ceive, and have no ideas for the discussion of. How is a tri- bunal, whose whole jurisdiction is founded upon the solemn belief and practice of what is here denied as falsehood, and reprobated as impiety, to deal with such an anomalous defence? — Upon what principle is it even offered to the Court, whose authority is contemned and mocked at ? — If the religion pro- posed to be called in question, is not previously adopted in belief and solemnly acted upon^ what authority has the Court to pass any judgment at all of acquittal or condemnation ? — Why am I now, or upon any other occasion, to submit to his Lordship's authority ? — Why am I now, or at any time, to address twelve of my equals, as I am now addressing you, with reverence and submission ? — Under what sanction are the wit- nesses to give their evidence, without which there can be no trial ? — Under what obligations can I call upon you, the Jury representing your country, to administer justice ? — Surely upon no other than that you are sworx to administer it under the OATHS YOU HAVE TAKEN. The wholc judicial fabric, from the King's sovereign authority to the lowest office of magistracy, has no other foundation. The whole is built, both in form and substance, upon the same oath of every one of its ministers to do justice, as God shall help them hereafter ? What God '( and what hereafter ? That God, undoubtedly, who has com- manded Kings to rule, and Judges to decree justice ; — who has said to witnesses, not only by the voice of nature, but in re- 360 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH vealed commandments — thou shalt not bear false testimony AGAINST THY NEIGHBOR; — and who lias enforced obedience to them by the revelation of the unutterable blessings which shall attend their observance, and the awful punishments which shall await upon their transgressions. But it seems this is an age of reason, and the time and the person are at last arrived, that are to dissipate the errors which have overspread the past generations of ignorance. The be- lievers in Christianity are many, but it belongs to the few that are wise to correct their credulity. Belief is an act of reason, and superior reason may, therefore, dictate to the weak. In running the mind along the long list of sincere and devout Christians, I cannot help lamenting, that Newton had not lived to this day, to have had his shallowness filled up with this new flood of light. — But the subject is too awful for irony. I will speak plainly and directly. Newton was a Christian ! — Newton, whose mind burst forth from the fetters fastened by nature upon our finite conceptions — Newton, whose science was truth, and the foundation of whose knowledge of it was Philosophy — not those visionary and arrogant presumptions, which too often usurp its name, but philosophy resting upon the basis of mathematics, which like figures cannot lie — Newton, who car- ried the line and rule to the uttermost barriers of creation, and explored the principles by which all created matter exists, and is held together. But this extraordinary man, in the mighty reach of his mind, overlooked, perhaps, the errors, which a minuter investigation of the created things on this earth might have taught him. What shall then be said of the great Mr. Boyle, who looked into the organic structure of all matter, even to the inanimate substances which the foot treads upon ? — Such a man may be supposed to have been equally qualified with Mr. Paine to look up through nature to nature's God. Yet the result of all his contemplations was the most confirmed and devout belief in all which the other holds in contempt, as despicable and drivelling superstition. — But this error might, perhaps, arise from a want of due attention to the foundations of human judgment, and the structure of that understanding which God has given us for the investigation of truth. — Let that question be answered by Mr. Locke, who, to the highest pitch of devotion and adoration, was a Christian — Mr. Locke, whose office was to detect the errors of thinking, by going up to the very fountains of thought, and to direct into the proper tract of reasoning, the devious mind of man, by showing him its whole process, from the first perceptions of sense to the last conclusions of ratiocination : — putting a rein upon false opinion, by practical rules for the conduct of human judgment. ON THE AGE OF REASON. 361 But these men, it may be said, were only deep thinkers, and Uved in their closets, unaccustomed to the traffic of the world, and to the laws which practically regulate mankind. Gentle- men ! in the place where we now sit to administer the justice of this great country, the never-to-be-forgotten Sir Matthew Hale presided; — whose faith in Christianity is an exalted com- mentary upon its truth and reason, and whose life was a glori- ous example of its fruits ; — whose justice, drawn from the pure fountain of the Christian dispensation, will be, in all ages, a subject of the highest reverence and admiration. But it is said by the author, that the Christian fable is but the tale of the more ancient superstitions of the world, and may be easily de- tected by a proper understanding of the mythologies of the Heathens. — Did Milton understand those mythologies'? — Was he less versed than Mr. Paine in the superstitions of the world ? No, — they were the subject of his immortal song; and though shut out from all recurrence to them, he poured them forth from the stores of a memory rich with all that man ever knew, and laid them in their order as the illustration of real and ex- alted faith, the unquestionable source of that fervid genius which has cast a kind of shade upon all the other works of man — He pass'd the bounds of flaming space, Where angels tremble while they gaze — He saw, — till blasted with excess of light, He clos'd his eyes in endless night. But it was the light of the body only that was extinguished ; " The CELESTIAL LIGHT shonc inward, and enabled him to jus- tify the ways of God to man." — The result of his thinking was nevertheless not quite the same as the author's before us. The mysterious incarnation of our blessed Savior (which this work blasphemes in words so wholly unfit for the mouth of a Chris- tian, or for the ear of a court of justice, that I dare not, and will not, give them utterance,) Milton made the grand conclu- sion of his Paradise Lost, the rest from his finished labors, and the ultimate hope, expectation, and glory of the world. A Virgin is his Mother, but his Sire, The power of the Most High ; — he shall ascend The throne hereditary, and bound his reign With earth's wide bounds, his glory with the heavens. The immortal poet having thus put into the mouth of the angel the prophecy of man's redemption, follows it with that solemn and beautiful admonition, addressed in the Poem to our great first parent, but intended as an address to his posterity through all generations : 2 V 31 362 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH This having learn'd, thou hast attain'd the sum Of wisdom ; hope no higher, though all the stars Thou knew'st by name, and all th' ethereal pow'rs, All secrets of the deep, all Nature's works ; Or works of God in heav'n, air, earth or sea, And all the riches of this world enjoy'st, And all the rule, one empire ; only add Deeds to thy knowledge answerable, add faith, Add virtue, patience, temperance, add love. By name to come call'd Charity, the soul Of all the rest : then wilt thou not be loth To leave this Paradise, but shalt possess A Paradise within thee, happier far. Thus you find all that is great, or wise, or splendid, or illus- trious, amongst created beings ; — all the minds gifted beyond ordinary nature, if not inspired by its universal Author for the advancement and dignity of the world, though divided by dis- tant ages, and by clashing opinions, yet joining as it were in one subhme chorus, to celebrate the truths of Christianity, and laying upon its holy altars the never-fading offerings of their immortal wisdom. Against all this concurring testimony, we find suddenly, from the author of this book, that the Bible teaches nothing but " LIES, OBSCENITY, CRUELTY, and INJUSTICE." Had hc ever read our Savior's sermon on the Mount, in which the great principles of our faith and duty are summed up ? — Let us all but read and practise it; and lies, obscenity, cruelty, and injustice, and all human wickedness, will be banished from the world ! Gentlemen, there is but one consideration more, which I can- not possibly omit, because I confess it affects me very deeply. The author of this book has written largely on public liberty and government ; and this last performance, which I am now prosecuting, has, on that account, been more widely circulated, and principally among those who attached themsejves from principle to his former works. This circumstance renders a public attack upon all revealed religion from such a ivriter infi- nitely more dangerous. The religious and moral sense of the people of Great Britain is the great anchor, which alone can hold the vessel of the state amidst the storms which agitate the world ; and if the mass of the people were debauched from the principles of religion, — the true basis of that hamanity, charity, and benevolence, which have been so long the national char- acteristic ; instead of mixing myself, as I sometimes have done, in political reformations, — I would retire to the uttermost cor- ners of the earth, to avoid their agitation ; and would bear, not only the imperfections and abuses complained of in our own wise establishment, but even the worst government that ever ON THE AGE OF REASON. 363 existed in the world, rather than go to the work of reformation with a multitude set free from all the charities of Christianity, who had no other sense of God's existence, than was to be col- lected from Mr. Paine's observation of nature, which the mass of mankind have no leisure to contemplate ; — which promises no future rewards, to animate the good in the glorious pursuit of human happiness, nor punishments to deter the wicked from destroying it even in its birth. The people of England are a religious people, and, with the blessing of God, so far as it is in my power, I will lend my aid to keep them so. I have no objections to the most extended and free discussions upon doctrinal points of the Christian religion ; and though the law of England does not permit it, I do not dread the reasonings of Deists against the existence of Christianity itself, because, as was said by its divine Author, if it be of God it will stand. An intellectual book, however erroneous, addressed to the intellec- tual world upon so profound and complicated a subject, can never work the mischief which this indictment is calculated to repress. Such works will only incite the minds of men enlight- ened by study, to a deeper investigation of a subject well worthy of their deepest and continued contemplation. The powers of the mind are given for human improvement in the progress of human existence. The changes produced by such reciproca- tions of lights and intelligences are certain in their progressions, and make their way imperceptibly, by the final and irresistible power of truth. If Christianity be founded in falsehood, let us become Deists in this manner, and I am contented. — But this book has no such object, and no such capacity : — it presents no arguments to the wise and enlightened. On the contrary, it treats the faith and opinions of the wisest with the most shocking contempt, and stirs up men, without the advantages of learning, or sober thinking, to a total disbelief of everything hitherto held sacred ; and consequently to a rejection of all the laws and ordi- nances of the state, which stand only upon the assumption of their truth. Gentlemen, I cannot conclude without expressing the deepest regret at all attacks upon the Christian religion by authors who profess to promote the civil liberties of the world. For under what other auspices than Christianity have the lost and sub- verted liberties of mankind in former ages been reasserted ? — By what zeal, but the warm zeal of devout Christians, have Enghsh liberties been redeemed and consecrated? — Under what other sanctions, even in our own days, have liberty and happi- ness been spreading to the uttermost corners of the earth 1 — What work of civilization, what commonwealth of greatness. 364 ERSKINE'S SPEECH ON THE AGE OF REASON. has this bald religion of nature ever established ? — We see, on the contrary, the nations that have no other light than that of nature to direct them, sunk in barbarism, or slaves to arbitrary governments ; whilst, under the Christian dispensation, the great career of the world has been slowly, but clearly advancing, — lighter at every step, from the encouraging prophecies of the Gospel, and leading, I trust, in the end, to universal and eternal happiness. Each generation of mankind can see but a few revolving links of this mighty and mysterious chain; but by doing our several duties in our allotted stations, we are sure that we are fulfilling the purposes of our existence. — You, I trust, will fulfil YOURS this day. MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH, IN MARRAM vs. FAWCETT, BEFORE THE DEPUTY SHERIFF OF MIDDLE- SEX AND A SPECIAL JURY, UPON AN INQUISITION OF DAMAGES. Mr. Sheriff, and Gentlemen of the Jury — In representing the unfortunate gentleman who has sustained the injury which has been stated to you by my learned friend, Mr. Holroyd, who opened the pleadings, I feel one great satisfaction — a satisfac- tion founded, as I conceive, on a sentiment perfectly constitu- tional. — I am about to address myself to men whom I person- ALLV know; — to men, honorable in their lives, — moral, — ^judi- cious ; and capable of correctly estimating the injuries they are called upon to condemn in their character of jurors. This, Gentlemen, is the only country in the world, where there is such a tribunal as the one before which I am now to speak : for, however in other countries such institutions as our own may have been set up of late, it is only by that maturity which it requires ages to give to governments — by that progressive wisdom which has slowly ripened the Constitution of our coun- try, that it is possible there can exist such a body of men as YOU are. It is the great privilege of the subjects of England that they judge one another. — It is to be recollected, that, al- though we are in this private room, all the sanctions of justice are present. — It makes no manner of differe-nce, whether I ad- dress you in the presence of the under-sheriff, your respectable chairman, or with the assistance of the highest magistrate of the state. The defendant has, on this occasion, suffered judgment by default: — other adulterers have done so before him. Some have done so under the idea, that, by suffering judgment against them, they had retired from the public eye — from the awful presence of the judge; and that they came into a corner, where there was not such an assembly of persons to witness their misconduct, and where it was to be canvassed before persons, who might be less qualified to judge the case to be ad- dressed to them. It is not long, however, since such persons have had an op- portunity of judging how much they were mistaken in this respect : the largest damages, in cases of adultery, have been given in this place. — By this place, I do not mean the particu- lar room in which we are now assembled, but under inquisitions 31* 366 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH directed to the Sheriff; and the instances to which I allude, are of modern, and, indeed, recent date. Gentlemen, after all the experience I have had, I feel myself I confess, considerably embarrassed in what manner to address you. There are some subjects that harass and overwhelm the mind of man. — There are some kinds of distresses one knows not how to deal with. — It is impossible to contemplate the situa- tion of the Plaintiff without being disqualified, in some degree, to represent it to others with efiect. — It is no less impossible for you. Gentlemen, to receive on a sudden the impressions which have been long in my mind, without feeling overpowered with sensations, which, after all, had better be absent, when men are called upon, in the exercise of duty, to pronounce a legal judgment. The plaintiff is the third son of his grace the Archbishop of York, a clergyman of the Church of England ; presented in the year 1791, to the hving of Stokeley, in Yorkshire; and now, by his majesty's favor, Dean of the Cathedral of York. — He married, in the year 1789, Miss Sutton, the daughter of Sir Richard Sutton, Bart, of Norwood, in Yorkshire, a lady of great beauty and accomplishments, most virtuously educated, and who, but for the crime of the defendant which assembles you here, would, as she has expressed it herself, have been the happiest of womankind. This gentleman having been present- ed, in 1791, by his father to this living, where I understand there had been no resident Rector for forty years, set an ex- ample to the Church and to the public, which was peculiarly virtuous in a man circumstanced as he was ; for, if there can be any person more likely than another to protect himself se- curely with privileges and indulgences, it might be supposed to be the son of the metropolitan of the province. This gentle- man, however, did not avail himself of the advantage of his birth and station : for, although ho was a very young man, he devoted himself entirely to the sacred duties of his profession ; — at a large expense he repaired the Rectory-house for the re- ception of his family, as if it had been his own patrimony, whilst, in his extensive improvements, he adopted only those arrangements which were calculated to lay the foundation of an innocent and peaceful life. — He had married this lady, and entertained no other thought than that of cheerfully devoting himself to all the duties, public and private, which his situation called upon him to perform. About this time, or soon afterwards, the defendant became the purchaser of an estate in the neighborhood of Stokeley, and, by such purchase, an inhabitant of that part of the coun- try, and the neighbor of this unfortunate gentleman. It is a FOR THE REV. MR. MARKHAM. 367 most affecting circumstance, that the plaintiff and the defend- ant had been bred together at Westminster School ; and in my mind it is still more affecting, when I reflect what it is which has given to that school so much rank, respect, and illustration. — It has derived its highest advantages from the reverend father of the unfortunate gentleman whom I represent. — It was the School of Westminster which gave birth to that learning which afterwards presided over it, and advanced its character. — However some men may be disposed to speak or write con- cerning public schools, I take upon me to say, they are among the wisest of our institutions ; — whoever looks at the national character of the English people, and compares it with that of all the other nations upon the earth, will be driven to impute it to that reciprocation of ideas and sentiments which fill and fructify the mind in the early period of youth, and to the affec- tionate sympathies and friendships which rise up in the human heart before it is deadened or perverted by the interests and corruptions of the world. These youthful attachments are proverbial, and indeed few instances have occurred of any breaches of them ; because a man, before he can depart from the obligations they impose, must have forsaken every princi- ple of virtue, and every sentiment of manly honor. When, therefore, the plaintiff found his old school-fellow and compan- ion settled in his neighborhood, he immediately considered him as his brother. Indeed he might well consider him as a bro- ther, since, after having been at Westminster, they were again thrown together in the same College at Oxford ; so that the friendship they had formed in their youth, became cemented and consolidated upon their first entrance into the world. — It is no wonder, therefore, that when the defendant came down to settle in the neighborhood of the plaintiff, he should be at- tracted towards him by the impulse of his former attachment: he recommended him to the Lord Lieutenant of the County, and, being himself a magistrate, he procured him a share in the magistracy. — He introduced him to the respectable circle of his acquaintances ; he invited him to his house, and cherish- ed him there as a friend. It is this which renders the business of to-day most affecting as it regards the plaintiff, and wicked in the extreme as it relates to the defendant, because the confi- dences of friendship conferred the opportunities of seduction. — The plaintiff had no pleasures or affections beyond the sphere of his domestic life ; and except on his occasional resi- dences at York, which were but for short periods, and at a very inconsiderable distance from his home, he constantly re- posed in the bosom of his family. — I believe it will be impos- sible for my learned friend to invade his character ; on the 368 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH contrary, he will be found to have been a pattern of conjugal and parental affection. Mr. Fawcett being thus settled in the neighborhood, and thus received by Mr. Markam as his friend and companion, it is needless to say he could harbor no suspicion that the defendant was meditating the seduction of his wife : — there was nothing indeed, in his conduct, or in the conduct of the unfortunate lady, that could administer any cause of jealousy to the most guarded or suspicious temper. Yet dreadful to relate, and it is, indeed, the bitterest evil of which the plaintiff has to com- plain, a criminal intercourse for nearly five years before the discovery of the connexion had most probably taken place. I will leave you to consider what must have been the feelings of such a husband, upon the fatal discovery that his wife, and such a wife, had conducted herself in a manner that not merely deprived him of her comfort and society, but placed him in a situation too horrible to be described. If a man without chil- dren is suddenly cut off by an adulterer from all the comforts and happiness of marriage, the discovery of his condition is happiness itself when compared with that to which the plaintiff is reduced. When children, by a woman, lost for ever to the husband, by the arts of the adulterer, are begotten in the un- suspected days of virtue and happiness, there remains a conso- lation ; mixed indeed, with the most painful reflections, yet a consolation still. — But what is the plaintiff's situation? — He does not know at irhat time this heavy calamity fell upon him — he is tortured with the most afflicting of all human sensa- tions. — When he looks at the children, whom he is by law bound to protect and to provide for, and from whose existence he ought to receive the delightful return which the union of in- stinct and reason has provided for the continuation of the world, he knows not whether he is lavishing his fondness and affection upon his own children, or upon the seed of a villain sown in the bed of his honor and his delight. — He starts back with hor- ror, when, instead of seeing his own image reflected from theii infant features, he thinks he sees the destroyer of his happiness — a midnight robber introduced into his house, under profes- sions of friendship and brotherhood — a plunderer, not in the repositories of his treasure which may be supplied, or lived without, " but there ichere he had garnered up his hopes, whers either he must live or hear no life.'" In this situation, the plaintiff brings his case before you, and the defendant attempts no manner of defence : he admits his guilt, — he renders it unnecessary for me to go into any proof of it ; and the only question, therefore, that remains, is for you to say what shall be the consequences of his crime, and what FOR THE REV. MR. MARKHAM. 369 verdict you will pronounce against him. You are placed, there- fore, in a situation most momentous to the public ; you have a duty to discharge, the result of which, not only deeply affects the present generation, but which remotest posterity will con- template to your honor or dishonor. — On your verdict it depends whether persons of the description of the defendant, who have cast off all respect for religion, who laugh at morahty, when it is opposed to the gratification of their passions, and who are careless of the injuries they inflict upon others, shall continue their impious and destructive course with impunity. — On your verdict it depends whether such men, looking to the proceedings of Courts of Justice, shall be able to say to themselves, that there are certain limits beyond which the damages of juries are not to pass. On your verdict it depends whether men of large fortunes shall be able to adopt this kind of reasoning to spur them on in the career of their lusts: — There are many chances that I may not be discovered at all: — there are chances, that, if I am discovered, I may not be the object of legal inquiry, — and sup- posing I should, there are certain damages, beyond which a jur-y cannot go; — they may be large, — but still within a certain compass : if I cannot pay them myself, there may be persons belonging to my family who will pity my situation — somehow or other the money may be raised, and I may be delivered from the consequences of my crime. I trust the verdict of this day will show men WHO REASON THUS, THAT THEY ARE MISTAKEN. The action for adultery, like every other action, is to be considered according to the extent of the injury, which the person complaining to a Court of Justice has received. If he has received an injury, or sustained a loss that can be estimated directly in money, there is then n© other medium of redress, but in moneys numbered according to the extent of the proof: I apprehend it will not be even stated by the Counsel for the defendant, that if a person has sustained a loss, and can show it is to any given extent, he is not entitled to the full measure of it in damages. If a man destroys my house or furniture, or deprives me of a chattel, I have a right, beyond all manner of doubt, to recover their corresponding values in money ; and "it is no answer to me to say, that he who has deprived me of the advantage I before possessed, is in no situation to render me satisfaction. — A verdict pronounced upon such a principle, in any of the cases I have alluded to, would be set aside by the Court, and a new trial awarded. — It would be a direct breach of the oaths of jurors, if, impressed with a firm conviction that a plaintiff had received damages to a given amount, they retired from their duty, because they felt commiseration for a 2 W 370 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH defendant, even in a case where he might be worthy of com- passion from the injury being unpremeditated and inadvertent But there are other wrongs which cannot be estimated in money : " You cannot minister to a mind diseas'd." You cannot redress a man who is wronged beyond the pos- sibiUty of redress : — the law has no means of restonng to him what "he has lost. — God himself, as he has constituted human nature, has no means of alleviating such an injury as the one I have brought before you. — While the sensibilities, affections, and feelings he has given to man remain, it is impossible to heal a wound which strikes so deep into the soul. — When you have given to a plaintiff, in damages, all that figures can number, it is as nothing ; — he goes away hanging down his head in sorrow, accompanied by his wretched family, dispirited and dejected. Nevertheless, the law has given a civil action for adultery, and, strange to say, it has given nothing else. — The law commands that the injury shall be compensated (as far as it is practicable) IN MONEY, because Courts of Civil Justice have no other means of compensation than money ; and the only question, therefore, and which you upon your oaths are to decide, is this : has the plaintiff sustained an injury up to the extent which he has complained of? Will twenty thousand pounds place him in the same condition of comfort and happiness that he enjoyed be- fore the aduhery, and which the adulterer has deprived him of? You know that it will not. — Ask your own hearts the question, and you will receive the same answer. — I should be glad to know, then, upon what principle, as it regards the private jus- tice, which the plaintiff has a right to, or upon what principle, as the example of that justice affects the public and the re- motest generations of mankind, you can reduce this demand even in a single farthing. This is a doctrine which has been frequently countenanced by the noble and learned lord who lately presided in the court of king's bench; but his lordship's reasoning on the subject has been much misunderstood, and frequently misrepresented. — The noble lord is supposed to have said, that ahhough a plaintiff may not have sustained an injury by adultery to a given amount, yet that large damages, for the sake of public example, should be given. — He never said any such thing. — He said that which law and morals dictated to him, and which will support his reputation as long as law and morals have a footing in the world. — He said that every plaintiff had a right to recover damages up to the extent of the injury he had received, and that public example stood in the way of showing favor to an adul- terer, by reducing the damages below the sum, which the jury FOR THE REV. MR. MARKHAM. 371 would otherwise consider as the lowest compensation for the wrong. If the plaintiff' shows you that he was a most affec- tionate husband ; that his parental and conjugal affections were the solace of his life ; that for nothing the world could bestow in the shape of riches or honors, would he have bartered one moment's comfort in the bosom of his family, he shows you a wrong that no money can compensate; — nevertheless, if the injury is only mensurable in money, and if you are sworn to make upon your oaths a pecuniary compensation, though I can conceive that the damages when given to the extent of the declaration, and you can give no more, may fall short of what your consciences would have dictated, yet I am utterly at a loss to comprehend upon what principle they can be lessened. — But then comes the defendant's counsel, and says, " It is true that the injury cannot be compensated by the sum which the plaintiff" has demanded ; but you will consider the miseries my client must suffer, if you make him the object of a severe verdict. — You must, therefore, regard him with compassion; though I am ready to admit the plaintiff" is to be compensated for the injury he has received." Here, then, lord Kenyon's doctrine deserves consideration. — " He who will mitigate damages below the fair estimate of the wrong which he has committed, must do it upon some principle which the policy of the law will support." Let me then examine whether the defendant is in a situation which entitles him to have the damages against him mitigated, when private justice to the injured party calls upon you to give them TO THE UTMOST FARTHING. The qucstiou will be — on what principle of mitigation he can stand before you? I had occa- sion, not a great while ago, to remark to a jury, that the wholesome institutions of the civilized world came seasonably in aid of the dispensations of Providence for our well-being in the world. If I were to ask, what it is that prevents the preva- lence of the crime of incest, by taking away those otherwise natural impulses, from the promiscuous gratification of which we should become like the beasts of the field, and lose all the intellectual endearments which are at once the pride and the happiness of man ? — What is it that renders our houses pure, and our families innocent? — It is that by the wise institutions of all civilized nations, there is placed a kind of guard against the human passions, in that sense of impropriety and dishonor, which the law has raised up, and impressed with almost the force of a second nature. — This wase and politic restraint beats down, by the habits of tlie mind, even a propensity to incestuous commerce, and opposes those inclinations, which nature, for wise purposes, has implanted in our breasts at the approach of 372 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH the other sex. — It holds the mind in chains against the seduc- tions of beauty. — It is a moral feeling in perpetual opposition to human infirmity. — It is like an angel from heaven placed to guard us against propensities which are evil. — It is that warning voice, gentlemen, which enables you to embrace your daughter, however lovely, without feeling that you are of a different sex. — It is that which enables you, in the same manner, to live familiarly with your nearest female relations, without those desires which are natural to man. Next to the tie of blood (if not, indeed, before it,) is the sacred and spontaneous relation of friendship. The man who comes under the roof of a married friend, ought to be under the dominion of the same moral restraint : and, thank God, gener- rally is so, from the operation of the causes which I have described. — Though not insensible to the charms of female beauty, he receives its impressions under an habitual reserve, which honor imposes. — Hope is the parent of desire, and honor tells him he must not hope. — Loose thoughts may arise, but they are rebuked and dissipated — " Evil into the mind of God or man May come and go, so unapprov'd, and leave No spot or blame behind." Gentlemen, I trouble you with these reflections, that you may be able properly to appreciate the guilt of the defendant; and to show you, that you are not in a case where large allow- ances are to be made for the ordinary infirmities of our imper- fect natures. When a man does wrong in the heat of sudden passion — as, for instance, when, upon receiving an affront, he rushes into immediate violence, even to the deprivation of life, the humanity of the law classes his offence amongst the lower degrees of homicide ; it supposes the crime to have been com- mitted before the mind had time to parley with itself. — But is the criminal act of such a person, however disastrous may be the consequence, to be compared wath that of the defendant ? — Invited into the house of a friend, — received with the open arms of affection, as if the same parents had given them birth and bred them ; — in this situation, this most monstrous and wicked defendant deliberately perpetrated his crime; and, shocking to relate, not only continued the appearances of friendship, after he had violated its most sacred obligations, but continued them as a cloak to the barbarous repetitions of his offence — writing letters of regard, whilst, perhaps, he was the father of the last child, whom his injured friend and companion was embracing and cherishing as his own. — What protection can such conduct possibly receive from the humane considera- tion of the law for sudden and violent passions ? A passion for FOR THE REV. MR. MARKHAM. 373 a woman is progressive — it does not, like anger, gain an uncon- trolled ascendency in a moment, nor is a modest matron to be seduced in a day. Such a crime cannot, therefore, be com- mitted under the resistless dominion of sudden infirmity; it must be deliberately, tcilful/i/, and iddxedhj committed. — The defend- ant could not possibly have incurred the guilt of this adultery, without often passing through his mind (for he had the educa- tion and principles of a gentleman) the very topics I have been insisting upon before you for his condemnation. — Instead of being suddenly impelled towards mischief, without leisure for such reflections, he had innumerable difficulties and obstacles to contend with. — He could not but hear in the first refusals of this unhappy lady, everything to awaken conscience, and even to excite horror. — In the arguments he must have employed to seduce her from her duty, he could not but recollect, and wilfully trample upon his own. He was a year engaged in the pursuit — he resorted repeatedly to his shameful purposes, and advanced to it at such intervals of time and distance, as entitle me to say, that he determined in cold blood to enjoy a future and momentary gratification, at the expense of every principle of honor which is held sacred amongst gentlemen, even where no laws interpose their obligations or restraints. I call upon you, therefore, gentlemen of the jury, to consider well this case, for it is your office to keep human life in tone— your verdict must decide whether such a case can be indulgently considered, without tearing asunder the bonds which unite society together. Gentlemen, I am not preaching a religion which men can scarcely practise. — I am not affecting a severity of morals beyond the standard of those whom I am accustomed to respect, and with whom I associate in common life. — I am not making a stalking-horse of adultery, to excite exaggerated sentiment. — This is not the case of a gentleman meeting a handsome woman in a public street, or in a place of public amusement ; where, finding the coast clear for his addresses, without interruption from those who should interrupt, he finds himself engaged (probably the successor of another) in a vain and transitory intrigue. — It is not the case of him who, night after night, falls in with the wife of another to whom he is a stranger, in the boxes of a theatre, or other resorts of pleasure, inviting admirers by indecent dress and deportment, unattended by anything which bespeaks the aflectionate wife and mother of many children. — Such connexions may be of evil example, but I am not here to reform public manners, but to demand private justice. — It is impossibje to assimilate the sort of cases I have alluded to, which ever will be occasic.naljy occurring, with this 3'.^^ — Now what is the plain English of this? — The commentator says, I am going to instruct you, the student, who are to learn from me the law of England, what is a compassing of the death of the King ; but that I cannot do, but by first carrying you to look into what was the compassing of the death of a subject at the ancient con^mon law ; because the statute having made a compassing, as applied to the King, the crime of high trea- son, which, at common law, was felony in the case of a subject, it is impossible to define the one, without looking back to the records which illustrate the other. This is so directly the train of Lord Coke's reasoning, that in his own singularly pre- cise style of commentating, he immediately lays before his reader a variety of instances from the ancient records and year-books, of compassing the subject's death; and what are they? — Not acts wholly collateral to attacks upon life, dogmat- ically laid down by the law from speculations upon probable or possible consequences ; but assaults with intent to murder ; ■ — conspiracies to waylay the person with the same intention ; and other murderous machinations. These were only compass- ings before the statute against the subject's life; and the exten- sion of the expression was never heard of in the law till intro- duced by the craft of political judges, when it became appli- cable to crimes against the State. Here again I desire to appeal to the highest authorities for this source of constructive treasons: for although the statute of Edward the Third had expressly directed that nothing should be declared to be treason but cases within its enacting letter, yet Lord Hale says, in his Pleas of the Crown, page 83, that *' things were so carried l)y parties and factions, in the succeeding reign of Richard the Second, that this statute was but little observed, but as this or that party got the better. So the crime of high treason was in a manner arbitrarily imposed and adjudged, to the disad- vantage of the party that was to be judged ; which, by various 34 398 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH vicissitudes and revolutions, mischiefed all parties, first and last, and left a great unsettledness and unquietness in the minds of the people, and was one of the occasions of the unhappiness of that King. " All this mischief was produced by the statute of the 21st of Richard the Second, which enacted, That every man that compasseth or pursueth the death of the King, or to depose him, or to render up his homage liege, or he that raiseth people, and rideth against the King, to make war within his realm, and of that be duly attainted and adjudged, shall be adjudged a traitor, of high treason against the Crown. " This," says Lord Hale, " was a great snare to the subject, insomuch that the statute, 1st of Henry Fourth, which repealed it, recited that no man knew how he ought to behave himself, to do, speak, or say, for doubt of such pains of treason ; and therefore wholly to remove the prejudice, which might come to the King's subjects, the statute, 1st of Henry Fourth, chap. 10, was made, ivhich brought hack treason to the standard of the 25th of Edward the Third." Now if we look to this statute of Richard the Second, which produced such mischiefs — what are they? — As far as it re- enacted the treason of compassing the King's death, and levy- ing war, it only re-enacted the statute of Edward the Third, but it went beyond it by the loose construction of compassing to depose the King, and raising the people, and riding to make war, or a compassing to depose him, terms neio to the common law. The actual levying of force, to imprison, or depose the King, tvas already and properly high treason, within the second branch of the statute; but this statute of Richard the Second enlarged only the crime of compassing, making it extend to a compass- ing to imprison or depose, which are the great objects of an actual levying of war, and making a compassing to levy war, on a footing with the actual levying it. It seems, therefore, most astonishing, that any judge could be supposed to have de- cided, as an abstract rule of law, that a compassing to imprison or depose the King was high treason, substantively, rdthout pre- vious compassing of his death: since it was made so by this statute, 21st of Richard the Second, and reprobated, stigma- tized, and repealed by the statute, 1st of Henry the Fourth, chap. 10. " And so little effect," says Mr. Justice Blackstone, '* have over-violent laws to prevent any crime, that within two years after this new law of treason respecting imprisonment and deposing, this very prince was both deposed and murdered." Gentlemen, this distinction, made by the humane statute of Edward the Third, between treason against the King's natural life, and rebellion against his civil authority, and which the act ON THE TRLVL OF THOMAS HARDY. 399 of Richard the Second, for a season, broke down, is founded in wise and sound poHcy. A successful attack may be made upon the Kuig's person by the maHgnity of an individual, without the combination of extended conspiracy, or the exertions of re- bellious force ; the law therefore justly stands upon the watch to crush the first ovei't manifestation of so evil and detestable a purpose. — Considering the life of the Chief Magistrate as infi- nitely important to the public security, it does not wait for the possible consummation of a crime, which requires neither time, combination, nor force to accomplish, but considers the traitor- ous purpose as a consummated treason : but the wise and hu- mane policy of our forefathers extended the severity of the rule, voluntas pro facto, no farther than they were thus impelled and justified by the necessity ; and therefore an intention to levy war and rebellion, not consummated, however manifested by the most overt acts of conspiracy, was not declared to be treason, and upon the plainest principle in the world: The King's REGAL capacity, guarded by all the force and authority of the state, could not, like his natural existence, be over- thrown or endangered in a moment, by the first machinations of the traitorous mind of an individual, or even by the unarm- ed conspiracy of numbers ; and therefore th-s humane and ex- alted institution, measuring the sanctions of criminal justice by the standard of civil necessity, thought it sufficient to scourge and dissipate unarmed conspirators by a less vindictive proceeding. These new treasons were, however, at length all happilv swept away on the accession of King Henry the Fourth, which brought the law back to the standard of Edward the Third; and, indeed, in reviewing the history of this highly favored island, it is most beautiful, and, at the same time, highly en- couraging to observe, by what an extraordinary concurrence of circumstances, under the superintendence of a benevolent Providence, the liberties of our country have been estab- lished. Amidst the convulsions, arising from the maddest ambition and injustice, and whilst the State was alternately departing from its poise, on one side, and on the other, the great rights of mankind were still insensibly taking root and flourishing; — though sometimes monarchy threatened to lay them prostrate, though aristocracy occasionally undermined them, and democracy, in her turn, rashly trampled on them, yet they have ever come safely around at last. — This awful and sublime contemplation should teach us to bear with one another, when our opinions do not quite coincide ; extracting final harmony from the inevitable differences which ever did, and ever must, exist amongst men. 400 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH Gentlemen, the act of Henry the Fourth was scarcely made when it shared the same fate with the venerable law which it restored. — Nobody regarded it. — It was borne down by fac- tions, and, in those days, there were no Judges, as there arc now, to hold firm the balance of justice amidst the storms of state; — men could not then, as the prisoner can to-day, look up for protection to magistrates independent of the crown, and awfully accountable in character to an enlightened world. As fast as arbitrary constructions were abolished by one statute, unprincipled Judges began to build them up again, till they were beat down by another : to recount their strange treasons would be tiresome and disgusting; but their system of con- struction, in the teeth of positive law, may be well illustrated by two lines from Pope : " Destroy his fib and sophistry in vain. The creature's at his dirty work again." The system, both judicial and parliamentary, became indeed so intolerable, in the interval between the reign of Henry the Fourth, and that of Philip and Mary, that it produced, in the first year of the latter reign, the most remarkable statute that ever passed in England, repealing not only all former statutes upon the subject, except that of Edward the Third, but also stio-matizing, upon the records of Parliament, the arbitrary CONSTRUCTIONS of Judgcs, and limiting them, in all times, to every LETTER of th'e statute. I will read to you Lord Cokeys commentary upon the subject. In his third Institute, page 23, he says, — "Before the act of the 25th of Edward the Third, so many treasons had been made and declared, and in such sort penned, as not only the ignorant and unlearned people, but also learned and expert men, were trapped and snared, * * so as the mischief before Edward the Third, of the uncertain- ty of what was treason and what not, became so frequent and dangerous, as that the safest and surest remedy was by this excellent act of Mary to abrogate and repeal all, but only such as are specified and expressed in this statute of Edward the Third. By which law the safety of both the King and of the subject, aiid the preservation of the common weal, were wisely and sufficiently provided for, and in such certainty, that nihil rdictum est (wbitrio judicis" The whole evil, indeed, to be remedied and avoided by the act of Queen Mary was, the arbitrium judicis, or judicial con- struction beyond the letter of the statute. The statute itself was perfect, and was restored in its full vigor; and to sup- pose, therefore, that when an act was expressly made, because Judges had built treasons by constructions beyond the law. ON THE TRIAL OF THOMAS HARDY. 401 they were to be left, consistently with their duty, to go on building again, is to impute a folly to the Legislature, which never yet was imputed to the framers of this admirable statute. But this absurd idea is expressly excluded, not merely by the statute, according to its plain interpretation, but according to the direct authority of Loi'd Coke himself, in his commentary upon it. For he goes on to say, " Two things are to be ob- served, first, that the word expressed, in the statute of Mary, excludes all implications or inferences whatsoever ; secondly, that no former attainder, judgment, precedent, resolution, or opinion of judges, or justices, of high treason, other than such as are specified and expressed in the statute of Edward the Third, are to be followed or drawn into example. For the words be j)lain and direct; that from henceforth no act, deed, or offence shall be taken, had, deemed or adjudged to be high treason, but only such as are declared and expressed in the said act of the 25th of Edward the Third, any act of Parliament or statute after 25th of Edward the Third, or any other declaration or matter, to the contrary notwithstanding." Gentlemen, if the letter of the statute of Mary, when coupled with Lord Coke's commentary, required further illustration, it would amply receive it from the preamble, which ought to be engraven on the heart of every man who loves the King, or who is called to any share in his councils; for, as Lord Coke observes, in the same commentary : It truly recites, that "the state of a king standeth and consisteth more assured by the love and favor of the subjects towards their Sovereign, than in the dread and fear of laws, made with rigorous and extreme pun- ishment; and that laws, justly made for the preservation of the common weal, without extreme punishment or penalty, are more often and for the most part better kept and obeyed, than laws and statutes made with extreme punishment." But, Gentlemen, the most important part of Lord Coke's (Commentary on this statute is yet behind, which I shall pres- ently read to you, and to which I implore your most earnest attention, because I will show you by it, that the unfortunate man, whose innocence I am defending, is arraigned before you of high treason, upon evidence not only wholly repugnant to this particular statute, but such as never yet was heard of in England upon any capital trial : — evidence which, even with all the attention you have given to it, I defy any one of you, at this moment, to say of what it consists ; — evidence, which (since it must be called by that name) I tremble for my boldness in presuming to stand up for the life of a man, when I am con- scious that I am incapable of understanding from it, even what acts are imputed to him ; — evidence, which has consumed four 3 A 34* 402 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH days in the reading ; — not in reading the acts of the prisoner, but the unconnected writings of men, unknown to one another, upon a hundred diiferent subjects ; — evidence, the very listening to which has deprived me of the sleep which nature requires ; — wdiich has filled my mind with unremitting distress and agita- tion, and which, from its discordant unconnected nature, has suflered me to reap no advantage from the indulgence, which I began with thanking you for ; but which on the contrary, has almost set my brain on fire, with the vain endeavor of collecting my thoughts upon a subject never designed for any rational course of thinking. Let us, therefore, see how the unexampled condition I am placed in falls in with Lord Coke upon this subject, whose authority is appealed to by the Crown itself; — and let us go home and burn our books, if they are to blazon forth the law by eulogium, and accurately to define its protector, which yet the subject is to be totally cut off from, when, even under the sanction of these very authors, he stands upon his trial for his existence. Lord Coke says in the same Commentary, page 12, that the statute had not only accurately defined the charge, but the nature of the proof on which alone a man shall be attainted of any of the branches of high treason. — " It is to be observed," says he, " that the word in the act of Edward the Third is p-ovabhinenl : i. c. Upon direct and manifest proof, not upon conjectural presumptions, or inferences, or strains of wit, but upon good and sufficient proof. And herein the adverb prov- ABLY hath a great force, and signifieth a DIRECT PLAIN proof, which word the Lords and Commons in Parliament did use, for that the offence of treason was so heinous, and was so heavily and severely punished, as none other the like and there- fore the oftender must be PROVABLY attainted, which words are as forcible as upon direct and manifest proof. Note, the word is not probably, for then commune argumenium might have served, but the word is provably be attainted." Nothing can be so curiously and tautologously labored as this Commentary, of even that great prerogative lawyer Lord Coke, upon this single word in the statute ; and it manifesth shows, that so far from its being the spirit and principle of the law of England, to loosen the construction of this statute, and to adopt rules of construction and proof, unusual in trials for other crimes, on the contrary, the Legislature did not even leave it to the judges to apply the ordinary rules of legal proof to trials under it, but admonished them to do justice in that respect in the very body of the statute. Lord Hale treads in the same path with Lord Coke, and ON THE TRIAL OF THOMAS HARDY. 403 concludes this part of the subject by the following most remark- able passage — vol. i. chap. xi. 86. "Now although the crime of high treason is the greatest crime against faith, duty, and human society, and brings with it the greatest and most fatal dangers to the government, peace, and happiness of a kingdom, or state; and therefore, is deserv- edly branded with the highest ignominy, and subjected to the greatest penalties that the laws can inflict: it appears, ^7-5/, how necessary it was that there should be some known, fixed, SETTLED boundary for this great crime of treason, and of what great importance the statute of the 25th of Edward the Third was, in order to that end. Second, How dangerous it is to depart from the letter of that statute, and to multiply and enhance crimes into treason by ambiguous and general words, such as accroaching royal power, subverting fundamental laws, and the like. And Third, how dangerous it is by con- struction, and ANALOGY, to make treasons where the letter of the law has not done it. For such a method admits of no limits, or bounds, but runs as far and as wide as the wit and invention of accusers, and the detestation of persons accused, will carry men." Surely the admonition of this supereminent judge ought to sink deep into the heart of every judge, and of every juryman, who is called to administer justice under this statute; above all, in the times, and under the peculiar circumstances which assembled us in this place. Honorable men, feeling as they ought, for the safety of govei'nment, and the tranquillity of the country, and naturally indignant against those who are sup- posed to proceed with more abundant caution, lest they should be surprised by their i^esentments or their fears, they ought to advance in the judgments they form, by slow and trembling steps ; — they ought even to fall back and look at everything again, lest a false light should deceive them, admitting no fact but upon the foundation of clear and precise evidence, and deciding upon no intention that does not result with equal clear- ness from the fact. This is the universal demand of justice in every case criminal or civil ; — how much more then in this, when the judgment is every moment in danger of being swept away into the fathomless abyss of a thousand volumes ; where there is no anchorage for the understanding ; where no reach of thought can look round in order to compare their points; nor any memory be capacious enough to retain even the imperfect relation that can be collected from them ! Gentlemen, my mind is the more deeply affected with this consideration by a very recent example in that monstrous phe- nomenon which, under the name of a trial, has driven us out of 404 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH Westminster Hall for a large portion of my professional life. No man is less disposed than 1 am to speak lightly of great state prosecutions, which bind to their duty those who have no other superiors, nor any other control ; last of ail am I capable of even glancing a censure against those who have led to or conducted the impeachment, because I respect and love many of them, and know tliem to be amongst the best and wisest men in the nation — I know them indeed so well, as to be persuaded that could they have foreseen the vast field it was to open, and the length of time it was to occupy, they never would have engaged in it; for I defy any man, not illuminated by the Divine Spirit, to say, with the precision and certainty of an English Judge deciding upon evidence before him, that Mr. Hastings is guilty or not guilty : — for who knows what is before him, or what is not? — Many have carried what they knew to their graves, and the living have lived long enough to forget it. Indeed I pray God that such another proceeding may never exist in England ; because I consider it as a dishonor to the Constitution, and that it brings, by its example, insecurity into the administration of justice. Every man in civilized society lias a right to hold his life, liberty, property, and reputation, under plain laws, that can be well understood, and is entitled to have some limited specific part of his conduct, compared and examined by their standard ; but he ought not for seven years, no, nor for seven days, to stand as a criminal before the highest human tribunal, until judgment is bewildered and confounded, to come at last, perhaps, to defend himself, broken down with fatigue, and dispirited with anxiety, which indeed, is my own condition at this moment, who am only stating the case of another — What then must be the condition of the unfortunate person whom you are trying ? The next great question is, how the admonitions of these great writers are to be reconciled with what is undoubtedly to be found in other parts of their works ; and I think I do not go too far, when I say, that it ought to be the inclination of every person's mind who is considering the meaning of any writer, particularly if he be a person of superior learning and intelligence, to reconcile as much as possible all he says upon any subject, and not to adopt such a construction as necessarily raises up one part in direct opposition to another. The law itself, indeed, adopts this sound rule of judgment in the examination of every matter which is laid before it, for a sound construction ; and the Judges, therefore, are bound by duty as well as reason to adopt it. It appears to me then, that the only ambiguity which arises or can possibly arise, in the examination of the great authori- ON THE TRIAL OF THOMAS HARDY. 405 ties, and in the comparison of them with themselves, or with one another, is, from not rightly understanding the meaning of the term overt act as applied to this species of treason. The moment you get right upon the true meaning and signification of this expression, the curtain is drawn up, and all is hght and certainty. Gentlemen, an overt act of the high treason charged upon this record, I take, with great submission to the Court, to be plainly and simply this : — the high treason charged, is the com- passing or imagining (in other, words, the intending or design- ing) the death of the King; I mean his natural death; which being a hidden operation of the mind, an overt act is anything which legally proves the existence of such traitorous design and intention — I say, that the design against the King's natural life, is the high treason under the first branch of the statute ; and whatever is evidence, which may be legally laid before a Jury to judge of the traitorous intention, is a legal overt act ; because an overt act is nothing but legal evidence embodied upon the record. The charge of compassing being a charge of intention, which, without a manifestation by conduct, no human tribunal could try; the statute requires by its very letter (but without which letter reason must have presumed) that the intention to cut off the Sovereign should be manifested by an open act; and as a prisoner charged with an intention, could have no notice how to defend himself without the charge of actions from whence the intention was to be imputed to him, it was always the prac- tice, according to the sound principles of English law, to state upon the face of the Indictment the overt act which the Crown charges as the means made use of by the prisoner to effect his traitorous purpose ; and as this rule was too frequently departed from, the statute of the seventh of King William enacted, for the benefit of the prisoner, that no evidence should even be given of any overt act not charged in the Indictment. The charge, therefore, of the overt acts in the Indictment is the notice, enacted by statute to be given to the prisoner for his protection, of the means by which the Crown is to sub- mit to the Jury the existence of the traitorous purpose, which is the crime alleged against him, and in pursuance of which traitorous purpose the overt acts must also be charged to have been committed. Whatever, therefore, is relevant or competent evidence to be received in support of the traitorous intention, is a legal overt act, and what acts are competent to that purpose, is (as in all other cases) matter of law for the Judges ; but whether, after the overt acts are received upon the record as competent, and are established by proof upon the 406 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH trial, they be sufficient or insufficient in the particular instance, to convince the Jury of the traitorous compassing or intention, is a mere matter of fact, \vhich, from its very nature, can be reduced to no other standard than that which each man's own conscience and understanding erects in his mind, as the arbi- ter of his judgment. This doctrine is by no means new nor peculiar to high treason, but pervades the whole law, and may be well illustrated in a memorable case lately decided upon writ of error in the House of Lords, and which must be in the memory of all the Judges now present, who took a part in its decision : — there the question was, whether, upon the establish- ment of a number of facts by legal evidence, the defendant had knowledge of a fact, the knowing of which would leave him de- fenceless. To draw that question from the Jury to the Judges, I demurred to the evidence, saying, that though each part of it was legally admitted, it was for the law, by the mouth of the Judges, to pronounce whether this fact of knowledge could legally be in- ferred from it ; but the Lords, with the assent of all the Judges, decided, to my perfect satisfaction, that such a demurrer to the evidence was irregular and invalid; that the province of the Jwy over the effect of evidence, ought not to be so transferred to the. Judges, and converted into matter of law; — that what was rele- vant evidence to come before a Jury, was the province of the Court, — but that the conclusion to be drawn from admissible evidence, was the unalienable province of the country. To apply that reasoning to the case before us: — The matter to be inquired of here is, the fact of the prisoner's intention, as in the case I have just cited it was the fact of the defendant's knowledge. The charge of a conspiracy to depose the King, is therefore laid before you to establish that intention ; its com- petency to be laid before you for that purpose, is not disputed ; I am only contending with all reason and authority on my side, that it is to be submitted to your consciences and understand- mgs, whether, even if you believed the overt act, you believe also that it proceeded from a traitorous machination against the life of the King. I am only contending that these two beliefs must coincide to establish a verdict of Guilty. I am not contending, that, under circumstances, a conspiracy to depose the King, and to annihilate his regal capacity, may not be strong and satisfactory evidence of the intention to destroy his LIFE ; — but only that in this, as in every other instance, it is for you to collect or not to collect this treason against the King's life, according to the result of your conscientious belief and judgment, from the acts of the prisoner laid before you ; and that the establishment of the overt act, even if it were estab- lished, does not establish the treason against the King's life, ON THE TRIAL OF THOMAS HARDY. 407 BY A CONSEQUENCE OF LAW ; but on the contrary, the overt act, though punishable in another shape, as an independent crime, is a dead letter upon this record, unless you believe, exercising your exclusive jurisdiction over the facts laid before you, that it was committed in accomplishment of the treason against the natural life of the King. Gentlemen, this particular crime of compassing the King's death, is so complete an anomaly, being wholly seated in un- consummated intention, that the law cannot depart from describ- ing it according to its real essence, even when it is followed by his death ; — a man cannot be indicted for killing the King, as was settled in the case of the Regicides of Charles the First ; after long consultation among all the Judges : — it was held that the very words of the statute must be pursued, and that although the King was actually murdered, the ^prisoners who destroyed him could not be charged with the act itself, as high treason, but with the compassing of his death ; the very act of the executioner in beheading him, being only laid as the overt act upon the record. There, though the overt act was so con- nected with, as to be even inseparable from the traitorous in- tention, yet they were not confounded because of the effect of the precedent in dissimilar cases : and although the Regicides came to be tried immediately on the restoration of the King, in the day-spring of his authority, and before high prerogative Judges, and under circumstances when, in any country but England, their trial would have been a mockery, or their exe- cution have been awarded without even the forms of trial; yet in England, that sacred liberty, which has for ever adorned the constitution, refused to sacrifice to zeal or enthusiasm, either the substance or the forms of justice. Hear what the Chief Baron pronounced upon that occasion : — " These persons are to be proceeded with according to the laws of the land, and I shall speak nothing to you but what are the words of the law. By the statute of Edward the Third, it is made high treason to compass and imagine the death of the King; in no case else imagination or compassing, without an actual effect, is punishable by law." He then speaks of the sacred life of the King, and speaking of the treason, says : — " The treason con- sists in the wicked imagination which is not apparent : but when this poison swell-s out of the heart, and breaks forth into action, in that case it is high treason. Then what is an overt act of an imagination, o?' compassing of the King's death f Truly, it is anything ivhich shoivs what the imagination of the heart is." Indeed, Gentlemen, the proposition is so clear, that one gets confounded in the argument from the very simplicity of it; but still I stand in a situation which I am determined at all events 408 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH to fulfil to the utmost ; and I shall therefore not leave the mat- ter upon these authorities, but will bring it down to our own times, repeating my challenge to have produced one single au- thority in contradiction. Loi'd Coke, in his third Institute, p. 11 and 12, says: — "The Indictment must charge that the prisoner traitorously compassed and imagined the death and destruction of the King." lie sUys too, — " There must be a com{)assing or imagination ; for an act without compassing, intent, or imagination, is not within the act, as appeareth by the express letter thereof". Et actus noii facit reum nisi mens sit rea." Nothing in language can more clearly illustrate my proposition. — The Indictment, like every other indictment, must charge distinctly and specifically the crime : that charge must therefore be in the very words of the statute which creates the crime : the crijne created by the statute not being the perpetra- tion of any act, but being, in the rigorous severity of the law, the very contemplation, intention, and contrivance of a purpose, directed to an act; that contemplation, purpose, and contrivance, must be found to exist, without which, says Lord Coke, there can be no compassing : and as the intention of the mind cannot be investigated without the investigation of conduct, the overt act is re(|uired by the statute, and must be laid in the Indict- ment and proved. It follows from this deduction, that upon the clear principles of the English law, every act may be laid as an overt act of compassing the Kipg's death, which may be reasonably considered to be relevant and competent to manifest that intention ; for, were it otherwise, it would be shutting out from the view of the jury, certain conduct of the prisoner, which might, according to circumstances, lead to manifest the criminal intention of his mind ; and as more than one overt act may be laid, and even overt acts of different kinds, though not in themselves substantively treason, the judges appear to be justified in law, when they ruled them to be overt acts of com- passing the death of the King; because they are such acts as iDcfore the statute of King William, which required that the In- dictment should charge all overt acts, would have been held to be relevant proof; of which relevancy of proof the judges are to judge as matter of law ; and therefore being relevant prooi, must also be relevant matter of charge, because nothing can be relevantly charged which may not also be relevantly ad- mitted to proof. These observations explain to the meanest capacity, in what sense Lord Coke must be understood, when he says, in the very same page, that, " A preparation to depose the King, and to take the King by force and strong hand, until he has yielded to certain demands, is a sufficient overt act to PROVE the compassing of the King's death." He does not say ON THE TRIAL OF THOMAS HARDY 409 AS A PROPOSITION" OF LAW, that hc who prepares to seize the King, compasseth his death, but that a preparation to seize him is a sufficient overt act to prove tiie compassing ; and he directly gives the reason, " because of the strong tendency it has to that end." This latter sentence destroys all ambiguity. I agree perfectly with Lord Coke, and I think every Judge would so decide, upon the general principles of law and evidence, without any resort to his authority for it ; and for this plain and obvious reason : — The Judges who are by law to decide upon the re- levancy or competency of the proof, in every matter criminal and civil, have immemorially sanctioned the indispensable ne- cessity of charging the traitorous intention as the crime, before it was required by the statute of King William. — As the crime is in its nature invisible and inscrutable, until manifested by such conduct as in the eye of reason is indicative of the inten- tion, which constitutes the crime; no overt act is therefore held to be sufficient to give jurisdiction, even to a jury, to draw the inference in fact of the traitorous purpose, but such acts from whence it may be reasonably inferred ; and therefore as the restraint and imprisonment of a Prince has a greater tendency to his destruction than in the case of a private man, such con- spiracies are admitted to be laid as overt acts, upon this princi- ple: that if a man does an act from whence either an inevitable or a mainly probable consequence may be expected to follow, much more if he persists deliberately in a course of conduct, leading certainly or probably to any given consequence, it is reasonable to believe that he foresaw such consequence, and by pursuing his purpose with that foreknowledge, the intention to produce the consequence may be fairly imputed. But then all this is matter of fact for the Jury from the evidence, not matter of law for the Court; further than it is the privilege and duty of the Judge to direct the attention of the Jury to the evidence, and to state the law as it may result from the dirterent views the jury may entertain of the facts ; and if such acts could not be laid as overt acts, they could not be offered in evidence ; and if they could not be offered in evidence, the mind of the pris- oner, which it was the object of the trial to lay open as a clue to his intention, would be shut up and concealed from the Jury, whenever the death of the Sovereign was sought by circuitous but obvious means, instead of by a direct and murderous ma- chination. But when they are thus submitted, as matter of charge and evidence to prove the traitorous purpose which is the crime, the security of the King and of the subject is equally provided for : all the matter which has a relevancy to the crime, is chargeable and provable, not sid)sta7itiveJi/ to raise from their establishment a legal inference, but to raise a presumption in 3 B 35 410 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH fact, capable of being weighed by the Jury with all the circum- stances of the transaction, as offered to the Crown and the prisoner ; their province being finally to say — not what was the possible or the probable consequence of the overt act laid in the Indictment, but whether it has brought them to a safe and conscientious judgment of the guilt of the prisoner; i. e. of his guilt in compassing the death of the King, which is the treason charged in the Indictment. Lord Hale is, if possible, more direct and explicit upon the subject. — He says, page 107, "The words compass or imagine, are of a great latitude ; they refer to the purpose or design of the mind or will, though the purpose or design takes not effect : but compassing or imagining, singly of itself, is an internal act, and, without something to manifest it, could not possibly fall under any judicial cognizance but of God alone ; and therefore this statute requires such an overt act as may render the compassing or imagining capable of a trial and sentence by human judicatures." Now can any man pos- sibly derive from such a writing (|)roceeding too from an au thor of the character of Lord Hale,) that an overt act of com- passing, might in his judgment be an act committed inadver tently without the intention l Can any man gather from it, that a man, by falling into bad company, can be drawn in to be guilty of this species of treason by rash conduct, while the love of his Sovereign was glowing in his bosom '! Can there be any particular acts which can entitle a'.ludge or Counsel to pro- nounce as a matter of law, what another man intends ? or that what a man intends is not a matter of fact ? Is there any man that will meet the matter fairly, and advance and support that naked proposition ? At all events, it is certainly not a proposi- tion to be dealt with publicly ; because the man whose mind is capable even of conceiving it, should be treasured up in a mu- seum, and exhibited there as a curiosity, for money. Gentlemen, all I am asking, however, from my argument, and I defy any power of reason upon earth to move me from it, is this : that the prisoner being charged with intending the King's death, you are to find whether this charge be founded or unfounded ; and that therefore, put upon the record what else you will, — prove what you will, — read these books over and over again, — and let us stand here a year and a day in dis- coursing concerning them, — still the questton must return at last to what YOU and you only can resolve — Is he guilty of that base detestable intention to destroy the King ? Not whether you incline to believe that he is guilty; not whether you suspect, nor whether it be probable ; not whether he may be guilty ; — no, but that PROVABLY HE IS GUILTY. If you cau say this upon the evidence, it is your duty to say so, and you may, with a tran- ON THE TRIAL OF THOMAS HARDY, 41 J quil conscience, return to your families : though by your judg- ment the unhaj)py object of it must return no more to his. — Alas ! Gentlemen, what do I say ? he has no family to return to ; — the affectionate partner of his life has already fallen a victim to the surprise and horror which attended the scene now transacting. But let that melancholy reflection pass — it should not, perhaps, have been introduced — it certainly ought to have no elfect upon you who are to judge upon your oaths. — I do not stand here to desire you to commit perjury from compas- sion ; — but at the same time my earnestness may be forgiven, since it proceeds from a weakness common to us all. I claim no merit with the prisoner for my zeal ; — it proceeds from a selfish principle inherent in the human heart. — I am Counsel, Gentlemen, for myself. In every word I utter, I feel that I am pleading for the safety of my own life, for the lives of my chil- dren after me, for the happiness of my country, and for the uni- versal condition of civil society throughout the world. But let us return to the subject, and pursue the doctrine of Lord Hale upon the true interpretation of the term overt act, as applicable to this branch of treason. Lord Hale says, and I do beseech most earnestly the attention of the Court and Jury to this passage — " If men consf)ire the death of the King and thereupon provide weapons, or send letters, this is an overt act within the statute." Take this to y)ieces, and what does it amount to? — '' If men conspire the death of the King," that is the first thing, viz. the inleiition, " and thereupon," that is, in pursuance of that viched inlenlion, " provide M^eapons, or send letters for the execution thereof," i. e. for the execution of that destruction of the King, which they have meditated, " this is an overt act within the statute." Surely the meaning of all this is self-evident — If the intention be against the King's life, though the conspiracy does not immediately and directly point to his death, yet still the overt act will be sufficient if it be something which has so direct a tendency to that end, as to be competent rational evidence of the intention to obtain it. But the instances given by Lord Hale himself furnish the best illus- tration — " If men conspire to imprison the King hy force and a strong hand until he has yielded to certain demands, and for that purpose gather company, or urite letters, that is an overt act TO PROVE the compassing the King's death, as it was held in Lord Cobham's case by all the Judges." In this sentence Lord Hale does not depart from that precision which so eminently distinguishes all his writings; he docs not say, that if men con- spire to imprison the King until he yields to certain demands, and for that purpose to do so and so. This is high treason — no, nor even an overt act of high treason, though he might in legal 412 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH language correctly have said so ; but to prevent the possibility of confounding the treason with matter which may be legally charged as relevant to the proof of it, he follows Lord Coke's expression in the third Institute, and says, This is an overt act to prove the compassing of the King's death : and as if by this mode of expression he had not done enough to keep the ideas asunder, and from abundant regard for the rights and hberties of the subject, he immediately adds, " But then there must he an overt act to prove that conspiracij ; and then that overt act to I'ROVE such design, is an overt act to prove the compassing of the death of the King." The language of this sentence labors in the ear from the excessive caution of the writer; — afraid thai his reader should jump too fast to his conclusion upon a subject of such awful moment, he pulls him back after he has read that a conspiracy to imprison the King is an overt act to prove the compassing of his death, and says to him. But recollect that there must be an overt act to prove, in the first place, that conspiracy to imprison the King, and even then that intention to imprison him, so manifested by the overt act, is but in its turn an overt act to prove the compassing or intention to de- stroy the King. Nor does the great and benevolent Hale rest even here, but after this almost tedious perspicuity, he begins the next sentence with this fresh caution and limitation, " but then this must be intended of a conspiracy, forcibly to detain and imprison the King." What then is a conspiracy forcibly to im- prison the King I — surely it can require no explanation : it can only be a direct machination to seize and detain his person by rebellious force. Will this expression be satisfied by a con- spiracy to seize speculatively upon his authority by the publi- cation of pamphlets, which, by the inculcation of republican principles, may in the eventual circulation of a course of years, perhaps in a course of centuries, in this King's time, or in the time of a remote successor, debauch men's minds from the English constitution, and, by the destruction of monarchy, in- volve the life of the monarch ? — Will any man say, that this is what the law means by a conspiracy against the King's gov- ernment, supposing even that a conspiracy against his govern- ment were synonymous with a design upon his life I Can any case be produced where a person has been found guilty of high treason, under this branch of the statute, where no war has been actually levied, unless where the conspiracy has been a forcible invasion of the King's personal liberty or security? 1 do not mean to say that a conspiracy to levy war may not, in many instances, be laid as an overt act of compassing the King's death, because the war may be mediately or immediately pointed distinctly to his destruction or captivity ; and as Lord ON THE TRIAL OF THOMAS HARDY. 413 Hale truly says, " small is the distance between the prisons and graves of- Princes." But multiply the instances as you will, still the principle presents itself. The truth of this very maxim, built upon experience, renders an overt act of this description rational and competent evidence to be left to a jury of a design against the King's life ; but it does not, therefore, change the nature of the crime, nor warrant any Court to declare the overt act to be legally and conclusively indicative of the trai- torous intention ; because, if this be once admitted to be law, and the jury are bound to find the treason upon their belief of the existence of the overt act, the trial by the country is at an end, and the Judges are armed with an arbitrary uncontrollable dominion over the lives and liberties of the nation. Gentlemen, I will now proceed to show you that the doc- trines which I am insisting on have been held by all the great Judges of this country, in even the w^orst of times, and that they are, besides, not at all peculiar to the case of high treason, but pervade the whole system of the criminal law. Mr. Justice Forster, so justly celebrated for his writings, lays down the rule thus : — It may be laid down as a general rule, that " indictments founded upon penal statutes, ESPECIALLY THE MOST PENAL, must pursue the statute so as to bring the party within it." And this general rule is so expressly allowed to have place in high treason, that it is admitted on all hands, that an indictment would be radically and incurably bad, unless it charged the compassing of the King's death, as the leading and fundamental averment, and unless it formally charged the overt act to be committed in order to effectuate the traitorous purpose. Nobody ever denied this proposition ; and the present indictment is framed accordingly. Now it is needless to say that if the benignity of the general law requires this precision in the indictment, the proof must be correspondingly precise, for otherwise the subject would derive no benefit from the strictness of the indictment ; the strictness of which can have no other meaning in law or common sense, than the protection of the prisoner; for if, though the indictment must directly charge a breach of the very letter of the statute, the prisoner could, nevertheless, be convicted by evidence not amounting to a breach of the letter, then the strictness of the indictment would not only be no protection to the prisoner, but a direct violation of the first principles of justice criminal and civil, which call universally for the proof of all material averments in every legal proceeding. But Mr. Justice Forster expressly adverts to the necessary severity of proof, as well as of charge — for he says, that " although a case is brought within the reason of a penal statute, and within the mischief to be pre 35* 414 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH vented, yet if it does not come within the unequivocal leiier, the benignity of the law interposeth." If the law then be thus severe in the interpretation of every penal proceeding, even down to an action for the killing of a hare or a partridge, are its constructions only to be enlarged and extended as to the statute of high treason, ahhough the single object of passing it was to guard against constructions ? Gentlemen, the reason of the thing is so palpably and invin- cibly in favor of this analogy, that it never met with a direct opposition. The Attorney General himself distinctly admits it in one part of his address to you, though he seems to deny it in another. I hope that when 1 state one part of his speech to be in diametrical opposition to another, he will not suppose that I attribute the inconsistency to any defect, either in his under- standing or iiis heart; fiir from it — they arise, I am convinced, from some of the authorities not being sufficiently understood. In the beginning of his speech he admits that the evidence must be satisfactory and convincing as to the intention ; but in the latter part he seems, as it were, to take off the efiect of that admission. I wish to give you the very words. I took them down at the time ; and if I do not state them correctly, I desire to be corrected. '' I most distinctly disavow," said my Hon- orable Friend, " every case of construction. I most distinctly disavow any like case of treason not within the letter of the statute. I most distinctly disavow cumulative treason. I most distinctly disavow enhancing guilt by parity of reason. The question undoubtedly is, whether the proof be full and sat- isfactory to your reasons and consciences that the prisoner is guilty of the treason of compassing the King's death." Gen- tlemen, I hope that this will always with equal honor be admitted. Now let us see how the rest of the learned Gentle- man's speech falls in with this. — For he goes on to say, that it is by no means necessary that the distinct, specific intention should pre-exist the overt act. " If the overt act," says he, "be deliberately committed, it is a compassing." But how so, if the intention be admitted to be the treason? What benefit is obtained by the rigorous demand of the statute, that the com- passing of the King's death shall be charged by the indictment as the crime, if a crime difi'erent, or short of it, can be substi- tuted for it in the proof? And how can the statute of Richard the Second be said to be repealed, which made it high treason to compass to depose the King, independently of intention upon his fife, if the law shall declare, notwithstanding the repeal, that they are synonymous terms, and that the one conclusively involves the other? Gentlemen, if we examine the most prominent cases, which ON THE TRIAL OF THOMAS HARDY. 41 5 have come in judgment before Judges of the most unques- tionable authority, and after the constitution had become fixed, you will find everything that I have been saying to you justified and confirmed. The first great state trial, after the Revolution, was the case of Sir John Freind, a conspirator in the assassination plot. Sir John Freind was indicted for compassing and imagining the death of King William ; and the overt acts charged, and prin- cipally relied on, were, first, the sending Mr. Charnock into France to King James, to desire him to persuade the French King to send forces over to Great Britain, to levy war against, and to depose the King, and that Mr. Charnock was actually sent ; and, secondly, the preparing men to be levied to form a corps to assist in the restoration of the Pretender, and the expulsion of King William, of which Sir John Freind was to be colonel. — In this case, if the proofs were not to be wholly discredited, and the overt acts were consequently established, they went rationally to convince the mind of every man of the pre-existing intention to destroy the King. The conspiracy was not to do an act which, though it might lead eventually and speculatively to the King's death, might not be foreseen or designed by those who conspired together; — the conspiracy was not directed to an event, probably leading to another, and a different one, and from the happening of which second, a third still different might be engendered, which third might again lead in its consequences to a fourth state of things, which might, in the revolution of events, bring on the death of the King, though never compassed or imagined : — Freind's conspi- racy, on the contrary, had for its direct and immediate object the restoration of the Pretender to the throne, by the junction of foreign and rebellious force. In my opinion (and I am not more disposed than others to push things beyond their mark in the administration of criminal justice,) Sir John Freind, if the evidence against him found credit with the jury, could have no possible defence; since the evidence went directly to prove the dispatch of Charnock to France, under his direction, to invite the French King to bring over the Pretender into England, and to place him on the throne. The intention, therefore, of Sir John Freind to cut off King William, was a clear inference from the overt act in question ; not an inference of law for the Court, but oi fact for the Jury, under the guidance of plain common sense; because the consequence of the Pretender's regaining the throne, must have been the attainder of King William by act of Parliament. — Some gentlemen seem to look as if they thought not — but I should be glad to hear the position contradicted. I repeat, that if the Pretender had been restored, 416 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH as King of England, the legal consequence would have been, that King William would have been a traitor and an usurper, and subject as such to be tried at the Old Bailey, or wherever else the King, who took his place, thought fit to bring him to judgment. From these premises, therefore, there could be no difficulty of inferring the intention ; and therefore, if ever a case existed, where, from the clearness of the inference, the province of the Jury might have been overlooked, and the overt act con- founded with the treason, it was in the instance of Freind ; but so far was this from being the case, that you will find, on the contrary, everything I have been saying to you, since I began to address you, summed up and confirmed by that most eminent magistrate Lord Chief Justice Holt, who presided upon that trial. He begins thus : — " Gentlemen of the Jury, look ye, the treason that is mentioned in the Indictment is conspiring, com- passing, and imagining the death of the King. To prove the conspiracy and design of the King's DEATH, two principal overt acts are insisted on." He does not consider the overt act of conspiracy and consultation to be the treason, but evi- dence (as it undoubtedly was in that case) to prove the com- passing the death. The Chief Justice then states the two overt acts above mentioned, and sums up the evidence for and against the prisoner, and leaves the intention to the Jury as matter of fact. — For it is not till afterwards that he comes to answer the prisoner's objection in point of law, as the Chief Justice in terms puts it — " There is anolher thing," said Lord Chief Justice Holt, " he did insist upon, and that is matter of law. The statute 25th Edward III. was read, which is the great statute about trea- sons, and that does contain divers species of treason, and declares what shall be treason : one treason is the compassing and imagining the death of the King ; another is the levying war. Now says he" (i. e. Freind,) " Here is no war actually levied ; and a bare conspiracy to levy war, does not come within the law against treason." To pause here a little : Freind's argument was this — Whatever my intentions might be — whatever my object of leying war might have been — whatever might have been my design to levy it — however the destruction of the King might have been effected by my conspiracy, if it had gone on — and however it might have been my intention that it should, — it is not treason within the 25th of Edward III. — to which Holt replied, a little incorrectly in language, but right in substance — '^ A^ow far that I must tell you, if there he only a conspiracy to levy ivar, it is not treason :" i. e. it is not a substantive treason : it is not a treason in the uhslract. " But if the design and conspiracy be either to kill ON THE TRIAL OF THOMAS HARDY. 417 the King, or to depose him, or imprison him, or put any force or restraint upon him," i. e. personal restraint by force, " and the way of eft'ecting these purposes is by levying a ivar ; there the conspiracy and consultation, to levy war for that purpose, is high treason, though no war be levied: for such consultation and conspiracy is an overt act PROVING the compassing the death of the King." But what sort of war is it, the bare con- spiracy to levy which is an overt act to prove a design against the King's life, though no war be actually levied ? Gentlemen, Lord Holt himself illustrates this matter so clearly, that if I had anything at stake short of the honor and life of the prisoner, I might sit down as soon as I had read it : — for if one did not know it to be an extract from an ancient trial, one would say it was admirably and accurately written for the present purpose. — It is a sort of prophetic bird's-eye view of what we are engaged in at this moment : — " There may be war levied {continues Lord Holt in Freincl's case) without any design upon the King's person which, if actually levied, is high treason, though purposing and designing such a levying of war is not so. As for example : if persons do assemble themselves, and act with force, in opposition to some law, and hope thereby to get it repealed ; this is a levying war, and treason, though the purposing and designing of it is not so. So when they endeavor, in great numbers, with force, to make reformation of their own heads, without pursuing the methods of the law, that is a levy- ing war, but the purpose and designing is not so. But if there be, as I told you, a purpose and design to destroy the King, and" (not or to depose him, but and to depose him) " to depose him from his throne, which is proposed and designed to be effected by war that is to be levied ; such a conspiracy and consulta- tion to levy war /or bringing this to pass'^ (i. e. for bringing the King's death to pass) " is an overt act of high treason. So that. Gentlemen, as to that objection which he makes, IN POINT OF LAW, it is of no force, if there be evidence sufficient to con- vince you that he did conspire to levy war FOR SUCH AN END." And he concludes by again leaving the intention ex- pressly to the Jury. It is the end therefore for uhich the war is to be levied, and not the conspiracy to do any act which the law considers as a levying of war, that constitutes an overt act of treason against the King's life. The most rebellious movements towards a reform in government, not directed against the King's person, will not, according to Lord Holt, support the charge before you. — I might surround the House of Commons with fifty thousand men, for the express purpose of forcing them, by dm*ess, to repeal any law that is offensive to me, or to pass a JJC 418 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH bill for altering elections, without being a possible object of /Azs prosecution. — Under the other branch of the statute, I might indeed be convicted of levying war, but not of compassing the King's death ; and if I only conspired and meditated this rising to repeal laws by rebellion, I could be convicted of nothing but a high misdemeanor. — I would give my friends the case upon a special verdict, and let them hang me if they could. — How much more might I give it them, if the conspiracy imputed was not to effect a reform by violence, but, as in the case before us, by pamphlets and speeches, which might produce universal suffrage, which universal suffrage might eat out and destroy Aristocracy, which destruction might lead to the fall of Mon- archy, and, in the end, to the death of the King. — Gentlemen,^ if the cause were not too serious, I should liken it to the play with which we amuse our children : This is the cow with the crumpledy horn, which gored the dog, that worried the cat, that ate the rat, &c. ending in the house which Jack built. I do therefore maintain, upon the express authority of Lord Holt, that, to convict a prisoner, charged with this treason, it is absolutely necessary that you should be satisfied of his in- tention against the King's life, as charged in the Indictment, and that no design against the King's government will even be a legal overt act to be left to a Jury as the evidence of such an intention (much less the substantive and consummate treason,) unless the conspiracy be directly pointed against the person of the King. The case of Lord George Gordon is opposed to this as a high and modern decision ; and the Attorney General descended indeed to a very humble and lowly authority, when he sought to maintain his argument by my own speech, as Counsel for that unfortunate person. The passage of it alluded to lies at this moment before me ; and I shall repeat it, and re- maintain it to-day. — But let it first be recollected, that Lord George Gordon was not indicted for compassing or imagining the King's death, under the first branch of the statute, but for levying war under the second. It never indeed entered into the conception of any man living, that such an indictment could have been maintained, or attempted against him : I appeal to one of your Lordships now present, for whose learning and capacity I have the greatest and highest respect, and who sat upon that trial, that it was not insinuated from the Bar, much less adjudged by the Court, that the evidence had any heanng upon the ^rsl branch of treason. I know that 1 may safely appeal to Mr. Justice Buller for the truth of this assertion ; and nothing surely in the passage from my address to the Jury, has the remotest allusion to assimilate a conspiracy against the King's government (collateral to his person) with a treason ON THE TRIAL OF THOMAS HARDY. 419 against his life. My words were, " To compass, or imagine the death of the King ; such imagination, or purpose of the mind, visi- ble only to its great Author, being manifested by some open act ; an institution obviously directed, not only to the security of his natural person, but to the stability of the government ; the life of the Prince being so interwoven with the constitution of the State, that an attempt to destroy the one, is justly held to be a rebellious conspiracy against the other." What is this but to say that the King's sacred life is guarded by higher sanctions than the ordinary laws, because of its more inseparable connexion with the public security, and that an attempt to destroy it is therefore made treason against the State? But the Attorney General is, I am sure, too correct in his logic to say, that the converse of the proposition is therefore maintained, and that an attack upon the King's authority, with- out design upon his person, is affirmed by the same expression to be treason against his life. His correct and enlarged mind is incapable of such confusion of ideas. But it is time to quit what fell from me upon this occasion, in order to examine the judgment of the Court, and to clothe myself with the authority of that great and venerable magis- trate, whose memory will always be dear to me, not only from the great services he rendered to his country in the adminis- tration of her justice, but on account of the personal regard and reverence I had for him when living. Lord Mansfield, in delivering the law to the Jury upon Lord George Gordon's trial (I appeal to the trial itself, and to Mr. Justice Buller, now present, who agreed in the judgment) ex- pressly distinguished hetween the safety provided for the King's natural person, by the first branch of the statute, and the secu- rity of his executive power under the second. That great Judge never had an idea that the natural person of the King, and the majesty of the King, were the same thing, nor that the treasons against them were synonymous : he knew, on the contrary, for he knew all that was to be known, that as substantive crimes they never had been blended. I will read his own words : — " There are two kinds of levying war : — one against the per- son of the King; to imprison, to dethrone, or to kill him; or to make him change measures, or remove counsellors : — the other, which is said to be levied against the majesty of the King, or, in other words, against him in his regal capacity ; as when a multitude rise and assemble to attain by force and violence any object of a general public nature ; that is levying war against the majesty of the King ; and most reasonably so held, because it tends to dissolve all the bonds of society, to destroy property, and to overturn government ; and, by force of arms, to restrain 420 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH the King from reigning according to law." But then observe, Gentlemen, the ivar must be actually levied ; and here again I appeal to Mr. Justice Buller, for the words of Lord Mansfield, expressly referring for what he said to the authority of Lord Holt, in Sir John Freind's case, already cited : " Lord Chief Justice Holt, in Sir John Freind's case, says : — If persons do assemble themselves and act with force, in opposition to some law which they think inconvenient, and hope thereby to get it repealed, this is a levying war and treason. In the present case it don't rest upon an implication that they hoped by opposition to a law to get it repealed ; but the prosecution proceeds upon the direct ground, that the object was, by /brce and violence, to compel the Legislature to repeal a law ; and therefore, without any doubt, I tell you the joint opinion of us all, that, if this multitude assembled ivith intent, hy acts of force and violence, to compel the Legislature to repeal a law, it is high treason." Let these words of Lord Mansfield be taken down, and then show me the man, let his rank and capacity be what they may, who can remove me from the foundation on which I stand, when I maintain that a conspiracy to levy war for the objects of reformation, is not only not the high treason charged by this Indictment, when not directly pointed against the King's per- son, but that even the actual levying it would not amount to the constitution of the crime. But this is the least material part of Lord Mansfield's judgment, as applicable to the present question ; for he expressly considers the intentioiv of the prisoner, whatever be the act of treason alleged against him, to be all in all. So far from holding the probable or even inevitable consequence of the thing done as constituting the quality of the act, he pronounces them to be nothing as separated from the criminal design to produce them. Lord George Gordon as- sembled an immense multitude around the house of Commons, a system so opposite to that of the persons accused before this commission, that it appears from the evidence they would not even allow a man to come amongst them, because he had been Lord George's Attorney. The Lords and Commons were absolutely blockaded in the chambers of Parliament ; and if control was the intention of the prisoner, it must be wholly immaterial what were the deliberations that were to be con- trolled ; whether it was the continuance of Roman Catholics under penal laws, the repeal of the septennial act, or a total change of the structure of the House of Commons, that was the object of violence ; the attack upon the legislature of the country would have been the same. That the multitude were actually assembled round the Houses, and brought there by the prisoner, it was impossible for me as his Counsel even to think ON THE TRIAL OF THOMAS HARDY. 421 of denying, nor that their tumultuous proceedings were not in effect productive of great intimidation, and even danger, to the Lords and Commons, in the exercise of their authority ; — neither did I venture to question the law, that the assembling the multitude for that purpose, was levying war within the statute. Upon these facts therefore, applied to the doctrines we have heard upon this trial, there would have been nothing: in Lord George Gordon's case to try ; he must have been in- stantly, without controversy, convicted. But Lord Mansfield did not say to the Jury (according to the doctrines that have been broached here,) that if they found the multitude assembled by the prisoner, were in fact palpably intimidating and con- trolling the Parliament in the exercise of their functions, he was guilty of high treason, irhatever his intentions might have been. — He did not tell them that the inevitable consequence of assembling a hundred thousand people round the Legislature, being a control on their proceedings, was therefore a levying war ; though collected from folly and rashness, without the in- tention of violence or control. — If this had been the doctrine of Lord Mansfield, there would (as I said before) have been nothing to try; for I admitted in terms, that his conduct was the extremity of rashness, and totally inconsistent with his rank in the country, and his station as a member of the House of Commons. But the venerable magistrate never for a moment lost sight of the grand ruling principle of criminal justice, that crimes can have no seat but in the mind ; and upon the prisoner's intention, and upon his intention alone, he expressly left the whole matter to the Jury, with the following directions, which I shall read verbatim from the trial ; " Having premised these several propositions and principles, the subject matter for your con- sideration naturally resolves itself into two points : " First, Whether this multitude did assemble and commit acts of violence, with intent to terrify and compel the Legis- lature to repeal the act called Sir George Saville's — If upon this point your opinion should be in the negative, that makes an end of the whole, and the prisoner ought to be acquitted: but if your opinion should be, that the intent of this jnultitude, and the violence they committed, was to force a repeal, there arises a second point — " Whether the prisoner at the bar incited, encouraged, pro- moted, or assisted in raising this insurrection, and the terror they carried with them, icith the intent of forcing a repeal of this law. "■ Upon these two points, which you will call your attention to, depends the fate of this trial; for if either the multitude had no such intent, or supposing they had, if ike prisoner ivas no cause, 36 422 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH did not excite, and took no part in conducting, counselling, or fomenting the insurrection, the prisoner ought to be acquitted ; and there is no pretence that he personally concurred in any act of violence." I therefore consider the case of Lord George Gordon, as a direct authority in my favor. To show that a conspiracy to depose the King, independently of ulterior intention against his life, is high treason within the statute, the Attorney General next supposes that traitors had conspired to depose King William, but still to preserve him as Stadtholder in Holland, and asks whether that conspiracy would not be a compassing his death ; to that question I answer, that it would not have been a compassing the death of King Wil- liam, provided the conspirators could have convinced the Jury that their firm and bond fide intention was to proceed no further, and that, under that belief and impression, the Jury (as they lawfully might) had negatived by their finding the fact of the intention against the King's natural existence. I have no doubt at all, that, upon such a finding, no judgment of treason could be pronounced : but the difficulty would be, to meet with a Jury, who, upon the bare evidence of such a conspiracy, would find such a verdict. There might be possible circumstances to justify such a negative of the intention, but they must come from the prisoner. In such a case the Crown would rest upon the conspiracy to depose, which would be -prima facie and co- gent evidence of the compassing, and leave the hard task of rebutting it, on the defendants : — I say the hard task, because the case put is of a direct rebellious force, acting against the King ; not only abrogating his authority, but imprisoning and expelling his person from the kingdom. I am not seeking to abuse the reasons and consciences of Juries in the examination of facts, but am only resisting the confounding them with ar- bitrary propositions of law. Gentlemen, I hope I have now a right to consider that the existence of the high treason charged against the unfortunate man before you, is a matter of fact for your consideration upon the evidence. To establish this point, has been the scope of all that you have been listening to, with so much indulgence and patience. It was my intention to have farther supported my- self, by a great many authorities, which I have been laboriously extracting from the different books of the law ; but I find I must pause here, lest I consume my strength in this preliminary part of the case, and leave the rest defective. Gentlemen, the persons named in the Indictment are charged with a conspiracy to subvert the rule, order, and government of this country ; and it is material that you should observe ON THE TRIAL OF THOMAS HARDY. 423 most particularly the means by which it alleges this purpose was to be accomplished. The charge is not of a conspiracy to hold the Convention in Scotland, which was actually held there ; nor of the part they took in its actual proceedings ; but the overt act, to which all the others are subsidiary and subor- dmate, is a supposed conspiracy to hold a Convention in Eng- land, which never in fact was held; and consequently all the vast load of matter which it has been decided you should hear, that docs not immediately connect itself with the charge in question, is only laid before you (as the Court has repeatedly expressed it) to prove that in point of fact such proceedings were had, the quality of which is for your judgment ; and as far, and as far only, as they can be connected with the prison- er, and the act which he stands charged with, to be left to you as evidence of the intention with which the holding of the sec- ond Convention was projected. This intention is therefore the whole cause — for the charge is not the agreement to hold a Convention, which it is notorious, self-evident, and even admitted that they intended lO hold ; but the agreement to hold it /or the purpose alleged, of assuming all the authority of the state, and in fulfilment of the main intentiori against the life of the King." Unless, therefore, you can collect this double intention from the evidence before you, the Indict- ment is not maintained. Gentlemen, the charge being of a conspiracy, which, if made out in point of fact, involved beyond all controversy, and with- in the certain knowledge of the conspirators, the lives of every soul that was engaged in it ; the first observation which I shall make to you (because in reason it ought to precede all others) is, that every act done by the prisoners, and every sentence written by them, in the remotest degree connected with the charge, or oflered in evidence to support it, was done and written in the public face of the world : — the transactions which constitute the whole body of the proof, were not those of a day, but in regular series for two years together; they were not the peculiar transaction of the prisoners, but of immense bodies of the King's subjects, in various parts of the kingdom, assembled without the smallest reserve, and giving to the public, through the channel of the daily newspapers, a minute and regular jour- nal of their whole proceedings. Not a syllable have we heard read, in the week's imprisonment we have suffered, that we had not all of us read for months and months before the prosecution was heard of; and which, if we are not sufiiciently satiated, we may read again upon the file of every coflee-house in the kingdom. It is admitted distinctly by the Crown, that a reform in the House of Commons is the ostensible purpose of all the 424 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH proceedings laid before you ; and that the attainment of that object only, is the grammatical sense of the great body of the written evidence. It rests therefore with the Crown, to show by LEGAL PROOF that this ostensible purpose, and the whole mass of correspondence upon the table, was only a cloak to conceal a hidden machination, to subvert by force the entire authorities of the kingdom, and to assume them to themselves. Whether a reform of Parliament be a wise or an unwise expe- dient; whether, if it were accomplished, it would ultimately be attended with benefits, or dangers to the country, I will not undertake to investigate, and for this plain reason ; because it is wholly foreign to the subject before us. — But when we are trying the integrity of men's intentions, and are examining whether their complaints of defects in the representation of the House of Commons, be bona fide, or only a mere stalking-horse for treason and rebellion, it becomes a most essential inquiry, whether they be the first who have uttered these complaints ; — whether they have taken up notions for the first time, v/hich never occurred to others ; and whether, in seeking to interfere practically in an alteration of the Constitution, they have mani- fested, by the novelty of their conduct, a spirit inconsistent with affection for the government, and subversive of its au- thority. Gentlemen, I confess for one (for I think the safest way of defending a person for his life before an enlightened tribunal, is to defend him ingenuously,) I confess for one, that if the defects in the constitution of Parliament, which are the subject of the writings, and the foundation of all the proceed- ings before you, had never occurred to other persons at other times, or if not new, they had only existed in the history of former conspiracies, I should be afraid you would suspect, at least, that the authors of them were plotters of mischief. — In such a case I should naturally expect that you would ask your- selves this question — Why should it occur to the prisoner at the bar, and to a few others in the year 1794, immediately after an important revolution in another country, to find fault, on a sudden, with a constitution which had endured for ages, without the imputation of defect, and which no good subject had ever thought of touching with the busy hand of reforma- tion? I candidly admit that such a question would occur to the mind of every reasonable man, and could admit no favorable answer. — But surely this admission entitles me, on the other hand, to the concession, that if, in comparing their writings, and examining their conduct with the writings and conduct of the best and most unsuspected persons in the best and most un- suspected times, we find them treading in the paths which have distinguished their highest superiors; if we find them only ex- ON THE TRIAL OF THOMAS HARDY. 425 posing the same defects, and pursuing the same or sinnilar courses for their removal, — it would be the height of wicked- ness and injustice to torture expressions, and pervert conduct into treason and rebellion, which had recently lifted up others to the love of tlie nation, to the confidence of the sovereign, and to all the honors of the state. The natural justness of this reasoning is so obvious, that we have only to examine the fact; and, considering under what auspices the pi'isoners are brought before you, it may be fit that I should set out with reminding you, that the great Earl of Chatham began and established the fame and glory of his life upon the very cause which my un- fortunate clients were engaged in, and that he left it as an in- heritance to the present minister of the Crown, as the founda- tion of his fame and glory after him ; and his fame and glory were accordingly raised upon it ; and if the Crown's evidence had been carried as far back as it might have been (for the in- stitution of only one of the two London Societies is before us,) you would have found that the Constitutional Society owed its earliest credit with the country, if not its very birth, to the la- bor of the present minister, and its professed principles to his Grace the Duke of Richmond, high also in his Majesty's present Councils, whose plan of reform has been clearly estabhshed by the whole body of the written evidence, and by every witness examined for the Crown, to have been the type and model of all the Societies in the supposed conspiracy, and uniformly act- ed upon in form and in substance by the prisoner before you, up to the very period of his confinement. Gentlemen, the Duke of Richmond's plan was universal suffi'age and annual Parliaments ; and urged too with a bold- ness, which, when the comparison comes to be made, will leave in the back-ground the strongest figures in the writings on the table. I do not say this sarcastically ; I mean to speak with the greatest respect of his Grace, both with regard to the wisdom and integrity of his conduct; for although I have always thought in politics with the illustrious person whose letter was read to you ; although I think, with Mr, Fox, that annual Parliaments and universal suflrage would be nothing' like an improvement in the Constitution; yet I confess that I find it easier to say so than to answer the Duke of Richmond's arguments on the subject ; and I must say besides, speaking of his Grace from a long personal knowledge, which began when I was Counsel for his relation Lord Keppel, that, independently of his illustrious rank, which secures him against the imputation of trifling with its existence, he is a person of an enlarged understanding, of extensive reading, and of much reflection ; and that his book cannot therefore be considered as the effusion 3 D 36* 426 MR. ERSKINE'S SPEECH of rashness and folly, but as the well-weighed, though perhaps erroneous, conclusions drawn from the actual condition of our afiairs, viz. that without a speedy and essential reform in Par liament (and there my opinion goes along with him) the very being of the country, as a great nation, would be lost. This plan of the Duke of Richmond was the grand main-spring of every proceeding we have to deal with ; — you have had a great number of loose conversations reported from Societies, on which no reliance can be had: sometimes they have been garbled by spies, sometimes misrepresented by ignorance ; and even, if correct, have frequently been the extravagances of unknown individuals, not even uttered in the presence of the prisoner, and totally unconnected with any design ; for when- ever their proceedings are appealed to, and their real object examined, by living members of them, brought before you by the Crown, to testify them under the most solemn obligations of truth, they appear to have been following, in form and in substance, the plans adopted within our memmdes, not only by the Duke of Richmond, bid by hundreds of the most eminent men in the kingdom. The Duke of Richmond formally published his plan of reform in the year 1780, in a letter to Lieutenant Colonel Sharman, who was at that time practically employed upon the same object in Ireland ; and this is a most material part of the case ; because you are desired to believe that the terms Coivvention, and Delegates, and the holding the one, and sending the other, were all collected from what had recently happened in France, and were meant as the formal inti'oduction of her republican constitution ; but they who desire you to believe all this, do not believe it themselves ; because they know certainly, and it has indeed already been proved by their own witnesses, that Conventions of Reformers were held in Ireland, and Delegates regularly sent to them, whilst France was under the dominion of her ancient government. — They knew full well that Colonel Sharman, to whom the Duke's letter was addressed, was at that very moment supporting a Convention in Ireland, at the head of ten thousand men in arms, for the defence of their country, without any commission from the King, any more than poor Franklow had, who is now in Newgate, for regimenting sixty. These volunteers asserted and saved the liberties of Ireland ; and the King would, at this day, have had no more subjects in Ireland than he now has in America, if they had been treated as traitors to the government. It was never imputed to Colonel Sharman and the volunteers, that they were in rebellion ; — yet they had arms in their hands, which the prisoners never dreamed of having ; whilst a grand general Convention was actually sitting under their auspices at ON THE TRIAL OF THOMAS HARDY. 427 the Royal Exchange of DubUn, attended by regular Delegates from all the counties in Ireland. — And who were these Dele- gates? — I will presently tear off their names from this paper, and hand it to you. — They were the greatest, the best, and proudest names in Ireland ; — men who had the wisdom to reflect (before it was too late for reflection) that greatness is not to be supported by tilting at inferiors, till, by the separation of tlie higher from the lower orders of mankind, every distinc- tion is swept away in the tempest of revolution ; but in the happy harmonization of the whole community ; by conferring upon the people their rights ; sure of receiving the auspicious return of afi:ection, and of insui'ing the stability of the govern- ment, which is erected upon that just and natural basis. — Gen- tlemen, they who put this tortured construction on conventions and delegates, know also that repeated meetings of reforming Societies, both in England and Scotland, had assumed about the same time the style of Conventions, and had been attended by regular delegates long before the phrase had, or could have, any existence in France; and that upon the very model of these former associations, a formal Convention was actually sitting in Edinburgh, with the Lord Chief Baron of Scotland in the chair, for promoting a reform in Parliament, at the very moment the Scotch Convention, following its example, assumed that title. To return to this letter of the Duke of Richmond : — It was written to Colonel Sharman, in answer to a letter to His Grace, desiring to know his plan of reform, which he accordingly communicated by the letter which is in evidence ; and which plan was neither more nor less than that adopted by the prisoners, of surrounding Parliament (unwiUing to reform its own corruptions,) not by armed men, or by importunate multitudes, but by the still and universal voice of a whole people CLAIMING THEIR KNOWN AND UNALIENABLE RIGHTS. This is so precisely the plan of the Duke of Richmond, that I have almost borrowed his expressions. His Grace says, " The lesser reform has been attempted with every possible advantage in its favor ; not only from the zealous support of the advocates for a more effectual one, but from the assistance of men of great weight, both in and out of power. But with all these tempera- ments and helps, it has failed. Not one proselyte has been gained from corruption, nor has the least ray of hope been held out from any quarter, that the House of Commons was inclined to adopt any other mode of reform. The weight of corruption has crushed this more gentle, as it would have defeated any more efficacious plan in the same circumstances. From that